Skip to main content

Full text of "The life of Martin Luther"

See other formats


3  1210  01658  4516 


i 


I     1  II   fl 


■ 


I 


f'l; 


in 


n 


P  ! 


I 


I 


Hi 
■ 


i   i.  IS^'p  , . 


i'f'i'lB  I  ■ 


V 


6  !<ni 


'« 


IBB 


-     \i'~-     ~r  FIT-  '-"v' 

■  ■1     ;      :<r 

Ir    '  ,  iiii^iiiihini  r 

!L/-'i,..jj        :  ••  :'i Hill,  i.&f 

miiijiiiiii. L  ,  n,:       ~— ll1^1! 

ISAAC  FOOT 

11BRARY 

UNIVERSITY  OF  CALIFORNIA 

RIVERSIDE 


J 


^ 


THE    LIFE 


MAE  TIN    LUTHER. 


THE    LIFE 


MARTIN    LUTHER. 


BY 


HENEY  WOESLEY,  M.A., 

RECTOR   OF  EASTON,  SUFFOLK,  LATE  MICIIEL  SCHOLAR  OF  QUEEN'S  COLLEGE,  OXFORD. 


IN  TWO  VOLUMES. 
VOL.  IT. 


LONDON: 
BELL  AND  DALDY,  186,  FLEET  STREET; 

CAMBRIDGE  :    DEIGHTON,  BELL,  &  CO.  J    DUBLIN  :    HODGES  &  SMITH  ; 
EDINBURGH  :    J.  MENZIES. 

MDCCCLVI. 


IONDON : 

WILLI  iM    STKVENS,   PRINTER,  37,    BELL    TAB 
TEMPLE    BAK. 


CONTENTS. 


CHAPTER  V. 

FROM    THE    SPRING    OF    1523    TO    THE    24TH    JUNE,  1526. 

Opening  of  a  new  era— Social  changes — General  desertion  of  the 
convents— Luther's  poverty— Eeply  to  the  Elector  on  the  re- 
cent Eecess— The  fate  of  Sickingen  and  Hutten— Luther's  In- 
dulgence Letter — Efforts  against  the  Bethaven  of  All  Saints — 
Persecution  increases — The  martyrs  of  Brussels— Luther's  re- 
marks on  the  four  Articles  of  the  Eecess— Development  of  the 
Lutheran  Church— Second  part  of  the  German  Bible  published 
— Carlstadt's  fanatical  movements— Second  Diet  of  Nuremberg 
— Luther's  judgment  on  the  Eecess — First  rising  of  the  pea- 
santry— Popish  convention  at  Eatisbon — Imperial  proclamation 
— The  Lutherans  driven  to  counter-measures — Convention  of 
the   cities — Luther's  labours  and  writings— Determination  of 
questions  about  the  Mosaic  law — Educational  exertions — Apo- 
theosis of  Benno — Luther  writes  to  Erasmus— Conversion  to 
Lutheranism  of  Philip  of  Hesse— And  of  Albert  of  Prussia — 
Eiots  of  Munzer  and  the  fanatics— Carlstadt  at  Orlamunde— 
Luther  visits  Jena  and  Orlamunde — Carlstadt  banished  by  the 
Elector — Beginning  of  the  Sacramentarian  Controversy — Fall 
of  the  Bethaven  of  All  Saints— Eesignation  of  the  Augustine 
Convent  to  the  Elector— Death  of  Staupitz— The  Peasant  In- 
surrection— Luther  at  Seeburg — Suddenly  recalled  to  Witten- 
berg— Death  of  the  Elector  Frederic — Luther  writes  against 
sedition  —  The   tragedy   at   Weinsberg  —  Luther's   violence — 
Munzer  made  prisoner  and  put  to  death — The  peasant  insur- 
rection subdued — Effects  of  the  insurrection — Firmness  of  the 
Elector  and  Landgrave— Luther's  letter  on  matrimony  to  the 
Archbishop  of  Mentz — Luther  marries  Catharine  von  Bora — 
His  motives  to  such  a  step — Luther  proposes  a  plan  of  univer- 
sity reform — Implores  a  visitation  of  the  Electorate— Suppli- 
cates for  Carlstadt — Disunion  in  tbe  reforming  camp — Luther 


VI  CONTENTS. 

PAGE 

writes  his  Bondage  of  the  Will  against  Erasmus — His  humble 
letter  to  Henry  VIII. — And  to  Duke  George — His  domestic 
happiness — Popish  confederation  at  Dessau  for  Northern  Ger- 
many— The  Imperial  letters — The  Evangelical  Princes  meet  at 
Fridewald — The  Diet  adjourned  to  meet  at  Spires  in  May — 
Evangelical  Alliance  at  Magdeburg — Luther  appoints  general 
prayers  for  peace — His  order  for  public  worship  published — His 
recreations — He  stands  sponsor  to  Carlstadt's  child — Birth  of 
Johnny    ...........  1 


CHAPTER  VI. 

FROM    THE    24TH    JUNE,    1526,    TO    THE    3RD    APRIL,    1530. 

Dangers  to  the  Reformation  at  this  crisis — The  Diet  of  Spires — The 
Recess — Ferdinand  obtains  the  thrones  of  Bohemia  and  Hun- 
gary— Luther's  justification  of  defensive  warfare — His  com- 
mentaries on  the  Prophets —  Cardinal  Colonna  plunders  Rome — 
Luther's  letter  to  Mary  of  Bohemia — His  pecuniary  difficulties 
— His  opposition  to  rapine — His  sickness— His  reply  to  Emser's 
calumnies — His  amusements  and  good  nature — Marriage  of 
John  Frederic — Frundsberg  marches  into  Italy — The  sack  of 
Rome — Luther's  severe  illness — The  plague— Birth  of  Elizabeth 
Luther — The  Visitation  Articles — Carlstadt  quits  Saxony  for 
good — Luther's  use  of  returning  health — Apprehensions  of  the 
Diet  of  Ratisbon — The  Otto  Pack  plot — Luther  and  Duke 
George  at  war — The  Visitation — The  Saxon  Church  modelled — 
Spiritual  and  moral  destitution  under  Romanism — Importance 
of  this  epoch — Conversions  to  the  evangelical  cause— Luther 
suffers  from  giddiness — Birth  of  his  daughter  Magdalene — 
Second  Diet  of  Spires — The  Recess— The  first  Protestants — 
The  appeal — Views  of  the  Landgrave — Melancthon's  distress — 
Luther's  letter  to  the  Elector — Deliberations  of  the  Lutheran 
princes — The  Marburg  Conference  proposed — Luther's  reluc- 
tance— The  journey  to  Marburg — The  three  days'  disputation — 
The  sweating  sickness — Luther  offers  the  Zwinglians  the  hand 
of  charity — The  Marburg  articles — Luther's  Letter  to  Kate — 
His  Battle  Sermon —  The  Turk  retreats — The  three  ambassadors 
— The  Emperor's  movements— Conferences  at  Schwabach  and 
Schmalkald — Luther's  advice  to  the  Elector — Luther  prevails— 
The  spread  of  the  Gospel — Mathesius  at  Wittenberg — Luther's 
publications — Dangerous  sickness  of  John  Luther — The  Re- 
formers at  Torgau    .........     loo 


CONTENTS.  \  M 

CHAPTER  VII. 

FROM    THE    3RD    APRIL,    1530,    TO    THE    30TH    MAY,    1536. 

PAGE 

The  journey  to  Coburg — Luther  at  Coburg — The  Diet  of  the  Jackdaws 
— Luther's  writings — Letter  to  his  son  Johnny — The  Protes- 
tants at  Augsburg  and  the  Romanists  at  Innspruck — Gattinara's 
death — The  question  of  free  preaching — Luther's  visitors — The 
Emperor  enters  Augsburg — The  first  interview  in  the  Palatinate 
— The  interview  the  next  morning — Luther's  prayer  fulness  and 
faith — The  preachers  on  both  sides  silenced — The  Diet  is  opened 
— The  Apology  read — Luther's  joy  and  gratitude — The  Augs- 
berg  comedy — Trials  of  the  Elector  John — Luther's  letters  to 
Bruck  and  Melancthon— His  idea  of  the  result  to  be  gained 
from  the  Diet — His  differences  from  Melancthon — The  Confuta- 
tion read — The  Landgrave's  flight — The  Commission  of  Four- 
teen— The  Pope  the  author  of  schism — The  Commission  of  Six 
— The  last  effort  of  the  Papists— Luther's  infirmities — John 
Frederic  at  Coburg — The  Elector  leaves  Augsburg — The  Recess 
— The  results  of  the  Diet — Luther  returns  home — Ferdinand 
elected  King  of  the  Romans — Luther's  dread  of  War,  and  warn- 
ing to  his  deal*  Germans — "  Notes  on  the  Edict  of  Augsburg  " 
—The  wrath  of  Duke  George— Birth  of  little  Marian— The  illness 
and  death  of  Luther's  mother — Luther  on  the  right  of  patronage 
—He  forbids  Henry  VIII.'s  divorce — The  fall  of  Zwingle — Ne- 
gotiations at  Schweinfurt— Luther  with  the  Elector — The  Sultan 
retreats — Death  of  John  the  Constant — Luther  and  Duke  George 
— The  second  Saxon  Visitation — The  Pope's  Council  rejected  by 
the  allies— The  Duke  of  Wirtemburg  restored  to  his  Duchy — 
Luther  and  the  sceptics — The  birth  of  Margaret  Luther — 
Luther  and  Duke  George  at  feud  again — Luther's  letters  to  tbe 
Archbishop  of  Mentz — The  plague  at  Wittenberg— New  era  in 
Romanism — The  Papal  Nuncio  at  Wittenberg — The  Schmalkald 
Alliance  rejects  the  Council — Luther's  salary  increased — The 
Wittenberg  Concord— Luther  on  preaching — The  great  progress 
of  the  Reformation    ....  ....     198 


CHAPTER  VIII. 

FROM    THE    30TH    MAY,    1536,    TO    THE    18TH    FEBRUARY,    15^6. 

Paul  III.  convokes  a  council — The  Schmalkald  Articles — Luther  at 
Schmalkald — His  severe  illness — Luther  journeys  to  Tambach 


\  111  CONTENTS. 

PAGE 

— He  reaches  Wittenberg1  in  improved  health — Bugenhagen  in 
Denmark — Little  Grickel  the  Antinomian — The  verses  of  Lem- 
nius — The  Papist  league — Luther's  change  of  sentiment  as  to 
the  Emperor — Luther's  predictions — Death  of  Duke  George  of 
Saxony — Luther  in  Leipsic — The  Brandenburg  Reformation — 
Concessions  of  the  Archbishop  of  Mentz — Luther's  work  on 
Councils  and  the  Church — The  estate  of  Zuhlsdorf — Kate's  dan- 
gerous illness— The  Landgrave's  double  marriage — The  con- 
ference at  Eisenach — Melancthon  at  death's  door — The  power  of 
Luther's  prayers— The  conference  at  Hagenau — The  Ratisbon 
Diet — Luther  and  Henry  of  Brunswick — The  deputation  to 
Luther — Luther's  decision — The  Recess  of  the  Diet — The  ex- 
pedition against  Algiers — The  Bishopric  of  Naumburg-Zeitz — 
The  Diet  of  Spires — The  Protestants  seize  the  Duchy  of  Bruns- 
wick— Johnny  Luther  sent  to  school — Death  of  little  Magdalene 
— Luther  writes  against  the  Jews — Luther's  disappointments 
and  hopes — The  Diet  of  Nuremberg— The  Imperial  party — The 
Diet  of  Spires — Charles  beguiles  the  Protestants  by  flattery — 
A  council  convoked  at  Trent — The  "  secret  betrothals  " — Lu- 
ther's letter  to  the  Electress  Sibylla — Luther  visits  the  Bishop 
of  Naumburg-Zeitz — Luther  ill  with  "  the  Cardiac  " — The 
butchery  begins — Luther's  satires — The  Diet  of  Worms — Ru- 
mour of  Luther's  death — Luther  quits  Wittenberg  in  indigna- 
tion— Peace  between  the  Emperor  and  the  Turk — Henrv  of 
Brunswick  in  the  hands  of  the  Landgrave — The  Council  of  Trent 
is  opened— Deliberations  of  the  Schmalkald  allies  at  Frankfort 
— Luther  goes  to  Eisleben — His  sudden  illness — And  death      .     299 


CHAPTER  IX. 


The  great  principles  of  Luther's  system  of  doctrine — His  personal 
appearance — Contradictory  faculties — Luther  as  a  writer — And 
preacher — Luther's  character — His  domestic  life — His  change 
of  sentiment  on  the  sacraments — His  failings — Luther  com- 
pared with  Melancthon,  Erasmus,  Zwingle — His  conduct  in  the 
Landgrave's  second  marriage — His  body  conveyed  to  Witten- 
berg— His  funeral — Melancthon's  oration — Luther's  widow  and 
children  ..........     378 


THE   LIFE 


MAETIN    LUTHEE. 


CHAPTER  V. 


FROM    THE    SPRING    OP    1523,    TO    THE    24TH    JUNE,    1526. 

The  Recess  of  the  first  Diet  of  Nuremberg  divides  two  dis-  1523. 
tinct  periods  in  the  history  of  the  Reformation — the  period  of 
caution  and  backwardness,  when  ardent  aspirations  were  kept 
in  check,  and  overt  changes  discountenanced,  from  that  of 
open  separation  and  energetic  warfare  against  papal  preten- 
sions. "  For  four  years,"  Luther  subsequently  said,  "  I  taught 
faith  and  love,  before  I  carried  into  execution  the  deductions 
consequent  from  such  teaching."  But  it  was  now  necessary 
that  theory  should  be  followed  by  practice,  and  obedience 
should  be  grafted  upon  faith.  He  declared,  that  sufficient 
indulgence  had  been  shown  to  the  weak  ;  that  both  kinds  in 
the  Lord's  Supper  must  henceforth  be  freely  given  and  re- 
ceived ;  the  Gospel  must  have  free  course ;  and  those  who 
opposed  it  could  no  longer  be  deemed  weak  but  perverse. 
He  appears,  in  the  transactions  now  to  be  recorded,  as  a 
spiritual  father  in  the  midst  of  converts,  who  from  all  parts, 
and  of  all  ranks,  look  up  to  him  for  guidance.  Like  an  apostle 
in  the  primitive  time,  he  writes  letters  to  the  various  evangeli- 

VOL.   II.  '  B 


2  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1523.  cal  communities  to  confirm  and  strengthen  their  faith ;  impor- 
tuned on  all  hands,  he  yet  finds  leisure  to  arrange  the  mul- 
tifarious points  of  dispute  on  which  his  judgment  is  con- 
sulted ;  he  consolidates  the  acquisitions  to  the  Gospel ;  he 
regulates  the  distribution  of  church  property ;  frames  for- 
mulas for  the  ordination  of  ministers  and  the  celebration  of 
worship,  and  organises  the  entire  system  of  the  Lutheran 
Church. 

Social  changes,  as  might  be  supposed,  took  the  lead  of 
liturgical  and  ecclesiastical.  On  the  28th  March,  Luther  ad- 
dressed his  "  Admonition  to  the  Teutonic  Order  to  shun  false 
continence,  and  cling  to  the  true  continence  of  the  married 
state."  He  told  the  Teutonic  knights  that  he  trusted  they 
would  set  the  other  orders  a  great,  excellent,  and  powerful 
example,  by  being  the  first  to  violate  the  rule  of  celibacy, 
whereby  incontinence  would  be  diminished,  and  the  fruit  of 
the  Gospel  increase  and  ripen.  Greater  acceptability  and  use- 
fulness would  redound  to  the  Teutonic  Order;  for,  whilst 
celibacy  remained  in  force,  every  husband  had  to  watch 
over  the  honour  of  his  wife  and  daughters.  What  confidence 
could  be  placed  in  the  unmarried,  when  even  married  men 
had  enough  to  do  to  stand  firm  in  their  plighted  faith !  The 
treatise  then  insisted  on  the  scriptural  obligation  to  matri- 
mony from  the  primary  declaration  of  God — "  It  is  not  good 
for  man  to  be  alone."  If  councils  sanctioned  celibacy,  God 
must  be  allowed  to  be  older  than  all  councils ;  and  if  custom 
were  appealed  to,  the  example  of  Adam  constituted  the  oldest 
custom.  Nearly  about  the  same  time  Luther  published  some 
strictures,  in  the  same  spirit,  on  a  sermon  which  had  been 
preached  on  occasion  of  a  nun's  taking  the  veil.  These  de- 
cided views  on  the  subject  of  matrimony  had  called  again 
into  the  field  an  old  antagonist,  Faber,  the  Vicar  of  the 
Bishop  of  Constance,   in  favour  of  celibacy,  who  indited  a 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  3 

great  Latin  book,  which  obtained  the  patronage  of  Duke  1523. 
George.  The  task  of  replying  to  "the  archfool  Faber,  that 
notorious  fornicator,"  Luther  delegated  to  Jonas,  with  the 
expression  of  his  hope  that  his  wife  would  love  him  warmly, 
in  proportion  to  the  warmth  and  cogency  of  argument  with 
which  he  defended  the  married  state.  But  in  the  month  of 
August  he  himself  gave  to  the  world  an  exposition  of  the  7th 
chapter  of  the  1st  Epistle  to  the  Corinthians,  which  formed, 
what  the  Papists  conceived  to  be,  their  scriptural  stronghold 
in  this  matrimonial  controversy. 

The  return  to  social  life  which  had  begun  with  the  paro- 
chial clergy,  and  thence,  extended  to  the  monks,  was  soon  no 
longer  restricted  to  the  male  sex ;  nuns,  in  their  grated  cells, 
read  the  works  of  Luther,  and  conceived  an  abhorrence  of  their 
cloistered  seclusion.  Tuesday  in  Easter  week,  the  7th  April, 
nine  nuns  from  the  convent  of  Nimptsch^  near  Grimma,  were 
conveyed  by  Leonard  Koppe,  and  two  other  citizens  of  Tor- 
gau,  who  had  aided  their  escape,  to  Wittenberg,  and  placed 
under  the  protection  of  Luther.  The  Papists  exclaimed  that 
"  it  was  a  thing  unheard  of,  against  all  laws  and  canons,  ren- 
dered more  audacious  by  Torgau  being  the  usual  residence  of 
the  Elector ;  and  worst  of  all,  it  was  the  sacred  week, 
during  the  commemoration  of  Christ's  passion,  that  the  ra- 
vishment"— so  Cochlseus  denominates  the  escape — "  had  been 
perpetrated  ! "  The  Lutherans  on  their  side,  and  the  Re- 
former, declared  that  such  a  release  could  not  have  been 
accomplished  at  a  more  appropriate  season  than  that  comme- 
morative of  the  Saviour's  breaking  for  ever  the  yoke  of  servile 
bondage.  In  a  justificatory  letter  addressed  to  Koppe,  he 
proclaimed  the  facts  of  the  escape  to  the  world,  in  justice  to 
the  maidens,  to  Koppe,  and  to  himself,  and  published  the 
names  of  the  nuns,  who  were  all  of  noble  birth — Magdalen 
Staupitzin,   Elizabeth  Kanitzin,  Bronica  and  Margaret  Zes- 

b  2 


4  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1523.  chau,  Laneta  Golis,  Ave  Grotschin,  Catherine  Bora,  Ave  and 
Margaret  Schonfeld.  The  Word  of  God,  he  insisted,  was  not 
read  in  the  monasteries,  and  therefore  how  was  it  possible 
that  continence  should  flourish  there  ?  Continence  was  not 
so  common  as  cloisters  were ;  on  the  contrary,  it  was  a  gift  of 
such  peculiar,  nay,  of  such  extraordinary  rarity,  that  prayers 
could  not  be  offered  to  obtain  it,  except  with  great  caution, 
without  tempting  God.  The  friends  of  the  nuns  were  imme- 
diately informed  by  Luther  of  their  escape  from  the  cloister, 
and  their  present  place  of  sojourn,  in  order  that  they  might 
send  and  fetch  them  home.  Those  whose  friends  should  not 
be  willing  to  receive  them,  Luther  resolved  to  settle  in  ho- 
nourable marriage,  with  such  pecuniary  help  as  he  could  find, 
and  maintain  them  until  their  destiny  should  be  determined. 
He  wrote  to  Spalatin  to  beg  assistance  from  the  Elector  for 
this  purpose,  and,  anticipating  Fredericks  reluctance  to  contri- 
bute openly  to  such  an  object,  promised  to  "  keep  it  nicely 
snug,  and  tell  no  one,  if  he  would  but  aid  those  apostate 
virgins."  * 

The  example  of  the  nine  noble  nuns  of  Nimptsch  was  not 
likely  to  be  without  its  effect ;  and  in  June  of  the  same  year, 
sixteen  nuns  escaped  from  the  convent  of  Widerstetten,  in 
the  dominions  of  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld.  "  What  will  hap- 
pen next !"  Luther  exclaimed,  in  a  letter  relating  the  circum- 
stances to  Spalatin.  ' '  You  must  begin  at  last,  and  take  a  wife  ! 
I  marvel  at  the  counsels  of  God :  I — who  thought  I  knew 
something  of  his  way — am  compelled  to  go  back  to  my  rudi- 
ments." The  Abbot  of  Hirsfeld,  although  a  Romanist,  won 
golden  opinions  from  Luther,  by  issuing  an  order  that  what- 
ever monk  or  nun  under  his  jurisdiction  might  desire  to  quit 

*  "  O  ich  wills  fein  heimlicli  halten  und  niemands  sagen." — Letter 
of  April  22. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  5 

the  monastery,  should  be  at  liberty  to  do  so.  Most  of  the  1523. 
liberated  or  escaped  monks  and  nuns  bent  their  steps  to  Wit- 
tenberg, and  sought  the  help  of  Luther,  who  quickly  found 
this  new  care,  superadded  to  his  other  labours,  besides  the 
encroachment  on  his  scanty  means,  far  from  being  an  easy 
burden.  "  I  am  immersed  in  business  little  worthy  of  me," 
he  wrote  to  Wolfgang  Stein,  in  a  letter  requesting  him  to  in- 
terest himself  with  the  Elector  for  the  bearer,  a  monk.  "The 
monks  and  nuns  who  have  deserted  their  convents,"  he  wrote 
to  CEcolampadius,  "  steal  many  hours  of  my  time  to  serve 
their  necessity."  And  a  little  later  he  complains  to  Spalatin, 
"  It  is  most  troublesome  to  me  that  such  a  crowd  of  runaway 
monks  flock  to  Wittenberg,  and  what  is  worse,  immediately 
marry,  without  aptitude  for  any  sort  of  employment." 

The  Prior  and  himself,  the  only  tenants  of  the  old  Augus- 
tine monastery,  were  both  so  poor,  that  there  is  a  letter  of 
Luther's  of  this  period,  soliciting  from  Spalatin  the  payment 
of  a  bill  for  malt,  which  the  Prior  could  not  discharge.  "  The 
money-bag  has  a  great  hole  in  it  and  will  not  be  mended ;" 
and  "  I,"  he  added,  c(  have  fooled  away  so  much  money  on 
the  fugitive  monks  and  nuns,  that  I  cannot  offer  any  contri- 
bution." And  indeed  he  was  indebted  to  electoral  liberality, 
measured  through  the  dilatory  fingers  of  treasurers  and 
agents,  for  whatever  luxuries  he  enjoyed  in  diet  or  dress. 
His  writings  he  never  sold ;  but,  on  the  contrary,  speaks  on 
one  occasion  of  publishing  a  treatise,  "  though  weary  of 
writing  to  feed  Luke's  printing  press."  And  the  Wittenberg 
people,  his  "  Capernaumites,"  as  he  styles  them,  were  so 
close-fisted,  that  he  bitterly  complained  of  not  beiug  able 
even  to  borrow  ten  florins  to  help  a  poor  citizen. 

Such  accumulated  anxieties  and  toil — for  all  the  while  the 
translation  of  the  Bible  was  going  forward,  and  Deuteronomy 
was   finished  in  May — overwrought   the   Reformer's   bodily 


O  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1523.  powers  :  and  in  March  or  April  his  correspondence  apprises 
us  that  he  is  suffering  from  a  fever — a  fever  caught  in  leaving 
the  bath — and  wishing  that  God  would  grant  him  the  release 
of  death.  His  feelings  generally,  at  this  time,  are  expressed 
by  him  in  these  words :  "  I  nauseate  public  life,  and  sigh  with 
all  my  heart  for  a  desert.'"  But  the  illness  was  not  of  long 
continuance.  A  little  later  he  made  a  brief  journey  from 
Wittenberg  to  honour  the  nuptials  of  Wenceslaus  Link  by  his 
presence,  and  at  the  end  of  April  he  was  at  Borna,  and 
thence  he  proceeded  to  Weimar,  and  before  the  17th  had  re- 
turned home.  Wherever  he  went  some  business  demanded 
his  attention,  or  crowds  assembled  to  hear  him  preach.  Re- 
engaged in  his  routine  of  academical  duties,  we  find  him  com- 
plaining of  the  unhappy  influence  of  the  multiplicity  of  busi- 
ness on  his  spiritual  state.  The  inroads  made  on  his  time 
scarcely  allowed  him  space  for  prayer;  and  he  exhorted  his 
friends  to  pray  earnestly  for  him,  for  he  "was  in  danger,  after 
having  begun  in  the  Spirit,  to  be  consumed  by  the  flesh." 

The  Elector  had  made  a  communication  to  him  of  the 
Article  in  the  Recess  of  the  Diet  against  anything  new  being 
written  or  printed  in  the  interval  before  the  meeting  of  the 
Council,  with  a  request  that  Luther  and  his  adherents  would 
comply  with  this  decree.  To  this  communication  the  Re- 
former returned  answer  on  the  29th  May,  that  it  was  not 
his  wish  to  write,  teach,  or  preach  anything  tending  to 
disunion  or  tumult,  against  which  he  had  often  written  and 
preached,  but  only  what  might  conduce  to  the  establishment 
and  honour  of  God's  Word,  and  of  the  holy  true  faith,  and 
the  love  of  one's  neighbour.  He  had  returned  from  his 
Patmos  to  Wittenberg  at  his  own  hazard,  without  the  Elec- 
tor's knowledge.  He  should  himself  be  well  disposed  to 
abstain  from  all  further  writing,  especially  of  an  acrimonious 
kind,  but  his  adversaries  continued  to  assail  him ;  in  parti- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  7 

cular,  John  Faber  had  written  "  a  big  Latin  book"  against  him,  1523. 
recently  printed  at  Leipsic ;  and  Emser  had  published  a  book 
in  German,  full  of  manifold  blasphemy,  not  only  of  his 
christian  name,  but  of  the  holy  Gospel.  His  Grace,  and  all 
christian  men,  might  estimate  how  unfair  it  was  that  his  ad- 
versaries' writings  should  be  allowed,  and  his  own  writings  in 
answer  should  be  forbidden.  He  trusted  that  his  Grace  would 
graciously  receive  his  reply,  and  if  it  pleased  his  Grace,  suffer 
it  to  go  further.  His  dealings  might  be  exposed  to  the  whole 
world,  and  he  was  not  ashamed  of  his  cause,  or  of  God's 
Word.  But  in  a  letter,  two  months  later,  to  Spalatin,  he 
says,  "  I  have  not  and  shall  not  publish  anything  till  it  has 
been  examined  and  approved  by  others,  that  I  may  not 
infringe  the  mandate." 

In  the  midst  of  these  varied  cares  and  labours,  tidings  of 
the  death  of  Sickingen  were  received  by  Luther,  and  filled  him 
with  grief  and  awe  of  the  divine  judgments.  In  the  preced- 
ing autumn  Sickingen  had  been  compelled  to  abandon  his 
attempts  against  Treves,  and  had  retreated  with  his  followers 
within  his  own  dominions,  and  shut  himself  in  his  fortress  of 
Landstein.  Here  he  was  besieged  in  turn  by  the  fiery  young 
Landgrave  of  Hesse,  accompanied  by  the  Elector  of  Treves 
and  the  Palatinate ;  and  a  cannon  was  pointed  by  the  hand  of 
the  Landgrave  himself  with  so  much  dexterity,  that  the  whole 
of  a  newly-built  tower  was  reduced  to  a  heap  of  ruins ;  and, 
whilst  Sickingen,  leaning  on  a  battering-ram,  was  surveying 
the  work  of  demolition,  a  bolt  from  a  culverin  struck  him, 
and  forced  him  with  great  violence  against  an  obtruding 
beam.  The  castle  was  surrendered;  and  the  victorious 
princes,  entering  its  shattered  walls,  found  Sickingen  disabled, 
and  dying  in  the  donjon.  "  What  had  I  done,  Frank," 
exclaimed  the  Elector  of  Treves,  as  he  walked  up  to  where 
the  humbled  chieftain  lay,  "that  you  attacked  me  and  my 


8  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1523.  poor  subjects  in  my  See?"  "And  what  had  I  done/'  in- 
quired the  Landgrave  of  Hesse,  "that  you  plundered  my 
land  ere  I  had  attained  man's  estate ?"  "I  shall  soon 
answer/'  the  dying  man  replied,  "  before  a  higher  tribunal  j" 
and  not  long  afterwards  expired,  having  refused  to  confess 
to  a  priest,  on  the  plea  that  he  had  already  confessed  to  God 
in  his  heart. 

This  catastrophe  broke  up  the  confederacy  of  the  warlike 
party  of  the  Reformation,  and  dispersed  the  principal  mem- 
bers of  it  in  various  directions.  Hutten  fled  to  Switzerland; 
tried,  but  in  vain,  to  interest  Erasmus  at  Basle  in  his  behalf; 
and  as  his  last  literary  effort,  vented  a  bitter  writing  against 
that  summer-friend,  alike  an  apostate  from  faith  and  friend- 
ship. Wandering  from  spot  to  spot,  ill  and  dejected,  carry- 
ing with  him  only  a  pen,  he  had  nothing  for  his  subsistence 
beyond  the  pittances  which  some  literary  friends  bestowed. 
Disease  preying  with  increased  violence  upon  him,  having 
tried  by  the  advice  of  Zwingle  the  warm  baths  of  Kussnacht, 
but  in  vain,  he  sought  the  aid  of  a  pastor,  skilled  in  the 
healing  art,  residing  at  Ufnau,  on  the  Lake  of  Zurich.  It 
was  the  close  of  his  wanderings;  for  in  the  island  of  the 
lake  he  breathed  his  last.  Such  lamentable  events  sufficiently 
proved  the  wisdom  of  Luther  in  rejecting  the  intervention 
of  the  sword,  "I  have  just  heard,"  he  remarked  in  a  letter 
to  Spalatin,  "  the  true  and  piteous  tale  of  Sickingens  disasters 
and  end:  God  is  a  just  Judge,  but  unsearchable." 

On  the  10th  June  Luther  published,  in  contrast  to  the 
system  of  papal  extortion,  what  he  entitled,  "  Christ's  Letter 
of  Indulgence."  Christ  says,  "  If  ye  forgive  men  their  tres- 
passes, your  heavenly  Father  will  forgive  your  trespasses." 
No  one  can  complain  that  his  sins  may  not  be  forgiven  him ; 
no  one  need  have  a  bad  conscience.  Christ  does  not  say, 
"  For  thy  sins  thou  shalt  fast  so  long,  thou   shalt  pray  so 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  9 

often,  thou  shalt  give  so  much,  do  this  or  that.  Wilt  thou  give  1523. 
satisfaction  and  payment  for  thy  guilt  and  be  absolved  from 
thy  sins,  listen  to  my  counsel,  nay  my  command  j  do  no 
more  than  this,  let  all  alone,  and  turn  thy  heart  where  none 
can  hinder  thee,  and  be  gentle  to  them  who  injure  thee. 
Only  forgive."  Why  is  not  this  indulgence  preached  ?  Is  the 
counsel  and  are  the  promises  of  Christ  less  than  the  dream  of 
a  preacher?  It  is  true  such  an  indulgence  will  not  build  St. 
Peter's  Church ;  and  the  devil  cares  not  how  soon  it  be  built, 
for  wood  and  stone  harm  him  not ;  but  gentle,  pure  hearts — 
these  cause  him  the  heart-ache !  Not  that  I  reject  Romish 
indulgence,  but  that  I  would  have  each  thing  rated  at  its  true 
worth ;  and  when  thou  canst  have  good  gold  for  nothing,  do 
not  prize  copper  as  more  precious  than  gold  -,  beware  of  mere 
paint  and  glitter. 

Various  attacks  at  different  times  had  been  made  by  the 
Reformer  against  the  "  Sanctification  of  Amaziah,"  "  The 
Bethaven  of  All  Saints/'  or  "  The  Abomination  of  Tophet," 
as  he  termed  the  Elector's  favourite  endowment  at  Witten- 
berg, and  styled  the  canons  themselves  "the  priests  of 
Jeroboam."  A  portion  of  the  ecclesiastics  connected  with 
this  cathedral  establishment  were  opposed  to  the  idolatry  of 
the  votive  mass,  and  the  other  Romish  rites  which  were  still 
maintained  there  after  all  the  other  churches  of  Witten- 
berg had  adopted  the  evangelical  worship.  And  even  as 
early  as  October,  1521 — when  Luther  thundered  against  the 
mass  from  the  Wartburg — complaints  had  been  made  to  the 
Elector  that  there  was  a  deficiency  in  the  complement  of 
the  priests  for  chanting  masses.  Luther  continued  to  warn 
both  Spalatin  and  the  canons  themselves  against  the  main- 
tenance of  this  most  objectionable  feature  in  Popery.  In 
February,  1523,  the  Dean  of  the  greater  choir,  who  had  been 
devotedly  attached  to  the  old  ritual,  died ;  and  then  Jonas, 


10  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1523.  the  Provost,  declaimed  from  the  pulpit  against  the  chanting 
the  vigils  and  the  votive  masses,  quoting  many  letters  of 
Luther  on  the  subject.  On  the  4th  March,  application  was 
made  to  the  Elector  to  know  his  pleasure  on  the  abroga- 
tion or  retention  of  the  ceremonies  and  services  which 
occasioned  so  much  offence ;  to  which  it  was  answered,  that 
they  must  either  be  retained,  or  sufficient  grounds  shown  for 
their  abrogation.  Thus  the  old  rites  were  continued.  But 
on  the  11  th  July  Luther  addressed  a  solemn  letter  to  the 
canons,  calling  on  them  to  "  obey  God  rather  than  man/'  and 
reminding  them  that  it  was  no  satisfactory  answer  that  the 
Elector  prohibited  any  alteration  or  did  not  prohibit  it.  It 
was  an  awful  thing  to  bear  the  name  of  Christ,  and  not  to  be 
Christians;  for  God,  the  jealous  God,  could  well  endure  the 
blasphemy  and  mockery  of  aliens ;  but  if  his  own  people  did 
not  hearken,  he  was  terrible  in  judgment.  Henceforth,  if  they 
did  not  prove  themselves  Christians,  he  should  pray  against 
them,  as  he  had  hitherto  prayed  for  them.  But  this  letter 
producing  no  effect,  he  publicly  inveighed  against  the  Betha- 
ven  and  its  priests  from  the  pulpit,  on  the  2nd  August, 
and  threatened  to  break  off  all  communion  with  the  canons, 
insisting  that  the  civil  sword  which  God  had  entrusted  to  the 
Elector  gave  him  no  authority  in  divine  things.  The  Elector 
was  now  directly  called  upon  to  interfere ;  and  his  delegates 
had  an  interview  with  Luther,  and  reminded  him  of  his  ac- 
quiescence in  the  decree  of  the  Diet,  by  which  any  further 
innovation  in  religion  was  prohibited,  and  stated  the  Elector's 
objections  to  the  marriage  of  two  of  the  canons,  Carlstadt  and 
Jonas,  and  urged  that  the  vacant  canonries  had  been  filled  up 
without  any  expression  of  a  wish  to  that  effect  on  his  part. 
Luther  answered  that  the  prohibition  of  innovations  must  be 
restricted  to  such  as  were  contrary  to  God's  Word,  and  that 
he  should  ever  preach  and  pray  to  God,  and  warn  the  people 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  11 

against  the  mass.  After  this,  Jonas  addressed  a  long  letter  to  1523. 
the  Elector,  insisting  that  the  prejudices  of  the  weak  had  been 
considered  long  enough ;  that,  with  his  Grace's  consent,  the 
abuses  complained  of  at  All  Saints  had  been  already  abolished 
in  the  parish  church ;  and  their  retention  anywhere  was  a 
scandal  and  detriment  to  the  Reformation.  He  proposed  that 
at  matins,  in  place  of  the  Legends  of  Saints,  a  chapter  of  the 
Old  Testament  should  be  read ;  instead  of  hymns  to  saints, 
hymns  should  be  sung  to  God  j  at  vespers,  a  chapter  should 
be  read  from  the  New  Testament ;  vigils  and  masses  should  be 
abolished,  and  the  Lord's  Supper  should  be  celebrated  on 
Sundays  and  festivals,  if  there  were  communicants.  The  Elec- 
tor, however,  remained  fixed  in  his  previous  decision,  and  only 
suggested  that  the  dissatisfied  canons  might  resign  their 
canonries.  Thus  far  Luther's  efforts  on  this  point  still  failed 
of  their  purpose. 

But  step  by  step,  with  the  advance  of  the  Reformation,  the 
adverse  efforts  of  intolerance  increased  in  severity  and  fury. 
In  Belgium  the  persecution  was  the  hottest,  where  Aleander, 
the  papal  emissary,  found  active  coadjutors  in  the  Inquisitor 
Hochstraten,  and  Nicolas  the  Carmelite,  and  the  Regent, 
Margaret  of  Savoy.  The  Augustine  convent  at  Antwerp  had 
become  a  stronghold  of  Lutheranism  ;  and  here  Jacob  Spreng, 
the  prior,  and  a  monk  named  Melchior  Mirisch,  were  first 
seized  and  thrown  into  prison.  Under  the  terrors  of 
immediate  death  Spreng  recanted,  and  thus  obtained  his 
release;  Melchior  Mirisch  acted,  it  appears,  throughout 
the  whole  affair  collusively,  and  was  not  called  upon 
to  recant  at  all.  Spreng,  however,  after  his  release  from 
confinement  retracted  his  retractation,  and  preached  the 
Gospel  at  Bruges,  and  being  apprehended,  was  again  incar- 
cerated at  Brussels,  but,  by  the  assistance  of  a  Franciscan, 
managed  to  effect  his  escape,  and  fled  for  refuge  to  Witten- 


12  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1523.  berg,  and,  subsequently,  at  the  invitation  of  the  Count  of 
Embden,  taught  the  Gospel  in  Friesland.  Meanwhile, 
others  of  the  Augustines  had  been  imprisoned  and  sentenced 
to  death,  and  among  them  Henry  von  Zutphen;  but  some 
women  forced  the  prison  doors,  entered  his  cell,  and  released 
him  from  his  chains.  He  escaped  to  Bremen,  and  there 
preached  the  Gospel.  The  women  were  punished  with 
banishment.  Three  of  the  remaining  monks,  Voes,  Esch, 
and  Lambert — the  last  the  newly-elected  provost  in  the 
place  of  Spreng — escaped  immediate  apprehension,  and  by 
wandering  in  desert  tracts  eluded  for  some  time  the  search 
of  their  pursuers;  but  at  length,  their  place  of  concealment 
being  discovered,  they  were  arrested  and  brought  before  the 
inquisitional  tribunal.  Henry  Voes,  although  the  youngest, 
being  possessed  of  most  learning,  was  the  spokesman.  He 
asserted  that  he  preferred  the  Scriptures,  which  the  works  of 
Luther  had  led  him  to  study,  to  the  decrees  of  popes  and 
all  the  writings  of  Doctors  :  and  he  stated  that  there  was  no 
scriptural  proof  of  the  popes  and  prelates  being  entrusted  with 
any  office  beyond  that  of  ministering  the  Word.  He  de- 
clared that  the  mass  was  no  sacrifice,  and  christian  faith  could 
not  be  dissevered  from  christian  charity.  In  reply  to  various 
questions  that  were  put  to  him,  he  acknowledged  that  the 
writings  of  Luther  had  been  the  means  of  his  arriving  at  a 
knowledge  of  the  Gospel ;  and  when  he  was  asked  "  whether 
Luther  had  the  Spirit  of  God,"  he  refused  to  give  any 
answer.  Upbraided  with  being  seduced  by  Luther,  "  Yes !  " 
he  said,  "  I  was  seduced  by  him  as  the  apostles  were  seduced 
by  Jesus  Christ."  The  sentence  of  death  was  pronounced 
against  him  and  his  fellow  culprits,  and  four  days  afterwards, 
on  the  1st  July,  it  was  executed  upon  Voes  himself  and 
John  Esch.  With  all  the  formality  of  ceremony  they  were 
stripped    of  their   priestly  attire,  and  then  fastened  to  the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  13 

stake,  and  the  pile  of  wood  set  on  fire ;  all  of  which  they  en-  1523. 
duredj  not  only  with  patience,  but  with  christian  cheerfulness 
and  joy,  continuing  to  sing  hymns  to  God  from  the  midst  of 
the  flames,  till  the  fury  of  the  fire  choked  their  speech. 
Lambert  had  obtained  a  short  respite  by  recantation;  but, 
resuming  fortitude,  he  again  professed  the  faith  of  Christ,  and 
a  few  days  later  died  by  the  same  fate  as  his  brother  monks. 

Luther  received  the  tidings  of  this  martyrdom  with  the 
triumphant  joy  of  faith.  He  wrote,  on  the  26th  July,  to 
the  schoolmaster  of  Erfurth,  "  We  have  good  tidings  from 
Flanders ;  two  monks  have  been  publicly  burnt  there  in  the 
market-place  for  the  Word  of  God.  Thanks  be  to  God 
through  Christ."  To  Spalatin  he  forwarded  a  more  detailed 
account,  written  in  the  same  strain.  And  in  a  letter  intended 
for  the  public  eye  he  drew  attention  to  the  fury  and  cruelty 
of  the  Papists,  and  their  reproachful  and  blasphemous  writ- 
ings, as  a  strange  way  of  rendering  obedience  to  the  decree 
lately  promulged  from  Nuremberg.  "  We,"  he  added,  "  have 
hitherto  acted  quietly ;  but  if  they  go  on  as  they  have  begun, 
we  too  shall  bid  farewell  to  the  imperial  edict — not  to  imitate 
their  example,  and  burn  and  bind  or  act  with  violence  (for 
this  is  unbecoming  Christians),  but  to  defend  the  glory  of  the 
Word  with  tongue  and  pen,  and  chastise  yet  further  the  papist 
abominations."  He  anticipated  an  increase  of  converts  to 
the  Gospel  from  the  flaming  piles  at  Brussels,  and  trusted 
that  even  the  wavering  and  faithless  conduct  of  such  as  had 
been  terrified  into  recantation,  would  heighten  the  violence  of 
the  Papists,  and  thus  bring  down  on  them  the  speedier  and 
more  dreadful  vengeance  of  Heaven.  A  hymn  which  he 
wrote  in  the  ballad  style  in  German,  in  celebration  of  the 
Brussels  martyrdom,  breathed  the  resigned  and  triumphant 
spirit  of  the  martyr,  and  predicted  that  the  ashes  of  the 
Brussels  martyrs  would   be  scattered  to  all   lands — no  sea, 


14  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1523.  mountain  or  barrier  would  be  able  to  sbut  them  out,  and  they 
would  in  every  place  take  a  "  mouth  and  tongue."  In  a  brief 
but  glowing  epistle  to  the  Christians  of  Holland,  Brabant, 
and  Flanders,  he  repeated  his  conviction  that  "  the  winter  was 
past,  the  voice  of  the  turtle  was  heard,  and  the  flowers  were 
appearing  on  the  earth."  "  Oh !  how  ignominiously  were 
those  two  souls  condemned,  but  how  gloriously  in  eternal  joy 
shall  they  come  again  with  Christ  to  judge  those  by  whom 
they  were  unrighteously  adjudged  to  death  !  "  "  We,  in  these 
parts,"  he  said,  "have  not  yet  been  deemed  worthy  to  be 
made  such  a  precious  offering  to  Christ,  although  many  of 
our  members  have  not  been,  and  still  are  not,  without  persecu- 
tion." The  preaching  of  the  Gospel  had  previously  produced 
little  or  no  impression  at  Brussels,  but  many  traced  their 
conversion  to  the  spectacle  of  the  christian  fortitude  of  Voes 
and  Esch. 

The  persecution  had  also  gained  strength  in  Germany. 
Duke  George  proceeded  against  the  Lutherans  in  Thuringia 
and  Misnia  by  fines,  imprisonment,  and  banishment,  until 
he  at  last  had  recourse  to  capital  punishment.  His  brother 
Henry,  who  secretly  wished  well  to  the  Reformation,  was 
compelled  to  banish  from  his  Castle  of  Friburg  three  ladies  of 
his  wife's  retinue,  who  had  been  convicted  of  the  enormity  of 
reading  Luther's  writings.  "  It  is  a  godly  cause  for  which  you 
suffer,"  Luther  wrote  to  them,  "  and  none  save  God  himself 
may  decide  or  avenge  it,  and  his  words  are,  l  He  who 
toucheth  you,  toucheth  the  apple  of  mine  eye/  " 

To  the  Christians  also  of  Riga  and  Bevel,  of  Worms  and 
Augsburg,  he  addressed  epistles  animated  by  the  same  spirit. 
"  The  Word  and  the  Cross  must  ever  go  together.  Nothing 
were  sweeter  in  heaven  and  earth  than  the  Word  without  the 
Cross.  But  the  pleasure  would  not  last  long,  for  nature 
cannot  bear  long  unmixed  joy  and  pleasure.     The  vinegar  and 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  15 

the  myrrh  must  sharpen  the  flavour  of  the  wine."  It  was  1523. 
commonly  observed  that  all  the  efforts  of  persecution  only 
extended  the  faith  which  they  aimed  to  destroy.  Such  une- 
quivocal infractions  of  the  Recess  of  the  late  Diet  were  justly 
condemned  by  the  reforming  party ;  and  in  the  month  of 
August  Luther  addressed  what  must  be  regarded,  under  the 
circumstances,  as  a  mild  and  measured  remonstrance  to  the 
Electors  and  States  of  the  Empire.  He  divided  the  decree  of 
the  Diet  on  the  subject  of  religion  into  four  Articles,  and 
appended  his  own  remarks  to  each.  The  first  Article  declared 
that  the  Gospel  should  be  preached  according  to  the  interpre- 
tation of  teachers  received  and  approved  by  the  Christian 
Church.  By  these  teachers  the  Romanists  understood 
Thomas,  Scotus,  and  the  Schoolmen  :  but  he  understood  the 
old  divines,  Augustine,  Cyprian,  Hilary,  and  such  like.  The 
words  were,  "  by  the  Christian,"  not  ' ( by  the  Roman  Church." 
And  that  such  was  the  true  meaning  of  the  Article,  the 
mandate  for  a  free  Council  was  itself  evidence ;  for  if  he  and 
his  adherents  were  to  hold  their  tongues,  or  only  preach  the 
babble  of  the  schools,  what  occasion  for  a  free  Council? 
The  second  Article  declared  that  the  Bishops  should  appoint 
persons  acquainted  with  the  Holy  Scriptures,  to  observe 
and  warn  such  preachers  as  erred  in  their  teaching;  and  if 
they  would  not  be  amended,  to  impose  fitting  punishments. 
Where  were  men  acquainted  with  the  Scriptures  to  be  found, 
when  for  hundreds  of  years,  in  the  cloisters,  the  cathedrals, 
and  the  high  schools,  the  Scriptures  had  not  been  read? 
The  third  Article  prohibited  the  printing  anything  fresh  in 
the  interval  before  the  meeting  of  the  Council,  unless  sub- 
mitted to  the  examination  of  intelligent  judges  appointed  by 
the  civil  power.  A  decree  of  the  same  nature  as  this  had  been 
passed  the  year  before  in  his  own  University  :  and  he  would 
readily  obey  it,  excepting  always  that  the  Word  of  God  must 


16 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 


1523.  not  be  bound.  The  fourth  Article  prohibited  the  marriage  of 
spiritual  persons,  and  subjected  offenders  to  deprivation  of 
their  freedom,  privileges,  and  benefices.  This  Article  was  too 
hard — at  least  on  parish  priests ;  for  monks  and  nuns  had  no 
benefices  to  lose,  but  only  their  freedom  to  regain.  Unless 
God  worked  a  wonder,  continence  was  in  most  cases  an 
impossibility  to  human  nature,  the  law  of  which  was, 
"  Increase  and  multiply."  The  princes  and  bishops  had  not 
acted  in  an  imperial,  prince  like,  or  bishop  like  way  (to  say 
nothing  of  Christian  like  or  God  like)  in  seizing  with  tyran- 
nical force  offenders  against  this  Article,  and  handling  them 
worse  than  if  they  had  been  murderers,  robbers,  or  adulterers  : 
— they  had  disobeyed  the  laws  both  of  God  and  of  man,  and 
followed  only  their  own  wantonness  and  lust  of  blood  in 
putting  them  to  torture  and  martyrdom  before  God  and  the 
world.  They  had  apprehended,  without  hearing,  fined,  ban- 
ished, and  inflicted  every  species  of  torture :  and  let  them,  to 
their  heartfelt  shame,  compare  the  words  of  the  mandate  with 
their  clamorous  pretensions.  To  suffer  wrong  was  painful, 
but  it  was  a  disgrace  to  perpetrate  it.  For  himself,  the  world 
had  had  enough  of  him,  and  he  enough  of  the  world ;  he 
recked  not  for  himself;  but  he  would  implore  that  they  would 
graciously  hear  him  in  behalf  of  the  poor  people ;  and  his 
petition  should  be  simple  justice.  Since  those  who  did  not 
observe  the  first  three  Articles,  and  would  not  observe  them, 
were  let  go  unpunished,  he  would  beseech  them  to  deal  merci- 
fully with  those  poor  pitiable  men  who  observed  the  first 
three,  but  in  the  obstinacy  of  human  nature  paid  less  regard  to 
the  fourth,  appertaining  only  to  man's  law.  Surely  it  was  a 
cause  for  wailing  and  pity,  when  poor  weak  and  sinful  men 
were  so  roughly  handled  for  an  Article  of  man's  ordaining, 
whilst  strong  and  great  people  openly  broke  the  first  three 
Articles,  nay,  violated  all  the  laws  of  God,  (for  their  whore- 


THE    LIFE    OF    .MARTIN     LUTHER.  17 

doras  were  notorious,  and  they  raged  with  every  kind  of  vice,)  1523. 
and    yet  proudly,  freely,   and    confidently  not    merely  went 
unpunished,  but  lived  in  greater  honour  and  power. 

The  persecution  on  which  the  Romanists  had  now  greedily 
entered,  not  only  animated  Luther  in  his  career,  but  hastened 
the  development  of  his  evangelic  church  economy.  Leysnick 
bore  a  prominent  position  in  these  changes.  A  desire  was 
felt  to  reduce  "  the  ordering  of  (Jod's  service "  to  the  apo- 
stolic model,  and  to  create  a  common  fund  for  spiritual  and 
charitable  uses.  To  establish  this  fund,  the  goods  and  reve- 
nues of  the  convents,  chauntries,  and  cathedrals  were 
brought  into  a  common  chest.  The  project  afforded  very  high 
satisfaction  to  Luther,  who  addressed  a  letter  to  the  commu- 
nity of  Leysnick  in  regard  to  the  distribution  of  the  common 
church  property  thus  collected,  which  he  intended  should 
serve  as  a  rule  for  other  churches  in  the  redivision  of  their 
ecclesiastical  wealth.  He  proposed  that  those  who  might 
wish  to  remain  in  the  cloisters,  aged  persons  and  others, 
should  be  allowed  a  sufficient  proportion  for  their  maintenance ; 
those  who  preferred  quitting  their  convents  should  have  a 
certain  proportion  granted  them  for  starting  them  in  life,  and 
for  their  temporary  support ;  to  those  who  had  brought  their 
patrimony  or  some  pecuniary  endowment  to  the  convent,  he 
suggested  that  the  larger  part  or  the  whole  should  be  returned. 
What  was  left  in  the  common  chest  was  to  constitute  a  fund 
for  the  relief  of  the  poor  and  distressed,  whether  of  the  noble 
or  burgher  class,  as  had  already  been  done  with  the  revenues 
of  the  Wittenberg  convents.  The  wealth  would  thus  be 
reclaimed  to  a  charitable  and  christian  use,  according  to  the 
intention  of  the  founders,  who,  although  deceived  in  the  mode 
of  promoting  God's  honour,  yet  had  proposed  that,  as  the  aim 
of  their  endowments :  if  the  founders'  families  in  the  lapse  of 
years  had  sunk  into  poverty,  a  considerable  portion  of  the 
vol.  it.  c 


18  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1523  property  derived  from  their  ancestors  was  to  be  awarded  to 
ameliorate  their  condition.  He  proposed  that  bishoprics  and 
cathedral  chapters,  owning  lands,  states,  and  other  goods, 
"  temporal  lordships  under  spiritual  titles,"  should  be  con- 
verted into  purely  temporal  tenures,  or  their  revenues  be 
applied  to  the  relief  of  the  poor.  The  convents  themselves, 
he  suggested,  should  be  turned  into  school  establishments  for 
boys  and  girls.  Luther  was  himself  at  Leysnick  on  the  11th 
of  August,  endeavouring  to  arrange  the  disputes  which  money 
always  involves,  and  addressed  two  letters  to  the  Elector,  one 
from  Leysnick,  the  other  after  his  return  to  Wittenburg,  to 
request  his  confirmation  of  the  distribution  which  had  been 
made. 

The  subject  of  the  ordination  of  ministers  had  been  pressed 
upon  his  attention  by  some  delegates  from  the  Calixtine  sec- 
tion of  the  Bohemian  Church,  who,  whilst  differing  from 
Romanists  in  the  matter  of  communion  in  both  kinds,  were 
in  the  habit  of  sending  to  Home  those  intended  for  the 
ministry  to  receive  ordination.  In  his  treatise  on  Ordination, 
addressed  to  the  Senate  of  Prague,  Luther  expressed  the 
strongest  condemnation  of  this  practice,  and  denied  Romish 
priests  to  be  ministers  of  Christ  at  all,  inasmuch  as  their 
principal  office  was  declared  to  be  to  "  offer  sacrifices  in  the 
mass  for  the  quick  and  dead,"  which  was  doing  away  with 
the  one  all-sufficient  sacrifice  of  Christ,  and  trampling  the 
Saviour  under-foot.  The  Christian  priest  was  not  made  by 
the  episcopal  tonsure  or  anointing :  he  was  not  born  of  the 
flesh,  but  of  the  Spirit.  Christ  being  the  great  high  priest, 
all  Christians,  as  his  brethren,  were  priests  also  with  him. 
To  preach  the  Word,  the  noblest  and  most  important  office  of 
the  priest,  to  baptize,  to  consecrate  the  Eucharist,  to  grant 
absolution,  to  offer  their  bodies  a  spiritual  sacrifice — the  only 
sacrifice  they  could  offer — to  pray  for  others,  to  exercise  judg- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  19 

merit  on  points  of  doctrine,  were  privileges  appertaining  to  all  1523. 
true  Christians  in  common.  But  still,  though  the  right  to  the 
public  ministry  was  common  to  all,  the  functions  must  not  be 
undertaken  by  any  one  at  his  individual  discretion,  without  a 
call  from  the  general  body  of  the  faithful,  in  order  that,  in  har- 
mony with  St.  Paul's  precept,  all  things  might  be  done 
"  decently  and  in  order/'  The  Church  had  the  power  of 
selecting  from  its  own  bosom,  by  common  voice,  one  or  more 
fit  persons,  and  by  prayers  and  imposition  of  hands 
appointing  them  to  the  work  of  the  ministry.  And  what  the 
society  of  believers  thus  did  by  common  consent,  must  be 
undoubtedly  held  to  be  done  by  God  himself.  In  conclusion, 
he  told  the  Bohemians  that  if  this  "  primitive  and  apostolic 
mode  of  ordination  "  was  unacceptable  to  them,  they  might 
use  the  priests  ordained  at  Rome  to  ordain  others ;  for  it  was 
not  outward  ordinances,  but  the  living  Word  of  God,  which 
constituted  a  Church  of  Christ,  even  if  no  more  than  ten,  or 
six  of  its  members  were  in  possession  of  that  Word. 

He  had  written  a  popular  treatise  in  German  on  "  the 
Abomination  of  the  Roman  mass,"  and  he  followed  this  by 
"  a  Formula  of  the  mass,  or  communion,  for  the  use  of  the 
Wittenberg  Church."  All  the  superstitious  parts  were 
rejected  from  the  Offertory  and  the  whole  of  the  Canon,  and 
the  words  of  Jesus  Christ  in  institution  of  the  Sacrament  of 
his  body  and  blood  were  to  be  recited  in  a  loud  voice :  the 
bread  and  the  cup  were  to  be  elevated  after  the  established 
rite ;  but  both  kinds  were  to  be  administered  :  and  a  hope 
was  expressed  that  the  mass,  like  the  sermon,  would  ere  long 
appear  in  the  simple  garb  of  the  vernacular  tongue.  With 
regard  to  divine  service  generally,  a  chapter  of  the  Old  Testa- 
ment and  of  the  New  were  to  be  read,  one  in  the  morning, 
the  other  in  the  evening,  with  an  exposition  from  the  minister 
in    German.     A   large   discretionary  power  was  allowed  the 

c  2 


20  THE    LITE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1523.  minister  in  the  selection  of  the  chapters  to  be  read  and  the 
psalms  to  be  used  ;  and  it  was  specially  enjoined  that  needless 
wearying  of  the  congregation  should  be  avoided.  The  fes- 
tivals to  be  observed  were  restricted  to  those  connected  with 
remarkable  incidents  in  the  life  and  sufferings  of  Jesus  Christ. 
The  remodelled  church  sendee  was  rendered  more  complete 
by  the  publication  in  the  same  year  of  "  a  Formula  for  Bap- 
tism/' and  a  tract  on  "  the  Institution  of  Divine  Worship.'" 
It  was  the  earnest  desire  of  Luther  that  the  singing  of 
hymns  in  the  German  language  should  form  an  essential  and 
considerable  part  of  public  worship ;  and,  as  few  hymns  of  a 
scriptural  character  existed,  cotemporary  poets  were  urged  to 
direct  their  talents  to  supply  this  deficiency  :  and  with  this 
view,  Luther  himself  began  to  compose  about  this  date  some 
of  the  noble  hymns  in  the  series  collected  under  his  name. 
Spalatin  and  Dolzig  were  his  principal  associates  in  the  com- 
position of  his  Hymn-book ;  and  John  Walter,  who  presided 
over  the  Elector's  choir,  set  the  music.  The  hymns  were 
admirably  adapted  to  public  worship,  striking  from  the  simple 
grandeur  of  the  ideas,  and,  as  brief  expositions  of  the  essen- 
tial doctrines  of  Scripture,  formed  an  excellent  medium  of 
popular  instructiou.  They  were  welcomed  with  enthusiasm. 
But  it  must  not  be  supposed  that  the  alterations  introduced 
into  the  system  of  public  worship  at  Wittenberg,  were  arbi- 
trarily imposed  on  the  congregations  in  other  towns  where 
the  doctrines  of  Scripture  had  been  embraced.  Luther  care- 
fully guarded  against  converting  Christian  liberty  into  a 
formal  and  unbending  ordinance;  the  doing  so  had  been  one 
of  his  indictments  against  the  Papacy  and  Carlstadt's  party ; 
and  in  his  dedication  of  "  the  Formula  of  the  Mass "  to 
Hausmann,  the  pastor  of  Zwickau,  he  left  him  the  alternative 
of  copying  the  model  presented  to  him,  or  of  instituting  a 
system  of  worship  for  his  own  church  from  which  Witten- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  21 

berg  might  borrow  with  advantage.  Although,  therefore,  1523. 
from  the  field  of  teaching  the  captain  of  the  movement  had 
himself  now  advanced  into  the  field  of  action,  each  step  was 
taken  with  the  moderation  of  prudence  and  the  forbearance  of 
charity.  Indeed,  at  Olnitz  the  minister  was  proceeding  pre- 
cipitately in  effecting  changes,  and  was  reproved  by  Luther. 
"  He  is  throwing  off  his  old  shoes,"  said  he,  "  before  he  has 
got  on  his  new  ones."  In  the  blindness  of  reforming  zeal, 
force  had  been  recommended  to  further  the  work  of  reform  ; 
and  in  his  rooted  abhorrence  of  such  an  instrument,  Luther 
warned  the  city  authorities  of  Olnitz  to  suppress  the  first 
risings  of  tumult  by  imprisonment  and  severe  measures.  The 
concession  he  habitually  made  to  human  weakness  as  to  the 
reception  that  might  be  given  to  his  suggestions  on  points  of 
practice,  where  alteration  was  the  most  peremptorily  called 
for,  is  strikingly  shown  in  the  caution  which,  in  varying  forms 
of  expression,  closes  many  of  his  treatises  at  this  period. 
"  I  have  done  what  I  could.  It  is  enough  for  me  if  one  or 
two  follow  me,  or  fain  would  follow  me.  The  world  must 
after  all  continue  the  world,  and  Satan  its  prince." 

He  was  again  in  correspondence  with  the  Moravian  Bre- 
thren towards  the  close  of  1523.  He  wrote  to  them  by  their 
own  delegates,  who  had  again  visited  Wittenberg  j  and  his 
approval  of  their  doctrinal  sentiments  excepted  only  their 
denying  the  corporeal  presence  in  the  Eucharist.  He  also 
wrote  a  tract  to  show  that  Christ  was  a  Jew,  in  answer  to  a 
very  singular  accusation  laid  against  him  by  the  Papists,  and 
even  paraded  at  the  Diet,  that  he  had  been  guilty  of  affirming 
Christ  to  be  the  seed  of  Abraham  !  Such  was  the  ignorance 
of  the  Word  of  God  among  the  Romanists  !  His  weariness 
of  life  continued  as  great  as  the  multiplicity  of  his  occupa- 
tions ;  and  the  compass  of  his  correspondence  was  widening 
with  his  fame  and  the  propagation  of  his  tenets.     A  letter  to 


22  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1523.  Charles  of  Savoy,  who  had  a  leaning  towards  the  Reformation, 
or  Albert,  the  Grand  Master  of  Prussia,  engaged  him  at  one 
moment ;  at  another,  a  letter  to  a  fencing-master  of  Halle, 
or  a  Guide  of  Borna,  or  to  a  nun  who  had  consulted  him 
about  her  marriage  ;  or  he  wrote  a  petition  for  some  fugitive 
monks  who  were  starving,  or  for  a  forest-keeper  who  had 
been  disabled  by  a  wild  boar  in  the  Elector's  service.  The 
poverty  of  himself  and  the  Prior  in  the  deserted  Augustine 
cloisters  was  so  extreme,  that,  being  unable  to  liquidate  their 
own  debts,  or  to  obtain  any  payment  from  the  debtors  to  the 
convent,  of  whom  Staupitz  is  named  as  one,  they  sued  to  the 
Elector  to  take  the  convent  and  its  affairs  into  his  own  hands, 
and  grant  them  only  the  maintenance  which  they  had  here- 
tofore enjoyed. 

But  amongst  all  Luther's  interminable  engagements,  the 
translation  of  the  Old  Testament  was  sedulously  carried  on; 
and  it  appears  that  he  continued  to  be  harassed  by  the  illu- 
sions of  Satan.  One  night,  it  is  related,  he  suddenly  awoke, 
and  saw  the  Saviour  standing  by  the  wall  of  his  cell  with  the 
five  wounds  marked  on  his  body  :  his  first  impulse  was  to  rush 
from  his  couch  and  throw  himself  at  his  feet ;  but  recollecting 
the  visions  of  the  Zwickau  sectaries,  he  pronounced  the 
name  of  Christ,  and  the  apparition  vanished.  With  such 
energy  did  he  prosecute  the  translation,  that  in  the  beginning 
of  December  the  second  part  was  ready  for  the  press,  and 

1524.  before  the  end  of  February,  1524,  the  third  part,  which 
included  the  difficult  book  of  Job,  had  been  committed  to  the 
printers. 

New  troubles  were  springing  up.  For  a  time  the  ferment 
excited  in  Carlstadt's  breast  by  the  Zwickau  fanatics  had  been 
allayed,  and  might  seem  to  have  expired  :  he  had  resumed 
academical  lecturing,  and  Luther  himself  pronounces  his  lec- 
tures excellent.     But  this  quiescent  frame  of  mind  had  been 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  23 

only  apparent,  or  at  least  was  very  transient.  Carlstadt  left  1524. 
Wittenberg  and  repaired  to  Jena,  where  lie  established  a 
private  printing  press  for  the  dissemination  of  his  opinions  on 
the  Sacrament  of  the  Lord's  Supper,  and  on  other  topics  in 
which  he  disagreed  with  the  Wittenberg  divines.  The  writ- 
ings thus  privately  printed  were  not  submitted  to  any  censor- 
ship or  examination  in  contravention  of  the  Recess  of  the  Diet. 
There  is  a  letter  from  Luther  of  the  7th  January  to  the 
Chancellor  Bruck,  informing  him  of  Carlstadt' s  movements, 
expressing  his  strong  apprehension  that  "  one  so  ready  to 
teach,  whether  with  a  call  or  without  one,  and  only  obstinate 
in  never  holding  his  tongue,  would  bring  obloquy  on  the 
Elector  and  the  University,"  and  requiring  that  his  treatises, 
before  they  were  printed,  should  be  subjected  to  the  recog- 
nised inspection,  according  to  the  decree  of  the  Diet  and  the 
regulation  of  the  Elector  and  the  University.  From  Jena 
Carlstadt  shortly  afterwards  removed  to  Orlamunde,  and 
undertook  the  office  of  pastor  of  that  town.  It  seems  that 
the  principles  of  Thomas  Munzer  and  the  Zwickau  sectaries 
had  infected  the  moral  creed  of  Carlstadt ;  for  in  a  letter  to 
Bruck  of  the  13th  January,  Luther  touches  on  the  mooted 
point  of  polygamy,  which  these  fanatics  defended  as  not  con- 
trary to  the  Word  of  God.  "I  confess,"  wrote  Luther, 
"  that  I  cannot  prevent  any  one  from  taking  more  wives  than 
one,  if  it  be  not  repugnant  to  Scripture  ;  but  Christians  ought 
to  avoid  much  that  is  lawful,  in  order  to  give  no  ground  to 
scandal,  and  preserve  that  decency  of  life  which  St.  Paul 
everywhere  insists  upon.  I  suppose  at  Orlamunde  they  will 
shortly  be  circumcised,  and  go  with  Moses  the  whole  hog." 

At  this  period  the  course  of  political  events  began  to  attract 
the  Reformer's  attention ;  for,  on  the  day  subsequent  to  the 
date  of  this  letter,  the  14th  January,  the  second  Diet  of 
Nuremberg  was  opened,  under  circumstances  not  very  auspi- 


24  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1521.  cious  to  the  cause  of  the  Reformation.  The  well-meaning 
Adrian  had  breathed  his  last  on  the  14th  September,  1523, 
to  the  undisguised  joy  of  the  city  and  the  priests;  and  the 
Cardinals,  entertaining  the  principle  which  Pallavicini  openly 
professes,  that  "  a  pope  of  little  piety  but  great  prudence  is 
preferable  to  a  pope  with  much  piety  but  less  prudence," 
elected  to  the  vacant  chair  the  Cardinal  de  Medici,  whose 
claims  to  diplomatic  ability  were  incontestable,  whatever  might 
be  thought  of  any  pretensions  to  piety.  The  new  Pontiff 
assumed  the  name  of  Clement  VII.  In  addition  to  this 
event,  which  might  reasonably  be  regarded  by  the  Lutherans 
as  untoward,  the  Council  of  Regency,  in  which  the  reforming 
section  had  gained  a  decided  preponderance,  was  threatened 
by  a  very  powerful  coalition,  the  various  parties  to  which,  on 
dissimilar  grounds,  alike  desired  its  extinction.  The  Council 
had  proposed  a  system  of  import  duties,  the  proceeds  to  be 
applied  for  the  maintenance  of  the  executive  power ;  in  other 
words,  for  its  own  maintenance :  and,  indeed,  the  most  en- 
lightened German  historians  are  of  opinion,  that,  if  this  project 
had  passed  into  law,  the  best  results  would  have  followed,  and 
the  unity  of  Germany  in  all  probability  would  have  been 
attained.  It  met,  however,  with  violent  opposition  from  the 
cities,  deputies  from  which  had  visited  Charles  in  Spain  in 
the  month  of  August  of  the  preceding  year,  and,  by  exerting 
their  short-sighted  efforts  to  overthrow  the  plan,  had  com- 
menced the  attack  against  the  Council.  Charles  objected  to 
the  petitioners,  that  the  cities  were  infected  with  Lutheranism  ; 
but  this  they  denied,  and  threw  out  in  return  a  hint,  which 
was  soon  seen  to  answer  its  end,  that  the  Council  might,  at 
some  future  day,  furnish  efficient  support  to  the  ambition  of 
his  brother  Ferdinand.  Charles  needed  money  for  his  cam- 
paigns, and  the  cities  were  willing  to  buy  off  the  obnoxious 
project  by  a  liberal  gratuity ;  and  thus  a  union  was  cemented 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  25 

to  serve  an  object  to  which  the  Emperor's  arbitrary  maxims  1524. 
must  in  themselves  have  easily  disposed  him.  Hannart,  the 
Imperial  envoy  to  the  Diet,  started  for  Germany  with  an 
explicit  understanding  of  his  master's  will  in  the  matter  of 
the  Council  of  Regency.  Unfortunately,  too,  the  Princes 
who  had  demolished  Sickingen's  stronghold,  and  broken  the 
power  of  the  knights,  having  been  led  by  their  successes  into 
various  illegal  acts,  had  provoked  the  animadversions  of  the 
Council,  and,  in  their  resentment  of  this  check  on  their 
licence,  were  eager  to  add  their  influence  in  aid  of  the 
machinations  of  its  opponents.  The  patron,  and  in  fact  the 
originator,  of  this  representative  scheme  was  Frederic  of 
Saxony.  A  central  executive  power  —  a  starting-point  for 
national  unity  and  constitutional  government — had  been  the 
day-dream  of  his  life ;  but  such  patronage  was  not  adapted  to 
conciliate  the  feelings  of  the  Papists,  particularly  at  the  pre- 
sent conjuncture  of  religious  disturbances.  The  Duke  of 
Bavaria  and  the  Elector  of  Treves,  who  had  instituted  a  per- 
secution in  their  principalities  so  rigid  that  blood  was  shed 
with  little  compunction,  besides  personal  motives,  were  far 
from  bearing  good  will  to  a  body  the  acts  of  which  had  tended 
to  toleration,  or  even  more  directly  to  promote  reform.  It 
was  thus  evident  that  the  combination  arrayed  against  the 
Regency  was  excessively  powerful,  and,  if  the  Council  fell,  it 
remained  to  be  seen  what  effect  its  overthrow  would  produce 
on  the  fortunes  of  the  evangelical  faith. 

The  astute  policy  of  Leo  was  revived  under  his  nephew 
Clement  VII.  The  new  Pontiff  appointed  as  his  nuncio  to 
the  Diet,  Campegio,  the  ablest  of  the  college,  and  in  a  cour- 
teous epistle  besought  Frederic  to  grant  his  nuncio  a  gentle 
hearing,  as  became  the  scion  of  a  house  which  had  enjoyed 
the  advocacy  of  so  many  of  his  predecessors  in  St.  Peter's 
chair. 


26  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  Such  was  the  clouded  aspect  of  public  affairs,  when,  more 
than  a  month  before  the  Diet  was  opened,  the  Elector  of 
Saxony,  although  in  a  state  of  infirm  health,  made  his  entrance 
into  Nuremberg.  But  it  was  soon  made  manifest  that  the 
Council  of  Regency,  supported  as  it  was  by  Ferdinand,  the 
house  of  Brandenburg,  the  knights,  and  the  reforming  party, 
could  not  nevertheless  bear  up  against  the  enmity  of  its  power- 
ful assailants.  Previously  to  taking  into  consideration  the 
mode  of  maintaining  it,  it  was  resolved  that  its  composition 
should  be  altered ;  and  this  was  really  tantamount  to  a  sen- 
tence of  annihilation.  Full  of  chagrin  and  sorrow,  Frederic 
of  Saxony,  in  the  middle  of  February,  quitted  Nuremberg, 
unwilling  any  longer  to  be  a  witness  of  the  stormy  scenes 
of  debate ;  and  he  never  appeared  again  in  a  Diet  of  the 
empire.  Before  the  beginning  of  March  Ferdinand  had  de- 
sisted from  any  attempt  to  uphold  a  falling  cause.  It  was 
agreed  that  an  entirely  new  Council  of  Regency  should  be 
formed ;  that  the  Imperial  chamber  should  undergo  a  purifi- 
cation; and  one  of  its  members  was  at  once  dismissed  for 
having  eaten  meat  on  a  fast-day.  So  far  the  Romanists  seemed 
to  be  carrying  everything  their  own  way  in  the  Diet. 

But  out  of  doors  the  evangelical  cause  had  not  lost,  but 
was  gaining  ground.  Campegio  entered  Nuremberg  soon 
after  Frederic  had  left  it;  and  this  gave  occasion  to  the 
rumour  that  it  was  to  avoid  seeing  the  Pope's  representative 
that  the  Saxon  Elector  had  departed  with  so  little  ceremony. 
Along  his  whole  route  so  many  impressive  signs  of  the  dis- 
affection of  Germany  to  the  Papacy  had  presented  themselves 
to  the  nuncio,  that,  although  an  assembly  of  ecclesiastics  was 
awaiting  his  arrival  with  closed  doors  in  St.  SibakVs  Church, 
he  judged  it  best,  by  the  advice  of  the  princes,  to  shun  any 
parade  that  might  occasion  open  contempt,  and  rode  in  his 
travelling  attire  direct  to  his  hotel,  "  The  Golden  Cross."    The 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  27 

season  of  Easter  came,  and  no  palms  were  strewed  on  Palm-  1524. 
Sunday;  the  ceremonial  mummeries  usual  in  Passion- week 
were  omitted ;  the  Word  of  God  resounded  in  the  churches, 
from  the  lips  of  Osiander  and  other  evangelical  preachers, 
and  crowds  of  eager  hearers  thronged  the  sacred  buildings  j 
the  Sacrament  was  publicly  administered  in  both  kinds  to 
more  than  4000  communicants,  and  even  Queen  Isabella  of 
Sweden,  Ferdinand's  sister,  partook  of  it  in  this  form  at  the 
castle  without  any  disguise.  Several  members  of  the  Diet 
might  be  marked  in  the  crowd  of  listeners  to  the  discourses 
of  the  evangelical  ministers,  who  declared  that  Antichrist  had 
entered  Rome  the  year  that  Constantine  left  it. 

These  demonstrations  of  popular  feeling  roused  the  indig- 
nation of  Ferdinand,  and,  in  conjunction  with  the  nuncio,  he 
made  them  the  subject  of  formal  complaint  against  the 
Nuremberg  Senate,  and  demanded  that  the  Edict  of  Worms 
should  be  put  in  force.  The  all-important  topic  of  religion 
was  thus  brought  into  discussion ;  and  evidence  was  not  long 
wanting,  that,  if  the  Council  of  Regency  had  fallen,  the  con- 
victions of  numerous  members  of  the  Diet  were  not  the  less 
decidedly  in  antagonism  to  Popery.  It  was  inquired  what 
reply  the  nuncio  had  to  make  from  the  Pope  to  the  catalogue 
of  grievances  which  had  been  forwarded  to  Rome.  Campegio 
was  ready  primed  with  the  hypocritical  answer,  that  he  had 
indeed  seen  a  copy  of  the  document  in  question,  but  that  no 
official  communication  had  directed  the  late  Pontiff's  atten- 
tion to  it,  and  it  was  incredible  that  a  writing  in  such  a  strain 
could  have  proceeded  from  the  German  States.  Such  scenes 
of  angry  debate  as  followed,  it  was  commonly  said,  had 
never  been  witnessed  in  any  preceding  Diet ;  and  out  of 
doors  murder  and  mutilation  showed  the  excited  temper  of 
the  populace.  Ferdinand's  life  was  threatened.  At  length, 
on  the  18th  April,  the  Recess  was  published.     It  enacted, 


28  THE    LIFK    OY    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  that  the  Edict  of  Worms  should  be  carried  into  execution  "  as 
far  as  was  possible ; "  *  that  a  Council  should  be  summoned 
with  all  speed ;  but,  in  the  interval,  a  meeting  of  the  States 
should  take  place  in  the  ensuing  November,  on  St.  Martin's 
day,  at  Spires,  to  arrange  preliminaries,  to  settle  what  books 
might  or  might  not  be  circulated,  and  to  reconsider  the 
grievances  charged  against  the  Pope  and  the  German  clergy ; 
and  that,  meanwhile,  the  Gospel  and  the  "Word  of  God 
should  be  preached  according  to  the  interpretation  of  writings 
approved  by  the  Church. 

It  is  now  very  clear  that  these  articles  of  the  Recess  were 
highly  favourable  to  the  cause  of  religious  reform;  but  at  the 
time  they  were  decried  by  Luther  as  much  as  by  Hannart, 
Campegio,  and  the  Papists.  This  is  explained  by  the  fact 
that,  the  mandate  framed  from  the  Recess  being  drawn  up  by 
the  imperial  Chancery,  the  clause  for  carrying  into  execution 
the  Edict  of  Worms  was  repeated  again  and  again,  whilst, 
amongst  the  books  to  be  examined,  Luther's  were  specified 
by  name,  and  nothing  was  said  about  preaching  the  Gospel 
and  the  Word  of  God.  This  mandate  was  sent  to  Luther  by 
the  Count  of  Mansfeld,  but  not  a  copy  of  the  Recess  itself. 
The  Reformer  published  it,  with  marginal  glosses,  and  a  pro- 
logue and  epilogue,  and  at  the  same  time  gave  the  world  the 
Edict  of  Worms,  pointing  to  the  contradictory  statements  in 
the  two  documents.  The  Princes  must  have  been  drunk,  he 
said,  when  they  enacted  such  contradictions  !  By  the  Edict 
of  Worms  his  books  were  all  to  be  burnt !  By  the  mandate 
from  Nuremberg  they  were  to  be  examined,  that  it  might  be 
seen  whether  they  were  good  or  bad !  Hannart  and  Cam- 
pegio took  a  far  juster  view  of  the  real  purport  of  the  conclu- 
sions of  the  Diet.     The  nuncio  engaged  to  use  his  iufluence 

*  So  vicl  mojjlich. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  29 

with  the  new  Pontiff  to  procure  the  summoning  of  a  Council ;  152 1 
but  he  energetically  opposed  the  preparatory  lay  convention 
of  Spires,  so  monstrous  in  eyes  which  regarded  the  ecclesiasti- 
cal estate  as  alone  qualified  to  judge  of  religious  doctrines; 
and,  in  their  subsequent  resistance  to  this  early  proof  of  the 
great  spread  of  the  Lutheran  ideas,  he  and  his  partisans  dis- 
membered the  German  nation,  and  invited  all  the  horrors  of 
war.  Clement,  in  his  disgust,  turned  to  Henry  of  England 
and  the  King  of  Portugal,  entreating  them  to  break  off  com- 
mercial dealings  with  Germany ;  and  plans  were  set  on  foot  in 
the  Papal  conclave  to  strip  Frederic  of  the  Saxon  electorate. 

Early  in  June,  not  two  months  from  the  signing  of  the 
Recess  of  the  Diet,  the  wretched  internal  condition  of  Ger- 
many fully  revealed  itself  by  the  rising  of  the  peasantry,  in 
the  first  instance  at  Bamberg,  against  the  ecclesiastical  power. 
Since  the  beginning  of  the  century  popular  insurrection  had 
been  frequent,  the  result  of  the  pitiable  serfdom  in  which  the 
poor  were  held,  and  the  self-inflicted  punishment  of  the  dis- 
organization of  society.  The  present  insurrection  was  more 
formidable  from  the  religious  element  mixed  up  with  it.  It 
quickly  spread  amongst  materials  on  all  sides  ready  to  nurse 
the  sparks  into  a  flame.  Before  the  end  of  June  symptoms 
of  the  mutinous  spirit  declared  themselves  at  Alstadt;  and 
in  July  the  seditious  temper  broke  out  into  deeds  of  violence 
at  Thurgau,  in  the  Bishopric  of  Constance,  where  the  op- 
pressed classes  rose  against  the  Abbot  of  Richenau.  All  this, 
however,  was  but  a  few  big  drops  before  the  storm  which  fell 
in  the  ensuing  year.  No  conviction  or  experience  of  the  woes 
which  their  precipitate  violence  was  hastening  upon  Germany 
could  stay  the  papistical  faction  in  their  mad  career  of 
bigotry,  or  moderate  their  fury  against  the  vindicators  of  the 
Gospel.  A  remarkable  compact,  cemented  by  mutual  con- 
cessions, had  been  formed  between  the  Pope  and  the  Dukes 


30  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  of  Bavaria,  through  the  agency  of  John  Eck.  The  Dukes,  on 
their  part,  had  commanded  all  their  subjects,  under  grievous 
penalties,  to  adhere  to  the  faith  of  their  fathers,  and  declared 
their  resolution,  if  need  were,  to  take  up  arms  against  heretics 
as  well  as  against  the  Turks ;  and  Clement,  on  his  part,  had 
made  over  to  the  Bavarian  princes  one-fifth  of  the  Church 
revenues  throughout  their  dominions.  It  is  thus  that  Rome 
is  justly  chargeable  with  having  itself  set  the  example  of  that 
church  spoliation  which  is  so  often  made  an  exclusive  charge 
against  Protestantism.  The  Pope  would  move  heaven  and 
earth,  and,  much  more,  was  willing  to  dismember  Germany 
and  deluge  its  plains  with  blood,  to  prevent  the  meeting  of 
the  assembly  appointed  to  be  held  at  Spires  in  November; 
and  he  had  now  an  ally  amongst  the  German  princes  on 
whose  cordial  co-operation  he  could  confidently  reckon.  That 
the  majority  at  Spires  would  side  with  Luther  might  be  anti- 
cipated with  some  degree  of  certainty :  reports  were  already 
in  preparation  from  various  cities  and  universities  on  the  sub- 
jects to  be  discussed,  and  the  greater  part  of  them — those 
from  the  Brandenburg  territory  in  terms  which  Luther 
characterised  as  "  coinage  of  the  right  stamp" — supported  the 
evangelical  views.  Besides,  therefore,  the  flagrancy  of  a  lay 
tribunal  passing  sentence  in  spiritual  matters,  it  was  of  the 
utmost  consequence  to  the  Papal  faith  that  an  assembly,  the 
direct  results  of  whose  deliberations  were  so  much  to  be 
dreaded,  should  never  be  allowed  to  hold  its  session.  The 
Archduke  Ferdinand  had  been  fixed  in  his  adhesion  to  the 
Popish  side,  by  a  grant  made  him  of  a  third  of  all  ecclesiastical 
revenues  for  levying  troops  against  the  Turks.  The  way  thus 
smoothed,  Campegio  proposed,  before  he  left  Nuremberg,  and 
succeeded  in  gaining,  the  assent  of  the  Popish  princes  to  his 
proposition,  that  a  Congress  should  previously  meet  at  Regens- 
berg,  to  consider  the  proper  remedy  for  the  disastrous  evils 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  31 

which  afflicted  the  Church.  This  Congress  assembled  in  the  1524. 
Town  Hall  of  Regensberg  towards  the  end  of  June.  Ferdinand 
was  present,  with  the  Dukes  of  Bavaria,  the  Archbishop  of 
Salzburg,  and  the  Bishop  of  Trent :  many  other  bishops  had 
sent  their  deputies :  and  the  nuncio,  summoning  all  his  elo- 
quence, drew  a  picture  of  the  perils  with  which  religious  dis- 
turbances threatened  the  civil  power,  and  exhorted  the  princes 
and  delegates  before  him  to  dismiss  all  minor  differences,  and 
unite  in  a  league  for  the  extirpation  of  heresy.  The  confer- 
ence lasted  for  sixteen  days ;  and  the  results  of  the  discussion 
are  generally  known  as  the  Ratisbon  Reformation.  Jerome, 
Augustine,  and  Gregory  were  constituted  the  standard  divines 
by  whom  Scripture  must  be  interpreted  :  a  commission,  com- 
posed of  lay  members  as  well  as  clerical,  was  appointed  to 
exercise  a  supervision  over  the  clergy;  the  preachers  were 
warned  not  to  teach  fables ;  the  priests  were  admonished  to 
lead  a  chaste  life ;  the  number  of  holy  days  was  diminished ; 
and  several  petty  exactions  of  the  Church  were  restrained. 
But  these  concessions  to  popular  feeling  and  well-grounded 
complaints  were  only  a  set-off  against  the  rigorous  articles 
which  proscribed  the  least  leaning  to  heresy;  throughout 
the  dominions  of  the  Archduke,  the  fourth  penny,  and,  in  the 
territories  of  the  Duke  of  Bavaria,  the  fifth  penny,  were  granted 
those  princes  by  their  respective  clergy,  on  the  condition  that 
they  would,  "  with  a  strong  hand,"  exterminate  the  Lutheran 
opinions.  And  on  the  6th  July  a  mandate  in  conformity 
with  the  resolutions  passed  at  this  meeting  was  published. 

The  next  point  was  to  secure  the  co-operation  of  the  Em- 
peror, and  prevail  with  him  to  prohibit  the  appointed  con- 
vention of  Spires.  The  Pope  used  all  his  influence  to  that 
effect :  the  services  of  Henry  of  England  were  enlisted  in  the 
same  cause;  and  as,  on  the  1st  May,  1524,  war  had  been 
formally  declared  against  France,  and  in  the  Italian  campaign, 


32  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  which  was  immediately  commenced,  the  alliance  of  the  Pope 
was  of  some  moment,  little  difficulty  was  found  in  procuring 
from  Charles  all  that  the  warmest  partisans  of  Rome  could 
desire.  On  the  27th  July  the  Imperial  proclamation  was 
issued,  in  terms  of  much  vehemence,  denouncing  Luther,  after 
the  example  of  Adrian,  as  a  second  Mahomet,  reprobating  the 
neglect  which  had  prevented  the  Edict  of  Worms  from  being- 
carried  into  execution,  objecting  to  the  demand  for  a  future 
council,  and  forbidding  the  appointed  convention  at  Spires 
under  penalty  of  the  guilt  of  high  treason,  and  sentence  of 
ban  and  reban.  Thus  all  disguise  was  thrown  to  the  winds  ; 
and  the  Lutherans  were  clearly  informed  what  they  might 
expect  from  the  powerful  league  of  bishops  and  princes, 
headed  by  the  Emperor  himself,  formed  for  their  overthrow. 

As  the  persecution  had  begun  before  this  League  had  been 
combined,  so  it  subsequently  raged  with  aggravated  fury. 
In  Bavaria,  Bernard  Tichtel  was  compelled  to  revoke  his 
Lutheran  tenets  under  the  alternative  of  death.  In  the  ter- 
ritory of  the  Archbishop  of  Salzburg,  two  peasants,  who  had 
released  a  Lutheran  priest  from  his  bonds,  whilst  his  guards 
who  were  conveying  him  to  prison  were  carousing,  were  be- 
headed outside  the  city  walls  without  any  formal  trial.  At 
Vienna,  on  the  Virgin's  Nativity,  great  crowds  were  collected 
in  the  churchyard  of  St.  Stephen's,  to  witness  the  recantation 
of  Caspar  Tauber,  a  Lutheran ;  but  Tauber,  from  the  pulpit 
in  which  he  had  been  placed  to  make  his  retractation,  pro- 
fessed his  faith  in  the  Gospel,  and  with  great  heroism  suf- 
fered death  by  decapitation.  In  Waldshut,  the  efforts  of  the 
persecuting  party  were  only  restrained  by  a  body  of  Swiss 
volunteers  from  Zurich  entering  the  town,  and  threatening  to 
reply  to  force  by  force.  From  Pomerania  the  Gospel  mis- 
sionaries were  expelled.  In  Holstein,  at  Meldorf,  in  Dit- 
marsch,  Henry  Zutphen,  who  had  escaped  the  fate  of  his  An- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MAKTIN    LUTHER.  33 

gustine  brethren  of  Antwerp,  and  had  subsequently  preached  1524. 
the  Gospel  at  Bremen,  whence  he  had  been  invited  to  discharge 
the  same  office  at  Meldorf,  was  dragged  one  night  in  the 
month  of  January  from  his  bed,  hurried,  amidst  the  yelling  of 
a  Popish  rabble,  led  on  by  monks,  to  the  stake,  and  burnt 
with  every  atrocity  of  torture.  So  furious  was  the  zeal  of 
the  League,  that  in  various  parts  of  the  country  Lutheran 
preachers  were  nailed  by  their  tongues  to  trees,  and  in  that 
deplorable  condition  abandoned  to  their  fate. 

Such  cruelties  naturally  inflamed  the  rebellious  temper  of 
the  peasantry,  and  provoked  a  counter-demonstration  and  de- 
fensive measures  on  the  part  of  the  Lutheran  governments. 
The  cities,  indignant  that  a  few  princes  should  arrogate  the 
power  of  passing  laws,  which  belonged  only  to  the  Diet,  held 
a  meeting  at  Spires  on  St.  Margaret's  Day,  and  resolved  that 
their  preachers  should  proclaim,  not  the  sentiments  of  the 
Latin  fathers,  but  the  doctrines  of  the  Gospel,  of  the  pro- 
phetical and  apostolic  Scriptures.  It  was  determined  that  a 
confession  of  faith  should  be  prepared  on  the  part  of  each 
city,  by  their  approved  divines,  to  be  presented  to  the  con- 
gress to  assemble  at  Spires  in  November,  when  one  common 
confession  should  be  framed  by  a  comparison  of  individual 
ones,  to  serve  as  a  declaration  of  faith  till  the  summoning  of 
the  appointed  Council.  And  when  these  cities  found  all  their 
plans  disconcerted  by  the  peremptory  letter  of  the  Emperor 
from  Burgos,  their  irritation  knew  no  bounds.  At  the  same 
time,  the  indignity  of  giving  the  Emperor's  sister,  the  affi- 
anced bride  of  the  son  of  John  Frederic  of  Saxony,  in  marriage 
to  John  III.  of  Portugal,  wounded  to  the  quick  the  pride  of 
the  Ernestine  branch  of  the  house  of  Saxony  ;  and  the  letters 
of  Charles,  which  Ferdinand  had  been  privately  enjoined  not 
to  transmit  unless  the  temper  of  the  princes  would  bear  it, 
but  which   he  at  once  delivered  in  his  indiscreet  religious 

VOL.  II.  D 


34  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  ardour,  raised  such  a  storm  of  indignation  amongst  the  nobles 
and  princes,  who  concurred  with  the  Recesses  of  the  two  Nu- 
remberg Diets,  that  even  the  deposition  of  the  Emperor  was 
talked  of  as  a  not  improbable  event :  and,  from  among  the 
Papist  faction,  William  of  Bavaria,  notwithstanding  the  part 
he  had  taken  at  Ratisbon,  forgetting  religion  in  politics,  as- 
pired to  the  imperial  crown  for  himself. 

The  spirit  of  dissatisfaction  was  daily  growing;  and  after 
the  assembly  at  Spires  had  been  prohibited,  the  imperial 
cities  held  a  second  meeting  at  Ulm,  at  which  deputies  from 
the  nobles  joined  the  city  delegates,  and  discussed  with  them 
the  question  of  war  in  defence  of  the  Lutheran  cause.  Nor 
did  the  meeting  break  up  until  a  determination  had  been 
mutually  agreed  upon,  that  the  nobles  and  cities  should  "  not 
act  separately  in  such  momentous  affairs,  and  such  perilous 
times."  Everything  pointed  to  that  complete  division  of 
German  nationality  which  soon  followed,  which  exists  to 
this  day,  and  dates  from  the  Ratisbon  League. 

Whilst  these  important  events  were  transpiring,  Luther 
was  engaged  as  arduously  as  in  the  preceding  year  in  his 
translation,  his  writings,  and  his  routine  of  labours.  With 
his  numerous  other  avocations,  academical  lecturing  became 
so  onerous  that  he  addressed  an  entreaty  through  Spalatin  to 
the  Elector,  that  Melancthon,  instead  of  lecturing  in  Greek, 
might  be  directed  to  lecture  in  theology,  and  the  same 
stipend  be  allowed  him  ;  but  as  Melancthon  himself  strongly 
objected  to  this  arrangement,  urging  that  literature  and 
theology  always  nourished  and  decayed  together,  the  trans- 
fer was  not  made.  The  poverty  of  the  Prior  and  Luther 
continued  extreme.  "I  wish  to  know,"  he  wrote  to  Spa- 
latin  in  April,  "  in  the  name  of  the  Prior,  whether  the  Elec- 
tor has  despatched  to  Bressen  his  mandate  to  pay  the  debt  he 
owes  us.     We  have  not  received  or  heard  anything  as  yet, 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTTN    LUTHER.  35 

and  our  difficulties  weigh  heavier  on  us  every  day.  I  shall  be  1524. 
compelled  at  last  to  find  a  maintenance  elsewhere."  He  had 
written  several  times  to  Staupitz,  whom,  notwithstanding 
his  estrangement,  he  still  styled  "  his  Father  in  Christ,"  and 
at  the  end  of  April  he  at  length  received  one  letter  from  his 
earliest  instructor  in  reply. 

A  nun  named  Florentina  had  been  driven  to  make  her 
escape  from  a  convent  at  Eisleben,  by  the  harsh  and  cruel 
treatment  she  had  experienced,  and  the  Reformer  pub- 
lished the  history  of  her  case,  "  that  the  world  might 
know  what  nunneries  are,"  and  prefaced  it  with  a  letter 
to  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld.  "  Not  only,"  he  wrote,  "  in 
the  case  of  this  Florentina,  but  in  many  more,  we  may  easily 
see  how  satanical  a  thing  conventualism  is,  which  uses  per- 
secution, force,  and  blows,  to  drive  people  to  God,  although 
God  will  have  no  compulsory  service,  and  says  none  shall  be 
his  but  by  his  own  free  consent.  Christ  says,  'No  man 
cometh  unto  me,  except  the  Father  which  hath  sent  me 
draw  him.'  Have  we  neither  understanding  nor  ears?  Is  not 
this  clear  enough,  dear  Lord  God  ?  The  Father  must  draw  : 
but  instead  of  this,  man  would  drive  !  There  are  princes  and 
nobles  who  are  enraged  at  my  censures  of  the  convents ;  but 
did  they  know  all  that  I  know,  they  would  think  that  they 
could  not  praise  and  honour  me  enough  for  what  I  have  done." 
Letters  asking  his  advice  reached  him  from  priests  who  were 
compelled  to  say  mass,  to  whom  he  uniformly  replied,  that 
it  was  their  duty  to  quit  their  monastery  if  their  conscience 
could  not  be  satisfied;  if  it  could,  in  the  name  of  God,  he 
said,  ' '  remain  where  you  are."  A  portion  of  the  "  Postils  " 
was  committed  to  the  press  ;  the  preface  to  the  Old  Testa- 
ment, recommending  its  study,  as  showing  "  what  we  owe  to 
God,  as  the  Gospel  shows  Christ's  grace  to  us,"  was  inditing 
at   this  time;    and   the  Commentary    on  Deuteronomy  had 

d  2 


36  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  been  begun,  but  was  proceeding  slowly,  from  the  vast  amount 
of  his  other  employments.  His  correspondence  alone,  he 
said,  was  more  than  enough  to  engross  his  full  time. 

Beyond  the  more  customary  questions  of  debate,  it  had 
now  been  mooted  to  what  extent  a  Christian  was  bound  to 
obey  the  law  of  Moses.  Luther  communicated  on  this  sub- 
ject with  Spalatin,  and  decided  that  the  judicial  as  well  as  the 
ceremonial  laws  of  the  Jews  were  not  obligatory  upon  Chris- 
tians. "  Neither  Naaman,  nor  Job,  nor  Joseph,  nor  Daniel, 
nor  any  other  Jews,  observed  their  own  laws  out  of  their  own 
country,  but  those  of  the  nations  amongst  whom  they  were. 
If  the  judicial  is  binding,  why  not  the  ceremonial  law  too, 
and  why  should  we  not  be  circumcised?"  One  of  the  cen- 
sures which  he  had  applied  to  Romanism  was,  that  it  was  a 
vile  aping,  in  its  sacerdotalism  and  ceremonial  punctilios,  of  Ju- 
daism. But  the  moral  law,  he  averred,  was  strictly  binding  on 
Christians;  for  "  it  is  the  law  of  nature,  written,"  as  St.  Paul 
declares,  c '  upon  the  heart."  Together  with  Bugenhagen  and 
Melancthon,  he  signed  a  statement  of  his  sentiments  on  this 
point,  to  the  effect  that  "  the  law  must  be  preached,  because 
Christ  says,  '  The  Holy  Ghost  shall  convince  the  world  of 
sin ;'  which  could  not  be,  without  the  proclamation  of  the  law. 
The  law  was  for  the  disobedient,  the  temporal  sword  also  was 
appointed  for  their  restraint  and  punishment ;  but  the  works 
of  the  law  could  not  procure  grace,  which  is  God's  free,  un- 
merited gift."  The  obligation  of  the  whole  of  the  Mosaic 
law  was  even  maintained  at  the  Saxon  Court  by  Wolfgang 
Stein  ;  and  Luther,  in  May,  wrote  to  Frederic  at  his  request 
his  verdict,  to  the  effect  that  "  temporal  law  is  an  outward 
thing,  like  eating  and  drinking;  and  since  faith  and  love 
can  well  remain  under  the  imperial  laws,  we  are  bound  to 
maintain  the  imperial  laws." 

Connected  with  this  dispute  was  the  question  of  interest 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  37 

upon  money,  which  Strauss,  the  pastor  of  Eisenach,  and  others,  1524. 
strongly  reprobated,  as  forbidden  by  the  Old  Testament,  and 
advised  the  non-payment  of  it,  excepting  on  the  application 
or  threat  of  force.  Luther  wrote  to  Strauss  that  he  could  not 
concur  with  this  opinion,  and  he  recommended  the  payment 
of  interest  without  compulsion,  on  demand  merely.  "  The 
world  abuses  the  Gospel,  and  is  not  ruled  by  the  Gospel." 
On  moral  as  well  as  civil  grounds  the  subject  seemed  of  mo- 
ment ;  he  therefore  published  a  treatise  on  "  merchandise  and 
usury,"  in  German,  in  which  he  dealt  faithfully  with  both 
parties,  denouncing  the  avarice  of  the  merchants,  and  tracing 
it  in  many  instances  to  the  Princes  themselves  as  the  source 
and  head,  lamenting  that,  as  Isaiah  said,  "  The  princes  were 
become  partners  with  thieves,"  or,  as  the  proverb  went,  "  the 
big  thieves  hang  the  little  ones."  He  objected  to  a  rate  of 
interest  so  high  that  it  became  usurious,  and  requested  the 
Elector's  interference  in  prohibition  of  a  rate  exceeding  four 
or  five  per  cent.  But  where  only  such  moderate  interest  was 
asked,  he  left  the  matter  to  the  conscience  of  the  creditor,  not 
of  the  debtor,  until,  at  least,  "  God  should  put  it  in  the  heart 
of  the  princes  to  effect  an  alteration  with  one  consent." 

But  the  most  urgent  question  of  the  day,  in  his  judgment, 
was  the  education  of  youth.  "  I  see,"  he  wrote  to  Strauss, 
"  that  the  ruin  of  the  Gospel  is  imminent  from  the  neglect  of 
education.  It  is  of  all  things  the  most  necessary."  He  re- 
marked with  Melancthon  that  the  increase  of  learning  has  ever 
been  accompanied  by  the  increase  of  scriptural  knowledge,  and 
the  wider  dissemination  of  the  Gospel.  He  was  earnest  in  his 
endeavours  that  a  portion  of  the  convent  and  chauntry  re- 
venues might  be  appropriated  to  this  purpose,  so  much 
in  unison  with  the  founder's  intentions ;  and  he  further  ad- 
dressed letters  to  several  of  the  parochial  pastors — even  to 
Brismann  in  Prussia,  and  to  the  church  of  Riga — to  urge 


38  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  them  to  supply  the  educational  wants  of  the  period  as  a 
matter  of  the  first  importance.  To  the  Elector  he  wrote 
that "  he  might  see  how  schools  were  everywhere  falling,  to  the 
great  detriment,  not  only  of  Germany,  but  of  Christendom ; 
and  that  it  ought  to  be  a  prime  object  with  every  prince  to 
uphold  letters/'  Not  satisfied  with  these  efforts,  he  published 
a  treatise  in  German,  addressed  to  all  the  senators  of  all  the 
states  of  Germany,  pressing  on  them  the  necessity  of  erect- 
ing seminaries  for  christian  instruction,  and  providing  espe- 
cially for  the  education  of  "  those  children  whose  parents,  like 
the  ostrich,  neglected  their  young."  "  A  boy,"  he  said,  "  of  fif- 
teen or  eighteen  years  of  age  might  now  know  more  than  here- 
tofore all  universities  and  all  monasteries.  In  those  stalls  of 
asses  and  gymnasia  of  devils,  many  had  studied  twenty  or  forty 
years  without  acquiring  either  Latin  or  German."  He  had 
rather  the  conventual  establishments  should  be  sunk  to  the 
bottom  of  the  sea  than  ever  revived ;  but  the  convents 
ought  to  be  converted  into  christian  schools.  A  notion 
had  arisen  that  Latin  and  Greek  were  a  needless  study  for 
Christians,  and  that  the  attainment  of  Hebrew  and  German 
was  sufficient,  or  even  all  languages  might  be  dispensed 
with.  He  combated  this  idea  with  all  the  force  of  his  supe- 
rior sagacity.  "  If  the  study  of  languages  cease,  we  shall  be 
unable  either  to  write  or  speak  in  Latin  or  in  German.  Lan- 
guages are  the  scabbard  in  which  the  sword  of  the  Spirit  is 
sheathed.  Oh,  Germans  !  buy,  whilst  the  market  is  at  your 
doors ;  gather,  whilst  the  sky  is  bright  and  the  air  serene ; 
use  the  grace  and  the  word  of  God  whilst  you  may.  The 
word  and  grace  of  God  is  a  shower  that  passes  on  and  returns 
not  again. ,} 

The  Popish  League  on  its  side,  at  the  same  time  that  it 
dealt  largely  in  persecution,  was  resolved  to  try  also  the  influ- 
ence of  pomp  and  ceremonial  on  the  popular  imagination. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  39 

Benno,  who  had  been  Bishop  of  Misnia  in  the  age  of  Gre-  1524. 
gory  VII.,  had  been  canonized  by  a  bull  of  Adrian,  dated 
the  31st  May,  1523.  Duke  George  had  exerted  all  his  in- 
fluence to  obtain  this  honour  for  a  district  subject  to  his 
jurisdiction,  and  the  Bishop  of  Misnia  had  gone  to  Rome  to 
further  the  suit,  with  commendatory  letters  from  Duke 
George  and  most  of  the  princes  of  the  Papist  party.  The 
bishop  had  the  gratification  of  publishing  the  bull  in  Germany 
on  the  7th  September.  The  merits  of  Benno  consisted 
in  his  having  been  a  faithful  partisan  of  Hildebrand  in  his 
dissensions  with  Henry  IV.,  when  the  surrounding  prelates 
had  espoused  the  cause  of  the  Emperor.  The  bull  enumerated 
his  various  miracles — that  the  keys  of  his  church,  which, 
rather  than  surrender  them  to  the  Emperor,  he  had  thrown 
into  the  Elbe,  had  been  found  in  a  fish's  belly  and  restored  to 
him ;  that  he  had  crossed  the  river  dry-footed ;  had  turned 
water  into  wine ;  a  fountain  had  gushed  out  where  his  foot 
had  trod ;  he  had  celebrated  mass  in  two  places  at  one  time  ; 
and,  when  the  Marquis  of  Misnia  struck  him  on  the  face,  his 
prediction  that  he  should  die  at  the  expiration  of  a  year  had 
come  to  pass.  The  apotheosis  of  this  votary  of  the  Papacy 
was  celebrated  on  the  16th  May,  1524.  His  remains  were 
raised  from  their  lowly  sepulchre,  and  placed  in  a  marble 
monument :  the  Dukes  George  and  Henry,  and  the  Bishop  of 
Merseburg,  with  others  of  the  nobility,  were  present ;  and  the 
confluence  of  humble  spectators — some  urged  by  curiosity, 
others  by  lingering  superstitious  motives — was  so  numerous  as 
to  excite  the  boasts  of  the  Romanists.  Before,  however,  the  day 
of  the  grand  ceremony  had  arrived,  Luther  inveighed  against 
the  egregious  folly  and  credulity  of  the  whole  proceeding,  in 
a  tract  entitled,  "Against  the  old  Idol  and  new  Devil 
of  Misnia/'  warning  the  people  not  to  be  witnesses  of  an  im- 
pious spectacle.     "  Whom/'  he  asked,  "  do  they  elevate  into 


40  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  a  saint?  A  robber  and  a  murderer,  an  enemy  to  Germany, 
a  foe  of  the  Gospel,  and  an  ally  of  Antichrist !  Gregory  VII. 
himself  was  a  wicked  and  traitorous  man ;  he  sowed  dissen- 
sion between  father  and  son,  and  suffered  the  Emperor  to  die 
under  sentence  of  excommunication,  goaded  on  to  act  as  he 
did  by  a  craving  for  worldly  power,  pomp,  and  glory.  Yet, 
by  a  happy  fatality,  the  Satan  of  Misnia  has  been  made  a 
saint  by  Pope  Adrian,  who  has  murdered  and  exalted  to 
heaven  two  real  saints  at  Brussels.  Thus,  at  Constance, 
Thomas  Aquinas,  the  source  and  sink  of  heresy,  was  exalted 
to  saintship,  and  two  really  holy  sons  and  martyrs  of  God, 
Huss,  and  Jerome  of  Prague,  perished  in  the  flames."  The 
whole  warmth  of  Luther's  impetuous  nature  was  drawn  out 
by  this  Popish  jubilee ;  and  he  dated  many  of  his  letters  from 
before  or  after  the  Feast  of  St.  Benno. 

About  this  time  Melancthon,  who  had  begged  a  short  holi- 
day from  the  court,  paid  a  visit  to  his  mother,  who  resided 
near  Frankfort,  with  Joachim  Camerarius  for  one  of  his  com- 
panions. And  from  Frankfort  Camerarius,  with  two  more  of 
the  party,  pressed  on  to  Basle,  full  of  curiosity  to  see  Erasmus, 
and  delivered  into  his  hands  a  letter  from  Luther.  Hutten's 
expostulations  had  been  answered  by  Erasmus  in  his  "Sponge," 
and  several  expressions  had  fallen  from  the  scholar  in  depreci- 
ation of  Lutheran  sentiments,  and  of  those  who  professed  them ; 
and  between  many  of  the  Lutherans  and  Erasmus  open  war 
had  begun.  The  letter  of  Luther  intimated  regret  that  such 
differences  should  have  arisen,  and  in  dignified  terms  of  expos- 
tulation declared  his  hope  that  harmony  might  yet  be  main- 
tained ;  but  withal  implied  that  nothing  was  to  be  feared  from 
the  worst  that  Erasmus  could  do.  "Although,"  Luther 
wrote,  "  irritable  as  I  am,  1  have  been  too  often  irritated  to 
write  too  bitterly;  yet  I  have  never  done  this  excepting 
against  the  perverse  and  obstinate.     I  have  hitherto  curbed 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  41 

my  style,  however  much  you  galled  me ;  and  in  letters  to  1524. 
friends  that  were  read  to  you,  I  stated  that  I  should  do  so, 
until  you  openly  assailed  me.  For,  however  much  you  may 
differ  from  us,  and  impiously  or  feignedly  condemn  many 
points  of  Christian  doctrine,  yet  I  cannot  and  will  not  charge 
you  with  obstinacy.  I  could  wish  to  be  mediator  between 
you  and  those  whose  opposition  you  have  provoked,  and  in- 
duce them  to  let  your  old  age  sleep  with  peace  in  the  Lord. 
In  my  judgment,  they  are  bound  to  do  so,  in  consideration  of 
your  moral  weakness  of  character,  and  the  magnitude  of  the 
cause,  which  has  long  since  outstripped  your  standard;  so 
that,  were  you  to  put  forth  your  utmost  strength,  there 
would  be  no  ground  to  dread  your  sting  or  hardest  bite.  Yet 
I  confess  it  would  be  far  worse  to  be  once  bitten  by  Erasmus, 
than  ground  to  powder  by  all  the  Papists.  May  the  Lord 
grant  you  a  spirit  worthy  of  your  fame  !  if  not,  may  the  Lord 
enable  you  to  be  only  a  spectator  of  our  tragedy !  Do  not 
join  forces  with  our  foes ;  at  least,  do  not  write  against  me, 
and  I  will  not  write  against  you."  The  Reformer  knew  that 
the  Papists,  especially  the  Pope  and  Henry  of  England,  had 
been  plying  the  scholar  with  their  utmost  entreaties  and 
largest  promises  to  wield  the  pen  against  Luther ;  and  such  an 
assault  from  the  prince  of  letters  against  the  champion  of  the 
Scriptures  was  by  all  means  to  be  avoided,  if  possible.  By  the 
same  bearer  Luther  wrote  to  (Ecolampadms,  "  I  have  ad- 
dressed a  letter  to  Erasmus,  praying  for  peace  and  concord. 
Do  you  co-operate  with  me."  But  these  labours  for  peace 
failed.  The  reply  of  Erasmus  to  Luther  was  the  harbinger 
of  the  treatise  which  followed  from  his  pen  in  the  autumn, 
and  which  he  was  then  meditating.  He  tried  to  vindicate 
himself  from  the  accusation  of  timidity,  and  then  asked, 
"  Why  deplore  a  disputation  for  the  sake  of  eliciting  know- 
ledge?    Perhaps,  Erasmus   writing    against    you  will   profit 


42  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524  the  Gospel  more  than  some  fools  writing  for  you.  These  will 
not  suffer  me  to  be  a  spectator  of  your  tragedy,  which  I  pray 
may  not  have  a  tragical  ending."  In  his  more  friendly  cor- 
respondence with  Melancthon,  Erasmus  excused  his  conduct 
on  the  ground  of  the  bad  morals  of  many  of  the  Lutherans, 
the  division  in  their  camp,  and  the  bloody  doctrines  incul- 
cated by  some  of  their  doctors.  Melancthon  gently  but 
firmly  replied,  that  doctrines  could  not  be  tested  by  the  con- 
duct of  some  who  professed  them,  and  that  there  was  not  a 
man  in  the  world  more  unlike  "  the  bloody  doctors "  he  com- 
plained of  than  Luther. 

Luther's  desire  for  peace  was  again  demonstrated  in  a 
letter  to  Capito  towards  the  end  of  May.  A  former  epistle,  in 
which  he  had  freely  reproved  the  pusillanimity  of  truckling 
to  the  whims  and  notions  of  the  Court  of  Mentz,  although 
never  intended  for  publication,  had  been  maliciously  printed, 
and  had  now  appeared  in  a  German  version.  There  were  also 
rumours  in  circulation,  joyfully  caught  up  and  whispered  by 
the  Romanists,  that  Strasburg  and  Wittenberg  were  not  at 
one  in  all  points  of  doctrine.  "  I  am  almost  deterred  from 
writing  letters  at  all,"  Luther  wrote,  "when  I  see  such  as 
were  meant  to  be  private  hurried  to  the  press,  and  such  free 
and  familiar  expressions  as  are  allowable  amongst  friends  ex- 
posed to  the  public  eye.  You  were  then  another  man,  the 
servant  of  the  Court ;  now  you  are  Christ's  freed  man,  the 
servant  of  the  Gospel.  I  am  delighted  with  the  marriage  of 
the  priests,  monks,  and  nuns  at  Strasburg  ;  with  the  appeal  of 
the  husbands  from  the  excommunication  of  the  Bishop  of 
Satan,  and  with  the  appointments  made  to  the  parishes. 
Sufficient  indulgence  has  been  shown  to  the  weak  :  they  now 
harden  day  by  day,  and  therefore  the  utmost  freedom  of 
acting  and  speaking  becomes  necessary.  I  shall  myself  at 
last  lay  aside  the  cowl,  which  I  have  worn  so  long  in  support 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  43 

of  the  weak,  and  in  mockery  of  the  Pope.  The  dead  must  1524. 
be  left  to  bury  their  dead  :  they  are  blind,  and  leaders  of  the 
blind.  Luther  would  hardly  allow  that  differences  existed 
between  Strasburg  and  Wittenberg,  probably  because  their 
doctrines  on  the  Lord's  Supper,  in  which  they  occupied  a  sort 
of  middle  ground  between  Luther  on  the  one  side  and  Zwingle 
and  Carlstadt  on  the  other,  although  they  had  no  sympathy 
with  the  Zwickau  fanatical  principles,  had  not  yet  been  clearly 
and  decidedly  stated.  "  May  Christ  so  reign  in  you,  that  if 
there  be  diversities  of  opinion  between  us,  the  bond  and  union 
of  the  Spirit  may  be  sincere  and  perfect.  I  am  wont  to  dis- 
semble and  conceal  as  far  as  I  can  real  differences  of  opinion 
—  (and  by  what  a  spirit  are  some  possessed !) —how  much 
more  this  intolerable  scandal  and  injury  to  christian  concord 
and  spiritual  peace.  Were  my  occupations  less  onerous,  I 
would  testify  by  a  public  writing  to  our  candid  agreement  in 
christian  doctrine  against  whispering  surmises." 

It  was  as  Philip  Melancthon  was  returning  from  the  visit 
to  his  mother,  already  mentioned,  that  not  far  from  Frankfort 
he  was  met  by  a  party  of  knights,  and  amongst  them  young 
Philip  the  Landgrave  of  Hesse,  bound  for  a  cross-bow  match 
at  Heidelberg.  Thirteen  princes  were  to  be  there,  and  Car- 
dinal Campegio  also  was  expected.  The  Prince  rode  up  to 
the  scholar,  and  inquired  whether  he  was  Melancthon. 
Melancthon  was  beginning  to  dismount  in  sign  of  respect ; 
but  the  Prince  begged  him  "not  to  do  so,  but  to  turn 
his  horse's  head  and  go  with  him  and  spend  the  night  at  his 
lodging;  he  was  anxious  to  talk  over  several  matters  Avith 
him,  and  he  need  be  under  no  alarm  for  his  safety." 
Melancthon  answered  that  "  he  was  under  no  fear  of  the 
Prince  of  Hesse,  and  indeed  he  was  of  too  little  consequence 
to  be  under  fear  of  any  one."  "  And  yet/'  replied  the  Prince, 
smiling,  "  were  I  to  place  you  in  the  power  of  Campegio,  he 


44  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  would,  I  think,  thank  me  for  the  service."  Melancthon 
earnestly  begged  to  be  permitted  to  continue  his  journey ;  and 
after  they  had  remained  conversing  together  for  some  little 
while,  the  Prince  exacted  of  him  the  promise  to  compose  a 
treatise  for  his  perusal  on  the  religious  questions  which  were 
engrossing  the  public  attention.  They  then  parted;  the 
Prince  giving  his  new  friend  "  a  pass  "  through  all  the  places 
in  his  dominions.  In  the  fulfilment  of  this  promise,  Melanc- 
tlion  composed  his  "  Sum  of  the  revived  Christian  Doctrines/' 
which  proved  acceptable  to  the  Landgrave,  who  not  long 
afterwards  professed  himself  a  convert  to  the  evangelical  faith, 
and  was  jocularly  known  at  Wittenberg  by  the  name  of 
"  Philip's  disciple." 

The  accession  of  Albert,  the  Grand  Master  of  Prussia,  to 
the  ranks  of  the  evangelical  party,  was  a  yet  more  valuable 
acquisition.  Prussia  enjoyed  the  singular  blessing  of  having 
one  out  of  her  four  bishops,  George  Polentz,  Bishop  of 
Samland,  sincerely  attached  to  the  Gospel  of  Christ,  by 
whose  invitation  evangelical  preachers  from  Wittenberg 
spread  over  Prussia,  and  taught  the  people  the  doctrines  of  the 
Bible.  That  Luther  entertained  on  this  account,  as  well  as 
others,  a  hope  of  influencing  the  Teutonic  Order  for  good,  has 
been  already  seen  in  the  letter  which  nearly  a  year  and  a  half 
ago  he  had  addressed  to  the  knights  on  the  subject  of  false 
and  true  continence.  At  Nuremberg,  the  Grand  Master  had 
been  a  frequent  auditor  of  Osiander ;  and  the  leaven  of 
scriptural  truth  working  in  his  mind,  he  submitted,  in  a  letter 
of  that  period  to  Luther,  five  articles  of  Christian  doctrine,  on 
which  he  desired  the  Reformer's  explanation.  Luther,  in  his 
reply,  dwelt  at  some  length  on  the  Papist  pretence  that  the 
Church  is  founded  on  Peter,  which,  on  the  contrary,  he  said, 
"  is  founded  on  Christ,  and  is  an  invisible  and  spiritual  thing; 
for  we  declare  in  the  creed,  '  I  believe  in  the  Holy  Catholic 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  45 

Church  ; '  but  we  none  of  us  believe  in  what  we  can  behold."  1524. 
Albert  left  Nuremberg  in  company  with  Planitz,  to  whom  he 
had  communicated  the  doubts  and  perplexities  which  harassed 
him,  and  received  from  the  Saxon  counsellor  the  advice  that 
he  should  pay  a  visit  to  Luther  himself  at  Wittenberg,  and  in 
a  personal  conversation  open  his  heart  to  him.  Albert 
did  so,  and  proposed  the  question,  "Was  the  vow  of  the 
Teutonic  Order  lawful?  "  Without  any  reserve  the  Reformer 
declared  that  he  regarded  it  as  entirely  repugnant  to  the  Word 
of  God,  and  with  much  warmth  urged  the  Grand  Master  to 
have  done  with  false,  and  to  espouse  real  chastity,  by  taking  a 
wife,  and  to  convert  his  hermaphrodite  principality  into  a 
temporal  sovereignty.  There  were,  of  course,  many  obstacles 
to  an  immediate  execution  of  this  counsel;  but  the  Grand 
Master  smiled,  and  withdrew.  From  that  time  there  was  an 
understanding  between  Luther  and  Albert ;  and  the  former 
enjoined  Brismann  and  the  other  evangelical  teachers,  who, 
encouraged  by  the  favour  of  Albert,  traversed  his  dominions 
preaching  the  Gospel,  to  prepare  the  minds  of  the  people  for 
the  contemplated  change,  and  induce  the  Commendators  of  the 
Order  to  solicit  Albert  to  adopt  a  step  to  which  he  was  him- 
self well  inclined.  The  menaced  position  of  Prussia,  unable 
to  match  the  power  of  Poland,  and  hopeless  of  assistance 
against  her  old  foe  from  the  German  States,  rendered  the 
measure,  in  a  political  point  of  view,  highly  expedient,  and  the 
next  year  the  metamorphose  was  actually  accomplished,  with 
only  one  dissentient  voice  among  the  knights,  that  of  Eric  of 
Brunswick.  Albert,  from  being  Grand  Master,  became  Duke 
of  Prussia,  and  consented  to  pay  homage  to  the  King  of 
Poland  as  his  feudal  superior.  On  the  same  occasion,  George 
Polentz  resigned  his  castles,  towns,  villages,  and  all  the  tem- 
poralities of  his  See  to  the  newly  constituted  Duke ;  pro- 
claimed that  the  office  of  a  Bishop  is  to  preach  the  Word 


46  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  of  God,  not  to  live  like  a  secular  prince,  and  only  demanded 
an  honourable  maintenance  sufficient  to  the  discharge  of  the 
real  episcopal  functions.  An  amended  ritual  for  church  ser- 
vices was  introduced,  and  the  Reformation  was  established  in 
Prussia,  which  was  thus  the  first  principality  of  any  large 
extent  that  publicly  professed  the  Lutheran  principles,  and 
conformed  to  her  ecclesiastical  institutions. 

Many  other  princes  joined  the  cause  of  the  Reformation 
about  the  same  time  :  amongst  them  Albert's  two  brothers,  the 
Margrave  Casimir  of  Brandenburg,  and  George,  who  was 
residing  in  the  Hungarian  Court  at  Ofen.  The  Dukes  of 
Luneburg  and  the  Dukes  of  Mecklenburg  also  espoused  the 
evangelical  tenets;  and  the  banished  Duke  of  Wurtemberg 
had  Lutheran  chaplains  at  Mumpelgard.  Luther  recounted 
with  joyful  gratitude  that  "the  Gospel  had  already  taken 
possession  of  Magdeburg  and  Bremen,  and  would  soon  mi- 
grate to  Brunswick,  for  Duke  Henry  had  become  another 
man/'  The  Reformer  visited  Magdeburg  himself,  and 
preached  in  St.  John's  Church  to  such  a  crowded  audience 
that  many  who  could  not  obtain  standing-room  inside  the 
walls,  stood  outside  upon  the  window  ledges.  Other  princes, 
moreover,  who  were  as  yet  deterred  by  fear  or  some  selfish 
motive  from  openly  professing  the  Lutheran  faith,  such  as 
Duke  Barnim  of  Pomerania,  and  the  Elector  Palatine,  yet 
proclaimed  the  duty  of  religious  toleration. 

Encouraging  as  such  successes  were,  they  did  not  divert 
Luther's  attention  from  the  gradual  progress  of  a  danger  which 
he  had  long  foreseen.  He  kept  a  steady  and  watchful  eye 
upon  Munzer  and  the  fanatics.  In  June,  reports  reached  the 
Elector  of  Saxony  from  Alstadt,  to  which  the  prophets  had 
transferred  their  head-quarters  from  Zwickau,  that  the  par- 
tisans of  Munzer  had  begun  their  riots,  were  forcing  the 
doors  of  churches,  demolishing  images,  and  committing  other 


THE    LIFE    OF    MA11TIN    LUTHER.  47 

excesses.  The  magistrates  of  Alstadt  sentenced  them  to  1524. 
punishment,  but  not  having  sufficient  authority  to  inflict  it, 
the  delinquents  were  cited  to  appear  at  Weimar,  where  on 
the  1st  August  Munzer  himself  was  subjected  to  trial,  and 
denied  many  charges,  but  acknowledged  some  seditious 
expressions  attributed  to  him,  and  that  he  had  told  some 
peasants  of  the  neighbourhood  and  some  miners  from  Mans- 
field, who  had  complained  of  being  prohibited  from  hearing 
him  preach,  that  they  might  lawfully  form  a  league  to  secure 
the  liberty  of  hearing  the  Gospel. 

It  was  resolved  to  banish  him  from  the  electoral  dominions ; 
but,  anticipating  his  sentence,  he  effected  his  escape  by  night  to 
Mulhausen,  in  which  town,  by  the  influence  of  the  populace, 
against  the  will  of  the  Senate,  he  was  appointed  preacher. 
Luther  immediately  addressed  a  warning  letter  to  the  citizens 
of  Mulhausen  : — "  Beware  of  false  prophets  who  come  to  you 
in  sheep's  clothing.  He  has  shown  in  many  places,  especially 
in  Zwickau  and  Alstadt,  what  kind  of  tree  he  must  be, 
yielding  no  other  fruit  than  murder,  tumult,  and  bloodshed. 
If  he  says  that  God  and  his  Spirit  have  sent  him  like  the 
Apostles,  let  him  show,  as  they  did,  signs  and  wonders,  or 
forbid  him  to  preach.  I  have  never  preached,  and  never  will 
preach,  without  an  urgent  call  from  men,  and  cannot  boast, 
as  they  do,  that  God  has  sent  me,  without  any  human  medium, 
by  a  voice  from  heaven.  But,  as  Jeremiah  says,  '  I  have  not 
sent  these  prophets,  yet  they  run.'  " 

Carlstadt,  moreover,  had  now  left  Jena,  and  had  become 
pastor  of  Orlamunde,  a  cure  in  connexion  with  Wittenberg 
All  Saints,  but  simply  on  the  appointment  of  the  people.  It 
appears  from  Luther's  correspondence,  that  the  disasters  which 
"  such  a  muddled  head"  as  Carlstadt,  "giddy  with  vanity  and 
an  itch  for  celebrity/'  would  be  sure  to  bring  on  the  reviving 
cause  of  the  Gospel,  were  never  absent  from  his  mind.     At 


48  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  Orlamunde  the  images  had  been  removed,  and  the  doctrine 
inculcated  that  the  eucharistical  bread  and  wine  were  nothing 
but  simple  bread  and  wine  ;  or,  as  Luther  expresses  it,  "  the 
same  as  bread  and  wine  bought  in  the  market-place."  The 
method  adopted  in  the  first  instance  to  recal  the  recreant  Pro- 
fessor to  the  sphere  of  duty,  was  a  summons  from  the  Uni- 
versity that  he  would  return  to  his  proper  post  from  the  cure 
which  he  had  undertaken,  without  any  call,  with  an  intimation 
that  if  he  refused,  a  formal  complaint  would  be  lodged  with 
the  Elector.  Carlstadt  obeyed  the  summons,  so  far  at  least  as 
one  Sabbath  in  the  month  of  May  to  enter  Wittenberg ;  and 
in  a  letter  of  the  21st  May  to  the  Elector,  Luther  says, 
"  I  trust  matters  at  Orlamunde  will  be  well  attended  to,  since 
Dr.  Carlstadt  has  surrendered  the  cure."  This,  however,  was 
but  for  a  time  :  the  flock  at  Orlamunde  regretted  the  Pro- 
fessor, and  he  soon  returned  to  them.  And  then  the  citizens 
of  Orlamunde  addressed  the  Elector  and  the  Chapter  of  All 
Saints  Cathedral,  maintaining  their  right  to  appoint  their  own 
minister;  to  which  Frederic  replied  by  ordering  Carlstadt 
back  to  Wittenberg  to  discharge  his  proper  duties ;  but  this 
mandate  was  not  obeyed.  With  the  exception  of  a  visit  to 
Magdeburg  in  July,  already  alluded  to,  Luther  had  remained 
stationary,  throughout  the  year,  at  Wittenberg,  engrossed 
with  his  writings  and  ministerial  functions  ;  but  the  urgency 
of  the  case  now  drew  him  by  the  Elector's  request  to  the 
district  where  Carlstadt  continued  his  fanatical  teaching. 
On  the  14th  August  he  was  at  Weimar,  whence  he  de- 
spatched the  warning  letter  to  the  inhabitants  of  Mul- 
hausen  already  spoken  of.  On  the  21st  he  arrived  at  Jena, 
and  with  a  mind  more  fully  awake  than  ever  to  the  dangers 
of  fanaticism  he  wrote  to  the  Elector  and  Duke  John,  en- 
treating them  to  use  the  power  entrusted  them  by  God  to 
check  the  unruly  spirit  which,  stimulated  by  fanatical  preach- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  49 

ing,  was  already  displaying  itself  in  violent  acts,  as  they  1524. 
would  have  to  answer  before  God  and  the  world.  "  Satan, 
driven  out  for  a  year  or  two,  has  been  going  about  through 
dry  places  seeking  rest,  but  finding  none ;  but  now  he  has 
established  himself  in  your  dominions,  and  built  a  nest  at 
Alstadt,  and  thinks  to  fight  against  us  under  our  own  shelter 
and  protection.  Duke  George,  your  neighbour,  has  been  far 
too  good  and  soft  towards  him."  He  described  the  hatred  of 
the  fanatics  to  God's  Word,  against  which  they  exclaimed, 
"  Bible  !  Bubel  !  Babel !  "  and  exposed  their  seditious  and 
revolutionary  projects  of  personal  aggrandisement  based  on 
the  overthrow  of  the  existing  powers,  in  contradiction  to  the 
Saviour's  declaration,  "  My  kingdom  is  not  of  this  world." 
"  It  must  be  a  bad  spirit  which  can  show  its  fruit  only  by 
breaking  open  churches  and  cloisters,  and  burning  images  of 
saints,  which  creeps  into  a  corner  and  shuns  the  light  !  The 
Jews  had  an  express  command  from  God  to  break  down  the 
altars  and  symbols  of  idolatry ;  we  have  no  such  command : 
we  must  imitate  not  their  acts  but  their  faith.  Indeed,  if  it 
is  right  to  break  images,  it  is  right  to  kill  unbelievers,  as  the 
Jews  destroyed  the  Canaanites  and  Amorites.  But  what  use 
to  do  away  with  outward  defilements  if  the  unbelief  of  the 
heart  remains?  And  therefore  in  the  New  Testament  the 
true  method  of  driving  out  the  devil  is  revealed,  viz.,  the 
Word  of  God,  which  has  only  to  convert  the  heart,  and  the 
devil  must  fall,  and  all  his  practices  and  power.  Such  men 
cannot  be  Christians  who,  besides  the  Word,  would  use  the 
hand,  and  not,  on  the  contrary,  rather  endure  any  suffering, 
let  them  boast  as  they  may,  that  they  are  full  of  ten  Holy 
Ghosts."  On  Monday,  the  22nd,  he  preached  at  Jena,  at  an 
early  hour  in  the  morning,  against  insurrectionary  tumults 
and  iconoclastic  violence,  and  the  denial  of  the  real  presence 
in  the  Eucharist.     After  the  sermon  Luther  was  seated  at 

VOL.  II.  e 


50  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  dinner  with  the  pastor  of  Jena  and  several  city  functionaries, 
when  a  scene  is  related  to  have  occurred,  the  details  of  which 
are  only  found  in  the  records  of  the  party  adverse  to  Luther, 
and  which  Luther  has  himself  charged  with  gross  exaggera- 
tions and  inaccuracies. 

It  is  stated  that  as  Luther  sat  at  table,  a  paper  was  handed 
to  him  from  Carlstadt,  who,  having  been  present  at  the 
sermon,  in  which  his  doctrines  had  been  assailed,  was  now 
waiting  outside  the  door,  and  desirous  of  permission  to  enter. 
"  If,"  Luther  replied,  "  Dr.  Carlstadt  wishes  to  come  in,  let 
him  come ;  if  not,  I  have  no  desire  to  see  him."  The 
entrance  of  Carlstadt  occasioned  great  excitement,  and  the 
meal  was  suspended  in  the  eagerness  of  witnessing  the 
combat  which  was  expected  to  ensue.  Carlstadt  began  by 
saying,  "  You  attacked  me  to-day,  Doctor,  as  an  author  of 
sedition  and  assassination  :  the  charge  is  false."  "  I  did  not 
name  you,"  Luther  answered ;  "  but,  nevertheless,  if  the  cap 
fits  you  may  put  it  on."  "  I  am  able  to  show,"  Carlstadt  said, 
after  a  short  pause,  "  that  you  have  stated  contradictions  on 
the  subject  of  the  Eucharist,  and  that  since  the  Apostles' 
days  the  true  doctrine  of  that  Sacrament  has  never  been 
explained  so  fairly  by  any  one  as  by  myself."  "  Write,  then — 
prove  your  assertion."  "■  I  am  willing  to  hold  a  public  dis- 
putation with  you,  either  at  Wittenberg  or  at  Erfurth,  if  you 
will  grant  me  a  safe-conduct."  "  Never  fear  that !  "  "  You 
tie  my  hands  and  feet,  and  then  you  strike  me,"  Carlstadt 
exclaimed,  in  a  deep  voice,  with  unsuppressed  warmth. 
"  Write  against  me ;  but  what  you  do,  do  openly."  "  I  would 
willingly  do  so,  if  I  knew  you  to  be  in  earnest."  "  Here," 
said  Luther,  "  take  this  florin  to  convince  you  that  I  am  in 
earnest."  "  And  I  willingly  accept  the  gage,"  Carlstadt 
replied,  taking  the  gold  florin  which  Luther  offered  ;  and  then, 
turning  to  those  present,  and  holding  up  the  coin,  said,  "  You 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  51 

are  my  witnesses  that  this  is  my  pledge  and  authority  to  write  1524. 
against  Martin  Luther."  He  bent  the  florin,  and  put  it  into 
his  purse,  and  extended  his  hand  to  Luther,  who  replied  by 
pledging  him  in  some  wine.  They  drank  to  one  another. 
"  The  more  vigorously  you  assail  me/'  Luther  said,  "  the 
better  you  will  please  me."  "  It  shall  not  be  my  fault," 
Carlstadt  answered,  "  if  I  fail ;  "  and  with  these  words, 
shaking  his  hand  again,  Carlstadt  withdrew. 

A  letter  was  brought  Luther,  whilst  he  was  still  at  Jena, 
from  the  inhabitants  of  Orlamunde,  ' '  written  with  such  a  large 
mixture  of  fanatical  rudeness"  that  it  seemed  the  composition 
of  Carlstadt  himself.  It  stated  that  Luther  had  already,  at 
Wittenberg,  reproved  Carlstadt  to  his  face,  in  a  sermon,  for 
doing  away  with  images,  and  threatened  him  with  the  dis- 
pleasure of  the  Elector  :  "  yet  he  might  come  if  he  would  and 
hear  what  their  articles  of  faith  were,  and,  if  he  found  fault 
with  them,  teach  them  better."  In  company  with  Stein, 
preacher  to  the  Court  of  Weimar,  Luther  next  proceeded  to 
Kahla,  the  pastor  of  which  village  was  an  adherent  of  Carl- 
stadt; and,  on  ascending  the  pulpit  of  the  church,  Luther 
found  it  bestrewn  with  the  fragments  of  a  crucifix ;  but  re- 
straining his  resentment,  and  collecting  the  broken  pieces  into 
a  corner,  he  preached  on  the  necessity  of  faith  and  a  good  con- 
science, with  submission  to  "  the  powers  that  be."  From  Kahla 
he  advanced  to  Neustadt-on-the-Orla,  remained  there  the 
night,  and  preached  on  the  morrow,  St.  Bartholomew's  Day,  the 
24th  August,  and  then  set  out  for  Orlamunde.  Here  Luther 
assembled  the  town  council  and  the  citizens,  and  informed 
them  that  Carlstadt  was  not  their  pastor,  for  neither  the  Uni- 
versity nor  the  Elector  would  sanction  his  appointment ;  to 
which  they  replied,  that  it  was  enough  that  they  had  chosen 
him.  Presently  Carlstadt  himself  entered,  and,  walking  up 
to  Luther,  saluted  him  with,  "  Dear  Doctor,  if  you  please,  I 

e  2 


52  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  will  induct  you."  "  You  are  my  antagonist,"  Luther  an- 
swered, "  I  have  pledged  you  with  a  florin."  "  I  shall  ever 
be  your  antagonist/'  Carlstadt  rejoined,  "  as  long  as  you  are 
an  antagonist  to  God  and  his  Word."  Luther  then  insisted 
that  Carlstadt  should  quit  the  apartment,  as  he  could  not  re- 
cognise him  as  pastor  of  the  town,  or  transact  the  business 
about  which  he  was  come  at  the  Elector's  command,  in  his 
presence.  Carlstadt  refused  to  withdraw,  and  urged  that  "  it 
was  a  free  meeting,  and,  if  right  was  not  for,  but  against  him, 
why  should  his  presence  be  feared  ?  "  On  this  Luther,  turn- 
ing to  his  attendant,  ordered  him  to  put-to  the  horses  at  once, 
for  if  Dr.  Carlstadt  remained  he  should  depart.  Carlstadt 
then  withdrew.  Luther  then,  turning  to  the  assembly,  de- 
manded proof  from  Scripture  for  the  abolition  of  images. 
One  of  those  present  quoted  the  words  of  the  second  com- 
mandment. "That,"  Luther  answered,  "is  directed  against 
the  worship  of  images,  which  is  idolatry;  but  if,"  said  he, 
"  there  be  a  crucifix  in  my  room,  it  does  not  follow  that  I 
must  therefore  worship  it."  A  shoemaker  of  .the  company 
remarked,  "that  he  had  often  touched  his  hat  to  an  image 
standing  on  his  mantel-piece."  "  But  that,"  Luther  replied, 
"is  the  abuse  of  images.  Does  it  follow,  because  wine  and 
Avomen  are  abused,  that  wine  must  be  poured  down  the  gutter 
and  women  be  put  to  death?"  Another  member  of  the 
assembly  answered,  "  There  is  no  command  from  God  to 
destroy  wine  and  women."  The  argument  continued  until  it 
was  interrupted  by  a  scene  of  extreme  turbulence,  so  that 
Luther  declined  altogether  to  preach,  and,  reproaching  the 
townsmen  for  the  uncourteous  language  of  their  letter,  de- 
parted from  Orlamunde.  "I  was  right  glad,"  he  said,  "to 
get  away  without  being  forcibly  expelled  with  stones  and  dirt 
thrown  at  me.  As  it  was,  the  townspeople  cried  after  me, 
(  Go,  in  the  name  of  a  thousand  devils,  and  may  you  break 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  53 

your  neck  before  you  get  out  of  the  town."  With  reference  1524. 
both  to  the  conversation  at  Orlainunde,  and  the  scene  at  the 
dinner-table  in  Jena,  it  is  but  fair  to  add  Luther's  own  state- 
ment to  the  fact  already  mentioned,  that  the  accounts  are  en- 
tirely from  Carlstadt's  party.  "  Their  book  pleases  me  much/' 
he  wrote,  "  for  I  see  that  men  of  bad  faith  and  conscience 
fear  for  themselves,  and  have  therefore  been  beforehand  with 
their  publication,  and  are  eager  to  injure  my  reputation.  It 
contains  mingled  falsehoods  and  truths ;  but  as  it  is  anonymous 
it  must  be  conquered  by  patience,  and  must  be  swallowed, 
that  I  may  not  seem  to  seek  glory  or  revenge,  and,  leaving 
the  principal  matter,  to  write  about  myself.  The  day  will 
come  when  Christ  will  judge  my  cause."  "I  have  been 
amongst  Carlstadt's  Christians,"  he  told  his  friends,  "  and 
found  out  right  well  what  sort  of  seed  he  has  sown."  By  the 
1st  September  Luther  had  returned  to  Wittenberg. 

It  appears  from  a  letter  of  Luther,  that  Carlstadt  soon  after- 
wards made  some  communication  relative  to  a  public  disputa- 
tion at  Wittenberg,  to  which  no  objections  were  raised;  but 
he  must  have  done  so  only  to  gain  time,  or  at  least,  with  the 
fickleness  of  his  enthusiastic  character,  he  quickly  changed 
his  purpose.  On  the  17th  September  the  Elector  banished 
him  from  his  dominions.  The  congregation  at  Orlamunde 
was  gathered  to  the  sound  of  the  bell  to  hear  the  valedictory 
letters  addressed,  one  to  the  men  and  the  other  to  the  women, 
and  subscribed  "Andrew  Bodenstein,  expelled  unheard  and 
unrefuted  by  Martin  Luther."  Carlstadt  sought  refuge  first 
at  Strasburg,  and  there  published  some  books,  which  were 
greedily  caught  up  by  the  Anabaptists.  But  his  roving  fana- 
ticism could  not  long  endure  the  restraint  of  confinement  to 
one  spot.  Everywhere  he  vilified  Luther  as  the  author  of 
his  calamities,  who  was  thus  compelled  to  write  to  the  inha- 
bitants of  Strasburg  in  his  own  vindication.     "  If  an  ass  had 


54  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1524.  horns,"  he  said,  "  in  other  words,  were  I  Elector  of  Saxony, 
Carlstadt  should  not  be  expelled."  And  this  was  no  more 
than  he  always  professed  in  reference  to  the  duty  of  religious 
toleration;  for  even  the  teaching  of  Munzer  and  the  most 
infuriated  fanatics  he  advised  should  be  tolerated,  as  long  as 
it  did  not  trench  on  the  authority  of  the  magistrate.  But  he 
had  formed  the  worst  opinion  of  Carlstadt's  spiritual  condi- 
tion. "  He  is  given  over,"  he  told  Spalatin,  "  to  a  reprobate 
mind,  so  that  I  despair  of  him.  He  ever  has  been  alien  from 
the  glory  of  Christ,  and  perhaps  ever  will  be  so,  all  out  of  bis 
insane  lust  of  glory  and  praise.  I  fear  the  wretched  man  is 
possessed  by  more  than  one  devil :  may  God  have  mercy  upon 
his  sin,  whereby  he  is  sinning  unto  death."  Martin  Rhein- 
hard,  the  pastor  of  Jena,  was  also  expelled  from  his  cure  by 
the  Elector's  command;  and  the  same  sentence  was  pro- 
nounced on  the  pastor  of  Kahla ;  but  the  latter  made  a  public 
acknowledgment  of  his  errors,  and  obtained  the  benefit  of 
Luther's  intercession  with  the  Elector  in  his  behalf. 

It  was  just  about  this  period  that  the  differences  which 
were  springing  up  between  the  different  sections  of  the 
reforming  party — as,  for  instance,  between  Switzerland  and 
Saxony,  and  again  between  Saxony  and  Strasburg,  which 
town  rather  inclined  to  the  Zwinglian  view  of  the  Lord's 
Supper — began  to  show  themselves  more  prominently.  Eras- 
mus made  these  dissensions  an  argument  against  the  Re- 
formation ;  and  as  Carlstadt's  visit  to  Strasburg  had  aggra- 
vated the  tendency  to  disunion,  and  he  had  made  a  convert 
of  Otho  Brunsf'eld,  the  editor  of  the  works  of  Huss,  Luther 
addressed  an  epistle  to  the  Christians  of  Strasburg,  warning 
them  against  Carlstadt's  fanatical  tenets  on  the  Sacrament, 
images,  and  baptism,  and  expressly  denying  that  he  had  been 
the  instrument  in  his  expulsion  from  Saxony.  "  Had  Dr. 
Carlstadt,"  he  said,   "  or  any   one    else,   informed  me  five 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  55 

years  earlier  that  there  is  nothing  but  mere  bread  and  wine  1524. 
in  the  Sacrament,  he  would  have  done  me  a  great  service.  I 
have  undergone  many  hard  struggles,  and  would  fain  have 
forced  myself  into  believing  a  doctrine  whereby  I  could  have 
struck  a  mighty  blow  at  the  Papacy.  But  the  text  of  Scrip- 
ture is  too  potent  for  me ;  I  am  a  captive  to  it,  and  cannot 
get  away."  The  great  antidote,  he  said,  to  Carlstadt's  fanati- 
cism was,  for  each  one  to  ask  himself,  "  What  is  it  makes  a 
Christian  ?  "  But  when  a  meeting  or  council  of  the  churches 
which  had  embraced  the  Reformation  wras  proposed,  with  a 
view  to  the  settlement  of  the  questions  at  issue  between  them, 
especially  the  sacramental  controversy,  Luther  overruled  such 
a  proposal  by  a  decided  veto.  "  Even  in  the  Council  of  the 
Apostles,"  he  insisted,  "  works  and  traditions,  rather  than 
faith,  were  handled  ;  and  in  later  councils  faith  has  never 
been  treated  of  at  all ;  so  that  the  name  of  council  is  almost 
as  odious  to  me  as  that  of  free  will." 

Notwithstanding,  however,  the  discouragements  of  fanatical 
teaching  and  of  growing  dissension,  the  Reformation  was  daily 
advancing  in  its  career.  It  may  be  regarded  as  a  proof  of 
this,  that  on  the  9th  October,  the  twentieth  Sunday  after 
Trinity,  Luther  laid  aside  his  cowl  and  friar's  garb,  and 
appeared  in  a  preacher's  gown,  made  out  of  stuff  sent  him  as 
a  present  by  the  Elector,  with  the  message  that  "  it  might  be 
worked  up  into  any  fashion  he  pleased."  Moreover,  the 
abomination  of  "  the  Bethaven  of  All  Saints "  now  at  last 
fell.  In  July  three  canons  had  resigned  from  scruples  of 
conscience ;  and,  seizing  the  opportunity  thus  offered,  Luther 
had  requested  of  the  Elector  that  the  salaries  thus  relin- 
quished might  be  appropriated  to  the  establishment  of  pro- 
fessorships in  the  University.  Jonas  the  Provost  manfully 
fought  by  Luther's  side ;  but  the  Dean  and  two  of  the  canons 
remaining  rooted  in  their  superstitious  practices,  calumniated 


56  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

152 1.  Jonas  to  the  Elector,  and  his  name  in  consequence  being 
mentioned  in  a  letter  of  Spalatin  with  censure,  Luther  un- 
dertook the  defence  of  his  friend  with  great  warmth,  and 
severely  recriminated  on  the  avarice,  the  lukewarmness,  and 
the  worldly  policy  of  the  Saxon  Court.  In  November,  Beskau 
the  Dean  administered  the  Sacrament  to  a  sick  woman  in  one 
kind  only,  and  this  act  decided  Luther  to  enter  on  a  more 
determined  line  of  conduct.  He  accordingly  addressed  a 
letter  to  the  Chapter,  entreating  them  to  have  done  with  their 
"devilish  ways  and  idolatry,"  to  abandon  the  mass,  abolish 
vigils  and  everything  repugnant  to  the  Holy  Gospel,  and  so 
order  the  services  that  their  consciences  might  answer  to  God, 
and  their  name  to  the  world,  that  they  desired  to  fly  and 
shun  society  with  Satan.  "  Give  me  in  return  to  this  demand 
a  plain,  straightforward,  and  unequivocal  answer,  yea  or  nay, 
before  next  Sunday."  As  no  satisfactory  answer  was  re- 
turned, Luther  assailed  them  next  Sunday  from  the  pulpit. 
General  opinion  was  very  decided  against  them ;  the  windows 
of  the  dean's  house  were  broken  in  at  night  with  stones,  and 
the  rector  of  the  University,  with  ten  principal  men  of  the 
City  Council,  renounced  all  communion  with  them  until  they 
should  abolish  their  popish  usages.  The  Elector  was  now 
referred  to  by  the  Chapter,  but  he  spoke  with  much  doubt 
and  hesitation.  At  length,  on  the  24th  December,  the  dean 
and  the  canons  who  had  aided  his  resistance  finally  gave 
way,  and  from  the  Christmas  Day  following  the  popish  mass, 
the  vigils  and  superstitious  ceremonials  had  ceased  in  the 
Cathedral  of  All  Saints.  It  was  somewhat  about  the  same 
time  that  Luther  and  the  Prior — the  latter  from  an  intention 
of  entering  the  married  state — jointly  resigned  the  Augustine 
Convent,  with  all  appertaining  to  it,  to  the  Elector  of  Saxony 
as  the  last  heir,  and  sent  him  the  keys.  Luther  stated  in  his 
letter  of  resignation  that  he  should  no  longer  tenant  the  con- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  57 

vent  when  the  Prior  had  deserted  him,  but  should  find  some  1524. 
spot  where  God  would  nourish  him.  A  legal  instrument  of 
resignation  was  soon  afterwards  drawn ;  and  on  the  part  of 
the  Elector  it  was  proposed  that  some  provision  for  the  re- 
mainder of  his  life  should  be  legally  secured  to  the  Reformer ; 
but  he  himself  would  not  hear  of  the  insertion  of  any  such 
stipulation  in  the  document.  "  If,"  said  he,  "  I  have  not 
flesh  and  wine,  at  least  I  can  live  on  bread  and  water."  But 
until  God's  providence  had  called  him  to  some  other  dwelling, 
he  continued  to  reside  in  the  old  convent. 

These  changes  must  be  regarded  as  consummating  the 
establishment  of  the  Reformation  in  the  Saxon  Electorate. 
The  overthrow  of  '.'  the  Bethaven  of  All  Saints  "  was  like 
the  surrender  of  the  citadel  after  the  town  had  capitulated. 
And  as  if  to  mark  more  strikingly  that  a  new  era  had 
begun,  and  the  transition-stage  had  been  completely  passed, 
the  venerable  Staupitz,  the  link  between  Luther  and  the 
earlier  Reformers,  who  had  transmitted  to  the  monk  of 
Wittenberg  what  he  had  himself  received  from  John  Proles, 
breathed  his  last  on  the  28th  December.  He  had  served  to 
guide  Luther  to  the  entrance  of  his  high  vocation;  but,  as  if 
his  own  office  there  terminated,  had  halted  himself  at  the 
threshold.  His  last  days  were  spent  at  Salzburg,  where  he 
had  been  promoted  to  be  Abbot  of  St.  Peter's  Church  by  the 
Archbishop,  his  intimate  friend  and  a  determined  Papist. 
Like  Erasmus,  and  many  others,  he  had  pointed  with  his 
staff  for  many  years  in  his  earlier  life  to  the  promised  land, 
and  when  he  had  reached  its  borders  had  recoiled  from  setting 
foot  within  it. 

The  opening  of  the  year  1525  found  Luther  busily  employed  1525. 
upon  a  work  in  refutation  of  the  fanatical  and  sacramental 
doctrines  of  Carlstadt,  entitled  "  Against  the  Heavenly  Pro- 
phets."    Amongst  the  common  people  there  were  numerous 


58  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  converts  to  the  doctrinal  view  of  the  Lord's  Supper,  which  Carl- 
stadt  and  the  Swiss  Divines  had  taken ;  but,  independently  of 
one  another,  by  their  separate  study  of  the  Scriptures.  "  The 
Swiss,"  said  Luther,  *'  thought  the  same  before,  but  now  that 
they  have  found  an  authority,  they  state  their  opinion  more 
freely.  I  was  myself  strongly  tempted  to  that  error;  but 
whether  I  or  all  fall  away,  it  is  a  certainty  that  my  present 
position  is  true."  Already,  whilst  Luther  was  engaged  in  the 
composition  of  this  treatise,  the  popular  disturbances  had 
commenced,  and  were  by  him  at  once  set  down  to  the  account 
of  the  fanatical  teaching  :  "  Carlstadt  is  exciting  dire  tumults 
in  Upper  Germany."  At  this  critical  period  a  Polish  Jew,  a 
doctor  of  medicine,  was  apprehended  at  Wittenberg,  who  had 
come  thither  with  the  intention  of  poisoning  Luther,  for 
which  work  he  had  been  hired  at  the  sum  of  2000  gold  pieces. 
Luther  had  been  suffering  from  an  inflamed  ulcer  in  the  leg, 
and  it  was  anticipated  that  an  opportunity  would  thus  be 
afforded  to  the  Jewish  practitioner*  to  test  his  skill.  But 
private  affairs  did  not  occupy  much  of  the  Reformer's  atten- 
tion. His  eye  was  upon  Carlstadt,  who  was  reported  to  be 
at  Nordlingen ;  and  along  the  line  of  his  travels  it  was  but 
too  probable  that  fanatical  and  seditious  harangues  would  stir 
up  a  peasantry,  ripe  for  rebellion,  to  join  the  insurrection 
which  had  already  raised  its  head  in  many  places.  Portents 
of  the  coming  commotion  were  carefully  noted  and  timorously 
reported.  It  was  said,  with  the  credulity  of  superstition,  that 
at  Babenberg  a  boy  was  born  with  a  lion's  head;  and  that 
figures  of  the  cross  were  observed  to  flit  in  the  air  over  the 

*  It  appears,  from  Luther's  letter  of  February  11,  (De  Wette,  II. 
p.  626,)  that  more  than  one  Jew  was  apprehended  under  the  charge 
of  intending  to  poison  him :  but  he  refused  to  let  them  be  put  to  the 
torture  ;  and,  although  "  every  sign  agreed  with  the  information  he  had 
received,"  they  were  finally  dismissed. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  59 

towers  and  domes  of  Vienna.  With  his  unvarying  assiduity,  1525. 
Luther  laboured  at  his  reply  to  Carlstadt,  and  on  the  2nd 
February  wrote  to  Hausmann,  "  I  have  answered  Carlstadt' s 
Devil  in  two  books."  This  effected,  he  returned  with  vigour 
to  the  continuation  of  the  "  Postils,"  and  his  commentary  on 
the  book  of  Deuteronomy,  which  last  was  finished  in  April, 
and  dedicated  to  the  excellent  Bishop  of  Samland. 

The  mutterings  of  discontent  which  had  been  heard  in  the 
preceding  year  from  the  peasants  who  groaned  under  the 
rigid  and  avaricious  rule  of  bishops  and  prelates,  gathered 
louder  and  louder,  and  the  storm,  which  sundry  signs  of  more 
certain  indication  than  portents  had  prognosticated,  now  fell 
in  torrents  of  fury  and  blood.  Tn  Suabia,  and  all  along  the 
Lake  of  Constance,  at  Waldshut  and  at  Kempten,  the  revolt 
first  attained  to  a  formidable  height.  Thomas  Munzer  had 
travelled  through  Nuremberg  to  the  borders  of  Switzerland, 
and  sown  the  hearts  of  the  peasantry  with  his  fanatical  and 
seditious  doctrines.  At  the  same  time  the  banished  Duke 
of  Wurtemberg  collected  his  followers  to  attempt  the  recovery 
of  his  hereditary  dominions,  and  pushed  his  way  nearly  as  far 
as  Stuttgard;  and  although  his  plans  ultimately  failed  of 
success,  they  were  a  most  seasonable  diversion  for  concen- 
trating and  augmenting  the  bands  of  the  peasantry.  The 
leaders  of  the  people  put  forth  twelve  Articles,  comprising  the 
objects  for  the  attainment  of  which  they  had  risen  in  rebel- 
lion. These  were  the  free  toleration  of  the  evangelical 
preaching ;  the  right  to  appoint  their  own  pastors ;  the  doing 
away  with  all  small  tithes,  and  distribution  of  the  great  tithes 
amongst  the  clergy,  the  poor,  and  the  state ;  the  liberty  of 
the  chase,  of  fishing,  and  of  hewing  wood ;  compensation  for 
damage  inflicted  by  game ;  and  relief  from  oppressive  burdens. 
The  claims  of  a  religious  kind  were  placed  first,  for  the  demand 
for  deliverance  from  feudal  serfdom  was  founded  on  the  plea 


60  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  that  Christ  had  redeemed  all  alike,  noble  and  peasant,  by  his 
blood.  In  the  Black  Forest,  John  Muller,  of  Balgenbach, 
caused  the  twelve  articles  to  be  read  in  every  village  through 
which  he  passed  at  the  head  of  his  adherents,  and  subjected 
all  those  who  dissented  from  them  to  the  band  of  the  peasant 
confederation.  And  when  the  soldiers  of  the  Suabian  League, 
under  George  Truchsess,  having  disposed  of  the  forces  of  the 
Duke  of  Wurtemberg,  found  leisure  to  direct  their  march 
against  the  peasantry,  it  was  with  surprise  they  learnt  that 
the  organization  of  the  peasant  bands  was  sufficiently  com- 
plete to  render  their  coercion  a  difficult  and  doubtful  work. 

From  Suabia  the  insurrection  quickly  spread  to  Franconia, 
and  here  Carlstadt  was  present  among  the  insurgents.  He  had 
been  compelled  to  leave  Strasburg,  and  was  wandering  about 
without  any  settled  home,  sometimes  at  Carlstadt-on-the- 
Mayne,  the  seat  of  his  mother's  family,  whence  he  had  derived 
his  appellation,  and  then  at  Rothenburg-on-the-Tauber,  where 
the  guilds  and  the  patricians  were  at  war,  the  former  pressing  on 
a  vigorous  reform,  which  the  latter  resisted.  He  renewed  his 
proposal  for  a  public  disputation  with  Luther  at  Wittenberg, 
who  begged  of  the  Elector,  about  the  end  of  February,  to  grant 
Carlstadt  a  safe-  conduct  to  come  to  Wittenberg  for  that  pur- 
pose. He  at  the  same  time  wrote  to  Spalatin  on  the  subject; 
and,  subsequently,  his  letter  to  the  Elector  not  having  met 
with  any  reply,  he  complained  to  the  chaplain  of  the  slight 
shown  him  by  the  court.  On  the  20th  March  Luther  received 
intelligence  that  the  safe-conduct  would  not  be  granted,  and 
with  the  honesty  of  his  character  he  expressed  his  sense  of 
the  propriety  of  this  denial.  Tales,  much  to  the  disparage- 
ment of  Carlstadt,  had  gained  circulation  at  Wittenberg ;  in 
particular,  that  he  had  kept  in  his  house  a  monk  as  his  chap- 
lain, who,  in  his  dealings  with  the  common  people,  had  been 
employed  to  play  the  part  of  a  supposed  spirit,  and  by  mutter- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  61 

ings  from  some  concealed  spot,  had  revealed  mysteries  to  the  1525. 
amazement  of  the  auditory.  "  Oh !  the  wretched  misery  of 
man/'  Luther  exclaimed,  "  if  Christ  leaves  us.  I  divined  the 
truth  about  Carlstadt.  What  a  world  in  which  satanical  pos- 
sessions are  so  common  \"  Carlstadt,  however,  was  in  a  more 
congenial  locality  than  a  hall  for  disputation  at  Wittenberg. 
In  a  peasant  coat  and  hat  of  white  felt,  he  poured  forth  his 
eloquent  invectives  against  images  and  crucifixes  to  the  popu- 
lace of  Franconia,  with  a  wild  vehemence  which  might  be 
taken  either  for  inspiration  or  mental  derangement,  declaim- 
ing against  Luther,  and  recapitulating  the  wrongs  he  had 
undergone.  He  would  have  established  his  head-quarters  at 
Schweinfurt ;  but  the  Count  of  Henneburg  wrote  to  the 
Senate,  and  prohibited  his  admission  to  that  town.  It  must 
be  allowed  that  the  best  answer  to  Carlstadt's  furious  abuses 
of  Luther  is  the  sequel  of  his  own  story.  And  it  is  no  light 
proof  of  the  confidence  reposed  in  Luther  by  those  who  knew 
him  well,  that,  after  wearying  of  his  perambulations  and 
harangues  in  Franconia,  and  warned  by  tumult  and  bloodshed 
that  the  time  for  words  had  passed,  Carlstadt  fled  in  disguise  to 
Wittenberg,  and  took  refuge  in  the  Augustine  convent  with 
Luther  himself,  by  whom  his  place  of  concealment  was  not 
divulged.* 

In  Franconia  there  was  no  armed  body  like  the  soldiery  of 
the  Suabian  League  to  oppose  the  insurrection,  and  the 
peasantry  were  carrying  everything  before  them.  It  was 
here  that  doctrines  were  propagated  on  political  subjects  more 
levelling  and  radical  than  any  that  were  publicly  broached 
elsewhere.  Towards  the  end  of  April  the  flame  of  revolt 
extended   itself  to    Thurin°;ia.     Mulhausen   was    the    head- 


*  "  Fuit  homo  miser  apud  me  clanculo  aervatus — Tractavi  hominem 
quantum  potui  humaniter  atque  juvi." — De  Wette,  III.  p.  21. 


62  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  quarters  of  the  insurgency,  for  there  Munzer  had  succeeded 
in  gaining  over  the  Senate,  as  well  as  the  populace,  to  his 
fanatical  opinions;  but  on  all  sides,  at  Erfurth,  Eisenach, 
Salza,  Sangerhausen,  and  the  neighbouring  towns,  the  rioting 
and  pillage  were  commenced. 

Schemes  were  formed  for  the  reorganization  of  society, 
based  on  the  universal  equality  and  natural  brotherhood  of 
all  men ;  and  it  was  anticipated  that,  far  from  being  confined 
to  Germany,  these  "  enlightened  ideas"  would  penetrate  Italy 
and  France,  and  lead  to  the  regeneracy  of  human  nature  in 
all  parts  of  the  world.  Munzer,  who  had  returned  to  Mul- 
hausen  as  a  heaven-inspired  prophet,  was  civil  ruler  and 
generalissimo.  "  From  simple  Doctor,"  said  Luther,  "  he 
has  become  King  and  Emperor."  In  other  places  the  real 
tendency  of  his  religious  creed  was  beginning  to  evince 
itself  in  a  reactionary  spirit  of  abject  infidelity.  At  Antwerp 
there  were  those  who  maintained  that  the  only  Holy  Ghost 
is  human  intellect  and  natural  reason;  and  at  Nuremberg, 
some  citizens  were  put  in  prison  for  denying  the  truth  of  the 
Scriptures  and  the  doctrines  of  Christianity  altogether;  in 
short,  everything,  except  a  rationalistic  Deism. 

All  these  occurrences  proved  with  what  foresight  Luther 
had  warned  the  princes  and  nobles  of  the  impending  dangers, 
and  with  what  penetration  he  had  fathomed  the  depths  of  the 
fanatical  tenets.  The  reports  of  tumults  which  reached  him 
awoke  his  deepest  regrets,  and  roused  not  a  little  his  lively 
indignation.  On  the  3rd  April  he  wrote,  "  The  world  has 
hitherto  been  full  of  excarnate  spirits ;  now  it  is  full  of  incar- 
nate spirits  :   Satan  is  raging  against  his  stronger,  Christ." 

But  later  in  April  more  appalling  tidings  arrived.  The 
districts  bordering  on  Saxony,  and  the  territories  of  the 
Counts  of  Mansfeld,  were  in  open  revolt.  At  this  moment 
Luther  did  not  doubt  for  an  instant  the  course  which  it  was 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  63 

incumbent  upon  him  to  pursue.  On  Easter  Sunday,  April  16, 1525. 
he  preached  as  usual;  but,  after  returning  to  his  cell,  he 
dressed  himself  in  his  travelling  garb,  to  the  astonishment  of 
his  friends,  and  the  same  afternoon  started  for  the  territory  of 
the  Counts  of  Mansfeld,  taking  Melancthon  with  him.  He 
was  about  to  establish  a  school  at  Eisleben,  to  which  work  he 
had  been  invited  by  Count  Albert ;  but  this  alone  could  not  be 
the  cause  of  his  sudden  departure  on  the  afternoon  of  Easter 
Sunday.  In  reality,  he  was  resolved  to  be  present  amongst 
the  discontented  peasantry,  and  himself,  a  miner's  son,  to 
address  the  miners  of  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld's  dominions, 
on  the  sin  of  rebellion,  and  the  Christian  duty  of  civil 
obedience.  He  preached  at  Seeburg,  and  with  such  effect, 
that  his  exhortations  prevailed  on  the  miners  there  to  remain 
quiet.  Thence  he  proceeded  to  Eisleben,  Stollberg,  Nord- 
hausen,  Erfurth,  Weimar,  and  the  districts  infected  with 
Carlstadt's  doctrines,  Orlamunde,  Kahla  and  Jena,  disregard- 
ing all  personal  danger;  and  he  twice  nearly  lost  his  life, 
preaching  everywhere  the  obligation  of  submission  to  "  the 
powers  that  be,"  and  generally  with  the  happiest  results. 
On  the  3rd  May  he  was  again  at  Weimar,  on  the  4th  at 
Seeburg,  whence  he  wrote  to  Ruhel  the  councillor  of  the 
Counts  of  Mansfeld,  by  whom  he  had  been  consulted  on  his 
masters'  account  as  to  the  proper  mode  of  dealing  with  the 
infuriated  peasantry.  "  The  peasants/'  he  wrote,  "  are  robbers 
and  murderers :  they  have  grasped  the  sword  in  wanton 
bloodthirstiness,  wishing  to  drive  out  princes  and  nobles, 
and  to  establish  a  new  order  of  things,  for  which  they 
have  no  command,  might,  right,  or  precept  from  God. 
Mildness  towards  them  is  therefore  most  unseasonable." 
But  before  this  advice  could  have  reached  Count  Albert,  he 
had  already,  with  sixty  horsemen,  dispersed  a  large  body  of 
peasant  insurgents  at  Osterhausen,  putting  two  hundred  of 


64  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

]525.  them  to  the  sword.  But  when  he  had  reached  this  point  in 
his  missionary  tour  Luther  was  recalled  to  Wittenberg  by  a 
messenger  suddenly  despatched  to  him  with  melancholy  tidings. 
The  communication  which  thus  abruptly  called  Luther  and 
Melancthon  home  was  the  alarming  illness  and  approaching 
end  of  Frederic  the  Wise  of  Saxony,  who  was  anxious  before 
leaving  the  world  to  receive  from  Luther's  own  lips  the  con- 
solations of  religion.  The  Reformer  returned  to  Wittenberg 
with  all  speed,  but  it  was  not  permitted  him  to  speak  with 
Frederic  again  on  earth ;  indeed,  the  messenger  had  scarcely 
summoned  Luther  to  the  death-bed  of  his  prince  before  death 
itself  had  rendered  the  summons  useless.  All,  however,  had 
been  peace  in  the  chamber  of  the  dying  Elector.  On  the  4th 
May  he  had  written  by  an  amanuensis  his  last  political  man- 
date, addressed  to  his  brother.  It  had  reference  to  the 
demands  of  the  peasantry,  and  directed  Duke  John  to  use  all 
forbearance  and  mildness  towards  them,  and  to  remit  the 
duties  on  wine  and  beer.  "  Be  not  afraid,"  he  added  ;  "our 
Lord  God  will  richly  and  graciously  compensate  us  in  other 
ways."  In  the  course  of  the  evening  Spalatin  entered  the 
apartment,  and  was  warmly  welcomed  by  his  old  master  with 
the  words,  "  It  is  right  that  you  should  come  to  see  a  sick 
man."  The  interview  lasted  till  eight  o'clock,  and  exhibited 
the  serenity  of  the  Elector's  mind  in  a  remarkable  manner, 
and  the  composure,  under  the  influence  of  Divine  grace,  with 
which  he  regarded  the  peculiar  trials  of  the  period.  His  low 
chair  was  rolled  to  the  table,  and  placing  his  hand  in  Spala- 
tin's  he  spoke  for  the  last  time  of  the  things  of  this  world,  of 
the  peasant  insurrection,  and  the  Reformation,  and  Martin 
Luther.  But  all  was  clear  and  easy  to  his  apprehension, 
1 '  for  the  providence  of  God  would  be  sure  to  bring  everything 
to  a  happy  issue  in  the  best  way."  Amongst  other  remarks 
he  repeated  an  observation  of  Luther's,  expressing  his  cordial 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEK.  65 

assent  to  it,  that  "  as  a  prince  must  be  guilty  of  a  great  deal  1525. 
of  wrong  unwittingly,  he  ought  to  be  extremely  diligent  to  do 
a  great  deal  of  good  wittingly."  On  the  morning  of  the  fol- 
lowing day  he  confessed  himself,  and  then  received  the  Lord's 
Supper  in  both  kinds  with  such  fervour  of  devotional  spirit, 
that  those  who  were  present  were  dissolved  in  tears.  After 
this  his  attendants  and  servants  were  called  into  the  room, 
and  he  addressed  them  in  the  following  words :  "  My  dear 
children,  I  entreat  you,  for  God's  sake,  if  I  have  done  any 
injury  to  any  of  you,  in  word  or  deed,  that  you  will  graciously 
forgive  me,  and  that  you  will  implore  others  for  God's  sake 
to  do  the  same."  After  bidding  them  all  farewell,  he  turned 
from  worldly  things  to  the  consideration  of  his  approach- 
ing dissolution,  and  took  into  his  hands  the  treatise  of 
Christian  Consolation,  which  having  been  requested  first  of 
Melancthon  and  then  of  Luther,  in  vain,  on  their  refusal,  had 
been  composed  for  his  use  by  Spalatin,  which  was  worn  by 
his  hands,  and  which  he  was  anxious  to  peruse  once  again. 
Spalatin,  however,  entered  the  room,  and  seeing  how  unequal 
he  was  to  the  self-imposed  task,  read  it  to  him.  The  business 
of  the  will  now  demanded  attention,  and  when  such  arrange- 
ments as  he  desired  had  been  effected,  he  seemed  to  grow 
suddenly  much  feebler,  saying,  with  a  sigh,  in  considerable 
pain  of  body,  "  I  can  now  do  no  more,"  and  very  shortly 
afterwards,  without  any  struggle,  he  peacefully  breathed  his 
last  about  two  o'clock  in  the  afternoon.  His  physician,  bend-  May  5. 
ing  over  him,  was  first  conscious  that  the  great  change  had 
taken  place,  and  exclaimed,  "  He  was  a  child  of  peace,  and  he 
has  died  in  peace." 

The  character  of  Frederic  is  best  displayed  by  events 
already  recorded.  His  liberality  to  the  poor,  which  was  so 
bountiful  that  he  once  observed  of  a  person  whose  character 
was  the  theme  of  conversation,  "  He  cannot  be  a  good  man, 

VOL.   II.  F 


66  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  for  he  is  not  kind  to  the  poor  folk" — and  his  fondness  for  chil- 
dren, whom  he  delighted  to  gratify  with  the  present  of  play- 
things, showed  his  amiable  disposition  as  much  as  the  affec- 
tion with  which  his  subjects  regarded  him  proved  his  public 
worth.  The  Reformation  of  Luther  had  produced  a  gradual 
but  a  decided  change  in  all  his  religious  views.  This,  as 
Seckendorf  remarks,  was  particularly  observable  in  his  treat- 
ment of  his  two  illegitimate  sons,  and  in  the  moral  strictness 
of  the  latter  part  of  his  life.  The  zealous  Papist  who  went 
on  a  pilgrimage  to  the  Holy  Land,  and  sent  far  and  wide 
to  gather  relics  for  his  cathedral  church,  latterly  became 
a  constant  student  of  the  Scriptures,  and  was  accustomed  to 
say  that  "  the  Word  of  God  ought  to  be  pure  as  an  eye."* 
No  one  had  laboured  more  assiduously  to  establish  consti- 
tutional government  in  Germany,  but  this  day-dream  of 
his  life  had  turned  out  a  failure :  his  own  schemes,  how- 
ever, had  not  been  more  signally  disappointed  than  the 
purposes  of  God  had  been  eminently  fulfilled  in  him.  His 
character  peculiarly  adapted  him  to  be  the  nursing  father  of 
the  Reformation ;  and  although  his  advances  in  the  evangelical 
faith  were  made  with  the  caution  and  prudence  of  his  charac- 
ter, his  summoning  Luther  to  his  death-bed,  and  his  last  act 
of  receiving  the  communion  in  both  kinds,  cannot  leave  a 
doubt  as  to  the  religious  principles  in  which  he  died.  "  Oh, 
bitter  death  !  "  Luther  exclaimed,  on  receiving  the  mournful 
intelligence,  "  not  to  the  dying,  but  to  those  who  are  left 
behind ; "  and  he  addressed  consolatory  letters,  both  to  the 
new  Elector  and  his  son  John  Frederic,  to  remind  them  that 
"  affliction  is  the  school  wherein  God  trains  his  children,  that 

*  On  the  margin  of  Frederic  of  Saxony's  Bible  was  written  with  his 
own  hand — "  Verbura  Dei  manet  in  aeternum  " — The  word  of  the  Lord 
abidethfor  ever ;  which  his  successors  took  as  their  motto,  and  bore  on 
their  banners. — See  Juncker's  "Luther,"  pp.  66-71. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  67 

their  faith  may  not  be  iu  tongue  or  in  ear,  but  in  the  ground  1525. 
of  the  heart.     The  departed  Elector  was  in  act,  as  in  name, 
a  lover  of  peace." 

On  the  9th  May  the  corpse  was  conveyed  from  Lochau  to 
All  Saints  Church,  Wittenberg.  A  funeral  service,  stripped 
of  every  superstitious  usage,  was  employed  on  the  occasion ; 
and  then  Melancthon,  standing  by  the  body,  delivered  the 
funeral  oration  in  Latin ;  after  which  Luther  from  the  pulpit 
addressed  the  immense  crowd  who  filled  every  part  of  the 
cathedral,  in  German,  taking  for  his  text  1  Thess.  iv.  13-18. 
The  next  day  the  same  service  was  performed  again,  and  the 
body  was  lowered  into  its  tomb  in  front  of  the  altar ;  the  whole 
concluded  with  another  sermon  from  Luther  on  the  same  text. 

Immediately  on  his  return  to  Wittenberg,  Luther  continued 
his  endeavours  to  still  the  popular  commotion,  using  his  pen 
as  energetically  as  he  had  previously  laboured  in  the  same  cause 
with  his  tongue.  He  had  before  published  "A  faithful  Admoni- 
tion to  all  Christians  to  beware  of  Sedition  and  Rebellion,"  to 
which  he  had  been  urged  by  an  appeal  made  directly  to  him 
from  the  peasantry  to  espouse  their  cause;  but  he  now  re- 
viewed the  entire  case,  as  between  the  nobles  and  the  peasants, 
in  a  book  divided  into  three  chapters,  and  entitled,  "  An  Ex- 
hortation to  Peace  on  the  Twelve  Articles  of  the  Peasants  of 
Suabia."  This,  however,  was  rather  the  subject  of  the  first 
chapter,  which  thus  gave  its  name  to  the  whole.  The  second 
chapter  was  employed  in  a  refutation  of  the  Twelve  Articles 
of  the  Peasants  ;  and  the  third  contained  an  admonition  to  the 
princes  and  the  peasants  of  their  respective  errors  and  rela- 
tive duties.  To  the  claim  of  the  people  to  appoint  their  own 
pastors,  he  objects  that  it  could  not  be  allowed  if  the  right  of 
patronage  is  vested  in  the  magistrates.  To  the  refusal  to  pay 
the  small  tithes,  he  answers  that  the  settlement  of  that  ques- 
tion is  no  business  of  the  peasants  but  of  the  nobles ;  and 

f  2 


68  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  against  the  argument  that  serfdom  is  contrary  to  Scripture, 
he  alleges  the  examples  of  Abraham  and  the  patriarchs,  and 
the  precept  of  Paul,  "  Servants,  be  obedient  unto  your  own 
masters."  In  the  impartial  spirit  of  a  mediator,  he  concludes 
his  address  by  frankly  reproving  the  princes  for  their  pro- 
hibition of  God's  Word,  and  the  heavy  burdens  imposed  on 
their  subjects,  the  peasants  for  their  rebelling  against  their 
masters.  To  either  party,  he  says,  the  contest  must  be  an 
awful  one ;  for  if  the  princes  would  defend  their  intolerance 
and  cruelty,  they  are  acting  against  God  ;  and  in  drawing  the 
sword  at  all,  the  peasantry  are  guilty  of  a  crime  everywhere 
loudly  condemned  in  the  Scriptures. 

When  he  wrote  this  book,  Luther  had  not  received  accounts 
of  the  bloodthirsty  cruelty  in  which  the  peasantry  were  revelling 
in  Franconia,  where  one  deed  had  been  enacted  of  such  an 
atrocious  dye,  that  it  stands  out  in  individual  prominency 
amidst  the  records  of  the  horrors  even  of  this  period.  On 
Easter  Sunday,  the  16th  May,  a  band  of  peasants  advanced 
against  the  town  of  Weinsberg,  which  was  held  out  against 
them  by  the  Count  of  Helffenstein,  at  the  head  of  a  body  of 
seventy  knights.  The  garrison  were  confident  in  their  re- 
sources, but  the  populace,  who  in  most  towns  sided  with  the  pea- 
santry, opened  communications  with  the  insurgent  force,  and 
by  secret  means  admitted  them  into  the  town.  The  Count  of 
Helffenstein  was  seized  by  the  rebels,  and  a  line  of  men  being 
drawn  up  with  lances  extended,  he  was  thrust,  to  the  sound  of 
music  and  shouts  of  exultation,  on  the  spear-points,  and 
thus  inhumanly  put  to  death.  His  wife,  with  her  little 
son  in  her  arms,  sued  upon  her  knees,  with  all  the  violence 
of  female  grief,  that  her  husband's  life  might  be  spared,  but 
her  entreaties  only  aggravated  the  rage  of  the  rabble. 

The  recital  of  this  tale  of  horrors  turned  all  the  milk  in 
Luther's  nature  to  gall,  and  he  forthwith  published  another 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  69 

book,  written  in  a  very  different  temper  from  the  preceding,  1525, 
and  entitled,  "Against  the  plundering,  rioting,  and  murdering 
Peasants,  who,  under  pretence  of  the  Holy  Gospel,  rebel 
against  their  Superiors."  It  combated  on  scriptural  grounds 
the  notion  advanced  by  the  peasants  that  "  goods  are  common," 
and  branded  with  just  reproaches  the  iniquity  of  veiling  the 
most  abominable  crimes  under  a  pretended  regard  for  God's 
Word  and  the  love  of  the  Gospel.  "  The  peasants  had  broken 
their  oaths  to  their  lords ;  they  had  robbed,  burnt,  and  de- 
stroyed castles  and  monasteries ;  for  these  and  other  inhuman 
atrocities  they  were  to  be  struck  down  without  compassion 
by  all  true  men,  as  though  they  were  mad  dogs ;  and  such 
only  were  to  be  spared  as  had  been  ensnared  into  guilt  by  the 
craft  of  demagogues."  The  impetuosity  of  the  Reformer's 
nature,  hurried  on  by  detestation  of  cruelty,  appeared  in 
every  line  of  this  treatise ;  its  severity  gave  umbrage  to  many 
of  his  friends ;  so  much  so,  that  Luther  felt  himself  called 
upon  to  defend  its  language,  which  he  did  in  an  apology  to 
Caspar  Muller.  "  Those/'  he  said,  "  who  refrained  from 
plain  speaking,  or  palliated  the  enormities  of  the  peasantry, 
were  their  partners  in  iniquity."  And  he  wrote  to  Amsdorf 
that  "he  had  rather  all  the  peasants  should  be  slain,  because 
they  had  grasped  the  sword  without  authority  from  God,  than 
the  princes  and  magistrates,  who,  guilty  as  they  were,  yet 
bore  the  sword  of  God." 

Happy  was  it  for  Germany  that,  at  this  crisis,  it  possessed 
amongst  its  princes  one  who  brought  into  the  field  the  same 
determination,  and  wielded  his  sword  with  the  same  ardour, 
with  which  Luther  fulminated  his  addresses  from  his  celL 
The  new  convert  to  the  Gospel,  Philip  of  Hesse,  who  had 
been  the  chief  instrument  in  the  overthrow  of  Sickingen,  had 
now  united  his  forces  to  those  of  the  Elector  John,  Duke 
George  of  Saxony,  and  Henry  of  Brunswick.     On  the  15th 


70  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  May  they  came  upon  the  rebel  camp  at  Frankenhausen, 
where  Munzer  presided  in  person.  A  kind  of  barricade  had 
been  formed  round  the  encampment,  with  waggons  and  such 
incumbrances  as  were  likely  to  prove  an  obstacle  to  an  attack. 
The  princes  sent  to  the  peasants  to  demand  their  surrender, 
and  on  that  condition  promised  them  mercy ;  but  Munzer  had 
sufficient  influence  to  have  the  herald  who  brought  this  over- 
ture put  to  death.  He  taught  them  to  expect  a  miraculous 
deliverance,  and  pointing  to  a  circle  round  the  sun,  which 
resembled  the  device  borne  on  their  banners,  declared  it  was 
God's  standard  lifted  up  in  heaven  for  their  rescue.  As 
for  the  cannons  which  the  princes  had  arranged  against 
the  position,  he  averred  that  he  would  catch  the  balls  in  his 
hands.  He  exhorted  the  multitude  to  await  the  shock  of 
their  opponents  unterrified,  with  the  singing  of  hymns,  whilst 
"the  sword  of  the  Lord  and  of  Gideon"  fought  for  them. 
But  on  the  very  first  onset  the  people  fled  on  all  sides  in  the 
utmost  hurry  and  confusion;  and  amongst  the  foremost 
Munzer  himself,  who  took  refuge,  it  was  commonly  reported, 
to  mark  more  pointedly  the  Divine  retribution,  in  a  convent, 
but  really  in  a  private  dwelling-house,  whence  he  was  dragged 
out  by  the  pertinacious  search  of  his  pursuers.  The  carnage 
was  terrible;  all  within  reach  of  their  weapons  were  cut  down  by 
the  soldiers.  Munzer  himself  was  committed  to  the  custody  of 
Duke  George  and  Ernest  of  Mansfeld — the  latter  of  a  different 
family  from  Luther's  friends,  and  a  Papist — who  subjected  him 
to  an  examination,  but  not  of  so  rigid  and  strict  a  kind  as  Luther 
could  have  wished,  in  his  anxiety  to  free  the  Reformation  from 
the  least  imputation  of  connexion  with  the  seditious  spirit  of 
Munzer  and  his  partisans.  Munzer  and  an  ex-monk  Pfeiffer, 
who  had  acted  as  his  second  in  command,  were  both  executed. 
Pfeiffer  remained  to  the  last  firm  in  his  denial  of  Popish 
doctrine ;  but  Munzer  exhibited  a  mingled  picture  of  brutality 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  71 

and   cowardice  in  his  last    moments.     He   laughed    at   the  1525. 

bloodshed  which  he  had  caused;    "the  peasants,"   he  said, 

"  would  have  it  so  :"  he  received  the  Sacrament  in  one  kind, 

and  declared  that  he  died  in   the   Catholic  faith.     In  this 

massacre  rather  than  encounter,  about  5000  peasants  were 

slain,    and    ten    days    later    Mulhausen    surrendered   to   the  May  25. 

princes. 

Philip  of  Hesse  was  now  in  a  condition  to  move  his  forces 
into  Franconia,  whither  George  Truchsess  also,  who  had 
partly  subdued,  and  partly  come  to  terms  with  the  rebels 
in  Suabia,  had  pushed  on  the  troops  of  the  Suabian  League. 
With  united  forces  they  came  to  the  relief  of  the  Castle  of 
Wurzburg,  which  had  still  been  able  to  keep  the  insurgents 
at  bay,  after  they  had  forced  almost  every  other  strongly 
fortified  place  in  the  Duchy  of  Wurtemberg  and  Franconia 
to  a  capitulation.  Their  combined  forces  compelled  every 
stronghold  along  their  line  of  march  to  surrender:  they 
fell  in  with  a  band  of  peasants  on  the  Miihlberg,  who 
had  barricaded  their  post  with  waggons,  and  put  them 
to  the  rout  with  great  slaughter;  they  next  conquered  an 
insurgent  troop  who  had  moved  from  their  position  near 
Wurzburg  under  a  false  report  of  victory ;  and  on  the  7th 
June  the  town  of  Wurzburg  was  in  their  hands.  The  re- 
maining insurgency  was  easily  put  down,  now  that  its  chief 
seats  had  been  captured,  and  its  best  and  largest  bands  routed 
or  slain;  and  before  the  beginning  of  July,  the  veteran 
George  Frundsberg  having  hastened  from  Italy,  and  added 
his  counsel  to  the  arms  of  Truchsess,  the  outlying  districts 
had  for  the  most  part  been  tamed  into  submission,  or  pacified. 

On  both  sides  the  enormities  of  this  war  were  frightful. 
In  Franconia  alone  300  castles  and  monasteries  were  burnt 
to  the  ground;  and  it  was  computed  that,  in  all,  as  many 
as  100,000  peasants  perished.     The  guilt  of  the  insurrection 


72  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  was  of  course  laid  at  Luther's  door  by  the  Papists;  Luther 
himself  attributed  it  to  the  harshness  and  exorbitant  rapacity 
of  many  of  the  nobles,  especially  the  prelates,  and  to  their 
prohibition  of  the  Word  of  God.  That  the  Reformer's  mode 
of  reasoning  was  the  more  correct  is  demonstrated  by  the 
facts  that,  in  the  districts  under  ecclesiastical  rule,  where  the 
persecution  of  the  Lutherans  had  been  the  most  bitter,  as  in 
IVanconia,  for  instance,  where  the  ecclesiastical  possessions 
were  very  large,  and  in  Wurtemberg,  which  was  governed  by 
Austria,  the  seditious  spirit  was  the  most  violent  and  san- 
guinary; whilst  the  Saxon  Electorate,  although  surrounded 
in  all  its  borders  with  a  circle  of  fire,  escaped  unscathed. 
The  war  resulted  so  far  in  benefit  to  the  Reformation,  that 
many  of  the  prelates  came  forth  from  the  ordeal  with  their 
power  abridged,  and  their  resources  crippled.  In  many  cases, 
cities,  towns,  and  districts  had  effected  compacts  by  which 
greater  individual  freedom  was  secured ;  and  in  other  cases, 
even  Popish  nobles,  the  Dukes  of  Bavaria  for  example,  had 
taken  advantage  of  circumstances  to  extend  the  temporal 
authority  at  the  expense  of  the  ecclesiastical. 

At  first,  however,  it  seemed  as  if  the  eruption  of  the  popular 
volcano  had  swallowed  in  its  sanguinary  abyss  the  cause  of 
spiritual  freedom.  In  the  Popish  territories  the  persecution 
was  renewed  with  aggravated  fury ;  and  when  some  fell  vic- 
tims to  it,  who  had  not  in  any  way  been  implicated  in  sedi- 
tious enterprises,  ' '  Never  mind,"  it  was  said,  "  they  are 
Lutherans,  and  that  is  crime  enough."  In  "Wittenberg, 
indeed,  the  progress  of  the  Reformation  continued  unchecked, 
and  on  the  14th  May,  George  Rorarius,  whose  services  had 
been  considerable  in  the  translation  of  the  Bible,  was  set 
apart  to  the  ministry,  simply  by  the  imposition  of  the  hands 
of  the  Presbytery,  being  the  first  who  was  ordained  according  to 
the  model  prescribed  by  Luther  in  his  treatise  on  ordination. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  73 

But  against  the  Reformer  the  loudest  outcries  resounded  from  1525. 
all  sides,  on  account  of  his  last  vehement  declamation  against 
the  peasants,  "  My  book,"  he  wrote  to  a  friend,  "  has  greatly 
offended  the  rustic  faction,  but  if  it  did  not  offend  them,  it 
could  not  please  me.  How  they  betray,  what  it  was  they  sought 
for  in  the  Gospel !"  The  loss,  too,  of  Frederic  the  Wise  at  such 
a  conjuncture  was  a  change  in  the  political  world,  the  influence 
of  which  could  not  be  foreseen.  His  successor,  the  Elector 
John,  had  defeated  a  body  of  the  peasant  insurgents  on  the 
Bidberg,  near  Meiningen,  and  had  signalized  his  victory  by 
clemency,  in  obedience  to  the  dying  injunctions  of  his  brother. 
He  was  inferior  to  Frederic  in  abilities.  Overtures  were  at 
once  made  to  him,  and  also  to  the  Landgrave  of  Hesse,  by 
Duke  George,  who  was  resolved  to  try  his  utmost  to  convert 
the  zeal  they  had  shown  against  the  rebellion  into  a  channel 
hostile  to  all  religious  innovations.  And  he  certainly  had  a 
specious  ground  of  support  to  his  arguments.  "Look/'  he 
said,  "  at  the  carnage  of  the  battle-fields,  and  there  see  what 
Luther  has  done."  At  first,  the  two  princes  made  little  reply 
to  these  solicitations.  They  had  met  at  Wurzburg  on  the 
20th  March,  principally  to  concert  measures  against  the 
insurgents ;  but  their  conference  had  been  communicated  to 
Luther  and  the  Wittenberg  Doctors,  and  it  was  with  extreme 
joy  that  John  Frederic  related  to  Dolzig,  the  Marshal  of 
Saxony,  the  strong  words  which  had  fallen  from  the  Land- 
grave in  this  interview.  "I  had  rather  lose  body,  wealth, 
dominions  and  everything,  than  abandon  the  Word  of  God." 
Philip  of  Hesse,  prior  to  the  overthrow  of  the  peasants,  had 
even  laboured  to  bring  over  his  father-in-law,  George  of 
Saxony,  to  his  own  religious  views,  but  had  been  met  by  the 
answer,  "  We  shall  know  who  is  right  a  hundred  years  hence." 
The  marked  antipathy  which  had  been  displayed  in  the 
recent  peasant  insurrection  against  the  rule  of  the  ecclesiasti- 


74  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  cal  princes  was  inclining,  at  this  time,  the  Cardinal  Arch- 
bishop of  Mentz  to  follow  the  example  of  his  cousin,  Albert  of 
Prussia,  and  to  convert  his  archiepiscopal  into  a  temporal  elec- 
torate. This  design  was  communicated  to  Luther  by  Ruhel, 
the  councillor  of  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld  and  a  member  also 
of  the  Council  of  Albert ;  and,  seizing  at  once  the  opportunity 
thus  opened,  the  Reformer,  on  the  2nd  June,  wrote  a  letter 
to  the  Archbishop,  which  he  gave  him  the  liberty,  if  he 
pleased,  of  making  public,  earnestly  exhorting  him  to  the  step 
which  he  had  in  contemplation.  "  God  has  declared,"  he  wrote, 
"  '  It  is  not  good  that  the  man  should  be  alone ;  I  will  make  him 
an  help  meet  for  him  : '  when  on  the  last  day  we  shall  all  stand 
before  His  judgment  throne,  He  will  say  to  each  one  of  us, 
*  Where  is  thy  help  meet  ?  '  I  speak  of  an  ordinary  man,  who 
is  not  the  subject  of  a  miracle,  and  transformed  into  an 
angel."  And  the  next  day  Luther  wrote  also  to  Ruhel,  "  If 
my  marriage  should  prove  a  strengthening  to  his  Electoral 
Grace,  tell  him  that  I  am  ready  to  set  him  the  example,  for 
1  purpose,  before  quitting  this  world,  to  place  myself  in  the 
estate  of  matrimony,  according  to  God's  requirement."  But 
notwithstanding  Luther's  zeal  his  exhortations  had  no  effect 
upon  Albert  of  Mentz :  the  design  passed  from  his  mind  as 
the  popular  tumult  subsided,  and  the  next  fact  to  be  recorded 
of  him  will  be,  that  the  Popish  League  succeeded  in  drawing 
him  completely  into  its  net. 

Luther's  own  marriage,  from  an  early  date  in  the  spring, 
had  been  a  frequent  topic  of  jesting  in  his  correspondence, 
until  at  last  the  jest  grew  into  earnest.  Somewhile  before,  an 
exhortation  had  been  addressed  to  him  by  Argula  von  Staufen, 
the  christian  heroine  of  Ingoldstadt,  herself  a  married  woman, 
to  put  the  seal  by  his  own  example  to  his  doctrine  of  matri- 
mony; bat  he  had  replied  to  her  in  these  terms:  "1  am  a 
creature   in  the  hands  of  God,   whom  he  can  kill  or  make 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  75 

alive,  change  or  rechange,  every  hour  of  the  day ;  but  iu  my  1525. 
present  state  of  mind  I  shall  not  take  a  wife.  I  hope  rather 
that  God  will  not  suffer  me  to  live  much  longer/'  But  on 
the  25th  April  we  find  him  writing  to  Spalatin  in  a  somewhat 
different  strain.  "  Why  do  not  you  proceed  to  marriage  ?  I 
have  urged  so  many  to  the  step  that  I  am  almost  moved  to 
it  myself."  "It  is  singular,"  he  wrote  a  little  later,  con- 
tinuing his  observations  on  the  same  subject,  "  that  inditing 
so  much  on  matrimony,  and  being  forced  constantly  into 
female  society,  I  have  not  become  a  woman  myself,  or  at 
least  married  one.  And  yet,  with  feelings  so  much  averse 
as  mine  are  from  wedlock,  I  shall  perhaps  be  beforehand  with 
many  of  you  who  have  been  on  the  eve  of  marrying  a  long 
while.  I  say  this  to  urge  you  to  push  the  matter  beyond  a 
joke."  Indeed,  most  of  Luther's  intimate  friends  were  already 
married  men,  or  on  the  point  of  becoming  so.  He  had  him- 
self bestowed  the  nuptial  benediction  on  Wenceslaus  Link ; 
and  Spalatin  was  deferring  his  own  marriage  from  month  to 
month  only  out  of  regard  to  the  Elector  Frederic,  who,  feeling 
himself  gradually  sinking,  and  having  been  long  accustomed 
to  Spalatin,  could  not  bear  the  thought  of  a  new  secretary  in 
his  room.  But  soon  afterwards  the  Prior  himself  of  the 
Augustines  of  Wittenberg  entered  the  married  state,  and  left 
Luther  alone  in  the  desolate  convent.  Still  the  terms  on 
which  he  wrote  of  matrimony  were  in  a  tone  of  jesting.  "  I 
have  been  given  in  marriage  to  three  women  already;  but 
two  of  them  are  now  wedded  to  others,  and  the  third  I  only 
hold  by  the  left  arm."  This  third,  however,  was  not  Catherine 
von  Bora,  who  alone  remained  unmarried  of  the  nine  nuns 
who  had  escaped  from  Nimptsch ;  for  she  had  been  offered 
first  to  Baumgartner,  and,  on  impediments  occurring  to  pre- 
vent her  union  with  him,  to  Dr.  Glatz  of  Orlamunde.  If 
Luther  himself  felt  any  predilection  for  Kate  it  was  chiefly 


76  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  shown  by  his  more  frequently  making  her  the  subject  of  his 
jests  in  Wittenberg  society  than  others,  and  jokingly  calling 
her  "  his  Kate."  And  there  was  nothing  but  this  joking,  by 
no  means  an  unusual  thing  with  Luther,  to  prepare  the  public 
mind  for  the  information,  which,  writing  to  Ruhel  from  See- 
burg,  in  the  midst  of  the  peasant  riots,  he  abruptly  gave  him, 
"  I  shall  yet  take  my  Kate  to  wife  before  I  die." 

The  fact  is,  that  Kate  herself  all  on  a  sudden  adopted  a  step 
which  determined  Luther  as  suddenly  to  a  resolution  quite 
contrary  to  his  long  and  strongly  expressed  intentions.  Kate 
sought  an  interview  with  Amsdorf,  on  the  subject  of  her  own 
contemplated  marriage,  and  stated  that  t(  she  knew  Luther 
was  intent  on  uniting  her  to  Dr.  Glatz  of  Orlamunde,  but 
that  she  would  never  consent  to  marry  him ;  she  did  not  like 
him.  She  was  quite  ready  to  marry  Amsdorf  or  Luther  him- 
self, but  she  would  have  nothing  to  say  to  Dr.  Glatz."  These 
words  were  reported  to  Luther  by  Jerome  Schurf,  accom- 
panied by  the  entreaty  on  his  own  part,  and  that  of  his  other 
friends,  that  Luther  would  not  be  moved  by  the  message,  and 
would  by  no  means  think  of  marrying  at  such  a  time.  When, 
however,  he  next  saw  Kate,  he  reprimanded  her  for  the  lan- 
guage which  she  had  used.  She  hung  down  her  head  and 
blushed;  and  Luther,  under  the  influence  of  her  previous 
words,  or  present  looks,  consented  to  relieve  her  from  her 
embarrassment  and  stand  himself  in  the  place  of  Dr.  Glatz. 

As  for  the  objection  interposed  by  the  condition  of  the 
times  to  any  project  of  matrimony,  motives  of  such  a  kind, 
instead  of  dissuading,  forcibly  impelled  him,  from  the  peculiar 
qualities  of  his  own  character,  to  enter  the  marriage  bond 
with,  as  little  delay  as  possible.  His  conduct  in  the  matter  of 
the  peasant  insurrection  had  subjected  hitn  to  popular  obloquy. 
Most  persons  would  have  thought  it  very  unwise  to  afford 
fresh  ground  for  calumny.     The  malice  of  persecution  had 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  77 

gained  a  fresh  edge  from  the  taunts  against  the  Reformation  1525. 
which  the  peasant  riots  had  furnished.  Duke  George  threat- 
ened to  tear  him  away  from  the  midst  of  his  Wittenberg 
adherents,  and  wreak  his  just  vengeance  on  him,  as  he  had 
done  on  Munzer.  But  Duke  George,  the  malice  of  persecution, 
and  popular  obloquy,  were  to  Luther's  apprehension  so  many 
forms  of  Satan's  wrath.  He  was,  therefore,  according  to  his 
settled  habit  and  principles,  determined  to  spite  openly  and 
deliberately  the  arch  enemy.  In  his  own  language,  "  his 
marriage  would  make  all  the  angels  smile  and  all  the  devils 
weep."  And  as  he,  moreover,  believed  his  death  to  be  very 
near  at  hand,  he  felt  it  to  be  the  more  incumbent  on  him  to 
lose  no  time  in  obeying  the  behest  of  Scripture  and  leaving 
the  world  the  benefit  of  his  final  example. 

Accordingly,  on  the  11th  June,  Trinity  Sunday,"*  in  the 
evening,  Luther  was  united  in  marriage  to  Catherine  von 
Bora,  by  the  pastor  Bugenhagen,  in  the  house  of  Reichen- 
bach,  the  town  clerk,  who  had  been  constituted  Kate's  guar- 
dian, and  in  the  presence  of  two  witnesses,  Luke  Cranach  the 
painter,  and  Dr.  Apel  the  lawyer.  On  the  15th  June,  Luther 
says,  in  a  letter  to  Ruhel,  "  I  have  made  the  determination  to 
retain  nothing  of  my  papistical  life ;  and  thus  I  have  entered 
the  state  of  matrimony,  at  the  urgent  solicitation  of  my 
father."  The  purport  of  the  letter  was  to  invite  Ruhel  to  the 
marriage  feast,  which  was  intended  to  be  given  on  Tuesday 
the  27th  June,  and  at  which  the  old  couple  from  Mansfeld, 


*  Mathesius  and  Melancthon  both  agree  in  this  date.  Spalatin,  on 
the  contrary,  states  that  the  marriage  took  place  on  the  13th  June : 
and  on  the  espousal-ring,  preserved  at  Berlin,  a  ruby  set  in  gold,  it  is 
stated  that  the  latter  date  is  marked.  On  this  and  another  nuptial 
ring,  inscribed  with  D.  M.  L.  and  K.  V.  B.,  preserved  at  Helmstadt, 
gold  set  with  a  ruby  and  a  diamond,  and  so  made  as  to  become  two 
rings  at  pleasure,  see  Walch.  XXIV.  pp.  147,  148. 


78  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  John  and  Margaret  Luther,  were  to  be  present.  As  Ruhel 
was  wealthy,  it  was  intimated  that  any  present  he  might 
choose  to  bring  with  him  would  be  acceptable.  Wenceslaus 
Link  was  also  invited  to  the  wedding  entertainment,  but,  as 
he  was  poor  himself,  it  was  insisted  that  he  should  bring  no 
present.  Spalatin  was  to  come  himself,  and  send  some  veni- 
son. Amsdorf  also  was  to  be  one  of  the  wedding  guests.  It 
is  not  surprising  that  the  world  was  exceedingly  startled  by 
the  sudden  announcement  of  this  marriage.  The  Papists 
vociferated  the  charge  of  incest  against  the  Reformer.  "A 
monk  himself,  he  had  married  a  nun  !  from  such  a  union 
Antichrist  was  to  spring  !  "  "  How  many  Antichrists,"  Eras- 
mus exclaimed,  "  must  there  not  be  then  in  the  world 
already  !  "  But  not  only  was  the  world  up  in  arms :  many 
of  Luther's  chosen  friends,  amongst  them  Melancthon  him- 
self, deeply  regretted  the  period  which  had  been  selected  for 
the  marriage  of  the  greatest  of  the  Reformers.  The  world's 
censure  Luther  cared  not  for :  it  was,  on  the  contrary,  a 
proof  to  him  that  his  purpose  had  been  answered,  and  Satan, 
speaking  by  the  month  of  his  organs,  overflowed  with  wrath 
at  his  bold  defiance  of  his  power;  but  he  was  dejected  by 
Philip's  expressions  of  disapprobation.  But  Melancthon,  when 
he  observed  that  his  judgment  weighed  heavily  on  Luther's 
spirits,  with  the  true  kindness  of  a  friend  changed  his  tone, 
and,  as  the  step  was  now  irrevocable,  consoled  Luther  under 
the  reproaches  of  many  of  his  other  friends,  and  vindicated 
his  conduct  publicly  to  the  world.* 

*  Melancthon's  letter  to  Camerarius  is  the  best  commentary  on  the 
whole  transaction.  (See  Bret.  II.  p.  754.)  "It  may  seem  strange," 
he  says,  "that  Luther  should  marry  at  such  an  unpropitious  time, 
when  Germany  has  especial  need  of  his  great  and  noble  mind.  But  I 
think  the  case  was  as  follows.  You  are  aware  that  Luther  is  far  from 
being  one  of  (hose  who  hate  men  and  fly  their  society.     You  are  ac- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  79 

The  Augustine  convent  became  the  residence  of  the  newly-  1525. 
married  pair,  which  thus  itself  afforded  an  image  of  the 
blessings  of  the  Reformation  on  the  conditions  of  social  life  : 
the  cloisters,  which  a  few  years  before  had  sheltered  in  ease 
and  laziness  a  flourishing  society  of  monks,  echoed  ere  long 
to  the  voices  of  a  numerous  family  of  happy  children.  Luther 
was  himself  forty-two  years  of  age,  and  Catherine  twenty-six, 
at  the  period  of  their  union.  The  Reformer  did  not  pretend 
to  any  ardour  of  youthful  attachment.  "  I  am  not  on  fire 
with  love,"  he  said,  "  but  I  esteem  my  wife."  He  lived, 
however,  with  his  Kate  in  the  utmost  harmony,  and  in  the 
enjoyment  of  more  conjugal  bliss  than  falls  to  the  ordinary 
lot  of  married  existence.  He  smiled  at  being  told  that  he  had 
sunk  into  a  private  station,  and  from  a  hero  had  degraded 
himself  to  a  common-place  character.  "  It  is  enough  forme/' 
he  replied,  "  that  I  have  obeyed  God's  command."  The  calum- 
nies which  the  Papists  circulated,  without  stint  or  conscience, 
relative  both  to  Luther  and  to  Kate,  on  the  opportunity  thus 
offered  them,  they  lived  to  disprove  by  the  whole  tenour  of 
their  conduct  during  the  twenty  years  of  their  union.* 

The  first  application  which  Luther  preferred  to  the  new 
Elector  was  in  behalf  of  the  University  of  Wittenberg.  The 
League  of  Popish  princes  had  been  successful  in  recalling  from 
it,  by  the  manifesto  which  they  had  issued,  such  students  as 

quainted  with  his  daily  habits,  and  so  may  conjecture  the  rest.  It  is 
not  to  be  wondered  at  that  his  generous  and  great  soul  was  in  some 
way  softened." 

*  The  portraits  of  Kate  in  her  Life  by  Hoffmann,  in  Juncker  and 
elsewhere,  are  all  from  originals  by  Luke  Cranach,  and  agree  in  repre- 
senting her  with  a  round  full  face,  a  straight  pointed  nose,  and  large 
eyes.  Komanist  writers  generally  describe  her  as  very  beautiful,  and 
Protestant  as  rather  plain.  Erasmus  wrote,  "  Lutherus  duxit  uxorem 
puellam  mh*e  venustam,  ex  clara  familia  Born?e,  sed,  ut  narrant,  indo- 
tatam." 


80  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  had  repaired  to  it  from  their  own  dominions ;  the  professors 
were  very  badly  paid;  and  Melancthon  himself  was  con- 
tinually invited,  with  the  promise  of  a  larger  stipend,  to  other 
universities,  and  was  only  retained  in  his  post  by  his  own 
strong  sense  of  honour  and  duty.  Others  of  the  professors 
were  already  dispersing  in  various  quarters  on  labours  of 
evangelization  :  Caspar  Cruciger  had  undertaken  academi- 
cal duties  at  Magdeburg ;  Bugenhagen  had  been  invited  to 
Dantzic.  All  these  causes  of  anxiety  conspired  to  render 
Luther  full  of  apprehension  lest  his  university,  whence  the 
Gospel  had  anew  sounded  forth  to  the  world,  should  fall  to 
pieces  by  the  neglect  of  its  friends  and  the  envy  of  its  oppo- 
nents. He  therefore  prepared  a  plan  of  university  reform, 
which  he  submitted  to  the  new  Elector,  imploring  him  to 
undertake  in  earnest  the  support  and  furtherance  of  the  cause 
of  learning.  The  Zwickau  fanaticism,  and  the  fearful  peasant 
insurrection,  had  deepened  the  impression,  both  on  his  mind 
and  on  Melancthon' s,  of  the  prime  importance  and  necessity 
of  education  ;  and  he  warned  the  Elector  John  that  the  realm 
of  ideas  was  so  contiguous  to  that  of  politics,  that  princes 
would  be  wholly  unable  to  control  their  subjects  without  the 
influence  and  support  of  men  of  learning.  Some  alarm  was 
felt  lest  the  Elector  John  might  imitate  the  conduct  of  his 
brother  Frederic  in  his  declining  years,  and  suffer  the  Uni- 
versity of  Wittenberg  gradually  to  sink  into  decay;  and 
under  this  idea,  on  the  15th  September,  Luther  addressed  a 
most  urgent  appeal  to  him  in  behalf  of  the  University,  which 
immediately  met  with  a  response.  He  found,  indeed,  the 
Elector  John  ready  to  co-operate  with  him  to  the  fullest 
extent  in  his  educational  scheme,  and  blessed  God  for  a 
prince  as  exactly  fitted  to  foster  the  Reformation  in  its  more 
adult  age  as  Frederic  had  been  in  its  earlier  stages.  Two 
electoral  commissioners  were  despatched  to  Wittenberg  in 


THE    LIFE    OE    MARTIN    LUTHER.  81 

October,  to  arrange  the  matter  of  University  lectures,  settle  1525. 
the  salaries  of  the  professors,  and  institute  such  changes  as 
were  desirable  in  the  church  ritual.  The  number  of  canon- 
ries  that  were  found  to  be  filled  up  in  the  cathedral  was 
only  eighteen  out  of  eighty  in  all,  and  thus  there  was  a  large 
fund  at  hand  which  could  be  devoted  to  the  augmentation  of 
the  salaries  of  professors.  Luther,  indeed,  did  not  hesitate 
to  assert,  that  the  care  expended  on  the  University  at  this 
period  saved  it  from  total  ruin.  Since  the  end  of  March  a 
mass  service  arranged  by  Luther,  partly  in  German,  had 
been  used  in  the  parish  church ;  and  from  the  29th  October 
it  was  determined  that  the  mass  should  be  solemnised  in  All 
Saints  Cathedral  on  Sundays  in  German ;  on  week  days  the 
Latin  formula  was  to  be  still  adhered  to.  The  two  points  of 
university  reform  and  church  ceremonial  having  been  arranged, 
Luther  did  not  allow  the  Elector's  zeal  to  cool ;  but,  on  the  31st 
October,  addressed  a  letter  to  him,  praying  that  the  subject  of 
the  incomes  of  the  parochial  clergy,  who,  in  many  cases,  were 
in  the  extreme  of  poverty  from  the  cessation  of  offerings  and 
the  downfall  of  the  system  of  the  mass,  might  be  carefully 
considered,  and  a  visitation  of  the  whole  Saxon  Electorate  for 
this  and  other  ecclesiastical  objects  be  instituted.  These 
commissioners  were  to  traverse  the  whole  province,  examine 
into  the  conditions  and  characters  of  the  clergy,  obtain  in- 
formation on  the  ancient  and  present  revenues  of  the 
churches,  and  introduce  such  alterations  in  the  services  as 
the  Scriptures  demanded.  Somewhat  later  this  commission 
was  appointed,  and  entered  upon  its  most  important  functions. 
But,  indeed,  so  resolute  was  John  himself  in  the  cause  he  had 
espoused,  that  at  the  end  of  August,  before  quitting  Weimar, 
he  had  warned  the  clergy  to  "  teach  the  pure  Word  of  God 
only,  without  human  additions."  And  when  some  of  the  elder 
ecclesiastics  inquired,  "  May  we  not  say  mass  for  the  dead,  or 

VOL.  II.  G 


82  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  consecrate  water  ?  "  "  Everything,"  he  replied,  "  must  be 
conformed  to  the  Word  of  God."  The  civil  government  of 
John  was  less  strict  than  Frederic's  had  been,  and  the  courtiers 
took  advantage  of  his  mildness,  and,  in  revenge  for  the  over- 
throw of  the  monasteries,  which  bowed  the  pride  of  many 
noble  houses,  put  such  impediments  as  they  could  in  the  way 
of  the  progress  of  the  Reformation.  They  were  even  so  hos- 
tile to  Luther  personally,  that  he  made  it  an  excuse  to  Spa- 
latin  for  not  attending  his  marriage  in  December,  that  he 
dared  not  travel,  "  for  his  Kate  retained  him  with  her  tears." 
But,  notwithstanding  the  disposition  of  the  Court,  the  new 
Elector,  as  characterised  by  Luther,  was  "  a  most  excellent 
and  christian  prince."  "Frederic,"  the  Papists  said,  "did 
at  least  keep  the  monk  under  some  kind  of  check,  but  with 
John  he  has  everything  his  own  way." 

Luther  was  gratified  by  John's  acceding  to  his  request  on 
a  very  different  subject,  on  which  he  certainly  could  not  have 
obtained  the  same  favour  from  Frederic.  It  is  not  stated  at 
what  time  Carlstadt  had  quitted  the  safe  asylum  which  he 
had  found  with  Luther  during  the  riots  of  the  peasantry; 
but  after  he  had  done  so,  he  could  find  "  no  rest  for  the  sole 
of  his  foot,"  but  wandered  about  destitute  of  resources,  and 
uncertain  of  a  night's  lodging.  In  this  wretched  plight  he 
appealed  again  to  Luther,  and  besought  his  supplication  to 
the  Elector  in  his  favour,  that  he  might  be  permitted  to 
return  and  live  within  the  bounds  of  Saxony.  Luther  ob- 
tained from  John  all  that  Carlstadt  asked,  on  the  condition 
that  he  would  abstain  from  preaching  and  writing  for  the 
rest  of  his  life.  Carlstadt  accepted  the  condition,  and  took 
up  his  residence  first  at  Segren,  and  soon  afterwards  at  Kem- 
berg,  and  engaged  in  the  cultivation  of  land,  of  which 
Cochlseus  states  he  quickly  gave  convincing  proofs  of  his 
utter  ignorance.     He  abjured,  in  a  letter  addressed  to  the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  83 

Elector,  the  religious  opinions  imputed  to  him,  stating,  that  1525. 
what  he  had  advanced  relative  to  the  Lord's  Supper  had  been 
with  a  view  to  eliciting  information  not  to  declare  his  own 
belief,  and  he  solemnly  asseverated  that  he  was  quite  innocent 
of  having  ever  intended  to  incite  the  peasants  to  revolt.  This 
retractation  was  published  with  a  preface  from  Luther,  who 
was  now  fully  satisfied  of  Carlstadt's  innocence  on  his  solemn 
assurance,  and  requested  the  public  to  give  the  same  implicit 
credit  as  he  had  himself  given  to  his  protestations. 

But  Carlstadt's  sacramental  doctrines  were  rapidly  spread- 
ing, and  the  disunion  thus  caused  in  the  reforming  camp 
occasioned  Luther  a  great  deal  of  uneasiness.  The  Papists 
were  laying  hold  upon  such  disunion  as  an  argument  with 
the  wavering  and  weak-minded  against  the  Reformation. 
Zwingle  maintained  that,  whereas  three  bodies  were  spoken 
of  in  Scripture  as  appertaining  to  Christ — the  body  in  which 
he  suffered,  his  glorified  body,  and  his  mystical  body,  or  the 
Church — no  one  of  these  could  be  said  to  be  present  in  the 
Lord's  Supper.  He  considered  that  the  word  "is,"  in  the 
proposition,  "  this  is  my  body,"  was  synonymous,  with  "  this 
signifies  or  denotes  my  body."  GEcolampadius,  agreeing 
with  Zwingle  in  his  doctrine  of  the  presence  of  Christ  in  the 
Eucharist  being  only  spiritual,  explained  the  Saviour's  words 
by  finding  a  metaphor  in  the  word  body.  On  the  other  hand, 
Bugenhagen  had  defended  Luther's  view  of  the  corporeal  pre- 
sence ;  and  Dr.  Brentz,  or  some  other  theologian  of  distinc- 
tion, had  composed,  on  the  part  of  fourteen  preachers  of  Halle, 
the  "  Syngramma"  on  the  same  side,  which  was  translated 
into  German  by  Bugenhagen,  and  published  with  a  preface 
from  Luther  himself,  who  greatly  admired  it.  The  Strasburg 
theologians  occupied  a  middle  position,  and  endeavoured  to 
prevent  that  separation  in  the  reforming  party  which  was  so 
much  to  be  apprehended,  by  representing  the  divergency  as 

g  2 


84  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  trifling  and  unimportant.  But  Luther  himself  would  by  no 
means  consent  to  such  a  view  of  the  subject;  he  reprobated, 
moreover,  Zwingle's  ideas  on  original  sin,  and  declared  that, 
zealous  as  he  was  for  peace,  he  would  have  no  peace  that  was 
not  built  upon  truth,  and  that  "either  he  or  his  opponents 
must  be  the  ministers  of  Satan — there  could  be  no  middle 
ground." 

For  the  present,  however,  he  had  enough  upon  his  hands 
in  a  controversy  of  a  different  kind.  Erasmus  had  been  gra- 
dually separating  himself  more  and  more  from  the  Lutheran 
party,  and  had  had  some  angry  passages  about  his  treatment 
of  Hutten,  and  various  other  proofs  of  timidity,  which  his 
conduct  had  afforded,  with  Brunsfeld,  the  editor  of  the  works 
of  Huss,  Farel,  and  others  of  the  more  extreme  section  of  the 
Reformers.  This,  added  to  the  entreaties  of  many  crowned  heads 
that  he  would  use  his  pen  against  Luther,  had  induced  him 
to  compose  a  treatise  on  "  the  Freedom  of  the  Will,"  in  oppo- 
sition to  the  evangelical  tenet  on  the  subject,  which  had  been 
so  severely  censured  by  Duke  George,  and  by  the  Papist  party 
generally,  as  tending  to  confirm  men  in  sin,  and  which  natu- 
rally enough  grated  very  harshly  on  the  notions  of  a  ration- 
alistic divine  such  as  Erasmus.  The  controversy  was  much 
the  same  as  that  which  had  before  been  waged  between  Eck 
and  Carlstadt  in  Pleissenburg  Castle.  Erasmus'  work  had 
been  published  a  year  before,  and  a  month  after  its  publica- 
tion, Luther  had  only  read  three  or  four  pages  of  it.  Indeed, 
the  controversy  seemed  very  reluctantly  entered  into  on  both 
sides.  Erasmus  professed  that  he  had  never  written  anything 
so  much  against  his  free  will,  as  his  tract  on  Free  Will ;  and  as 
it  was  generally  supposed  the  movement  of  his  pen  had  been 
facilitated  by  presents  and  promises,  he  was  bantered  by  the 
Reformers  as  a  Balaam  hired  to  curse  Israel.  Luther,  on 
his  part,  regretted  to  have  to  reply  to  "  the  so  learned  work  of  so 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  85 

learned  a  man/'  and  declared,  "  I  abhor  the  very  name  of  free  1525. 
will."  He  now  spent  some  weeks,  and,  if  Erasmus'  statement 
may  be  credited,  his  honey-moon,  in  composing  his  counter 
treatise  on  "  the  Slavery  of  the  Will."  On  no  previous  com- 
position had  he  bestowed  so  much  pains,  and  to  none  had  he 
imparted  such  a  scholar-like  finish,  so  that  when  Erasmus 
perused  it,  he  pronounced  that  it  was  too  polished  for  Luther, 
and  must  have  been  the  joint  labour  of  the  Wittenberg  Pro- 
fessors. But  Luther's  own  word  is  quite  sufficient,  and  he  has 
declared  that  he  was  the  sole  author  of  it.*  He  started  with 
conceding  to  Erasmus  the  palm  in  eloquence  and  genius,  but 
his  arguments  he  regarded  as  contemptible.  They  had  been 
already,  he  said,  completely  crushed  by  Melancthon's  "  Com- 
mon Places,"  which  seemed  to  him  "  not  only  worthy  of 
immortality,  but  of  a  place  in  the  ecclesiastical  canon." 
Erasmus'  matter,  as  contrasted  with  his  diction,  he  compared 
to  peasepods  or  pieces  of  dung  served  up  in  vessels  of  gold 
and  silver.  For  himself,  he  acknowledged  he  was  rude  in 
speech :  he  did  not  much  value  words  :  he  had  spent  his  time 
in  the  study  of  things :  and  Erasmus'  treatise  was  so  void  of 
everything  that  could  recommend  it  on  this  score  to  one  who 
enjoyed  the  teaching  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  that  from  sheer 
weariness  of  the  subject  he  had  long  delayed  answering  it. 
"  Free  will  as  to  spiritual  things,"  he  continued,  "  is  a  mere 
lie,  and,  like  the  poor  woman  in  the  Gospel,  the  more  it  is 
patched  up  by  physicians,  the  worse  it  fares."  And  he  pro- 
ceeded to  intimate  his  conviction  that  Erasmus  was  really  a 

*  There  is,  however,  Melancthon's  statement,  also  to  the  same  effect. 
He  told  Erasmus  that  the  Scriptures  were  with  Luther ;  but  he  re- 
gretted the  bitterness  of  his  tone,  and  that  he  had  not  treated  the 
prince  of  letters  with  the  respect  due  to  him.  But  that,  on  the  other 
hand,  Erasmus  had  disfigured  Luther  very  unfairly :  and  the  Luther 
who  appeared  in  his  violent  writings  and  the  real  Luther  were  two 
different  persons. — See  Bret.  II.  pp.  794  and  946. 


86  THE    LTFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  sceptic,  who  regarded  Christianity  as  nothing  higher  than 
philosophy,  but  laughed  in  his  sleeve  at  all  religion,  like  Lucian 
or  Epicurus.  "  But  the  Holy  Ghost  is  no  sceptic ;  he  writes  on 
the  heart  a  great  mighty  certainty,  that  our  very  existence  is 
no  greater  certainty,  nor  that  two  and  three  make  five,  than 
that  God's  Word  is  eternal  truth."  But  Erasmus  wrote,  as  if 
the  subject  under  discussion  were  "  not  such  an  awful  thing 
as  the  souPs  salvation,  but  a  business  about  eight  or  ten 
guilders."  Luther  reiterated  with  copious  scriptural  proofs 
what  he  had  always  taught,  that  the  natural  depravity  of  every 
man  is  not  only  intense,  but  total ;  that  the  first  dawn  of  true 
light  in  the  soul  is  the  entrance  of  grace,  and  salvation  from 
first  to  last  is  of  God  alone.  If  any  spiritual  freedom  were 
allowed  to  the  will,  then  he  felt  that  justification  could  not  be 
entirely  of  Christ  through  faith  "the  gift  of  God."  And 
thus  he  regarded,  and  Melancthon  with  him,  this  question  on 
the  freedom  or  bondage  of  the  will  as  underlying  the  whole 
difference  between  the  Christianity  sanctioned  by  the  world, 
and  the  Christianity  revealed  in  the  Scriptures.  "  You  have 
struck  at  the  throat  of  the  beast,"  he  told  Erasmus.  But  the 
sarcasms  in  which  the  work  abounded  wounded  Erasmus' 
pride  severely ;  so  that,  finding  his  remarks  had  cut  deep, 
Luther  laboured  subsequently  to  mollify  the  irritation  by 
amicable  epistles. 

It  was  ever  his  lot  first  to  inflict  the  wound,  and  then  to  be 
busy  in  applying  the  balsam  to  heal  it.  With  a  pen  the  most 
bitter  and  caustic  of  any  writer  of  the  age,  his  heart  was 
without  a  tincture  of  malice  or  ill-will.  On  the  1st  Sep- 
tember, he  addressed  an  epistle  to  no  less  a  personage  than 
his  old  antagonist  Henry  VIII.  of  England,  in  a  strain  in 
which  honesty  and  humility  were  as  conspicuous  as  his  de- 
votedness  to  the  cause  of  Christ.  An  English  version  of  the 
New  Testament  was   printing  at  Cologne  by  the  toil  and 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  87 

endurance  of  Tyndale,  who,  it  is  averred  by  Foxe,  had  himself  1525. 
an  interview  with  Luther :  and  according  to  information 
received  from  Christian  II.  of  Denmark,  some  symptoms  of  a 
leaning  to  the  Reformation  had  appeared  on  the  part  of  "  Bluff 
King  Hal"  himself.  Without  delay  Luther  addressed  that 
monarch,  in  order  to  erase  from  his  mind  any  impressions  of 
a  less  propitious  kind  which  his  treatise  might  have  infixed 
and  left  rankling  with  its  sting.  He  had  published,  he  said, 
his  former  book  in  a  foolish  and  precipitate  spirit,  not  by  his 
own  spontaneous  inclination,  but  at  the  instigation  of  those 
who  were  ill-disposed  towards  his  Majesty  :  and  he  had  heard 
that  the  treatise  published  under  the  name  of  the  King  of 
England  was  really  the  production  of  the  Cardinal  of  York 
(Wolsey),  "  that  pest  of  the  realm."  He  therefore  must  im- 
plore his  Majesty  not  to  harbour  any  resentment  against  one 
like  himself,  the  scum  of  men,  and  a  worm  who  deserved  to 
be  treated  only  Avith  contempt.  The  cause  of  his  using  such 
an  abject  style  was  that  he  had  been  apprised  that  his  Majesty 
was  beginning  to  favour  the  Gospel.  This  was  indeed  a 
Gospel,  good  news  to  him.  He  threw  himself  at  his 
Majesty's  feet,  and  implored  him  by  the  love,  the  cross,  and 
the  glory  of  Christ,  according  to  the  prayer  of  Jesus,  to  for- 
give one  who  had  trespassed  against  him.  He  would  will- 
ingly offer  a  recantation,  and  publicly  do  honour  to  his 
Majesty  by  addressing  to  him  a  writing  upon  the  Gospel  if 
he  would  grant  him  leave,  whereby  fruit  would  accrue  to 
God's  glory.  The  doctrine  of  the  Gospel  was  faith  in  Jesus 
crucified  and  risen,  and  built  on  this  charity  towards  one's 
neighbour,  obedience  to  the  magistrates,  and  the  crucifixion 
and  mortification  of  the  body  of  sin.  He  trusted  that  Christ 
would  grant  his  Majesty  of  England  grace  to  be  enrolled 
amongst  the  mighty  princes  who  had  embraced  this  doctrine. 
The  reply  of  Henry  to  this  letter  ungraciously  harped  on  the 


88  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  Reformer's  recent  marriage.  "  By  heathen  law  the  vestal  he 
had  espoused  deserved  to  be  buried  alive,  and  Luther  himself  to 
be  beaten  to  death  with  clubs."  The  time  was  not  quite  ripe 
for  England  to  thrust  from  her  weary  feet  the  shackles  of 
Popery,  and  take  the  lead,  as  a  nation,  amongst  the  vindi- 
cators of  God's  Word.  "  I  was  deceived,"  Luther  said,  in 
defence  of  his  conduct  on  this  occasion,  "  by  Christian  II.  of 
Denmark,  who  made  me  so  brimful  of  hope  in  regard  to  the 
King  of  England,  that  by  writing  submissively  to  him  I 
should  advance  the  Gospel,  that  I  was  intoxicated  and  bewil- 
dered with  the  prospect."  If,  however,  his  rashness  is  blame- 
worthy, where,  at  least,  could  a  man  be  found  so  little  regard- 
ful of  his  own  reputation,  in  comparison  with  the  cause  for 
which  he  desired  to  ' '  spend  and  be  spent  ?  " 

Undaunted  by  repulse,  Luther  addressed  a  conciliatory 
letter  on  the  22nd  December  to  his  inveterate  foe  Duke 
George  of  Saxony.  It  can  hardly  need  to  be  stated  that 
there  was  never  any  retractation  or  compromise  of  doctrine  in 
the  epistles  of  this  nature  which  the  Reformer  was  in  the 
habit  of  writing.  So  far  was  this  from  being  the  case  in  the 
present  instance,  that  a  short  time  previously  he  had  been 
instrumental  in  accomplishing  the  release  of  nine  nuns 
from  a  convent  in  Duke  George's  territory.  The  brother 
of  Duke  George,  Duke  Henry,  had  already  been  won  to 
the  Reformation  :  but  all  the  efforts  of  his  son-in-law, 
Philip  of  Hesse,  to  convert  Duke  George  himself,  had  proved 
entirely  fruitless.  On  the  contrary,  he  raged  more  than  ever 
against  the  truth ;  he  was  the  instigator  of  the  Popish  alli- 
ance in  the  north  of  Germany ;  and  he  had  lately  beheaded 
two  Lutherans  at  Leipsic.  Perhaps  it  was  this  very  dogged- 
ness  of  purpose  which  inspired  Luther  with  some  hopes,  even 
yet,  of  his  conversion  :  or,  at  all  events,  disposed  him  to 
make  one  more  trial  whether  he  could  not  be  checked  in  his 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  89 

violent  career  by  a  gentle  admonition.  "  It  is  declared,"  he  J.525. 
wrote  to  him,  "  '  the  Lord  killeth  and  maketh  alive.'  God 
deals  first  sharply  and  harshly  with  men ;  then  like  a  friend 
and  father.  The  law  comes  first,  the  blessed  Gospel  follows. 
I  have  given  you  a  taste  of  hard  and  sharp  writings,  and  then 
presented  friendly  supplications.  And  I  am  resolved  once  more, 
probably  for  the  last  time,  submissively  and  gently  to  beseech 
you.  I  am  thinking  that  God  may  shortly  call  some  of  our 
masters  hence :  Duke  George  or  Luther,  either  must  alike 
go.  Let  me  admonish  you  on  the  topic  of  your  soul's  salva- 
tion. I  fall  with  my  heart  at  your  Grace's  feet,  and  in  all 
submission  entreat  you  to  cease  from  your  undertaking  of 
persecuting  my  doctrines.  Not  that  your  persecution  can  do 
me  much  harm :  I  can  only  lose  a  bag  of  worms  which  is 
hastening  to  the  grave  every  day.  The  persecution  has,  in 
fact,  benefited  my  cause ;  and  I  have  reason  to  thank  my 
foes.  And  were  I  not  concerned  for  your  soul,  I  should 
implore  you  to  go  on  persecuting  ever  more.  But  as  I 
know  my  doctrine  to  be  true,  I  am  constrained,  at  the  peril 
of  my  own  salvation,  to  care,  pray,  and  entreat  for  the  soul 
of  your  Grace.  Look  not  at  my  mean  person.  God  once 
spoke  by  an  ass.  I  pray  your  pardon  whereinsoever  I 
may  have  offended  you  by  word  or  writing ;  and  I  freely  for- 
give your  Grace  all  that  you  have  done  against  me.  I  have 
prayed  for  you  fervently,  and  would  not  be  compelled  to  pray 
against  your  Grace.  It  is  a  very  different  thing  to  contend 
with  Munzer  from  contending  with  Luther.  For  the 
prayers  of  me  and  mine  are  more  powerful  than  Satan  him- 
self, otherwise  i{  would  have  been  done  with  Luther  a  long 
while  ago.  I  would  have  your  Grace  to  answer  me  gra- 
ciously and  christianly,  more  with  living  act  than  with  dead 
letters."  Duke  George  returned  a  prompt  but  bitter  reply, 
and  accused  the  Reformer  of  having  opened  an  asylum   at 


90  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  Wittenberg  for  all  the  refugee  monks  and  nuns  of  Christen- 
dom. But  this  did  not  dishearten  Luther  :  his  conscience  was 
satisfied ;  and  he  said  of  both  Henry  VIII.  and  Duke  George, 
"  I  despise  their  god  Satan  and  themselves.  I  have  lost  my 
humility;  but  why  should  I  not  bear  with  Duke  George 
when  I  have  to  bear  with  my  own  Absaloms  ?  "  From  the 
bowlings  of  the  world  without,  he  turned  to  the  peace  of  his 
own  home.  His  Kate,  as  he  said,  was  "  either  feigning,  or 
preparing  really  to  fulfil,  the  denunciation  in  Genesis,  '  In 
sorrow  thou  shalt  bring  forth  children/"  He  frequently 
found  amusement  with  Wolfgang,  his  servant,  at  the  turning- 
lathe  :  and  was  anticipating  the  pleasures  of  his  garden  in 
the  spring.  To  Link  he  wrote  at  the  end  of  the  year,  "  I 
shall  laugh  at  Satan  and  his  members  :  send  me  some  seeds 
for  the  spring ;  I  shall  attend  to  my  garden,  that  is,  to  the 
blessings  of  my  Creator,  and  enjoy  them  in  his  praise." 

A  dispute  had  occurred  between  Duke  George  and  John  of 
Saxony,  which  was,  perhaps,  among  the  reasons  which  had 
prompted  Luther  to  address  the  former.  Schneeberg  was 
under  the  common  jurisdiction  of  both  cousins,  and  a  preacher 
there  being  accused  of  exciting  the  people  to  sedition,  had 
been  removed  at  the  desire  of  Duke  George.  Another 
preacher,  recommended  by  Luther,  was  installed  in  his  place, 
which  gave  the  greatest  offence  to  the  Duke,  and  a  corres- 
pondence passed  between  him  and  the  Elector  John,  in  which 
Duke  George  advised  that  Luther  should  be  dealt  with  in  the 
same  way  as  Munzer :  and  the  Elector,  after  deliberating  with 
Philip  of  Hesse,  replied  that  "  he  agreed  with  Luther  only  as 
far  as  the  Reformer  agreed  with  the  Word  of  God."  This 
was  answered  by  actual  threats  on  the  part  of  Duke  George. 
A  disagreement  had  also  taken  place  between  the  cousins  re- 
garding the  state  of  religion  in  the  district  of  Sonnewald, 
which  was  subject  partly  to  the  King  of  Bohemia  and  partly 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  91 

to    Duke    George,    where    Minkwitz,    a   counsellor    of    the  1525. 
Elector  of  Saxony,  had  established  the  Reformation. 

But  in  fact  George  of  Saxony  seemed  in  a  condition  to 
carry  his  threats  into  execution.  A  confederation  for  north- 
ern, similar  to  that  combined  at  Ratisbon  for  southern  Ger- 
many, had  been  formed  under  his  auspices  at  Dessau,  and  the 
Electors  of  Mentz  and  Brandenburg,  and  the  Duke  of 
Brunswick  had  conspired  to  take  up  arms,  if  necessary,  in 
defence  of  the  Papacy.  Afterwards  the  alliance  was  renewed 
at  Halle,  where  Duke  George  and  Henry  of  Brunswick  met 
in  consultation  at  the  residence  of  Albert  of  Mentz,  and  a 
memorial  was  framed  to  the  Emperor,  which  it  was  agreed 
the  Duke  of  Brunswick  should  in  person  convey  to  him  to 
implore  the  imperial  intervention  in  repressing  the  Lutheran 
"  damnable  doctrines  "  which  were  every  day  spreading.  It 
was  at  a  most  propitious  juncture  for  the  success  of  his  mis- 
sion that  Henry  of  Brunswick  arrived  at  Seville.  The  battle 
of  Pavia,  which  had  left  Francis  I.  a  prisoner  in  the  hands  of 
Charles,  had  been  fought  February  24,  1525 ;  and  a  treaty 
concluded  with  Francis,  January  14,  1526,  by  which  the 
French  monarch  promised  to  defray  half  the  cost  of  a  war 
either  against  the  Turks  or  against  the  heretics,  seemed  to 
leave  Charles  at  liberty  to  direct  his  attention  to  the  affairs  of 
Germany.  The  banks  of  the  Guadal quiver  were  resounding 
not  only  with  the  notes  of  triumph  celebrating  the  rapid 
successes  of  the  imperial  arms,  but  with  the  rejoicings  of  yet 
more  genial  festivities  preceding  the  union  of  the  Emperor  with 
Isabella,  sister  of  John  III.  of  Portugal.  At  such  a  season 
in  the  peculiar  position  of  political  affairs,  the  memorial  of 
the  Pi'inces  drew  from  Charles  such  assurances  of  sympathy 
as  might  content  the  most  ardent  Papist.  On  the  23rd 
March,  1526,  eleven  days  after  his  marriage,  Charles  V. 
addressed  letters  to  the  most  influential  Princes  and  States 


92  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1525.  who  still  adhered  to  Rome,  expressive  of  his  approbation  of 
their  constancy  :  and  he  also  notified,  through  the  Duke  of 
Brunswick,  to  all  the  princes  and  nobles  of  the  Papist  party, 
that  he  was  shortly  about  to  repair  to  Rome  to  concert  mea- 
sures with  the  Pope  for  the  suppression  of  heresy,  and  after 
that  should  himself  pass  on  to  Germany,  and  exert  his  utmost 
power,  in  person,  in  behalf  of  the  orthodox  faith,  and  mean- 
time if  the  Lutherans  by  guile,  force,  or  the  sedition  of  their 
subjects,  laboured  to  compel  them  to  join  in  their  impiety, 
they  were  to  unite  their  forces  and  stoutly  resist  them. 

On  the  other  hand,  the  princes  of  the  evangelical  party, 
alarmed  by  the  threats  of  their  opponents,  and  warned  by  other 
presages  of  danger,  had  formed  a  counter  compact  for  their 
common  safety,  and  the  maintenance  of  scriptural  truth. 
John  Frederic,  as  the  representative  of  his  father  the  Elector 
John,  and  Philip  of  Hesse,  who  ever  since  the  conference  at 
Creutzburg  had  found  their  friendship  becoming  more  and 
more  close,  held  a  consultation  on  the  7th  November,  in 
the  Castle  of  Friedewald,  in  the  Sullinger  Forest,  when  it  was 
determined  that  their  deputies  should  act  in  concert  at  the 
coming  Diet :  and  that  the  well-affected  princes  and  citizens 
should  be  invited  to  join  their  confederacy. 

The  Diet,  which  had  been  summoned  to  meet  at  Augsburg 
by  imperial  letters  dated  May  24,  but  not  received  in  Germany 
till  August  13,  was  at  last  opened  on  the  11th  December,  but 
the  only  ecclesiastical  prince  who  was  present  was  the  Elector 
of  Treves.  The  recent  peasant  war,  and  the  dread  of  feudal 
disturbances  in  the  unsettled  state  of  Germany,  the  absorption 
of  interest  in  the  formation  of  religious  leagues,  all  contributed 
to  make  the  members  stay  away,  and  to  render  the  session  of 
the  Diet  little  more  than  a  state  ceremonial.  On  the  last  day 
but  one  of  the  year,  the  Diet  was  adjourned  to  meet  at  Spires 
in  the  May  following,  when  it  was  stated  that  the  questions  of 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  93 

holy  faith,  justice  and  peace,  should  receive  a  full  discussion ;  1525. 
and  meanwhile,  the  rescripts  of  the  foregoing  Nuremberg  Diets 
were  re-enacted. 

It  was  foreseen  that  the  Diet  to  assemble  at  Spires  must  1526. 
have  an  important  influence  by  its  decision  on  the  future  of 
Germany,  and  probably  of  the  world,  in  regard  to  the  great 
religious  controversy,  which  their  enemies  wished  to  crush 
and  tear  from  the  hearts  of  men.  The  expected  presence  of 
the  Emperor  seemed  to  render  their  peril  more  imminent  and 
palpable  to  the  evangelical  party ;  and  his  known  inclination 
towards  the  side  of  the  Pope,  with  whom  he  was  in  alliance, 
inspired  the  Papist  princes  with  sanguine  expectations,  and 
drew  from  Duke  George  the  inconsiderate  boast  that  "  he 
might  be  Elector  of  Saxony  any  day  he  pleased."  Had  the 
military  enterprises  of  Charles  been  disastrous  instead  of  vic- 
torious, he  might  have  trembled  for  his  imperial  throne, 
instead  of  being  in  a  position  to  strike  terror  into  the 
Lutherans  :  but  the  march  of  events — particularly  if  the  crafty 
temperament  of  the  Emperor,  which  would  naturally  dis- 
pose him  to  continue  any  intestine  disagreement  that  might 
conduce  to  his  own  supremacy,  were  left  out  of  the  account — 
had  been  more  adverse  to  the  Reformation  than  could  have 
been  predicted  by  the  exactest  calculation  of  probabilities. 

In  the  intervening  time  the  preparations  of  the  Lutheran 
princes  for  the  coming  struggle  were  matured.  In  the  month 
of  February,  the  Elector  and  the  Landgrave  held  a  conference 
at  Gotha,  when  a  defensive  alliance  in  contemplation  of  their 
mutual  danger  was  agreed  upon  between  them,  which  was 
afterwards  ratified  at  Torgau.  They  turned  their  eyes  on 
every  side  to  find  confederates.  The  Landgrave  addressed 
himself  to  the  Electors  of  Treves  and  of  the  Palatinate,  his 
associates  in  the  war  with  Sickengen,  of  both  of  whom  some 
hopes  were  entertained,  more  especially  of  the  latter.     But 


94  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1526.  they  were  deaf  to  his  solicitations.  The  Elector  of  Treves 
had  accepted  a  pension  from  the  Emperor,  and  the  Elector 
Palatine,  whose  secret  wishes  drew  him  to  the  Gospel,  was 
too  weak  and  irresolute  to  risk  the  imperial  displeasure.  But, 
notwithstanding  this  disappointment,  the  union  of  the  evan- 
gelical princes  and  nobles,  who  in  politics  had  commonly  fol- 
lowed in  the  wake  of  Saxony,  was  concluded  at  Magdeburg 
on  the  12th  June.  The  Elector  John  of  Saxony  and  his 
son  John  Frederic,  Philip,  Ernest,  Otho,  and  Francis,  Dukes 
of  Luneburg,  Henry  Duke  of  Mecklenburg,  Wolfgang  Prince 
of  Anhalt,  and  Gebhard  and  Albert,  Counts  of  Mansfeld, 
reciprocally  engaged,  "  esteeming  the  Scriptures  the  greatest 
treasure  on  earth,  to  preserve  to  their  people  the  Word  of 
God,  by  aid  of  their  substance,  their  lives,  the  resources  of 
their  states,  and  the  arms  of  their  subjects,  not  trusting  in 
their  armies  but  in  the  Almighty  arm  of  the  Lord."  Two 
days  afterwards  the  city  of  Magdeburg  joined  the  evangelical 
alliance  by  an  interchange  of  diplomas :  and  by  a  separate 
treaty,  dated  from  Konigsberg  the  29th  September,  Albert, 
the  Duke  of  Prussia,  entered  into  the  same  solemn  covenant. 
There  was  one,  however,  who  kept  still  unfurled  the  ensign 
of  peace.  "  See,"  Luther  wrote  to  Frederic  Myconius, 
about  the  beginning  of  April,  "  that  the  people  strenuously 
fight  with  faith  and  prayer  to  the  Lord,  that,  overcome  by  the 
Spirit,  they  may  be  compelled  to  observe  peace  in  the  flesh. 
It  is  of  the  utmost  moment  to  pray,  for  Satan  is  meditating 
his  wiles.  We  are  in  the  midst  of  swords  and  the  fury  of 
Satan."  About  the  same  time  he  wrote  to  Spalatin — "  You 
cannot  credit  what  horrors  Satan  is  plotting  through  the 
agency  of  Duke  George  and  the  bishops.  Unless  God  pre- 
vent, the  slaughter  of  the  peasants  will  be  but  a  prelude  to 
the  ruin  of  Germany.  I  earnestly  pray  you  to  beseech  with 
all  your  might  the  Father  of  mercies  to  stay  these  plots,  and 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  95 

break  the  fury  of  Duke  George,  who  is  almost  Satan  himself,  1520. 
and  is  so  grieved  that  Luther  should  not  be  put  to  death,  that 
it  is  feared  his  grief  may  prove  fatal  to  his  life."  It  was 
with  undissembled  displeasure  that  the  Reformer  perceived 
preparations  making  for  so  fortifying  Wittenberg  that  it  could 
resist  a  sudden  attack.  He  had  received  intelligence  of  the 
Popish  conspiracy  which  had  been  concocted  in  the  palace  of 
the  Cardinal  of  Mentz,  and  informed  Spalatin  that,  at  the  time 
he  was  writing  to  him,  a  tract  which  he  had  indited  against  this 
conspiracy  was  in  the  press.  But  the  extent  to  which  con- 
federacies had  been  formed  on  both  sides,  must  have  been 
unknown  to  him,  as  well  as  the  more  threatening  compacts 
which  the  Emperor  had  entered  into  with  Clement  VII., 
Henry  of  England,  and  the  King  of  France,  respectively,  for 
the  effectual  suppression  of  the  Reformation. 

The  Bishops  were  beginning  to  raise  their  heads  again. 
The  peasants  had  been  quelled,  and  support  seemed  to  be 
tendered  to  the  Papist  cause  by  powerful  princes  who  had 
pledged  their  honour  and  resources  to  its  defence.  Luther 
wrote  a  prologue  and  epilogue  to  a  work  consisting  of  a  series 
of  representations  of  the  dignitaries  of  the  Romish  Church, 
with  humorous  allusions  under  the  figures,  to  the  pomp, 
luxury,  avarice,  and  licentiousness  of  the  personages  depicted. 
At  the  beginning  of  the  year  the  evangelical  "  Mass  Book,  and 
Order  for  Public  Worship,"  was  published  ;*  but  the  Reformer 

*  The  Preface  speaks  of  the  importance  of  a  Catechism  for  children, 
which  he  supplied  a  little  later.  "  Christianity,"  he  goes  on  to  say, 
"  may  all  be  put  up  in  two  bags — Faith  and  Love.  Each  bag  has  two 
pockets.  Into  the  first  pocket  of  Faith  children  are  to  drop  such  texts 
as,  '  In  sin  did  my  mother  conceive  me,'  and  '  By  one  man  came  sin 
into  the  world' — two  Rhenish  gold-pieces.  The  other  pocket  is  for 
Hungarian  gold-pieces,  such  as,  "  Christ  died  for  our  sins,'  and  *  Behold 
the  Lamb  of  G-od.'  Into  the  first  pocket  of  Love  they  are  to  drop 
silver  groschens,  such  as,  '  Forasmuch  as  ye  did  it  unto  one  of  the  least 


96  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1526.  did  not  desire  the  Latin  formula  to  be  entirely  superseded, 
which  was  not,  he  thought,  without  its  utility  in  reference  to 
the  instruction  of  youth  :  he  even  went  still  farther,  and  wished 
that  a  Hebrew  and  Greek  liturgy  should  be  framed  and  some- 
times used  with  the  same  object.  Early  in  June  he  finished 
his  Psalter  or  version  of  the  Psalms  in  German  metre,  and  was 
at  that  period  busily  engaged  in  a  commentary  on  the  pro- 
phet Habakkuk.  The  sacramental  dispute  was  continued 
with  a  brisk  exchange  of  controversial  writings  between  the 
partisans  of  Zwingle  and  Luther;  but,  although  the  latter 
took  a  lively  interest  in  this  paper  war,  and  regarded  the 
Swiss  interpretation  as  an  inspiration  from  Satan,  he  had  not 
leisure  to  add  to  the  list  of  treatises  with  his  own  pen.  He 
addressed  the  Elector  also  in  reference  to  the  celebration  of 
the  mass  in  the  cathedral  of  Altenburg,  which  was  still  re- 
tained, with  other  corrupt  usages,  against  the  urgent  endea- 
vours for  its  abolition  made  by  Spalatin  and  the  evangelical 
preachers  :  but  with  much  moderation  he  suggested  a  public 
disputation,  for  the  better  instruction  of  the  canons ;  and 
that  for  the  present  their  ignorance  should  be  tolerated.  And 
by  a  rescript  of  the  Elector  from  Torgau,  dated  the  24th 
June,  such  ministers  as  were  incompetent  for  the  office  of 
preaching  were  directed  to  read  to  their  congregations  the 
Postils  printed  at  Wittenberg.  Luther's  labour  at  this  period 
was  continuous  in  finding  schoolmasters  and  schoolmistresses, 
and,  above  all,  pastors,  to  meet  the  numerous  applications  that 
reached  him  from  all  quarters. 

Luther's  private  life  was  flowing  with  even  and  peaceful 
tenour,  and  his  garden  was  a  principal  source  of  amusement. 

of  these,  ye  did  it  unto  me ; '  and  into  the  other  pocket  Schrecken- 
bergers,  such  as,  '  If  ye  be  persecuted  for  righteousness'  sake,  happy 
are  ye  ! '  For,  •  If  Christ  became  man  to  draw  men  to  God,  we  must 
become  children  to  draw  children  to  Christ.'  " — Walch.  X.,  p.  274. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  97 

He  had  planted  it,  and  erected  a  fountain  to  his  entire  satisfac-  1526. 
tion,  and  invited  Spalatin  to  be  a  witness  of  his  happiness — 
"  Come  and  you  shall  be  crowned  with  lilies  and  roses."  A 
vase  had  been  presented  to  him,  which  excited  the  admiration 
of  a  friend,  to  whom  Luther,  with  his  characteristic  liberality, 
at  once  gave  it :  the  messenger  was  waiting  to  bear  it  away, 
and  the  letter  to  accompany  the  present  had  been  written, 
when  the  vase  could  not  be  found :  Kate,  who  had  taken  an 
equal  fancy  to  it,  had  found  means  of  secreting  it.  From  his 
ample  mansion  the  refugee  was  never  excluded;  and  the 
claims  of  hospitality  and  charity  were  never  forgotten.  In  a 
letter  of  this  period  he  entreats  the  Elector  to  befriend  some 
Carmelite  monks,  who  were  aged  and  in  great  want,  "  one  of 
whom,"  he  said,  might  "  be  their  judge  at  the  last  day."  In 
another  letter  he  implores  the  Elector's  bounty  in  behalf  of 
his  old  schoolmaster,  "  whom  he  was  bound  ever  to  hold  in 
reverence."  In  the  review  of  the  salaries  of  the  Professors, 
Melancthon  as  well  as  Luther  had  been  awarded  200  florins 
(i.  e.,  about  £20)  a  year  for  lecturing  in  Greek  and  Divinity,  a 
sum  which  Philip  scrupled  to  take,  on  the  ground  that,  in  his 
feeble  health,  his  lectures  could  not  be  worth  it,  and  "  the 
post  assigned  him  by  God  "  was  not  to  lecture  in  theology, 
but  in  the  classical  languages :  and  Luther,  by  a  direct  appli- 
cation to  the  Elector,  took  care  that  the  scruples  of  his  friend 
should  be  satisfied,  and  the  salary  not  lost  to  him.  With 
Carlstadt,  the  old  intimacy  had  become  so  far  renewed,  that 
Jonas,  Philip,  Luther,  and  Kate,  stood  sponsors  to  the  ex- 
Professor's  son ;  and  after  the  baptism  tasted  his  hospitality 
at  his  residence,  at  Segren,  beyond  the  Elbe.  Thence, 
shortly  afterwards,  Carlstadt  removed  to  Berquiltz,  near 
Kemberg,  not  much  more  than  a  mile  from  Wittenberg ; 
and  Luther,  whose  forgiving  disposition  was  easily  changed 
from  thinking  the  worst  to  hoping  the  best,  mentions  him  in 

VOL.  II.  H 


98  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1526.  his  correspondence  of  this  period  with  kindness,  and  anticipates 
his  complete  and  settled  amendment.  In  the  next  year  Carl- 
stadt  petitioned  the  Elector  to  allow  him  to  reside  in  Kem- 
berg,  as  he  could  not  endure  the  iniquity  of  the  peasants  in  the 
outlying  hamlet. 

The  correspondence  of  the  Reformer  is  no  longer  replete 
with  melancholy  forebodings  of  death,  and  prayerful  aspira- 
tions for  its  relief.  About  Whitsuntide,  as  he  informed  his 
friends,  he  expected  to  be  made  a  father;  and  ere  the  child's 
appearance,  Gerbel  of  Strasburg,  and  Muller,  Chancellor  of 
Mansfeld,  were  bespoken  as  godfathers,  if  the  child  should 
be  a  boy,  and  likely  to  live.  Amidst  these  domestic  expec- 
tations and  household  cares,  the  nature  of  Luther  expanded 
with  all  its  genuine  and  warm-hearted  German  kindliness. 
If  a  fit  of  spiritual  despondency  came  over  him  Kate  charmed 
away  the  black  mood  by  the  solace  of  reading;  if  Duke 
George  scowled  at  him,  or  the  "  viper  Erasmus"  darted  his 
malicious  tongue,  he  forgot  both  in  Kate's  smile.  At  length, 
on  the  7th  June,  just  within  the  year  from  his  marriage, 
the  event  long  expected  took  place,  and  a  healthy  boy, 
"  sound  in  every  sense  and  limb/'  was  born  to  the  rejoiced 
father.  He  communicated  the  interesting  intelligence  to  his 
friend  Uuhel  the  next  day — "  My  dear  Kate,  of  God's  grace, 
brought  me  a  John  Luther  yesterday  at  two  o'clock."  John 
was  the  grandfather's  name,  and  had  therefore  been  fixed 
upon  for  his  first-born  son.  In  yet  warmer  terms  he  wrote 
to  Spalatin — "  I  have  received  from  my  most  excellent  and 
dearest  wife  a  little  Luther,  by  God's  wonderful  mercy.  Pray 
for  me,  that  Christ  will  preserve  my  child  against  Satan,  who, 
I  know,  will  try  all  he  can  to  harm  me  in  him."  There  are 
some  complaints  in  Luther's  letters,  that  at  first  the  infant 
did  not  obtain  sufficient  nourishment,  and  Kate  had  a  de- 
ficient supply  of  milk ;  but,   after  a  time,  matters  fell  into 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  99 

the  right  trim,  and  all  went  on  prosperously.  Profuse  were  1526. 
the  congratulations  and  inquiries  of  friends,  and  Luther's 
bulletins  were  singularly  explicit.  In  answer  to  Spalatin's 
good  wishes,  who  was  in  expectation  of  a  similar  boon  from 
his  partner,  he  wrote — "  John  my  fawn,  together  with  my 
doe,  return  their  warm  thanks  for  your  kind  benediction ; 
and  may  your  doe  present  you  with  just  such  another  fawn, 
on  whom  I  may  ask  God's  blessing  in  turn.     Amen." 


h  2 


100 


CHAPTEE  VI. 

FROM    THE    24TH    JUNE,    1526,    TO    THE    3RD    APRIL,    1530. 

1526.  The  dangers  which  at  this  period  of  its  career  menaced  the 
reviving  Gospel,  according  to  the  view  taken  by  Luther,  were 
chiefly  twofold.  The  Reformation  had  first  seen  the  light, 
like  little  Johnny  Luther,  in  the  Augustine  Convent  of  Wit- 
tenberg, and  had  been  nursed  amidst  homely  faces,  books, 
and  poverty,  until  it  had  grown  into  reputation  with  the 
world.  But  it  had  now  been  transferred  to  a  new  sphere,  it 
had  passed  to  courts  and  palaces,  it  had  become  the  subject 
of  the  engagements  and  leagues  of  sovereigns,  its  defence  had 
been  vowed  by  one  of  the  most  warlike  of  the  German 
princes :  and  it  could  not  but  be  a  matter  of  anxiety  how  it 
would  fare  with  the  child  of  such  lowly  origin  in  the  higher 
air  and  soil  to  which  it  had  been  transplanted.  Again,  there 
was  an  unhappy  division  in  the  ranks  of  those  who  had  been 
its  earliest  guardians :  and  whilst  the  Papists  availed  them- 
selves of  this  disunion  to  throw  discredit  on  the  arguments 
and  claims  both  of  the  Lutherans  and  Zwinglians,  the  worldly 
element,  now  in  alliance  with  the  Reformation,  was  seeking 
to  heal  the  breach,  rather  on  account  of  the  obstacle  thus 
opposed  to  secular  interests,  than  from  any  true  love  of 
Christian  unity.  There  was,  therefore,  much  to  be  feared 
from  a  continuance  of  dissension,  and  yet  more  to  be  feared 
from  the  worldly  policy  which  aped  Christian  feelings  and 
motives  for  party  and  political  ends.  Alive  to  the  hazards  of 
the  period,  and  convinced  that  his  own  sacramental  doctrine 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHKR.  101 

was  scriptural,  Luther  was  sustained  by  faith  in  the  divine  1526. 
promises,  and  felt  assured  that  Christ  would  be  hidden  only 
for  a  time. 

The  Diet  which  had  been  appointed  to  be  held  at  Spires  in 
May,  was  not  opened  until  the  25th  June.  John  of  Saxony 
entered  Spires  with  a  retinue  of  700  horsemen;  and  his 
style  of  living  marked  him  out  as  the  wealthiest  and  most  in- 
fluential Elector  of  the  Empire.  He  had  brought  with  him 
as  his  chaplains,  Spalatin  and  Agricola,  who  were  sedulously 
employed  in  proclaiming  the  Word  of  God,  for  the  pulpits 
of  the  city  churches  were  barred  against  the  evangelical 
preachers;  but  this  led  to  their  desertion  by  the  populace, 
who  assembled  by  thousands,  every  day,  in  the  hotels  of  the 
Elector  of  Saxony  and  the  Landgrave  of  Hesse,  to  hear  the 
Word  of  God  and  join  in  the  Lutheran  worship.  It  is  men- 
tioned, that  on  one  Sunday  as  many  as  8000  united  in  reli- 
gious worship  after  the  evangelical  ritual.  Tracts,  too,  from 
Luther's  pen  were  busily  circulated  in  the  city,  and  produced 
their  usual  fruit  in  clearing  the  mind  from  prejudice,  and  in- 
ducing the  study  of  the  Scriptures.  Both  the  Elector  John 
and  the  Landgrave  were  sensible  of  the  importance  of  their 
position ;  and  whilst  they  discarded  all  attention  to  the  Ro- 
mish regulations  about  feasting  and  fasting,  were  strict  in 
requiring  of  their  followers  such  demeanour  as  would  not 
bring  dishonour  upon  the  Gospel.  And  it  was  soon  manifest 
that  the  popular  sympathy  with  the  Reformation  found  a 
powerful  echo  in  the  Diet  itself.  The  Committees  drew  up 
their  several  Reports :  and  the  Report  of  the  Committee  of 
Princes  in  particular,  owing  in  some  measure  to  the  influence 
of  the  Landgrave,  who  argued  points  of  theological  doctrine 
with  the  Bishops,  and  easily  confuted  them,  was  singularly 
favourable  to  religious  freedom,  and,  amongst  other  things, 
spoke  of  explaining  Scripture  by  Scripture.     But  just  at  this 


102  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1526.  point,  when  everything  was  turning  against  Rome,  Ferdinand 
suddenly  produced  the  instructions  which  he  had  received 
from  the  Emperor,  and  which  it  had  been  left  to  his  discre- 
tion to  publish  or  suppress ;  and  the  harsh  tenor  of  the  im- 
perial instructions  excited  mingled  surprise  and  indignation. 

The  Lutherans  now  talked  of  quitting  Spires  without 
delay;  and  the  business  of  the  Diet  seemed  likely  to  come 
to  a  standstill.  But  quickly  more  cheering  intelligence  dis- 
sipated this  sudden  gloom.  It  transpired  that  a  common 
Treaty  of  league  had  been  entered  into  against  the  Emperor,  in  mutual 
May  22.  dread  of  his  power,  by  Milan,  Florence,  Venice,  Piedmont, 
and  France,  and  that  Pope  Clement  VII.  himself  had  ab- 
solved Francis  I.  from  the  obligations  he  had  incurred  by  the 
Treaty  of  Madrid,  and  was  the  author  and  patron  of  this 
"  most  holy  confederation."  Thus  the  relation  of  Charles 
to  the  Papal  See  was  unexpectedly  and  completely  changed. 
The  new  instructions  issued  by  the  Emperor  to  his  brother 
Ferdinand,  under  this  influence  of  altered  circumstances, 
were  diametrically  counter  to  those  previously  despatched ; 
they  suggested  the  abolition  of  the  penal  clauses  in  the 
Edict  of  Worms,  and  the  submission  of  the  Lutheran  con- 
troversy to  the  decision  of  a  Council.  The  Pope,  on  the 
other  hand,  had  advanced  so  far  in  his  enmity  to  Charles  V., 
as  to  fix  on  his  substitute  to  the  imperial  throne,  and  destine 
William  of  Bavaria,  whose  ambition  was  unbounded,  for  the 
supreme  dignity.  Ferdinand,  using  again  the  discretionary 
power  with  which  he  was  invested,  suppressed  his  brother's 
new  instructions  :  having  already  incensed  the  Lutherans,  he 
dreaded  in  the  present  state  of  feeling  the  effect  of  alienating 
the  Papists  also ;  but  the  disunion  which  the  rupture  of 
the  Pope  and  Emperor  had  caused  in  the  Papist  ranks,  and 
the  strong  combination  of  the  evangelical  Princes,  to  which 
the  tone  of  public  sentiment  added  great  weight,  naturally 


THE    LIFE    OE    MARTIN    LUTHER.  103 

led  to  a  vote  of  the  Diet  on  the  question  of  religious  tolera- 1526. 
tion,  to  which  Ferdinand  himself,  under  the  apprehension,  as 
Cochlaeus  and  Maimburg  affirm,  of  tumult  and  sedition,  felt 
himself  obliged  to  yield  a  temporary  assent. 

The  Recess  declared,  that  "until  a  general  or  national 
assembly  of  the  Church  should  be  convened,  each  state 
should  live,  govern,  and  bear  itself,  in  such  a  way  as  it  could 
best  answer  to  God  and  to  the  Emperor  :"  a  decision,  which 
conferred  its  first  legal  settlement  on  the  Reformation  in 
those  States  in  which  it  had  already  been  established,  and 
granted  to  other  States  the  liberty  of  entering  on  similar 
religious  changes,  as  their  inclination  might  prompt  them. 
History  does  not  furnish  many  instances  of  a  more  signal 
interposition  of  Providence  in  behalf  of  the  Church  of  Christ : 
for  just  at  the  moment  when  the  Reformation  was  enveloped 
with  dangers,  and  there  seemed  no  path  of  escape,  a  straight 
road  was  opened  before  it,  and  Rome  itself  was  made  the 
point  of  attack  to  the  imperial  resentment. 

The  Recess  had  scarcely  been  agreed  upon  when  the  Arch- 
duke Ferdinand  was  hurried  from  councils  to  camps.  His 
brother-in-law,  Lewis,  the  young  King  of  Hungary  and 
Bohemia,  flying  before  the  arms  of  Sultan  Soliman  from  the 
fatal  field  of  Mohacz,  perished  in  a  morass  on  the  29th  Au- 
gust. Ferdinand  had  an  incontestable  right  to  both  thrones, 
as  far  as  treaties  could  be  relied  upon ;  but  Hungary  was  laid 
claim  to  by  John  Zapolya,  the  "Woiwode  of  Transylvania,  and 
Bohemia  had  been  swallowed,  in  anticipation,  by  the  greedy 
Dukes  of  Bavaria,  and  the  resources  of  the  French  monarchy 
were  at  the  command  of  whatever  competitors  against  the 
claims  of  the  House  of  Austria.  Acting,  however,  with  great 
energy  and  prudence,  Ferdinand  secured  his  succession  to  both 
kingdoms,  and  was  very  much  indebted  for  his  success  to  the 
Anti-papist  or  Lutheran  party.     He  was  elected  by  the  three 


104  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEK. 

1526.  Estates  to  the  throne  of  Bohemia ;  and  although  Zapolya 
had  actually  been  crowned  King  of  Hungary,  Ferdinand 
succeeded  in  taking  from  him  his  strongholds,  and  driving 
him  beyond  the  borders,  and  was  then  himself  crowned  King 
of  Hungary  in  Stuhlweissenburg. 

But  the  importance  of  these  events  was  not  appreciated  at 
the  time  :  and  from  the  extreme  difficulty  of  communication, 
and  the  mantle  of  mystery  with  which  public  affairs  were 
systematically  shrouded,  the  progress  of  affairs  at  the  Diet 
was  little  known,  and  when  the  Decree  was  published,  the 
victory,  which  the  evangelical  party  had  gained,  was  very  in- 
sufficiently estimated.  "I  know  nothing  about  the  Diet/' 
Luther  wrote  to  a  friend  on  the  11th  August,  "except  that 
the  Bishops  are  labouring  to  restore  their  ancient  sove- 
reignty." "The  Diet  at  Spires,"  he  wrote  to  Link  on  the 
28th,  "  is  true  to  the  old  German  fashion ;  there  is  drinking 
and  gambling,  but  little  else."  There  is  no  expression  in  the 
Reformer's  correspondence  of  gratitude  for  the  triumph  of 
the  evangelical  cause  at  Spires,  clearly  as  its  value  was  recog- 
nised in  after  years.  Luther's  mind  was  rather  occupied  with 
dismal  presentiments  of  approaching  war.  Wittenberg  was 
assuming  the  aspect  of  a  garrisoned  town  :  and  he  very  much 
disliked  such  a  metamorphose.  And  when  the  question  was 
referred  to  him,  whether,  in  his  opinion,  a  defensive  league  in 
behalf  of  the  Reformation  could  be  justified  on  grounds  of 
Scripture,  he  replied — "  The  Elector  has  no  superior  except 
Csesar ;  he  may  therefore  resist  his  enemies,  provided  they 
first  attack  him,  and  may  use  means  for  defending  his  sub- 
jects ;  but  e  they  that  take  the  sword,  shall  perish  by  the 
sword.'"  He  exhorted  the  Elector  John  to  break  off  all 
alliance  with  the  Landgrave,  as  soon  as  symptoms  should 
appear  of  his  disposition  for  offensive  warfare.  But  in  a 
treatise  in  answer  to  the  question,  "Can  a  soldier  hope  for 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  105 

salvation?"  he  determined  that  to  bear  arms  at  the  command  1526. 
of  the  magistrate  is  not  unlawful ;  but  "  a  soldier,  if  his  cause 
be  just,  may  think  of  God  and  his  soul  without  being  dis- 
mayed by  his  profession  of  arms/'  and  that  "  with  a  good 
conscience  he  must  make  a  better  soldier." 

His  pen  was  actively  employed  on  other  subjects  also, 
but  he  granted  the  Papists,  as  Seckendorf  observes,  "  a  re- 
spite this  year."  He  followed  up  his  commentary  on  Habak- 
kuk,  by  a  commentary  on  the  prophet  Jonah ;  and  then 
commenced  a  commentary  on  Zechariah.  At  the  same  time 
he  was  engaged  in  a  commentary  on  the  book  of  Ecclesiastes, 
which  he  found  an  extremely  arduous  task,  on  account  of  the 
difficult  Hebrew  idioms ;  and  when  he  had  "  overcome  the 
obstacles  by  the  grace  of  God,"  and  his  exposition  was  ready 
for  publication,  he  withdrew  it  in  deference  to  Brentz,  whose 
theological  sagacity  he  greatly  admired,  and  who  had  anti- 
cipated him  in  a  commentary  upon  the  same  book.  The 
Sacramental  controversy  next  engaged  his  attention,  ffico- 
lampadius,  whom  he  respected,  and  whose  declension  into  the 
sacramentarian  heresy  he  lamented,  had  published  an  answer 
to  his  preface  to  the  Syngramma ;  and  Luther,  regarding 
this  as  a  challenge,  entered  with  zeal  and  joy  on  the  work  of 
"  professing  to  the  world  his  faith,"  which,  he  said,  he 
"  should  have  done  long  ago,  had  not  leisure  been  wanting, 
and  Satan  hindered  him."  "  See  what  the  Sacramentarian 
arguments  are  ! "  he  wrote  to  Stiefel ;  "  Christ  is  at  the  right 
hand  of  the  Father,  therefore  he  is  not  in  the  Sacrament : 
the  flesh  profiteth  nothing,  therefore  Christ  is  not  in  the 
Sacrament !  How  much  safer  to  trust  to  the  simple  and 
plain  letter  of  Scripture,  '  This  is  my  body.'"  He  entitled 
his  tract — "  Against  the  Enthusiasts,  that  the  words  of  Christ 
remain  firm,  'This  is  my  body.'"  It  was  published  in  the 
ensuing  year. 


106  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1526.  The  year  was  rich  in  pulpit  discourses,  in  which  he  treated 
likewise  of  the  Sacramentarian  topic;  but  he  complained 
that  a  coldness  in  spiritual  things  had  crept  over  the  Wit- 
tenberg people;  "they  were  lukewarm  in  the  Gospel,  and 
seemed  satiated/'  But  with  less  reason  he  complained  of  his 
own  supineness.  "  Pray  for  me/'  he  wrote  to  Hausmann, 
"  who  am  so  torpid  and  cold  :  I  know  not  how  it  is,  whether 
I  am  overborne  by  weariness,  or  oppressed  by  Satan,  that  I 
do  so  little."  Tidings  now  came  in  apace  in  anticipation  of 
events  not  far  distant.  It  was  reported  that  the  Pope  was  a 
prisoner  in  the  hands  of  the  imperial  faction.  The  rumour 
was  premature ;  but  the  Pontiff  had  written  a  severe  brief  to 
the  Emperor  on  the  23rd  June,  and  had  followed  this  up  by 
a  milder  brief  the  next  day,  in  which  he  had  implored  Charles 
to  keep  "the  unbridled  ambition  of  his  partisans  within  some 
bounds ;"  and  he  had  cited  Cardinal  Pompeo  Colonna  in  par- 
ticular to  appear  before  him  at  Rome,  under  the  most  heavy 
penalties,  to  answer  for  his  impious  conduct.  The  Cardinal 
in  reply  entered  Rome  at  the  head  of  his  troops  on  the 
19th  September,  and  forced  Clement,  who  had  fled  to  the 
Castle  of  St.  Angelo,  to  come  to  terms,  and  then  retreated,- 
carrying  with  him  300,000  ducats  as  booty.  But  Clement, 
as  soon  as  he  was  released  from  his  immediate  dangers,  threw 
his  engagements  to  the  winds,  degraded  Colonna,  and  ex- 
communicated his  whole  family;  and,  after  retaliating  se- 
verely on  their  lands,  directed  his  forces  against  Naples, 
which  was  at  the  same  time  menaced  by  the  French  fleet. 
On  the  other  hand,  the  excited  temper  of  the  Emperor  was 
exhibited,  not  only  in  his  respective  replies  to  the  Pontiff's 
two  briefs,  but  in  the  letter  dated  the  6th  October,  which  he 
addressed  to  the  Consistory  of  Cardinals,  exhorting  them  to 
admonish  the  Pope  of  his  duty,  and  persuade  him  to  con- 
voke a  Council;    but,  if  he  refused  to   do  so,   to  convoke 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  107 

a  Council  with  all  speed  themselves.  In  the  awful  events  1526. 
daily  transacted,  or  rumoured,  Luther  was  delighted  to  be- 
hold signs  that  the  end  of  the  world  was  near  at  hand; 
and  he  attributed  the  commotions  and  wars  which  were 
shaking  all  Europe  to  the  rage  and  fury  of  Satan,  who 
was  conscious  that  he  had  but  a  short  time.  But  notwith- 
standing the  variance  of  Pope  and  Emperor,  persecution 
had  not  relaxed  its  vigour,  and  the  sword  of  Duke  George 
and  other  princes  was  continually  dripping  with  fresh  blood. 
There  is  thus  repeated  allusion  in  Luther's  commentaries  on 
Habakkuk  and  Jonah  to  the  fate  of  persecutors,  and  the 
true  meaning  of  the  Divine  forbearance  in  suffering  their 
virulence  to  exhaust  itself  without  check  or  restraint.  "  God/' 
he  wrote,  in  his  characteristic  style,  "  is  a  great  cook  :  his 
kitchen  is  vast :  he  fats  for  it  great  beasts,  kings  and  poten- 
tates ;  he  places  them  in  rich  pasturage,  amid  wealth,  glory, 
and  pleasure ;  he  suffers  them  to  exult  and  tyrannise  over  the 
necks  and  bodies  of  his  servants,  as  the  daughter  of  Herodias 
danced  over  the  head  of  John  the  Baptist,  and  as  the  world 
rejoiced  when  the  Apostles  mourned  ;  till  at  length  all  in  an 
instant  destruction  from  God  cometh." 

It  was  a  period  when,  in  a  peculiar  degree,  the  combat  be- 
tween Christ  and  Satan  was  fought  out,  as  in  the  primitive 
days  of  Christianity,  in  the  bosom  of  each  family ;  and  father 
and  son,  husband  and  wife  were  at  variance,  by  their  adhesion 
to  one  or  the  other  of  two  conflicting  masters.  Lewis,  King 
of  Hungary  and  Bohemia,  one  of  the  persecutors  of  the 
Gospel,  had  perished  with  the  sudden  stroke  of  destruction  of 
which  Luther  spoke;  but  his  widowed  queen,  Mary,  the 
sister  of  the  Emperor,  had  for  some  time  been  attached  to  the 
Gospel,  and  had  laboured  to  extend  the  knowledge  of  it  in 
her  husband's  dominions.  The  Turkish  arms  had  driven  her 
for  refuge  within  the  walls  of  Vienna :  and  in  the  day  of  her 


108  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1526.  distress  Luther  presents  to  her  his  exposition  of  four  con- 
solatory Psalms— the  37th,  62nd,  94th,  and  109th.  "The 
Holy  Scripture,"  he  told  the  afflicted  Queen,  "  is  a  comfort- 
ing Scripture,  and  teaches  us  patience,  and  to  trust  in  the 
true  Father  in  heaven,  and  the  true  Bridegroom  Jesus  Christ, 
who  is  our  brother,  our  own  flesh  and  blood,  and  to  rejoice 
with  our  true  friends  and  companions,  the  dear  angels,  who 
are  round  about  us,  and  take  care  of  us.  It  is  hard  to  be  so 
early  a  widow,  and  to  be  robbed  of  a  dear  husband ;  but  the 
Scriptures,  especially  the  Psalms,  will  afford  you  much  com- 
fort, for  they  show  the  dear  Father  and  the  Son,  in  whom 
certain  and  eternal  life  is  hidden.  Whoso  sees  and  feels  in 
the  Scriptures  the  Father's  love  towards  us,  can  easily  bear 
any  earthly  sorrow  :  whoso  feels  it  not,  can  never  be  truly 
happy,  though  he  swim  in  the  abundance  of  worldly  pleasure. 
We  should  be  more  patient  if  we  thought  less  of  our  light 
crosses,  and  more  of  Christ's  cross." 

There  is  a  letter  of  the  Reformer  at  this  period,  which 
allows  an  insight  into  his  financial  condition.  His  old  friend 
the  ex-Prior  of  the  Augustine  Convent,  had  applied  for  a 
loan  of  eight  florins ;  and  in  answer  to  this  request,  Luther 
enters  into  a  statement  of  his  pecuniary  circumstances.  He 
was  in  debt  100  florins ;  three  silver  drinking  cups,  the  pre- 
sents of  friends,  were  placed  in  pawn  for  the  payment  of  a 
moiety  of  this  sum  ;  and  another  cup  was  in  pledge  for  twelve 
florins  more  of  it,  "  due  to  Luke  and  Christian."  In  such  an 
embarrassed  condition  he  was  unable  to  do  anything  by  loan 
towards  relieving  the  straits  of  another ;  but  he  was  willing 
to  do  all  that  he  could,  and  would  use  his  influence  to  pacify 
the  Prior's  debtors,  if  he  wished  him  to  do  so,  with  the 
utmost  alacrity.  "  The  Lord,"  he  said,  "  is  punishing  me  for 
my  imprudence,  and  then  he  will  help  me  out  of  my  diffi- 
culties again."    The  imprudence  thus  chastened  arose  entirely 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  109 

from  a  liberality  which  knew  no  bounds  in  relieving  the  1526. 
distresses  of  others.  But  poverty  did  not  preclude  great  do- 
mestic happiness.  "  Johnny/'  Luther  wrote  to  Spalatin,  "  is 
cutting  his  teeth,  and  prattles  pleasantly,  in  his  way,  to 
everybody  :  Kate  says,  that  he  has  taught  her  the  joys  of 
matrimony,  of  which  the  Pope  and  his  minions  are  un- 
worthy." 

The  absence  of  the  Elector  John  at  the  Diet  had  retarded 
the  execution  of  Luther's  plan  for  the  visitation  of  the 
churches  and  parishes  in  his  dominions  by  commissioners. 
This  obstacle  was  now  removed;  but  a  more  serious  one 
remained  in  the  opposition  made  to  such  a  project  by  the 
courtiers,  who  had,  wherever  they  could,  seized  on  the  pro- 
perty of  the  fallen  convents  with  the  greediness  of  harpies, 
and  were  now  most  reluctant  to  have  their  depredations 
checked,  and  themselves  called  to  account.  The  tendency  to 
rapacity  had  been  much  increased  by  the  mild  and  concilia- 
tory rule  of  the  Elector  John,  which  had  been  so  grossly 
abused  by  many  of  his  nobles  as  to  cause  Luther  to  exclaim 
with  vehemence,  that  "  a  tyrant  alone  was  fitted  to  be  the  de- 
pository of  authority."  "  There  are  not  a  few,"  he  declared, 
"  who  with  loud  professions  of  zeal  for  the  Gospel,  are  the 
greatest  enemies  the  Gospel  has."  But  resolute  in  requiring 
the  execution  of  his  plan,  he  wrote  on  the  22nd  November,  a 
very  strong  letter  to  the  Elector,  requesting  that  a  visitation 
should  be  forthwith  instituted  of  the  parishes  in  his  electorate 
by  four  commissioners,  of  whom  two  should  examine  matters 
of  finance,  and  the  other  two  investigate  the  characters  of  the 
clergy,  the  condition  of  the  schools,  and  the  nature  of  the 
doctrines  in  which  the  people  were  instructed.  "  He  would 
himself  warrant,"  he  told  the  Elector,  "that  if  such  affairs 
were  properly  looked  into,  everything  would  thenceforward  go 
right  with  the  peasantry,  who  had  been  left  too  often  without  a 


110  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1526.  clergyman  or  preacher,  living  like  the  sow."  The  nobility,  he 
warned  his  princes,  were  carving  a  goodly  portion  for  them- 
selves out  of  the  convent  wealth.  But  as  this  entreaty  did 
not  accomplish  all  that  Luther  could  wish,  he  took  care  to 
bring  the  case  in  person  before  the  immediate  attention  of 
the  Elector,  when  he  happened  to  be,  not  long  after,  at  Wit- 
tenberg. He  first  addressed  himself  to  John  Frederic,  who 
expressed  warm  indignation  at  the  rapine  of  the  nobles ;  and 
then,  overruling  every  objection  which  the  domestic  officers 
of  the  Elector  could  interpose,  he  forced  his  way  into  John's 
bedchamber,  and  laid  before  him,  in  a  private  interview  of 
some  length,  the  fraudulent  and  griping  selfishness  of  his 
courtiers.  Spalatin  also,  and  the  University,  were  stirred  up 
to  intercede  with  the  Elector  for  the  same  object :  and  under 
the  influence  of  these  entreaties  and  remonstrances  the  com- 
mission was  appointed,  and  the  visitation  commenced  the 
following  year. 

Towards  the  close  of  this  year  the  plague  fell  on  Wit- 
tenberg with  more  than  ordinary  severity;  and  continued 
throughout  the  greater  portion  of  the  next  year,  increasing  in 
1527.  virulence  as  the  summer  advanced.  The  opening  of  the  new 
year  proved  a  season  of  sickness  also  to  Luther  himself.  In 
January  he  suffered  much  from  hemorrhage ;  and  after  that, 
"  a  sudden  collection  of  blood  around  the  heart,"  as  he  de- 
scribes the  attack,  produced  such  violent  compressions  as 
almost  extinguished  life,  when  he  was  unexpectedly  relieved 
by  drinking  the  water  of  the  carduus  benedictus. 

The  weakness  consequent  on  this  illness  delayed  for  a  time 
his  commentary  on  Zechariah ;  but  early  in  January  his 
treatise  against  the  Enthusiasts  appeared,  which,  he  mentions 
with  lively  joy,  had  the  effect  of  "  confirming  many  in  the 
true  faith  of  the  Lord's  Supper."  But  all  his  spare  time  was 
devoted  to  his  German  version  of  the  Prophets ;  and  he  was 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  Ill 

now  engrossed  with  the  stud}'  of  Isaiah.  A  German  transla- 1527. 
tion  of  the  Sacred  Prophets  had  already  heen  published  at 
Worms,  and  in  many  respects  was  approved  by  Luther :  but 
the  phraseology  seemed  to  him  less  simple  than  the  work 
demanded  in  order  to  be  generally  useful,  and  he  continued 
his  own  version.  His  commentaries  on  the  prophetical  books 
was  a  natural  sequel  to  the  work  of  translation.  Cordially 
enamoured  of  such  peaceful  theological  researches,  he  was 
rejoiced  to  forego  controversy  with  the  Romanists :  and  the 
signs  of  the  times  seemed  to  him  to  dispense  with  the  neces- 
sity of  returning  to  this  old  warfare.  "  Everywhere/'  he 
exclaimed,  "  the  Pope  is  visited  for  his  destruction  :  and 
although  persecution  is  raging  on  all  sides,  and  many  are 
burnt,  the  end  and  hour  of  Antichrist  approaches  "  But  as 
before,  so  now,  he  found  his  old  opponents  incapable  of 
observing  silence.  Emser,  with  equal  mendacity  and  malice, 
published  copies  of  Luther's  letters  to  Henry  VIII.  and 
Duke  George,  with  the  answers  respectively  made  to  them, 
and  represented  the  gentle  terms  of  the  Reformer's  addresses 
as  equivalent  to  a  recantation  of  his  doctrines.  More  was 
added  which  malevolence  had  dictated.  Luther  felt  himself 
compelled  to  reply  to  a  charge  which  might  possibly  obtain 
credit,  and  which  glanced  at  his  consistency ;  and  vindicated 
his  character  effectually  from  the  allegation  of  a  recantation, 
but  with  great  dignity  of  feeling  he  was  silent  as  to  the  spon- 
taneous calumnies  of  Emser.  "  I  erred,"  he  said,  "  and  I 
grieve  for  it,  for  I  cast  my  pearls  before  swine.  A  fool  I 
have  been,  and  a  fool  I  remain,  for  looking  for  a  John  the 
Baptist  in  kings'  courts." 

The  recreations  before  spoken  of  continued  to  be  resorted 
to  in  his  moments  of  leisure.  Amsdorf  and  Link  were  the 
instruments  in  supplying  the  means  of  these  amusements. 
Both  were  written  to  for  garden  seeds,  and  the  Reformer, 


112  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1527.  somewhat  later,  gives  a  glowing  description  of  his  melons  and 
cucumbers,  which  promised  to  succeed  to  the  utmost  of  his 
expectation.  The  turning-lathe  was  a  great  source  of  grati- 
fication j  but  he  wanted  one,  he  said,  which  would  turn  of 
itself  whilst  Wolfgang  was  snoring  or  idling.  The  presents 
he  received  were  numerous  :  vases,  money,  eatables,  radishes 
from  Erfurth,  &c.  A  gift  of  a  wooden  clock,  which  he  re- 
ceived from  an  unknown  admirer  through  the  hand  of  Link, 
exceedingly  delighted  him ;  he  studied  its  mechanism,  in 
which,  within  a  few  days  after  its  receipt,  he  pronounced 
himself  perfect.  The  gift  he  considered  opportune  :  "  My 
drunken  Germans  want  to  be  taught  what  time  of  clay  it  is." 
Domestic  matters  progressed  as  smoothly  as  Luther's  genial 
temper  and  Kate's  conjugal  devotedness  could  make  them. 
Before  the  close  of  the  year  an  account  of  the  antics  of 
"  Johnny"  concluded  many  letters  on  matters  of  business,  or 
religious  bickerings.  Perhaps  his  habitual  good  nature  does 
not  display  itself  more  forcibly  in  anything  than  the  readiness 
with  which,  notwithstanding  the  extraordinary  weight  of  oc- 
cupation devolving  on  him,  he  acted  the  part  of  go-between 
for  various  clergymen  who  wished  to  publish  religious  trea- 
tises, or  Scriptural  commentaries,  and  the  proprietors  of  the 
Wittenberg  printing  presses.  Frequent  were  the  complaints 
if  the  printing  went  on  languidly  :  but  Luther  never  lost  his 
temper.  The  works  to  be  published  demanded  the  introduc- 
tion of  a  celebrated  name,  and  Luther  did  not  refuse  to  write 
an  infinity  of  prefaces.  For  his  own  writings  he  never  re- 
ceived the  value  of  a  farthing  in  money,  although  they  were 
the  chief  support  of  the  printers,  and  the  ordinary  remunera- 
tion was  a  gold  piece  a  sheet :  but  he  took  gratis  copies  of 
such  works  issued  from  the  Wittenberg  presses  as  pleased 
him  ;  and  by  this  means  was  enabled  to  supply  impoverished 
but  deserving  students  with  works  which  they  could  never 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  113 

have   procured  for  themselves,   and  which   materially  aided  1527. 
their  industry. 

In  Germany  itself  no  political  event  occurred  this  year  of 
any  moment ;  expectation  was  on  the  watch  for  the  first  au- 
thentic tidings  of  something  definite  from  Rome.  So  strong 
was  the  conviction  that  the  future  course  of  affairs  in  Ger- 
many would  be  determined  by  the  fortune  of  the  Imperial 
arms  in  Italy,  that  scarcely  a  noble  was  present  in  the  Diet 
which  met  at  Ratisbon  in  the  spring ;  and  the  deputies  parted, 
after  voting  a  humble  petition  to  the  Emperor,  to  honour 
Germany  with  his  presence.  On  the  2nd  June  the  young 
Saxon  prince  John  Frederic  was  wedded  to  the  Princess  Si- 
bylla of  Cleves ;  but  the  influence  of  this  union,  for  the  pre- 
sent, was  only  felt  in  its  interposing  another  cause  of  delay  to 
the  execution  of  the  promised  visitation  of  the  Saxon  parishes. 

No  war  had  ever  been  more  popular  with  the  Germans, 
than  that  now  levied  by  Charles  against  Clement  VII.  The 
Emperor  had  directed  his  brother  to  march  himself,  with  his 
troops,  into  Italy ;  but  as  Ferdinand's  absence  was  objection- 
able on  many  grounds,  particularly  in  the  present  condition 
of  his  own  kingdoms,  he  commissioned  the  veteran  George 
Frundsberg,  whose  welcome  to  Luther  at  Worms  had  been 
followed  by  a  cordial  acceptance  of  the  evangelical  doctrines, 
to  gather  an  army  in  the  Imperial  name,  and  lead  it  across  the 
Alps  with  all  speed.  The  reputation  of  Frundsberg  as  the 
hero  of  the  fields  of  Bicocca  and  Pavia,  was  not  more  effective 
in  attracting  recruits  to  his  standard,  than  his  well-known 
hostility  to  the  Papacy  and  admiration  of  Luther.  In  his 
ardour  he  pawned  his  wife's  jewels,  and  offered  his  own  lands 
for  mortgage ;  and  it  is  related  that  he  carried  about  in  his 
hand  a  rope  twisted  with  gold  and  silver  thread,  and  threat- 
ened that  he  "  would  treat  the  Pontiff  as  the  Eastern  monarchs 
treat  their  brothers."     But  Charles  himself  by  no  means 

VOL.  II.  I 


114  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1527.  disdained  the  enthusiasm,  which  he  was  aware  would  be  in- 
spired in  his  German  subjects  by  the  knowledge  of  the  desti- 
nation of  this  levy  of  troops.  "  Say/5  he  enjoined  Ferdinand, 
"  against  the  Turks  :  every  one  will  know  what  Turks  are 
meant."  The  boldest  hearts  in  Germany  throbbed  with  ex- 
ultation at  these  evidences  of  an  anti-papal  spirit  in  the 
Imperial  councils.  In  November  the  army  numbered  11,000 
men;  on  the  17th  of  that  month  the  command  to  commence 
the  march  was  given — "  For  the  Alps  and  Italy;  "  and  every 
day  the  army  under  Frundsberg  received  new  accessions  of 
recruits,  many  enlisting  without  pay,  attracted  simply  by  the 
popular  destination  of  the  enterprise. 

Over  crags  and  the  tops  of  precipices,  down  which  the  sol- 
diers trembled  to  look,  pursuing  its  course  with  the  agility  of 
the  wild  goat,  his  landsknechts  steadying  the  steps  of  their 
veteran  chief  with  a  rail  of  spears,  the  army  arrived  on  the 
evening  of  the  17th  at  Aa;  and  two  days  later  it  reached  the 
foot  of  the  Alps.  The  Duke  of  Urbino,  commander  of  the 
forces  of  the  League,  was  on  its  right  flank ;  but  he  did  not 
venture  to  make  an  attack.  A  smart  affair  took  place  at 
Mantua,  in  which  Giovanni  de'  Medici,  in  whom  the  utmost 
confidence  was  reposed  by  the  Papal  troops,  was  slain,  and  his 
loss  proved  a  material  injury  to  the  Pontiff :  thence  Frunds- 
berg pushed  on  to  the  Po,  which  he  crossed  at  Ostiglia,  and 
a  junction  was  effected  on  the  12th  January  not  far  from 
Firenzuola,  with  such  troops  as  the  Duke  of  Bourbon  could 
lead  from  Milan.  The  united  army,  on  the  22nd  February, 
20,000  strong,  received  the  welcome  order  to  take  the  high 
road  to  Rome. 

It  is  possible  that  if  Clement  VII.,  shortly  after  this,  had 
offered  the  generals,  from  his  large  store  of  treasure,  an  ad- 
equate sum  to  satisfy  the  soldiers'  claims,  his  capital  might 
have  remained  unmolested.     But  his  offers  were  marked  by 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  115 

the  niggardly  propensity  of  his  character;  the  generals  had  1527. 
exhausted  all  the  resources  at  their  command  for  liquidating 
the  arrears  of  payment;  and  the  only  means  of  authority 
that  remained  to  them  was  their  personal  influence.  Frunds- 
berg,  in  a  mild  and  rational  address,  tried  to  allay  the  risings 
of  disorder.  But  the  resentment  had  attained  too  high  a 
pitch.  In  reply  to  his  considerate  language  the  cry  "  Gelt, 
Gelt,"  resounded,  and  spears  were  even  levelled  at  himself 
and  officers.  Frundsberg  could  not  bear  this  treatment  from 
his  brave  landsknechts,  who  were  "  his  children,  to  whom  he 
had  been  true  in  success  and  in  distress,"  and  in  the  vehe- 
mence of  his  overwrought  feelings  he  sank  down  upon  a  dram 
in  an  apoplectic  fit.  He  was  unable  to  regain  his  speech  for 
four  days  afterwards;  and  then  the  shock  which  he  had  re- 
ceived was  too  great  for  his  advanced  age  and  worn-out  frame. 
He  was  conveyed  to  Ferrara,  where  he  lingered  for  a  year  and 
some  months. 

This  catastrophe  to  their  chief  stilled  the  tumult,  but  did 
not  stifle  the  ardour,  with  which  the  soldiers  burned  to  gain 
possession  of  the  Holy  City  :  on  the  contrary,  it  seemed  rather 
to  inflame  it.  Bourbon,  who  had  now  the  sole  command, 
made  some  demonstrations  against  Florence;  but  that  city 
was  too  strongly  fortified  to  be  taken  before  the  Duke  of 
Urbino  could  come  to  its  relief;  and  on  the  28th  April, 
after  a  seasonable  supply  of  necessaries  from  the  city  of 
Siena,  which  was  in  alliance  with  the  Emperor,  the  combined 
Spanish  and  German  forces  pressed  on  for  Rome  itself.  On 
the  5th  May,  through  the  mist  of  the  evening,  they  descried 
the  walls  and  towers  of  the  Papal  city.  There  was  no  time 
to  be  lost,  as  the  Duke  of  Urbino  was  already  in  Tuscany. 
Bourbon  accordingly  issued  the  command,  that  early  the 
next  morning  the  army  should  be  ready,  in  battle  array,  to 
commence  the  assault;  and  at  six  o'clock  of  Monday  the 

i  2 


116  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1527.  Gth  May,  under  cover  of  a  dense  fog,  the  soldiers  advanced 
to  escalade  the  walls  round  the  Vatican.  At  first,  the  scaling 
parties  were  repelled;  and  on  seeing  this  Bourbon  himself 
taking  a  ladder  in  his  hand,  applied  it  to  the  wall,  and  ad- 
vanced his  foot  on  the  lowest  round,  when  a  bullet  struck 
him  on  the  ribs  and  precipitated  him  mortally  wounded  into 
the  fosse  beneath.  A  covering  was  hastily  thrown  over  the 
body,  to  conceal  the  loss  from  the  soldiers ;  but  contrary  to 
what  had  been  conjectured,  the  misfortune  becoming  known, 
stimulated  their  courage  to  avenge  their  commander.  The 
parapets  were  now  mounted  on  all  sides,  the  Spaniards  being 
the  first  to  effect  a  successful  lodgment :  and  the  band  of 
defenders  being  greatly  outnumbered  by  their  assailants,  the 
Avhole  line  of  fortifications  rapidly  fell  into  the  hands  of  the 
Imperialists.  After  this  success  they  rested  for  four  hours. 
Towards  nightfall  a  door  leading  across  the  Tiber  was  ob- 
served by  one  of  the  soldiers  to  be  unguarded ;  he  entered  it, 
and  others  followed  him,  and,  pressing  on  without  opposition, 
the  German  and  Spanish  troops  crossed  the  bridges,  which 
were  scarcely  defended,  and  spread  through  all  parts  of  the 
interior  of  the  city.  An  hour  after  sunset  the  Imperialists 
had  possession  of  every  quarter  of  Rome.  Clement  had  fled 
to  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo  only  just  in  time  to  secure  his 
personal  safety ;  but  his  treasures,  as  well  as  the  wealth  of  the 
cardinals,  and  all  the  resources  of  a  capital  famed  for  its  dis-r 
soluteness  and  luxury,  lay  at  the  feet  of  the  victors.  Pillage 
and  brutality  succeeded  to  the  struggle  of  arms.  There  is  no 
tale  of  horror,  either  described  or  conceivable,  which  cannot 
be  matched  by  some  of  the  deeds  that  were  perpetrated  by  the 
sanguinary  Spaniards ;  and  they  were  even  exceeded  in  fero- 
city by  the  Neapolitans.  The  vault  containing  the  remains 
of  Julius  II.  was  torn  open,  and  a  ring  taken  from  the  finger 
of  the   corpse :    the  churches  were   plundered  :    everywhere 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  117 

search  was  made  for  gold :  and  no  pity  shown  to  age  or  sex,  1527. 
Guelph  or  Ghibelin.  Meanwhile  the  German  soldiers  turned 
to  the  harmless  recreation  of  raillery  and  satire.  A  proces- 
sion of  them,  arrayed  in  cardinals'  robes  and  mounted  on 
mules,  wound  their  way  through  the  principal  streets  of  the 
city,  until  they  halted  in  front  of  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo ; 
where  the  representative  of  the  Pontiff,  a  man  of  the  name 
of  Grunwald,  eminent  for  his  lofty  stature  and  majestic  form, 
flourishing  a  large  drinking-cup,  harangued  the  right  reverend 
assemblage  on  the  vices  and  abominations  of  former  Pontiffs ; 
that  he  himself,  unlike  his  predecessors,  would  ever  be  obe- 
dient to  the  Emperor,  and  by  will  would  make  over  the 
See  at  his  death  to  Martin  Luther ;  and  ended  by  requiring, 
in  a  loud  voice,  of  those  present,  if  they  assented  to  what 
he  had  said,  to  signify  their  concurrence  by  raising  their 
hands.  The  whole  crowd  of  soldiers  raised  their  hands,  and 
shouted  with  all  their  might,  "  Long  life  to  Pope  Luther." 
A  representative  of  the  Reformer,  in  the  solemn  garb  of  the 
ecclesiastic  of  Wittenberg,  was  then  paraded  on  the  shoulders 
of  the  cardinals  through  the  streets,  and  conveyed  with  the 
wildest  mirth  and  rejoicing,  to  St.  Peter's  Church  and  the 
palace  of  the  Pontiff. 

When  Charles  heard  the  news  of  the  sack  of  Rome,  he  dis- 
sembled his  joy  at  the  success  of  his  arms ;  he  even  wrote  to 
the  Catholic  princes  to  protest,  that  what  had  occurred  had 
not  proceeded  from  his  orders ;  he  put  himself  and  his  court 
into  mourning,  although  a  son,  afterwards  the  bigoted  Philip 
II.,  had  recently  been  born  to  him ;  and  he  appointed  that 
prayers  should  be  offered  in  all  the  churches,  that  the  Pope 
might  recover  his  liberty.  His  secret  acts  were  in  direct  con- 
tradiction to  these  noisy  protestations.  On  the  15th  June 
Pompeo  Colonna  arrived  in  Rome,  and  took  the  command  of 
the  Imperial  troops,  whose  excesses  were  now  subjected  to 


118  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1527.  some  kind  of  restraint :  and  negotiations  were  opened  with 
Clement,  which  issued  in  the  agreement,  on  his  part,  to  pay 
400,000  ducats  to  the  army,  to  surrender  his  stronghold,  and 
to  give  hostages  in  pledge  of  peace  on  condition  of  regaining 
his  liberty,  when  these  articles  of  submission  had  been  fulfilled. 
But  before  the  time  of  his  stipulated  liberation  arrived,  he 
managed  to  effect  his  escape  in  the  disguise  of  a  merchant. 
The  old  amity  was,  not  long  afterwards,  restored  between 
Pope  and  Emperor,  and  Clement  was  united  to  Charles  more 
firmly  than  ever,  by  the  conviction  that  the  retention  of 
Florence  by  his  own  family  was  dependent  on  his  will;  but 
the  Imperial  letters  to  the  Pope  and  Cardinals,  impressions  of 
which  were  struck  off  by  thousands,  and  were  everywhere  cir- 
culated, and  all  the  circumstances  attending  the  sack  of 
Home,  following  just  upon  the  first  Diet  of  Spires,  gave  an 
impetus  to  the  Keformation  such  as  perhaps  could  hardly  have 
resulted  from  any  other  concatenation  of  events.  a  Rome," 
Luther  wrote,  "  has  been  miserably  laid  waste,  Christ  so  truly 
reigning,  that  the  Emperor,  wishing  to  persecute  Luther,  has 
been  compelled  to  prostrate  not  Luther  but  the  Pope.  All 
things  obey  Christ,  for  the  safety  of  his  people  and  the  de- 
struction of  his  adversaries." 

But  the  Reformer  had  small  leisure  to  contemplate  the  turns 
in  the  tide  of  politics ;  his  element  was  action,  doing,  or  en- 
during. He  was  now  called  upon  to  approve  his  faith  in  God 
in  his  own  sufferings,  in  the  prospect  of  death.  For  some 
time  the  melancholy  to  which  he  was  subject — the  cause  of 
which  he  declared  was  quite  preternatural — had  preyed  upon 
him,  when,  on  the  morning  of  the  6th  July,  he  felt  exceed- 
ingly depressed,  and  "  a  stroke  from  Satan"  weighed  him  to  the 
ground.  In  this  condition  he  sent  his  servant  Wolfgang  to  call 
Bugenhagen,  who  promptly  obeyed  the  summons,  and  found 
him  in  company  with  Kate,  but  more  composed  than  he  had 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  119 

anticipated.  Luther  took  his  friend  apart  into  his  study,  and,  1527. 
when  they  were  alone,  opened  his  sorrows  at  some  length,  and 
requested  to  be  allowed  to  make  confession  of  his  sins.  This 
he  did ;  and  Bugenhagen  pronounced  the  absolution ;  after 
which  Luther  asked  him  to  offer  up  prayer  in  his  behalf,  and 
Luther  also  prayed  himself.  He  expressed  to  his  friend  his 
resignation  to  the  divine  will,  and  spoke  of  the  trials,  little 
suspected  by  his  adversaries,  which  he  endured  from  the  buf- 
fetings  of  Satan,  and  solicited  that  Bugenhagen  would  admi- 
nister the  sacrament  to  him  the  next  day — Sunday.  The 
conversation  was  protracted  till  the  hour  of  dinner  had  nearly 
arrived,  when  Bugenhagen,  hoping  to  dissipate  the  apprehen- 
sions which  clouded  Luther's  spirits,  reminded  him  of  an  en- 
gagement they  had  both  made  to  dine  with  some  noblemen, 
and  urged  him  to  keep  the  appointment.  Luther  accord- 
ingly went  with  him;  and  at  dinner-time  the  flow  of  his 
spirits  seemed  returned,  and  his  humour  and  vivacity  were  the 
life  of  the  entertainment.  After  dinner,  about  twelve  o'clock, 
however,  he  retired,  and  walked  with  Dr.  Jonas  in  his  garden 
for  two  hours,  conversing  on  a  variety  of  subjects,  and  labour- 
ing by  such  means  to  obtain  some  relief  from  his  depression. 
He  left  Jonas  after  extracting  the  promise  that  he  would  be 
his  guest,  together  with  his  wife,  at  supper  in  the  evening. 
Returning  to  Kate,  he  laid  himself  down  to  get  some  repose, 
and  was  resting  on  his  bed,  when  the  guests  came  in  at  five 
o'clock.  He  rose  to  partake  of  supper  with  them,  but  com- 
plained of  a  singular  sensation  in  the  left  ear  and  down  the  left 
back — a  kind  of  roaring,  like  the  rushing  of  the  sea — which  he 
knew  to  be  a  precursor  of  an  entire  prostration  of  strength. 
A  fainting  fit  came  upon  him,  and  he  was  obliged  to  leave 
the  apartment  and  return  to  his  bed,  Jonas  accompanying 
him,  whilst  Kate  stayed  behind  for  a  moment  to  give  direc- 
tions to  the  servant.     In  his  bedroom  he  again  fainted  away, 


120  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1527.  and  called  to  Jonas  to  give  him  water,  or  he  must  die.  Jonas 
threw  some  cold  water  on  his  face  and  neck.  Believing  his 
hour  to  be  come,  Luther  turned  to  his  God  in  earnest  prayer, 
and  repeated  the  sixth  Psalm,  expressing  occasionally  his  re- 
signation. "Thy  will,  O  Lord,  be  done/'  When  Kate 
entered,  she  was  horror-struck  at  her  husband's  deathly 
pallid  countenance,  and  sent  the  maidservant  to  hasten  the 
physician,  and  meanwhile  laboured  to  infuse  animation  by 
rubbing  his  limbs  and  administering  cordials.  Bugenhagen 
also  was  sent  for,  and  arrived  about  six  o'clock.  He  found 
Luther,  as  he  informs  us,"*  in  bed,  crying  out,  first  in  Latin 
and  then  in  German,  to  God  and  to  Christ,  commending,  in 
the  near  prospect  of  dissolution,  the  holy  Gospel  to  the  Most 
High,  and  regretting  that  he  had  not  been  found  worthy  to 
suffer  in  its  behalf,  but  comforting  himself  with  the  reflection 
that  neither  had  the  beloved  Apostle  been  admitted  to  this  pri- 
vilege, although  St.  John  had  written  a  far  more  powerful  book 
against  Popery  than  ever  he  had.  Bugenhagen  exhorted  him 
to  join  with  them  in  supplication  that  he  might  yet  be  spared  to 
render  consolation  to  others.  Luther  replied  that  death  to 
him  would  be  gain ;  but  his  continuance  in  the  flesh  might 
be  advantageous  to  others.  "  Gracious  God,"  he  added, 
"thy  will  be  done."  Then,  apprehensive  that  his  enemies 
would  circulate  the  calumny  after  his  decease,  that  in  his  last 
moments  he  had  retracted  his  doctrines,  he  called  upon  those 
present  to  bear  witness  to  his  solemn  asseveration  that  he 
fully  believed  all  that  he  had  taught ;  nay,  knew  that  what  he 
had  written  and  preached  on  faith,  love,  the  Cross,  and  the 
Sacraments,  was  the  plain  truth.  He  went  on  to  speak  of 
the  censures  heaped  on  him  by  many,  for  his  harsh  and  bitter 


*  See  his  account,  followed  by  that  of  Jonas,  Walch.  XXI.,  pp.  159* 
—175*. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  121 

writings  against  the  Papists  and  Fanatics ;  but  protested  that  1527. 
whatever  he  had  written  against  them  had  been  from  love 
to  their  souls,  and  for  their  real  good :  he  had  intended  to 
write  more  against  them,  "  the  dear  God,  however,  had  de- 
termined otherwise  respecting  him."  After  praying  with  the 
utmost  fervour,  he  turned  to  Kate,  assured  her  that  let  the 
licentious  world  scoff  as  it  might,  she  was  his  true  and  right- 
ful wife,  and  exhorted  her  to  put  her  trust  in  God,  and  make 
his  word  her  guide.  Whilst  warm  blankets  and  cushions 
were  applied  to  his  chest  and  feet,  he  inquired,  "  Where  is 
Johnny  ?  "  The  child  was  brought  and  smiled  on  his  father, 
on  which  Luther  exclaimed  that  he  commended  him  and  his 
mother  to  God.  His  possessions  only  amounted,  he  said,  to 
a  few  silver  drinking-cups ;  but  he  was  persuaded  God  would 
provide  for  his  beloved  Kate,  and  for  dearest  Johnny;  and 
he  gave  his  Will  into  Kate's  hands.  It  was  as  follows  : — "  I 
thank  thee,  my  all-dear  God,  from  the  heart,  that  thou  hast 
made  me  poor  and  a  beggar  upon  earth :  I  have  no  house, 
fields,  money,  or  property  to  bequeath  to  my  wife  and  child. 
Thou  hast  given  these  to  me,  to  thee  therefore  I  restore  them. 
Thou  rich,  faithful  God,  feed,  teach,  preserve  them,  even  as 
thou  hast  fed,  taught,  and  preserved  me,  thou  Father  of  the 
fatherless  and  Judge  of  the  widow."  With  great  presence  of 
mind  Kate  suppressed  every  exhibition  of  her  alarm,  and  with 
serene  countenance  answered  that  she  trusted  God  would  yet 
restore  him,  not  only  for  the  sake  of  herself  and  child,  but  of 
the  many  Christians  who  still  needed  his  counsel.  Soon  after 
this  he  fell  into  a  profound  sleep;  a  profuse  perspiration 
spread  over  his  frame,  and  when  he  awoke  the  next  morning 
the  malady  was  gone,  leaving  only  extreme  weakness  behind 
it.  He  was  even  so  much  relieved  as  to  be  able  to  rise  from 
his  bed  in  the  evening,  and  partake  of  supper  with  his  friends. 
Four  days   later   he  wrote  to  Spalatin :  "  My  strength  had 


122  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1527.  completely  sunk ;  I  had  no  hope,  but  expected  to  die  in  the 
arms  of  my  wife  and  friends :  but  the  Lord  in  mercy  has 
raised  me  up  speedily.  Pray  the  Lord  never  to  forsake  his 
sinful  servant." 

The  effects  of  this  illness  were  for  a  long  time  felt  by 
Luther ;  and,  in  consequence  of  the  incapacitated  state  of  his 
head,  he  was  compelled  to  keep  "  a  long  holiday  from  reading 
and  writing."  His  spirits  were  still  depressed  :  but  there  is 
a  cheering  entry  in  a  letter  dated  the  13th  July.  "The 
visitation  has  begun.  Eight  days  ago  Jerome  Schurff  and 
Philip  set  out  on  that  mission.  May  Christ  direct  them  ! 
Amen!"  In  a  letter  to  Melancthon,  of  the  2nd  August,  he 
refers  to  his  dreadful  sickness.  "  He  seemed  to  have  lost 
Christ,"  he  said,  "  and  was  driven  about  with  waves  and 
storms  of  despair,  and  blasphemy  against  God ;  and  was  thus 
laid  in  death  and  hell  for  more  than  a  week."  The  final 
attack  of  the  malady  had  been  so  terrible,  that  he  was  still 
trembling  in  every  limb  after  the  storm  was  past.  In  answer, 
however,  to  the  prayers  of  his  saints,  God  had  delivered  him 
from  the  nethermost  hell.  "  The  plague,"  he  adds,  "  is  truly 
here,  but  we  trust  it  will  be  mild." 

Indeed,  Wittenberg  soon  became  a  deserted  city.  The  Uni- 
versity and  Professors  took  wing  to  Jena  by  the  Elector's 
command;  the  magistrates  quitted  the  pestilential  circle; 
commerce,  and  all  business  transactions  were  interrupted; 
even  Dr.  Jonas,  in  whom  more  firmness  might  have  been  ex- 
pected, fled  to  Nordhausen  with  his  family,  leaving  a  son 
plague-stricken,  who  subsequently  died.  Luther  and  Bugen- 
hagen,  with  the  deacons,  were  left  alone  to  perform  all  that 
zeal  and  piety  could  dictate  for  those  who  yet  remained  in 
their  homes.  If  any  one  could  have  justly  advanced  the  plea 
of  recent  sickness  and  debilitated  health  for  retiring  out  of 
reach  of  danger,  it  was  Luther;  but  he  proved  himself  the  last 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  123 

to  listen  to  the  counsel  of  timidity  in  preference  to  the  voice  of  1527. 
duty.  His  little  son  and  Kate,  who  was  again  advanced  in 
pregnancy,  remained  with  him ;  and  even  their  danger  did 
not  appal  the  father  and  husband,  so  rooted  was  his  faith  in 
God.  On  the  10th  August  the  Elector  addressed  an  earnest 
entreaty  to  Luther  to  provide  for  his  own  safety  and  that  of 
his  household,  by  quitting  Wittenberg;  but  he  returned  a 
decided  answer  in  the  negative.  Strong  in  the  protection  of 
Heaven,  he  was  amongst  the  sick  and  the  dying,  offering  con- 
solation, or  administering  the  sacred  elements.  The  plague  at 
length  invaded  his  own  dwelling :  three  young  women  in  the 
convent  were  struck  with  it,  one  of  them  with  such  severity, 
that  her  life  was  long  despaired  of :  but  Luther  and  his  imme- 
diate family  altogether  escaped  the  contagion.  All  trade 
being  suspended,  it  was  difficult  to  obtain  the  necessary  sup- 
plies of  life ;  and  in  this  exigency  the  Reformer  applied  to 
the  Elector,  from  whom  he  received  this  kind  answer: — 
"  Dear  Doctor,  take  anything  of  mine  you  like."  The  only 
composition  of  any  account  which  proceeded  from  Luther's 
pen  during  the  whole  of  this  sickly  autumn,  was  a  brief  pro- 
duction which  he  was  requested  to  write  by  some  of  the 
clergy  of  Breslau  in  elucidation  of  the  question,  "  How  far 
it  may  be  allowable  for  a  Christian  to  fly  from  the  plague." 
He  insisted  that,  to  avoid  danger  was  not  only  justifiable  but  a 
duty,  unless  a  higher  duty  demanded  the  boldly  encountering 
it.  He  corresponded  regularly  with  Dr.  Jonas,  and  repeated 
again  and  again  the  assurance  that  the  violence  and  spread  of 
the  pestilence  were  greatly  exaggerated.  The  depression  of  his 
spirits  was  much  augmented  by  the  pusillanimity  which  he 
witnessed  on  all  sides,  and  he  never  doubted  that  the  malice 
of  Satan  was  at  the  bottom  of  the  rumours  and  the  apprehen- 
sions which  were  robbing  of  its  students  that  University  which 
the  arch-fiend  had  "  most  reason  to  hate  of  all  upon  the  face 


124  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1527.  of  the  whole  earth ;"  and  he  complained  with  deep  dejection 
that  even  "  where  the  devil  could  not  reign  by  death,  he  yet 
reigned  by  the  fear  of  death." 

In  the  midst  of  these  trials,  the  replies  of  Zwingle  and 
GEcolampadius  to  his  work  against  the  Enthusiasts  reached 
his  hands ;  and  somewhat  later  Erasmus's  two  books,  entitled, 
"  Hyperaspistes  :  *'  "  Hyperasp,"  or  "  Hyper- viper/'  Luther 
called  them.  A  letter  from  Zwingle,  "  in  very  fierce  style," 
preceded  his  treatise.  And  from  the  letter  Luther  turned  to 
the  tract;  but  up  to  the  10th  November  he  had  only  read  a 
few  pages.  The  other  productions  he  did  not  even  open  at 
present.  It  afforded  him,  however,  pleasure  that  the  sarcas- 
tic bitterness  of  Erasmus  was  beginning  to  unclose  the  eyes 
of  many  who  had  persisted  in  praising  the  scholar  of  Rot- 
terdam, and  amongst  others  of  Dr.  Jonas,  to  the  spirit  which 
really  animated  him,  and  in  this  gratification  Kate  partici- 
pated with  lively  sympathy. 

A  more  welcome  and  encouraging  sound  than  the  din  of 
controversy  were  the  prayers  of  patient  resignation  and  ex- 
ulting faith  poured  forth  by  martyrs,  together  with  their  life's 
blood,  in  the  cause  of  Christ.  On  the  16th  August  Leonhard 
Caesar,  who  had  been  for  some  months  imprisoned  at  Passau — 
where,  in  a  public  dispute  with  Eck,  he  had  persevered  in 
maintaining  the  doctrines  of  Scripture — being  taken  to 
Scherdingen,  the  place  of  his  birth,  was  burnt  at  the  stake,  cry- 
ing with  his  last  breath,  "  I  am  thine,  Jesu,  save  me  ! "  "  What 
am  I,  wretched  man  ?  "  Luther  exclaimed,  on  welcoming  the 
news ;  "  a  wordy  preacher  compared  with  this  mighty  doer  !  " 
Cologne,  too,  had  its  martyrs  by  the  inquisitorial  zeal  of 
Egmond  and  Hochstraten ;  and  Luther  composed  a  hymn  in 
memory  of  their  constancy.  George  Winkler,  who  had  been 
summoned  to  answer  before  the  Cardinal  of  Mentz  for  his 
tenets,  after  dismissal  from  the  Archbishop's  tribunal,  being 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  125 

put  on  the  horse  of  the  court  fool,  and  made  to  start  on  his  1527. 
journey  homewards  without  an  attendant,  was   set  upon  by 
ruffiaus  in  a  wood,  near  Asehaffenburg,  and  murdered.     This 
dark  tragedy  had  occurred  at  the  end  of  May ;  it  drew  from 
Luther  a  brief  consolatory  epistle   in   the   autumn   to   the 
people  of  Halle,  where  Winkler  had  been  preacher,  in  which 
he  prayed  that  "  the  murdered  blood,  like  Abel's,  might  call 
from  the  ground  to  God  for  vengeance ;  or  rather,  like  divine 
seed  shed  by  wicked  hands,  might  start  up  into  life,  instead 
of  one  murdered  George  a  hundred  preachers  of  the  Gospel." 
"  The  world,"   he  said,   "  is  a  tavern  of  which  Satan  is  the 
landlord,  and  the  sign  over  the  doorway  is  Murder  and  Lying." 
Meantime  the  plague  was  spreading  consternation  at  Wit- 
tenberg.   In  the  fishermen's  suburb  the  fatality  was  greatest ; 
but  in  all,  up  to  the  19th  August,  there  were  only  eighteen 
deaths,  men,  women,  and  children.  Very  few  grown-up  persons 
fell  victims  to  it,  and  so  far  only  two  are  mentioned,  the  wife 
of  Tilo  Dene,  who  expired  almost  in  Luther's  arms,  and  the 
sister  of  Eberhard,  the  ex-prior.     The  spiritual  dejection  of 
Luther — driven  as  it  were  more  deeply  into  his  soul  by  the 
dispersion  of  the  University,  the  translation  of  the  Prophets 
being  at  a  stand-still,  and  the  Word  of  God  hindered  in  its 
course — attended   him   as   he   roamed  the   abandoned   city, 
visited  the  sick,  and  cheered  the  timid.     "  Satan,"  he  wrote 
to  Agricola,  ' '  is  raging  against  me  with  all  his  force :  the 
Lord  has  set  me  as  a  sign  like  another  Job.     My  hope  is, 
that  my  agony  has  reference  to  others  besides  myself,  although 
there  is  no  evil  which  my  own  sins  have  not  deserved;  my 
life  is,  that  I  know  I  have  taught  Christ's  Word  purely  and 
sincerely,  and  this  vexes  Satan.     I  know  the  tyrants  of  this 
world  will  not  touch  me;  others  will  be  slain,  and  burnt  for 
the  testimony  of  Christ;  but  I  shall  undergo  spiritual  and 
worse  tortures  from  the  prince  of  this  world  himself."     (t  May 


126  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1527.  the  rumour  of  pestilence,"  he  wrote  to  another,  "  meet  Christ 
the  great  physician,  so  that  our  friends  may  again  assemble 
to  fulfil  our  important  task."  On  the  19th  October  the  in- 
telligence communicated  to  Jonas  was,  that  up  to  that  date 
no  more  than  fifteen  had  died  out  of  more  than  a  hundred 
cases  of  plague  in  the  hospital,  and  that  of  forty-eight  patients 
whom  Dr.  Bohem  had  received  under  his  care,  in  the  plague, 
only  eight  had  died.  "You  see  that  prayers  to  Christ  are 
not  void."  The  bulletin  of  the  1st  November,  sent  to 
Amsdorf,  was  less  satisfactory.  Lnther's  house  had  been 
turned  into  a  hospital.  Three  young  women,  residing  in 
the  convent,  had  been  seized  with  the  plague;  one  of  them, 
Margaret  Mochinna,  was  labouring  under  a  very  violent 
attack;  Kate,  too,  was  near  her  confinement,  and  Johnny 
had  eaten  nothing  for  three  days,  from  the  pain  of  teething. 
The  wife  of  George,  the  Chaplain  or  Deacon,  who  was  ex- 
pecting her  confinement,  was  just  struck  with  the  pestilence. 
"  Battles  without  and  fears  within,"  Luther  said ;  "  but 
Christ  visits  us."  The  mighty  christian  spirit,  who  was 
the  support  of  the  tried  at  this  conjuncture,  was  himself 
sorely  beset  with  spiritual  temptations  :  "  like  Job  or  Peter, 
tossed  by  Satan ;"  but  he  added,  "  May  Christ  say  to  the 
tempter,  '  Touch  not  his  life ;'  and  to  me,  '  I  am  thy  salva- 
tion/" In  this  state  of  things,  however,  he  looked  beyond 
present  trials,  and  burned  to  write  again  against  the  Sacra- 
mentarians;  but,  immediately  feeling  his  bodily  weakness, 
relinquished  the  project.  His  great  comfort,  as  he  reiterates 
in  his  correspondence,  was,  "We  have  the  Word  of  God,  a 
shield  against  Satan  :"  and  with  fervent  gratitude  for  what 
that  word  had  already  achieved,  he  dates  a  letter  to  Amsdorf, 
"  Wittenberg,  All  Saints  Day,  the  Tenth  Anniversary  since 
Indulgences  were  trampled  underfoot." 

Three  days  later  the  tidings  conveyed  to  Jonas  were,  that 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  127 

the  wife  of  George  the  Chaplain,  struck  with  the  pestilence,  1527. 
had  been  prematurely  in  labour:  the  child  was  dead;  and 
she  had  followed  it — "in  hearty  faith  departed  to  Christ." 
This  event  had  diffused  a  general  panic,  and  Bugenhagen  and 
his  wife  had  taken  up  their  quarters  with  Luther  and  Kate, 
in  the  convent,  in  order  that  the  two  pastors'  families  might 
mutually  aid  and  solace  one  another.  Kate  was  still  "firm 
in  faith;"  but  Johnny  continued  ill,  and  the  cause  of  his 
malady  was  dubious.  Beyond  the  convent  walls,  however, 
the  intelligence  was  more  cheering.  In  the  fishermen's 
suburb  the  plague  had  exhausted  its  force,  and  marriages 
were  recommencing ;  but  even  this  improvement,  it  was  feared, 
might  be  delusive,  for  eight  days  earlier  the  plague  had  seemed 
spent,  when  it  suddenly  returned  with  a  change  of  wind,  and 
twelve  deaths  occurred  in  one  day.  A  few  days  later,  how- 
ever, the  state  of  things  was  much  improved,  and  Margaret 
Mochinna  was  getting  better ;  but  Luther  was  very  anxious 
on  Kate's  account,  and  Johnny  was  "  so  ill  that  he  could  only 
ask  for  Dr.  Jonas'  prayers."  "  I  trust,"  Luther  said,  pouring 
out  his  heart  to  his  friend,  "  that  we  shall  yet  be  together 
again,  and  finish  the  version  of  Ecclesiastes.  I  deem  myself 
the  last  of  men.  Would  that  Erasmus  and  the  Sacramenta- 
rians  could  for  one  quarter  of  an  hour  feel  the  misery  of  my 
heart !  I  could  say  for  certain  they  would  be  sincerely  con- 
verted and  made  whole.  How  my  enemies  persecute  him 
whom  God  hath  smitten !  But  it  cannot  be  but  that  one 
whom  the  world  and  its  Prince  so  hates  is  pleasing  to  Christ. 
May  Christ,  whom  I  have  purely  taught  and  confessed,  be 
my  rock  and  strength."  "It  is  no  common  soldier  of 
his  troop,  but  the  captain  of  devils  himself,"  he  wrote  to 
Hausmann,  "  who  has  risen  against  me."  "  As  for  what  the 
world  may  be  about,  the  Pope,  the  Emperor,  and  the  Kings, 
I  care  not,"  he  said  to  Link ;  "  I  am  sighing  for  Christ  and 


128  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1527.  his  grace.  Satan  would  have  me  never  write  again,  but 
descend  with  him  to  hell.  May  Christ  trample  him  under- 
foot, Amen."  On  the  29th  November,  Luther  addressed  a 
letter  to  Jonas,  informing  him  that  the  plague  had  nearly 
disappeared,  marriages  were  again  solemnized,  and  business 
was  beginning  to  resume  its  ordinary  routine.  Margaret 
Mochinna,  it  was  hoped,  would  recover;  but  as  yet  her 
hearing  had  not  returned,  and  she  could  only  speak  with 
great  difficulty.  The  wife  of  John  the  Chaplain,  Luther  had 
placed  in  Jonas'  house,  as  that  quarter  of  the  town  was  free 
from  the  pestilence ;  and  the  fate  of  the  wife  of  George,  her 
husband's  associate,  had  impressed  her  mind  with  the  deepest 
alarm.  But,  if  the  plague  should  break  out  in  that  quarter, 
he  promised  Jonas  to  remove  her  immediately  from  the  asylum 
which  his  empty  house  had  afforded.  The  intelligence  of  the 
10th  December  reported  that  only  two  cases  of  plague  re- 
mained in  the  hospital,  and  they  had  ceased  to  be  serious : 
Margaret  Mochinna  was  recovering ;  but,  as  it  were  in  ransom 
for  the  lives  of  the  household,  the  pestilence  had  destroyed 
five  pigs  of  the  convent :  nothing  had  been  heard  of  the  plague 
for  two  months  in  the  fishermen's  district ;  the  students 
were  even  beginning  to  return,  and  Jerome  Schurff  was 
expected  by  Christmas. 

On  the  day  of  such  joyful  tidings  a  daughter,  who  received 
the  name  of  Elizabeth,  was  born  to  Luther,  at  10  o'clock  in 
the  morning,  and  both  the  infant  and  the  mother  seemed  pro- 
tected from  above.  "  Glory  and  praise,"  he  exclaimed,  "  be  to 
my  Father  in  heaven,  Amen."  Johnny  too  was  well  again, 
and  in  high  good-humour.  Four  days  later  the  plague  was 
pronounced  to  have  disappeared  totally  :  but  Luther's  spiritual 
trials  were  of  a  more  inveterate  nature,  and  he  continued  to 
disclose  his  anguish  to  his  friends.  "  I  have  hurt  Satan  by  many 
books,  and  therefore  he  rages  against  me ;  but  let  him  rage 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  129 

against  Christ,  who  has  really  hurt  him,  through  me,  his  1527. 
weakest  vessel."  "I  seem  to  hang  to  Christ  by  a  thread, 
but  Satan  is  drawing  me  to  him  with  a  cable."  His  health 
was  now  so  far  re-established,  that  he  could  once  more  employ 
it  in  completing  his  commentary  on  Zechariah,  which  his  ter- 
rible illness  had  interrupted  when  it  was  only  half  accom- 
plished. He  intended  to  have  this  commentary  published 
before  the  Leipsic  fair;  and  then  to  exert  all  his  powers 
against  the  Sacramentarians  in  a  second  and  final  confutation. 
He  also  "challenged"  the  Anabaptists  in  a  brief  epistle. 
The  arguments  against  the  Sacramentarians  and  the  Ana- 
baptists were  adapted  to  the  understanding  of  the  simpler 
sort,  who  were  particularly  obnoxious  to  the  plausibility  of 
their  rationalistic  tenets. 

At  the  end  of  November,  when  the  virulence  of  the  plague 
had  spent  itself,  Luther  left  Wittenberg  for  a  short  time,  and 
repaired  to  Torgau,  to  the  Electoral  palace.  The  object  of 
this  visit  was  to  adjust  some  difference  which  had  arisen 
between  Melancthon  on  one  side,  and  Agricola  on  the  other, 
in  regard  to  "  The  Visitation  Articles,"  framed  by  the  pen 
of  Philip,  and  comprising,  together  with  the  formula  of  public 
worship,  instructions  to  the  ministers  in  regard  to  what  they 
should  teach  the  people.  Agricola  objected  to  these  "Articles," 
that  Melancthon  had  contradicted  in  them  one  of  Luther's 
foremost  principles,  that  Repentance  must  proceed  from  love 
to  God  and  not  from  fear ;  and  he  complained  also  that  the 
law  of  Moses  was  prescribed  to  be  rehearsed  to  the  people, 
although  Christians  were  no  longer  under  the  Law.  Melanc- 
thon replied  that  Repentance  included  in  it  both  fear  and 
love,  fear  of  God's  wrath  on  account  of  sin,  ending  in  the 
acceptance  of  Christ's  salvation  and  the  consequent  love  of 
the  Saviour;  and,  as  to  the  Ten  Commandments  not  being 
obligatory  on  Christians,  there  was  not  one  of  them  which 

VOL.  II.  K 


130  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1527.  had  not  been  re-established  and  enforced  by  the  Saviour  and 
his  Apostles,  and  therefore  the  Decalogue  supplied  a  concise 
and  comprehensive  summary  of  a  Christian's  duty.  Luther 
was  well  aware  that  personal  conceit  and  jealousy  of  Philip 
lay  at  the  root  of  Agricola's  strictures ;  he  had  himself  pre- 
viously examined  the  Visitation  Book  and  given  it  his  ap- 
proval; he  listened  accordingly,  together  with  Bugenhagen, 
with  great  patience  to  what  was  advanced  on  both  sides,  and 
then  gave  an  interpretation  of  his  own  meaning  in  his  state- 
ments as  to  Repentance  and  Faith,  which  satisfied  both 
parties :  and  having  thus  effected  a  peaceful  settlement,  for 
the  present  at  least,  on  the  subjects  of  debate,  he  returned  to 
Wittenberg. 

The  plague  which  had  desolated  Wittenberg,  and  swept 
through  the  Reformer's  dwelling,  without  being  permitted  to 
destroy  life,  had  visited  some  other  towns  with  greater  fury ; 
and  at  Dresden,  Emser,  the  Papist  champion,  had  fallen  a 
victim  to  it  in  November,  after  publishing  in  the  preceding 
August  a  version  of  the  New  Testament  in  opposition  to 
Luther's,  stolen  piecemeal  in  reality  for  the  most  part  from 
the  latter.  To  this  version  Duke  George  had  prefixed  a  preface, 
replete  with  abuse  of  Luther  and  the  Elector ;  and  the  Re- 
former was  meditating  a  reply  to  it,  when  the  death  of  Emser 
stayed  his  hand.  The  loss  of  his  Professor  was  much  felt  by 
the  Duke,  who  installed  Cochlaeus,  a  worthy  successor,  in 
the  vacant  chair.  But,  besides  the  contagion  of  pestilence, 
the  season  had  everywhere  been  sickly.  Spalatin  had  been 
seriously  ill,  and  Duke  George  himself  was  ailing. 

Among  the  fugitives,  driven  by  the  dread  of  the  plague  from 
the  neighbourhood  of  Wittenberg,  was  Carlstadt;  but  before 
this  he  had  distinctly  and  openly  returned  to  his  sacramenta- 
rian  errors,  which,  it  would  seem,  he  had  never  in  reality  re- 
linquished,   but  had   hypocritically  dissembled;    for   in  the 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  131 

statement  which  he  gave  to  Chancellor  Brack  of  his  doctrinal  1527. 
sentiments,  and  the  arguments  by  which  he  supported  them, 
mention  occurs  of  the  composition  having  occupied  him 
a  whole  year.  Luther  remarks,  in  his  correspondence  about 
the  end  of  October,  "For  some  weeks  Carlstadt  has  been 
absent  from  his  place;  let  him  go  to  his  own  place,  for 
no  kindness  can  reclaim  him."  But  as  yet  the  ex-professor 
had  no  intention  of  quitting  the  Saxon  territory  :  he  returned 
towards  the  close  of  November,  when  Luther,  in  a  courteous 
and  even  kind  letter,  made  a  fresh  overture  to  him  for  recon- 
ciliation, pointing  his  attention  to  the  feeble  ground  of  sylla- 
bles and  letters  on  which  his  reasoning  was  built.  But  this 
elicited  no  direct  reply  from  Carlstadt;  and,  on  the  28th 
November,  Luther  writes,  "We  have  been  nourishing  him 
thus  far  in  our  bosom  in  the  hope  that  he  would  return  to 
the  right  way ;  but  the  wretched  man  grows  more  hardened 
day  by  day."  The  following  year,  however,  Carlstadt  made 
his  answer  to  Luther's  letter,  not  in  a  direct  way,  but  in  an 
epistle  to  his  friends  and  allies,  Crautwald  and  Swenkfeld, 
written  in  a  vein  of  excessive  vanity,  in  which,  in  an  air  of 
triumphant  superiority,  he  ridiculed  some  of  Luther's  asser- 
tions,* and  thanked  God  that  he  had  "given  him  such  a 
sharp  pen."  This  conduct  the  Reformer  regarded  as  mean 
and  unmanly,  and,  being  much  incensed  by  it,  sent  word 
to  Carlstadt  that  for  the  time  to  come  he  must  renounce 
all  discussion  or  communication  with  him.  Carlstadt,  in 
reply,  entered  a  complaint  with  the  Elector  against  Luther's 
treatment  of  him  in  a  letter  to  Chancellor  Bruck,  and 
craved  the  protection  of  the  Saxon  Court;  but  as  it  ap- 
peared that  he  had  broken  the  promise  on  which  a  return 
to    Saxony  had  been  granted  him,  not  only  by  his  letter 

*  "  This  Luther,"  he  wrote,  "  says  that  we  drink  forgiveness  of  sins 
out  of  the  cup.     Oho ! " 

k  2 


132  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEK. 

1527.  to  Swenkfeld,  but  by  the  secret  publication  of  other  con- 
troversial writings,  the  Court  was  meditating  measures  of 
a  more  stringent  nature,  and  was  deliberating  on  retaining 
him  in  Saxony  under  a  species  of  custody,  to  prevent  the  dis- 
semination of  his  noxious  principles.  But  whilst  this  was  in 
contemplation  Carlstadt  himself,  towards  the  winter  of  1528, 
broke  up  camp  for  good,  and  secretly  betook  himself  to 
Schleswig  Holstein,  to  raise,  as  Luther  and  Melancthon  ap- 
prehended, ' '  some  new  tragedy  there."  The  authorities,  how- 
ever, were  on  their  guard,  and  drove  him  beyond  the  boundaries. 
The  remainder  of  Carlstadt' s  history  may  be  best  added  in  this 
place.  In  the  spring  of  1529  he  turned  his  wandering  steps 
to  Friesland,  and  sent  for  his  wife  from  Saxony,  who  mean- 
while had  found  in  Luther  her  chief  friend  and  support,  and 
who  now  made  application  through  him  to  the  Court  that  her 
husband  might  again  be  permitted  to  return  to  Saxony.  This 
application  was  rejected;  and  then  Carlstadt  directed  his 
fugitive  steps  to  Switzerland,  where,  in  a  country  of  religious 
sentiments  congenial  to  his  own,  a  cordial  reception  greeted 
him :  he  first  went  to  Zurich,  and  was  made  dean  of  the 
Cathedral  Church  by  Zwingle.  After  Zwingle's  death  he 
removed  to  Basle,  where  he  preached  in  St.  Peter's  Church, 
and  was  installed  in  a  professor's  chair,  and  died  there  on 
Christmas  Day,  1541. 

The  plague  having  disappeared,  and  Luther's  health  being 
re-established,  he  returned  to  his  writings  with  the  fullest 
determination  to  make  amends  for  lost  time ;  and,  before  the 
close  of  1527,  his  Commentary  on  Zechariah  was  published. 

1528.  Before  the  5th  February  of  the  next  year  his  "  Epistle  against 
the  Anabaptists,  or  Katabaptists,"  as  he  denominated  them, 
"  written  with  a  good  deal  of  haste,"  made  its  appearance ; 
and  about  the  same  time  the  Visitation  Articles,  composed, 
as  has  been  said,  originally  by  Melancthon,  but  increased  by 


THE    LIFE    OF    MAltTIN    LUTHER.  133 

additions  from  Luther's  pen  on  matrimonial  questions,  and  1528. 
the  communion  in  both  kinds,  were  in  the  press,  but  delayed 
by  scarcity  of  paper.  In  March,  just  in  time  for  the  Frank- 
fort fair,  his  "  Great  Confession,"*  in  opposition  to  the  Sacra- 
mentarian  tenets,  was  given  to  the  public;  and  about  the 
same  period  his  "  Sermons  on  the  Book  of  Genesis"  were 
published,  which  had  been  taken  down  from  his  lips  by  some 
of  his  audience,  and  then  submitted  to  him  for  revisal.  One 
of  the  principal  objects  of  these  discourses  was  to  oppose  the 
fanatical  spirit,  which,  notwithstanding  Munzer's  execution, 
and  the  ruin  of  his  partisans,  was  still  labouring,  as  Luther 
complained,  to  "turn  Christians  into  Jews,  and  to  put  a 
false  interpretation  upon  the  Old  Testament/'  and  which, 
unhappily,  from  the  licentious  principles  which  it  encouraged, 
continued  to  be  on  the  increase  among  the  lower  orders. 
Before  the  end  of  May  the  translation  of  Isaiah  was  progress- 
ing favourably;  before  the  end  of  October  it  was  published. 


*  It  consisted  of  three  parts.  1.  That  the  Sacrarnentarians  have 
never  answered  a  letter  of  his  arguments.  2.  The  statements  of  Scrip- 
ture on  the  subject  of  the  Lord's  Supper.  3.  A  general  confession  of 
his  faith. — Under  this  last  head  he  declared  his  belief  in  the  Trinity ; 
the  Corruption  of  Human  Nature  ;  the  Redemption  by  Christ  applied 
to  the  heart  by  the  Holy  Ghost ;  one  Baptism,  the  virtue  of  which  as 
God's  ordinance  cannot  be  lost,  although  faith  be  wanting ;  the  sacra- 
mental bread  and  wine,  Christ's  very  body  and  blood  to  all  commu- 
nicants, because  God's  ordinance  cannot  be  broken  by  want  of  faith  in 
the  priest  or  people ;  the  Church  the  commonwealth  of  Christians,  not 
only  under  the  Pope,  but  in  all  the  world,  the  one  bride  and  mystical 
body  of  the  one  bridegroom,  Jesus ;  in  that  true  Church  Forgiveness 
of  sins  ;  Papal  Pardons  mere  roguery ;  Prayer  for  the  Dead  condition- 
ally not  sinful;  Purgatory  not  spoken  of  in  Scripture;  Christ  the 
only  Mediator;  Repentance  only  the  "use  and  power  of  Baptism;" 
Images,  surplices,  altar-candles,  &c,  indifferent ;  the  Resurrection  of 
the  just  to  live  for  ever  with  Christ,  and  of  the  unjust  to  die  for  ever 
with  Satan. 


134  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1528.  Rarely  has   the  first  vigour  of  returning  health  been  sub- 
jected to  a  severer  ordeal  of  intellectual  energy. 

With  full  occupation  the  burden  of  spiritual  trials  became 
lighter;  and  on  the  25th  February  Luther  wrote  to  Link, 
"  My  Satan,  by  your  prayers,  is  at  length  more  supportable." 
At  the  close  of  the  year  1527  his  patriotic  solicitude  had  been 
excited  by  the  progress  of  the  Turks,  who,  in  conjunction 
with  the  forces  of  John  Zapolya  the  Woiwode,  and  backed  by 
the  King  of  France,  were  threatening  to  overrun  the  south  of 
Germany.  "The  Turk  is  making  vast  preparations  for  a 
return  to  Hungary,  and  will  shed,  I  fear,  much  German 
blood."  But  shortly  afterwards  an  anxiety  nearer  home 
was  added  to  the  dread  of  the  Ottoman  scimetar.  A  Diet 
had  been  summoned  to  meet  at  Ratisbon  in  the  spring : 
it  was  understood  that  the  Papist  party  were  already  straining 
every  nerve  to  attain  their  aims  by  a  powerful  combination  : 
King  Ferdinand  was  proscribing  heresy  under  every  deno- 
mination throughout  his  kingdoms,  to  the  joy  of  the  bishops ; 
and  a  rupture  with  the  Pontiff  could  not  be  expected  a  second 
time  to  relieve  the  evangelical  cause  from  its  perils  just  when 
they  had  reached  their  height.  At  such  a  conjuncture  even 
the  arms  of  the  Sultan  seemed  to  some  a  seasonable  diversion 
rather  than  an  object  of  terror :  so  that  Luther  indited  a 
treatise  on  the  "War  against  the  Turks,"  to  show  that  he 
at  least  had  no  share  in  such  lack  of  national  spirit  and 
counsels  of  expediency.  "  Satan,"  he  said,  "rages  with  such 
fury  that  I  think  the  day  of  the  saints'  redemption  must 
be  nigh."  On  March  2nd  he  wrote  to  Hausmann,  "The 
threats  of  the  mass-priests  are  very  big  in  expectation  of  the 
Diet  at  Ratisbon.  Pray  diligently  with  your  church  for  the 
princes  of  Germany,  that  God  may  give  them  his  grace." 
But  the  storm  blew  over  for  this  year :  the  sitting  of  the 
National  Council  was  postponed,  not  by  the  Turkish  invasion, 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  135 

but  by  unexpected  events,  which  to  some  judgments  remain  1528. 
to  this  day  involved  in  mystery. 

Otto  Pack,  sprung  from  a  noble  family  in  Misnia,  and  a' 
doctor  of  laws,  was  one  of  the  councillors  of  Duke  George  of 
Saxony,  and  had  sometimes  discharged  the  functions  of  Chan- 
cellor to  the  Court  of  Dresden.  He  had  gone  to  Cassel  in 
1527  on  business  in  connexion  with  the  Count  of  Nassau, 
and  having  gained  the  confidence  of  Philip  of  Hesse,  had  dis- 
closed to  him  a  momentous  treaty,  entered  into  by  Duke 
George  and  his  Popish  partisans,  for  no  less  an  object  than 
the  extermination  of  the  evangelical  doctrines,  and  the  sub- 
version of  the  states  and  princes  who  adhered  to  them.  The 
parties  to  the  league  were  King  Ferdinand,  Albert  of  Mentz, 
Joachim  of  Brandenburg,  the  Archbishop  of  Salzburg,  the 
Bishops  of  Bamberg  and  Wurzburg,  the  Dukes  of  Bavaria, 
and  Duke  George  himself.  The  league  had  been  formed  at 
Breslaw,  and  the  instrument  of  confederation  bore  date  the 
12th  May,  1527.  It  declared  that,  unless  the  Elector  John 
delivered  up  Martin  Luther,  Saxony  and  Thuringia  were  to  be 
occupied  by  King  Ferdinand,  Franconia  by  the  Bishops  of 
Bamberg  and  Wurzburg,  and  Moravia,  Silesia,  and  Lusatia 
by  Duke  George ;  but,  after  the  ends  of  the  confederacy  had 
been  attained,  a  different  partition  of  the  occupied  territories 
was  to  take  place  between  the  combining  parties  for  per- 
manent possession.  And  it  was  set  down  in  the  instrument  of 
compact  what  amount  of  forces  the  several  partisans  should 
contribute.  The  Landgrave's  case  was  made  the  subject  of 
a  special  agreement :  he  was  to  be  forced  to  submission ;  but, 
in  consideration  of  his  youth,  and  the  relationship  in  which 
he  stood  to  Duke  George,  his  dominions  were  to  be  restored  to 
him  on  his  renouncing  the  Lutheran  heresy.  The  obstacle  op- 
posed to  such  a  league  by  the  existing  treaty  of  confraternity 
between  the  Elector  of  Saxony  and  his  near  kinsman  Duke 


13G  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1528.  George  was  considered  and  removed  by  reference  to  the 
terms  of  "the  Saxon  Union,"  which  especially  excepted 
those  cases  in  which  the  Pope  or  Emperor  might  be  con- 
cerned. Pack  assured  Philip  that  if  he  would  pay  a  visit  to 
Dresden,  he  would  place  the  very  instrument  of  federation  in 
his  hands.  And,  on  the  Landgrave's  complying  with  his 
request,  on  the  18th  February,  he  produced  a  copy  of  the 
document,  taken,  as  he  said,  from  the  ducal  chancery,  and 
signed  with  the  name  of  Duke  George,  but  cut  into  strips  and 
inserted  in  another  parchment,  round  which  a  silken  thread 
was  tied,  stamped  with  the  ducal  seal.  Pack  insisted  that 
the  original  instrument  to  the  same  purport  existed,  duly 
signed  and  attested,  but  that  the  seal  of  Duke  George  was 
broken,  which  showed  that  he  had  ceased  to  be  a  party  to  the 
confederation;  and  he  promised,  on  the  payment  of  4000 
florins,  to  procure  this  autograph  itself  for  the  Landgrave's 
inspection.  Philip,  according  to  his  own  assertion,  paid  down 
this  sum,  and  shortly  afterwards  quitted  Dresden,  his  sus- 
picions ripened  into  conviction,  and  his  military  ardour  in- 
flamed to  an  irrepressible  degree. 

He  was  not  long  in  acquainting  his  allies  with  the  formidable 
conspiracy  to  their  common  detriment  which  had  come  to  his 
knowledge.  He  had  a  meeting  with  the  Elector  at  Weimar, 
and  succeeded,  by  the  promise  of  exhibiting  the  autograph 
treaty,  in  persuading  him  that  his  fears  of  a  Popish  plot  were 
well  grounded,  so  that  the  two  princes  entered  into  a  formal 
compact,  on  the  9th  March,  to  "  protect,  with  body,  dignity, 
possession,  and  every  means  in  their  power,  the  sacred  deposit 
of  God's  word  for  themselves  and  their  subjects."  They  next 
looked  around  for  allies  from  amongst  their  evangelical  neigh- 
bours, and  trusted,  by  means  of  the  Duke  of  Prussia,  to  be  able 
to  incite  the  King  of  Poland  against  King  Ferdinand,  to  keep 
the  Franconian  Bishops  in  check  by  the  arms  of  George  of 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  137 

Brandenburg,  to  obtain  auxiliaries  from  the  Dukes  of  Lune-  1523. 
burg,  Pomerania,  and  Mecklenburg,  and  the  city  of  Magde- 
burg; and,  for  themselves,  they  agreed  to  equip  a  force  of 
6000  cavalry  and  20,000  infantry.  They  likewise  proposed 
forming  a  league  with  the  King  of  Denmark.  But,  at  this 
stage  of  the  proceedings,  sounder  councils  came  to  the  aid  of 
one  of  the  confederating  parties :  and  the  Elector  was  ad- 
monished by  the  strong  sense  of  Luther  to  beware  of  playing 
an  aggressive  part.  Various  papers  of  advice  were  drawn  up 
by  Luther,  and  signed  by  himself  and  Melancthon,  in  which 
they  warned  the  Elector  against  being  carried  away  by  the 
Landgrave's  heat  and  impetuosity,  and  implored  him  to  bear 
no  part  in  the  terrible  drama  of  shedding  blood,  but  to  send 
an  embassage  to  the  Emperor  and  to  Ferdinand  to  apprise  their 
Majesties  of  the  plots  of  the  murderous  princes,  and  by  all 
means  to  put  a  stop  to  the  muster  of  their  forces,  "who  would 
be  sure,  once  met,  to  make  some  work  to  their  hands.  "Even 
the  holy  King  Josiah,"  the  Reformers  said,  c '  when  he  went  out 
against  Pharaoh  and  fought  against  him,  was  slain.  By  this 
world's  law  no  one  is  punished  till  he  has  first  been  heard;  so 
Porcius  Festus  declared  in  St.  Paul's  case ;  and  God  did  not 
condemn  Adam  before  he  had  called  him  to  answer  for  himself 
— Adam,  where  art  thou?  There  is  strife  enough  uninvited, 
and  it  cannot  be  well  to  paint  the  devil  over  the  door,  or  ask 
him  to  be  godfather.  Battle  uever  wins  much,  but  always 
loses  much,  and  hazards  all :  meekness  loses  nothing,  hazards 
little,  and  wins  all.""*     And  when  Luther  was  at  Weimar 

*  DeWette,III.  pp.  314—323.  "  Considerations  of  Luther  and  Me- 
lancthon," without  a  date.  De  AVette  would  assign  May  ;  but  the  true 
date  of  the  first  paper  is  clearly  April  or  March.  Cf.  Seek.  II.  p.  95. 
There  is  a  letter  of  Melancthon  to  Bruck,  dated  May  17,  thanking  the 
Elector  for  listening  to  their  counsel,  (Bret.  II.  p.  728,)  in  which  he 
states  that  to  make  war  when  God  offered  means  of  peace  could  never 
be  right,  and  that  Luther  agreed  with  him. 


138  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1528.  and  Torgau  a  little  later,  with  Melancthon — at  which  time  he 
was  so  oppressed  by  spiritual  trials  that  he  could  not  for- 
bear, as  Philip  relates,  opening  his  heart  to  him  in  private — 
he  personally  assured  the  Elector,  that,  sorry  as  he  and  his 
fellow  professors  would  be  to  quit  Wittenberg,  the  first  clash 
of  arms  would  be  the  signal  of  their  leaving  it.  Such  repre- 
sentations, ably  seconded  by  Brack,  addressed  both  to  the 
Elector  and  his  son,  had  so  much  influence,  that,  on  the 
23rd  April,  John  entered  into  another  convention  with 
Philip  in  mitigation  of  the  former,  and  sent  first  his  son 
John  Frederic,  and  immediately  afterwards  one  of  his  coun- 
cillors, the  Baron  Wildenfels,  to  check  the  Landgrave's  haste, 
who  was  already  at  the  head  of  an  army,  and  meditating  an 
irruption  into  the  ecclesiastical  dominions.  The  Elector, 
however,  suffered  part  of  his  forces  to  assemble  at  the  foot 
of  the  Thuringian  forest;  and,  perhaps,  such  conduct  was 
more  prudent  than  holding  back  entirely,  which  might  have 
incensed  the  Landgrave  into  immediate  operations. 

On  the  17th  May  Philip  wrote  to  his  father-in-law,  and 
ironically  thanked  him  for  the  exceptional  clause  which  his 
kindness  had  inserted  in  the  treaty  in  his  favour;  he  sent 
him  a  copy  of  that  document ;  assured  him  that,  for  his  part, 
he  should  "  never  return  to  the  devil's  worship ;  "  and  finally 
implored  him  that  he  would  recede  from  the  league,  in  which 
case  his  son-in-law  and  all  his  resources  would  ever  be  at  his 
command  for  his  defence  and  safety.  Duke  George  imme- 
diately replied  that  the  treaty  was  an  entire  fabrication.  But 
the  Landgrave  had  not  waited  for  his  father-in-law's  answer, 
or  for  the  Elector's  co-operation,  but,  on  the  22nd  May,  pub- 
lished a  manifesto  of  the  causes  which  had  moved  him  to 
take  up  arms :  to  which  he  annexed  a  copy  of  the  treaty 
which  the  bishops  and  princes  had  concocted  "  for  the  suppres- 
sion of  the  living  and  blessed  word  of  God,  and  the  destruc- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  139 

tion  of  its  adherents : "  a  conspiracy  the  execution  of  which  1528. 
he  was  resolved  to  anticipate  by  striking  the  first  blow.     He 
pitched  his  camp   on  the  borders  of  Hesse  and  Franconia, 
near  the  monastery  of  Herren  Breitungen,  on  the  banks  of 
the  Vierre. 

But  the  secret  of  the  plot  was  now  out,  for  Duke  George 
had  published  the  Landgrave's  letter  and  his  own  reply ; 
and  from  all  quarters  there  appeared  letters  from  those  impli- 
cated by  Pack's  accusation,  in  unequivocal  denial  of  any  par- 
ticipation or  knowledge  of  the  alleged  confederacy,  and  de- 
nouncing the  forger  of  the  pretended  document  as  a  villain. 
Messengers  also  passed  between  the  Elector  and  Ferdinand, 
and  the  latter  unhesitatingly  declared  the  whole  an  invention. 
The  Landgrave  himself  was  now  unable  any  longer  to  hold 
out  in  his  warlike  determination.  One  difficulty,  however, 
still  stood  in  the  way  of  peace.  Philip  of  Hesse  persisted  in 
demanding  pecuniary  satisfaction,  on  account  of  the  expen- 
diture which  his  military  preparations  had  involved ;  and  it 
was  to  no  purpose  that  Luther  and  Melancthon  requested  of 
the  Elector  that  considerations  of  such  a  nature  might  be  no 
obstacle  to  such  a  blessing  as  public  quiet.  Whatever  expense 
may  have  been  incurred,  they  said,  let  it  be  regarded  in  the 
light  of  a  casualty  from  fire  or  tempest,  or  as  if  it  were  a  loss 
sustained  in  the  late  peasant  rebellion.  The  Elector  himself 
was  satisfied,  and  relinquished  every  demand ;  but  the  Land- 
grave was  obstinate,  that  remuneration  should  be  made  him. 
Very  bitter  letters  were  exchanged  between  him  and  his  father- 
in-law.  At  length  a  settlement  was  accomplished  in  regard 
to  the  Elector  of  Mentz  and  the  Bishops  of  Bamberg  and 
Wurzburg,  by  the  assiduous  mediation  of  the  Electors  of 
Treves  and  the  Palatinate,  according  to  which  Albert  con- 
sented to  pay  40,000  florins,  the  Bishop  of  Wurzburg  40,000, 
and  the  Bishop  of  Bamberg  20,000,  rather  than  subject  their 


140  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1528.  territories  to  the  infliction  of  an  armed  invasion.  The  differ- 
ences with  the  Suabian  League  were  not  arranged  until  the 
very  close  of  the  year,  when  the  good  feeling  and  perseverance 
of  the  Elector  Palatine  triumphed  over  this  impediment  to 
concord.  His  efforts,  also,  were  at  last  successful  in  effecting 
a  reconciliation  between  the  son  and  father-in-law;  and,  in 
the  month  of  September,  the  angry  correspondence  ceased, 
and  they  met  again  on  amicable  terms.  Thus  all  possible 
means  were  employed  to  preclude  any  bad  consequences  to 
the  cause  of  religious  truth  from  this  unfortunate  affair ;  but 
the  Landgrave's  violent  temper,  and  hasty  adoption  of  un- 
founded suspicions,  supplied  a  ready  handle  for  misrepre- 
sentation to  the  enemies  of  reform ;  and  a  letter  from  Charles 
to  the  Elector  of  Saxony,  dated  from  Toledo,  the  19th 
November,  rated  John,  in  harsh  language,  as  the  fomenter 
of  dissension,  and,  in  arbitrary  terms,  designated  as  high 
treason  the  levying  an  army  without  imperial  warrant. 

The  Landgrave  would  not  consent,  from  personal  consider- 
ations, to  deliver  Pack  out  of  his  own  keeping  to  undergo  a 
trial :  but  he  had  him  examined  on  the  20th  June  and  for 
several  successive  days  at  Cassel,  in  the  presence  of  delegates 
from  Ferdinand,  the  Electors  of  Treves,  Brandenburg,  and 
the  Palatinate,  and  Duke  George.  The  councillor  of  Duke 
George  was  the  accuser.  Pack  persisted  in  asserting  that 
the  plot  was  a  reality.  His  own  letters  from  Hesse,  recount- 
ing that  Philip  had  been  deceived  by  the  pretence  of  a  con- 
spiracy, were  adduced  against  him ;  and  the  copy  he  had 
shown  to  the  Landgrave  was  not  forthcoming  from  the  Dres- 
den Chancery.  He  replied  that  he  had  destroyed  it  to  avoid 
suspicion,  because  he  had  been  unable  to  re-insert  it  as 
it  was  before  in  the  parchment  which  had  been  rolled  and 
tied  round  it;  and  his  letters  had  been  indited  with  the 
express  object  of  throwing  dust  in  the  eyes  of  Duke  George's 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  141 

chancellor,  that  no  hinderance  might  intervene  to  his  gaining  1528. 
possession  of  the  autograph  itself.  The  copy,  he  said,  had 
been  made  by  Wurisyn,  an  amanuensis  frequently  employed 
by  the  Duke ;  but  it  turned  out  that  this  referee  was  a 
person  of  no  character,  and  had  been  banished  from  the 
Court.  The  only  support  on  which  his  defence  could  be 
rested  with  any  show  of  probability  was  the  idea  current  in 
all  quarters,  that  some  such  bond  had  been  entered  into 
by  the  Papist  princes,  and  the  fact  that,  some  years  before, 
meetings  had  been  convened  in  various  places  in  which  the 
extirpation  of  the  Lutheran  heresy  had  formed  the  topic  of 
deliberation.  Pack  alleged  anxiety  to  serve  Duke  George  as 
the  motive  of  his  conduct,  and  would  not  allow  that  he  had 
received  any  money  from  the  Landgrave.  Thus  the  exami- 
nation terminated.  Pack  was  for  some  time  detained  in  cus- 
tody by  the  Landgrave,  and  then  banished  from  Hesse,  and 
was  indebted  for  some  time  to  Luther's  influence  for  the  pro- 
tection of  an  asylum.  Afterwards  he  wandered  about  in 
various  parts  of  Belgium  for  some  years ;  but  the  persecution 
of  Duke  George  still  tracked  his  footsteps,  and  he  was  in 
1536  apprehended  by  the  Duke's  agents,  brought  to  trial,  and 
suffered  death  by  decapitation.  He  denied  having  fabricated 
the  plot  to  the  last ;  some  of  his  statements  reflected  discredit 
on  the  Landgrave  and  the  Elector,  but  the  latter  did  not  think 
it  necessary  to  make  his  defence,  and  refused  to  permit  the 
affair  to  be  re-opened. 

It  must  be  attributed  to  the  Christian  principles  and  saga- 
city of  Luther  that  the  Reformation  was  not  shipwrecked  on 
the  hidden  shoal  of  the  "Otto  Pack  league;"  but  the  Reformer, 
on  the  other  hand,  was  far  from  assenting  to  those  who  could 
see  in  the  alleged  confederacy  nothing  but  a  chimera,  which 
only  the  impetuous  blood  and  excitable  fancy  of  the  Prince  of 
Hesse  had  conjured  into  existence.     Pack,  indeed,  might  have 


142  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1528.  manufactured  the  copy  of  the  treaty  which  he  showed  to 
Philip  ;  but  he  pronounced  it  to  be  his  firm  conviction  that  a 
confederacy  for  the  definite  purpose  of  exterminating  evan- 
gelical truth  did  exist ;  and  that  the  popular  rumours  so  widely 
circulated  were  not  groundless.  How  was  it  to  be  supposed 
that  those  princes  would  shrink  from  a  wholesale  and  effectual 
accomplishment  of  their  wishes,  who  were  constantly  mur- 
dering by  detail,  and  attempting  to  drown  the  Gospel  in  the 
blood  of  its  adherents  ?  "  You  see  what  commotions,"  Luther 
wrote  to  Link,  on  the  14th  June,  "  that  league  of  impious 
princes,  which  they  deny,  has  excited.  I  interpret  the  cold 
excuse  of  Duke  George  into  a  confession.  But,  whatever 
denials,  excuses,  or  fictions  they  may  offer,  I  know  for  certain 
that  the  league  was  not  a  mere  nothing,  or  chimera,  monster 
sufficiently  monstrous  as  it  is.  Every  one  knows  that  they 
would  extinguish  the  Gospel  if  they  could.  We  do  not  believe 
such  godless  men,  although  we  joyfully  give  them  peace.  God 
will  confound  that  fool  of  fools  who,  like  Moab,  is  bold  beyond 
his  power."  In  several  other  letters  he  declared  his  judg- 
ment of  the  matter  with  equal  distinctness ;  and  spoke  of 
Duke  George,  in  similar  language,  as  "  that  ass  of  asses,"  or 
"  that  clown."  "  All  their  acts,  edicts,  and  endeavours  show," 
he  repeated,  "  that  the  league  is  not  a  fiction."  "  May  the 
plot  fall  on  the  head  of  the  clown  who  plotted  it !  There 
are  strange  mysteries  in  that  league  :  but  let  it  be ;  there 
is  nothing  covered  that  shall  not  be  revealed." 

It  is  certainly  no  proof  of  consciousness  of  innocence  on 
the  part  of  Duke  George  that,  far  from  forgiving  and  forget- 
ting the  exiled  Pack,  he  continued  the  pursuit  till  his  emis- 
saries hunted  him  down  and  then  put  him  to  death.  Later 
in  the  year  the  letter  of  Luther  to  Link  came  to  the  Duke's 
knowledge.  Indeed,  Luther  recited  it  from  the  pulpit  to  make 
public   his   own    opinion    of   a    transaction   which  was   the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  143 

general  topic  with  all  classes.  Full  of  indignation,  Duke  1528. 
George  wrote  to  the  Reformer  to  inquire  whether  he 
acknowledged  the  letter  in  question  as  his  own.  The  epistle 
of  Duke  George  was  in  a  vein  of  great  arrogance  :  and 
Luther  replied  to  it  that  he  was  not  the  Duke's  prisoner; 
his  patience  had  been  sufficiently  tried  by  the  preface  to 
Emser's  version  of  the  New  Testament,  and  his  Grace  had 
better  seek  the  information  he  desired  from  those  whom 
he  had  a  right  to  command ;  but  he  added,  more  mildly, 
"I  pity  your  great  afflictions,  and  would  willingly,  with 
your  leave,  pray  that  they  may  be  averted."  The  Duke's 
secretary  was  despatched  to  Nuremberg  to  obtain,  by  fair 
or  foul  means,  the  letter  in  question  to  Link,  who  acknow- 
ledged to  the  Senate  that  it  was  really  Luther's.  But 
though  many  manoeuvres  were  resorted  to  by  the  ducal  emis- 
sary, Link  would  not  himself  show  him  the  letter:  he 
placed  it  in  the  hands  of  Scheurl,  the  town  clerk,  by  whom 
permission  was  granted  to  read  it,  and  take  a  copy.  This  was 
not  contrary  to  Luther's  wish,  but  he  expressed  his  surprise 
that  Scheurl  should  be  on  such  an  intimate  standing  with 
the  Romanist  faction :  Melancthon  imputed  a  good  deal  of 
blame  to  Link  himself,  and  wrote  him  a  sharp  admonition  to 
use  caution  and  judgment,  so  much  needed  in  dealing  with  the 
private  correspondence  of  such  a  writer  as  Luther.  On  the 
return  of  the  secretary  with  the  copy,  Duke  George  wrote  a 
statement  of  his  grievances  to  the  Elector,  complaining  with 
deeply  wounded  pride  of  the  light  esteem  in  which  Luther's 
answer  to  his  letter  proved  that  he  was  held  by  him.  The 
fault,  Luther  replied,  in  his  own  vindication,  is  that  Duke 
George  is  "held  in  too  high  esteem  by  himself,"  which 
made  him  forget  to  write  to  me  "  as  Duke  George." 
The  Elector  laboured  to  appease  his  enraged  cousin,  and  it 
might    at    length    be    hoped    that    the    matter   would    be 


144  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHElt. 

1528.  suffered  to  sleep.  But  Duke  George's  irascibility  was  not 
so  easily  quieted.  A  treatise  published  by  Luther  against 
the  Bishop  of  Meissen,  on  "  Communion  in  both  Kinds/' 
made  mention  of  "  a  treacherous  plot  of  which  it  ought  to 
shame  those  who  had  had  a  hand  in  it."  The  Duke  took 
fire  at  the  expression  :  there  was  the  idea  of  the  "  Pack 
plot "  running  in  his  head,  and  he  supposed  that  that  must 
be  meant.  He  therefore  resolved  to  publish  the  cele- 
brated letter  to  Link,  with  an  apology  annexed,  in  which  the 
authorship  of  the  plot  was  ascribed  to  the  Reformer  himself, 
and  Pack  was  represented  as  playing  an  underpart  to  a 
mightier  hand :  eight  thousand  impressions  were  struck  off. 
The  intention  of  publishing  the  "  Letter  and  Apology " 
at  the  next  fair  became  known  to  Luther,  who  accordingly 
furnished  himself  with  a  counter  missive,  in  a  tract  on  "  Pri- 
vate Letters  surreptitiously  obtained,"  which  he  contrived 
should  be  ready  for  publication  at  the  same  time.  But  as 
Duke  George  seized  every  mode  of  venting  his  spleen  on  the 
Elector  of  Saxony,  and  had  scurrilously  assailed  him  in  the 
"  Apology,"  Luther  addressed  his  patron  with  the  request 
that  he  would  "  with  confidence  expose  him  to  a  trial,  for  he 
had  far  rather  hazard  his  own  neck  than  that  his  Grace's 
person  should  on  his  account  incur  a  hair-breadth  of  danger. 
The  Christ  in  him  would  be  man  enough  against  the  malig- 
nant devil,  both  in  right  and  speech." 

The  Duke's  Apology  appeared  on  the  29th  December,  and 
in  the  beginning  of  the  next  year  Luther's  tract  on  Stolen 
Letters  followed;  but  the  Reformer's  violence  of  language 
displeased  most  of  his  friends  excepting  Amsdorf,  and  Me- 
lancthon  lamented  that  age  instead  of  mitigating  added  to 
his  vehemence.  He  complained  to  Myconius,  after  reading 
a  copy  of  the  tract  sent  him  by  John  Frederic  before  it  had 
been  seen  in  Wittenberg,  "  In  two  days  the  booksellers  will 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  145 

have  dispersed  thousands  of  copies  amongst  us  j  and  even  now  1528. 
nothing  else  is  talked  about."  The  letter  to  Link  had  been  ex- 
hibited in  a  German  version,*  and  the  Reformer,  besides  expa- 
tiating on  the  meanness  of  scrutinizing,  searching  out,  and 
copying  private  letters,  charged  the  translation  with  incorrect- 
ness, which  he  imputed  to  the  Chancellor,  but  for  which  the 
Duke  himself  was  really  answerable.  Luther  said  much  of  the 
origin  of  his  opposition  to  Popery,  a  path  on  which  he  had 
been  forced  undesignedly  by  the  influence  of  events  :  he  at- 
tacked the  edict  of  Worms  as  illegal,  inasmuch  as  it  was  framed 
and  signed  by  the  Emperor  on  his  own  authority  without  the 
consent  of  the  States;  and  he  declared  himself  plenarily 
acquitted  by  the  Recess  of  the  recent  Diet  of  Spires.  As  to 
the  Pack  business,  he  said  that  he  held  Duke  George  publicly 
excused,  but  he  must  be  allowed  to  entertain  what  suspicions 
on  the  subject  he  pleased,  for  his  thoughts  were  free.  The 
tract  moved  Duke  George's  temper  to  a  far  greater  pitch  of 
fury  than  had  possessed  him  before.  He  sent  two  of  his 
councillors  to  the  Elector  to  represent  his  grievances.  John, 
on  his  side,  acted  as  an  impartial  umpire ;  he  reproved  Duke 
George  for  his  warmth,  and  charged  Luther  thenceforth 
to  publish  nothing  in  reference  to  himself  or  the  Duke  unless 
it  had  previously  been  sanctioned  by  the  Court,  and  to  sub- 
mit all  his  theological  treatises  to  the  judgment  of  the 
University,  as  his  brother  had  ordained.  But  Duke  George 
was  not  satisfied  with  this :  he  insisted  that  Luther  should 
be  punished.  At  length,  on  the  18th  February,  the  Elector 
wrote  to  him  to  request  that  their  correspondence  on  the  sub- 
ject might  cease,  and  the  matter  be  dropped. 

The  absorbing  importance  of  the  Pack  plot,  whilst  it  pre- 
vented, as  has  been  said,  the  meeting  of  the  Diet  for  this 

*  See  Herzog  Georgs  Verantwortung.     Walch.  XVI.,  pp.  506-521. 

VOL.  II.  L 


146  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1528.  year,  did  not  interrupt  the  progress  of  the  visitation.  For 
this  purpose  the  Electoral  dominions  were  divided  into  four 
districts.  Electoral  Saxony  and  Misnia  were  appointed  to 
Luther,  aided  by  a  council  of  laymen ;  and,  whenever  the 
Reformer  might  be  impeded  by  any  other  of  his  multifarious 
engagements,  Jonas  and  Bugenhagen  were  to  act  in  his  stead. 
Osterland,  in  which  were  situated  Altenberg  and  Zwickau,  and 
Voigtland,  were  distributed  to  Spalatin  and  two  more  clergy- 
men, with  several  lay  assistants,  among  whom  were  Wiidenfels 
and  Feilitsch.  Thuringia  was  assigned  to  Melancthon,  Jerome 
Schurf,  Planitz,  and  others,  who  had  partially  entered  upon 
their  duties  in  the  preceding  autumn.  And  for  the  part  of 
Franconia  under  Saxon  jurisdiction,  two  lay  and  four  clerical 
commissioners  were  nominated.  In  each  of  the  four  districts 
the  principle  of  blending  civilians  and  clergymen  in  the  com- 
mission was  maintained,  according  to  Luther's  advice,  in 
order  that  the  purely  spiritual  matters,  and  such  business  as 
was  rather  of  a  temporal  and  financial  nature,  might  be  kept 
distinct,  and  devolve  respectively  on  separate  and  duly  quali- 
fied officials.  All  the  expenses  were  defrayed  from  the  Elec- 
toral treasury. 

The  commissioners  were  to  allow  a  subsistence  to  such 
ministers  as,  being  very  aged  and  unfit  for  any  secular  em- 
ployment, persevered  in  attachment  to  Popery  :  such  younger 
ministers  as  held  bad  doctrine,  they  were  to  instruct  in  bet- 
ter, and  if  their  teaching  had  no  effect,  to  punish  and  remove 
them  from  their  parishes ;  such  as  taught  well  and  lived  ill, 
they  were  also  to  remove;  they  were  to  preach  against  all 
sedition,  and  exhort  the  people,  in  lieu  of  the  offerings  and 
the  money  paid  for  masses  under  the  Romanist  system,  to 
make  contributions  towards  the  salaries  of  the  ministers; 
they  were  to  take  a  strict  account  of  the  revenues  of  parishes 
and  monasteries,  excepting  the  benefices  in  the  patronage  of 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  147 

the  Elector ;  where  the  parish  was  too  poor  to  support  a  1528. 
minister,  they  were  to  appoint  the  necessary  stipend  to  be 
drawn  from  the  Electoral  coffers;  and,  if  possible,  to  set 
apart  one-third  of  the  revenues  of  churches  under  private 
patronage,  in  aid  of  the  poverty  of  patrons,  and  for  placing 
out  their  daughters  in  marriage.  The  commissioners  were 
also  to  catechise  the  poor  in  the  Christian  faith ;  and  were  to 
compel  such  as  retained  their  old  Romish  opinions,  as  well  as 
the  disseminators  of  seditious  principles,  if  admonitions  ad- 
dressed to  them  from  time  to  time  proved  fruitless,  to  sell 
their  goods,  and  quit  the  country.  The  commissioners  were 
likewise  to  appoint  superintendents  from  among  the  pastors 
of  the  principal  parishes,  to  serve  the  office  of  a  standing 
board,  to  which  matrimonial  questions,  and  matters  of  church 
discipline  could  be  referred,  as  well  as  to  exercise  a  general 
supervision  over  the  clergy,  and  report  delinquents  to  the 
Elector. 

The  early  part  of  the  year  had  been  devoted  by  Luther  to 
translating  into  German,  with  a  few  additions,  Melancthon's 
Latin  text  of  the  Visitation  Articles,  and  prefixing  a  preface  of 
his  own.  The  Articles  in  their  vernacular  dress  appeared  in  the 
summer ;  and  the  autumn  was  devoted  to  the  active  duties  of 
a  commissioner.  The  visitation  was  Luther's  principal  object 
of  attention  throughout  the  year ;  and  he  was  several  times 
called  from  home  to  arrange  with  the  Elector  different  points 
of  detail.  On  the  18th  March,  in  a  pelting  storm,  he  jour- 
neyed to  Borna,  breakfasted  with  Spalatin  at  Altenburg  the 
next  morning,  and  afterwards  stayed  with  the  Elector  at 
Torgau  from  March  28  till  April  7,  when  he  returned  to 
Wittenberg.  On  the  1st  May  he  was  again  called  from  home, 
and,  as  has  been  already  mentioned,  was  the  Elector's  guest 
at  Weimar.  Just  as  his  labour  in  revising,  translating,  and 
superintending  the  printing  of  the  Visitation  Articles  was  gra- 

l  2 


148  THE    LTFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1528.  tified  by  success,  a  severe  domestic  trial — the  death  of  his  in- 
fant daughter — broke  for  a  time  his  spirits,  but  without  sus- 
pending his  industry.  On  the  5th  August  he  wrote  to  Haus- 
mann — "  My  little  Elizabethula  is  dead  :  it  is  strange  how 
weak  and  womanlike  my  heart  is  at  the  loss.  I  could  never 
have  supposed  a  father's  feelings  to  be  so  tender  towards  his 
child."  A  month  later  the  joyful  notice  appears:  "The  visitation 
is  all  arranged  :  the  Prince  has  informed  me  that  the  com- 
missioners are  to  set  out  immediately."  And  so  Philip  and 
many  others  did.  But  Luther  was  still  detained.  On  the  25th 
October  he  paid  a  flying  visit  to  Lochau,  to  marry  his  friend 
Michael  Stiefel,  who  had,  by  his  recommendation,  been  in- 
stalled there  as  pastor,  to  the  widow  of  his  predecessor  in  the 
cure  :  and  Isaiah  having  been  printed,  at  the  end  of  October 
he  proceeded  on  his  visitation  with  his  four  fellow  commis- 
sioners. He  speaks  of  himself  at  this  period  as  overwhelmed 
with  occupation.  "  I  am  visitor,  lecturer,  preacher,  writer, 
auditor,  actor,  courier,  and  what  not  I" 

The  most  remarkable  feature  in  this  visitation,  as  far  as  it 
exemplifies  the  character  of  Luther,  is  the  extreme  modera- 
tion with  which  everything  was  conducted :  through  fear  of 
going  too  far,  he  scarcely  went  far  enough  ;  an  instance,  to  be 
added  to  many  others,  in  proof  of  the  fact,  that,  violent  and 
headstrong  as  he  was  in  controversy,  in  action  he  was  all 
peace  and  calmness.  The  revenues  of  the  abbeys  and  cathe- 
drals were  left  untouched,  beyond  being  made  to  contribute 
to  the  salaries  of  the  parish  ministers,  and  to  the  support  of 
schools.  The  appropriation  of  endowments  was  rarely  dis- 
turbed ;  and  it  was  chiefly  in  reference  to  the  vacant  benefices 
that  the  commissioners  interfered.  In  dealing  with  individuals, 
Luther  was  charitable  beyond  the  letter  of  the  visitation  book, 
and,  in  opposition  to  the  expulsion  clause,  pleaded  with  the 
Elector  in  several  instances,  that  it  was  far  better  to  let  the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  149 

obstinate  Romanists  remain,  than  force  them  from  the  country  1528. 
to  do  mischief  where  their  opportunities  would  be  greater.  In 
some  convents  the  nuns  were  permitted  to  remain  :  and  several 
old  Romish  monks  were  not  driven  from  their  chimney  cor- 
ners, but  allowed  the  retreat  of  their  monasteries,  with  a  suffi- 
cient maintenance  for  the  rest  of  their  lives.  The  phrase 
"  commended  to  God"  was  applied  to  such  cases,  and  denoted 
that  the  desirable  change  was  left  to  time.  "  We  will  leave  its 
hours  to  the  day,  and  commend  the  cause  to  God,"  was  Luther's 
favourite  verdict  in  a  doubtful  question ;  and  no  less  moderate 
were  the  doctrinal  views  insisted  upon.  Faith  was  not  to  be 
separated  from  Repentance.  The  ministers  were  to  preach 
Christianity  rather  than  fling  stones  at  Romanism  from  their 
pulpits.  At  the  same  time  that  the  spiritual  impotence  of 
the  will  was  to  be  enlarged  upon,  the  moral  freedom  of  the 
will  was  also  to  be  vindicated ;  that  a  man  can,  if  he  choose, 
abstain  from  murder,  adultery,  and  robbery,  according  to  St. 
Paul's  declaration — "  The  Gentiles  do  by  nature  the  things 
contained  in  the  law."  The  people  were  to  pray  to  God,  not 
to  saints.  The  real  presence  in  the  Sacrament  was  to  be  in- 
culcated, and  it  was  to  be  administered,  by  all  means,  in  both 
kinds;  yet  exceptional  cases  might  possibly  be  permitted. 
Luther  applied  himself,  with  a  deep  sense  of  the  importance 
of  the  work,  to  catechising  the  poor.  He  heard  them  pray, 
and  questioned  them  as  to  their  faith,  with  the  greatest 
gentleness  and  patience.  It  is  related  by  Mathesius  that  on 
one  occasion  he  asked  a  peasant  to  repeat  the  Belief,  who 

began,     "  I   believe  in   God    Almighty" Here   Luther 

stopped  him.  "  What  do  you  mean  by  '  Almighty  ?  '  "  "I 
know  not,"  the  peasant  replied.  "True,  my  good  man," 
said  Luther ;  "  neither  I  nor  any  learned  men  do  know  that. 
Only  believe  that  God  is  thy  dear  and  true  Father,  who 
will   and   can,    and   knows,    as   the   Allwise   Lord,    how   to 


150  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1528.  help  thee,  thy  wife  and  children,  in  time  of  need.     That  is 
enough." 

Another  striking  feature  of  Luther's  character,  as  exempli- 
fied at  this  time,  but  which  might  be  expected,  from  the 
strong  sense  of  a  mind  used  to  influence  and  govern  others, 
is  the  preference  shown  by  him  in  such  a  marked  way  to  the 
practical  and  useful  over  the  merely  theoretical.  He  might 
have  given  the  Saxon  Church  a  democratic  development, 
after  the  example  of  the  Hessian  Church,  as  organised  a 
little  earlier  by  Francis  Lambert ;  and  his  own  ideas  of 
Christianity  were  not  at  all  at  variance  with  the  most  demo- 
cratic framework  of  a  church  establishment,  as  his  tract  on 
the  Institution  of  Ministers  sufficiently  proves.  But  his  pene- 
tration at  once  saw  that  such  an  ecclesiastical  system  was 
unsuited  to  the  peculiar  condition  of  society  in  Saxony.  So 
far  from  there  being  a  large  amount  of  well-directed  religi- 
ous feeling  among  the  lower  orders,  he  had  continually  to 
lament  its  deficiency,  and  commonly  spoke  of  the  mass  of  his 
countrymen  as  "  my  drunken  Germans."  He  regarded  the 
strong  hand  of  restraint  and  government  as  quite  essential  for 
such  "  a  wild  rough  race — half  devil  and  half  man."  On  the 
other  hand,  the  higher  classes,  and  the  nobles,  and  especially 
the  Electoral  house  of  Saxony,  not  only  listened  to  the  Word 
of  God,  but  studied,  and  in  many  cases  desired  to  act  upon 
it.  Luther,  therefore,  dismissed  all  vexatious  and  unsatisfac- 
tory questions  as  to  the  right  of  patronage  and  the  power  of 
the  Christian  congregation ;  and  finding  the  ablest  and  best- 
disposed  supports  of  the  Reformation  in  the  higher  ranks,  mo- 
delled his  ecclesiastical  establishment  according  to  the  guid- 
ance of  surrounding  circumstances,  and  placed  it  in  alliance 
with,  and  in  some  measure  in  subordination  to,  the  State. 
In  his  judgment,  the  Church,  viewed  as  a  human  institution, 
the  creation  of  the  law,  was  simply  a  standing  instrument 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  151 

for  the  diffusion  of  true  scriptural  doctrine  ;  and  therefore  that  1528. 
Church  establishment  which  answered  this  object  the  most 
effectually,  whatever  its  ideal  imperfections,  must  really  be 
the  best.  And  his  wisdom  was  conspicuously  shown  in  the 
comparative  results  of  the  Hessian  and  Saxon  Church  organi- 
zations. In  Hesse  the  most  sweeping  and  radical  changes  had 
taken  place.  So  far  as  endowments  might  be  concerned, 
there  was  considerable  advantage  in  this ;  for  the  foundation 
of  the  University  of  Marburg — one  of  the  first  names  entered 
at  which  was  that  of  John  Knox,  the  Scottish  Reformer — as 
well  as  of  four  large  hospitals  and  two  seminaries  for  the 
education  of  female  children  of  noble  birth,  was  the  happy 
result  of  the  decree  of  the  Homberg  synod.  But  the  demo- 
cratic basis  on  which  ecclesiastical  institutions  were  built  in 
Hesse,  was  found  by  experience  so  unsuited  to  the  soil  and 
the  times,  that  within  four  years  from  its  establishment  the 
democratic  church  system  was  pulled  down  to  make  way  for 
the  Saxon  edifice  as  modelled  by  Luther. 

The  visitation  demonstrated  how  completely  the  profession 
of  Lutheran  doctrine  had  superseded  Popery  amongst  all  orders 
and  degrees  in  the  dominions  of  the  Saxon  Elector.  To  take 
the  instance  of  the  Altenberg  district,  which  Seckendorf  has 
particularised  : — Out  of  one  hundred  parishes  only  four  of 
the  clergy  were  found  to  continue  the  celebration  of  the  mass, 
as  many  as  twenty  retained  the  concubiues  allowed  them  by 
the  Pope,  whom  they  were  now  compelled  to  marry,  or  to  put 
away,  and  only  one  of  the  nobles  adhered  to  Popery.  But 
beyond  this  the  results  of  the  inquiry  were  less  satisfactory : 
for  too  generally  the  Lutheranism  which  had  been  substituted 
for  Romanism,  was  no  more  than  profession;  and,  as  such  a 
fact  would  show,  there  was  a  great  need  of  efficient  pastors. 
"  We  find  everywhere/'  said  Luther,  "  poverty  and  penury. 
The  Lord  send  labourers  into  his  vineyard  !  Amen."     "  The 


152  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1528.  face  of  the  Church  is  everywhere  most  wretched,"  he  wrote 
to  Spalatin ;  "  sometimes  we  have  a  collection  for  the  poor 
pastors,  who  have  to  till  their  two  acres,  which  helps  them  a 
little.  The  peasants  have  nothing,  and  know  nothing ;  they 
neither  pray,  confess,  nor  communicate,  as  if  they  were  ex- 
empted from  every  religious  duty.  What  an  administration 
that  of  the  Papistical  bishops  ! "  In  about  six  weeks  Luther 
despatched  his  visitation  duties  in  Electoral  Saxony,  and  re- 
turned home.  He  could  not  at  once  proceed  with  the  visita- 
tion of  Misnia,  but  was  obliged  to  accomplish  it,  by  deputy, 
in  the  May  and  June  of  the  following  year. 

A  new  epoch  in  the  annals  of  the  Reformation  commences 
from  this  period.  The  investigation,  which  had  been  most 
industriously  prosecuted,  made  a  disclosure  of  the  moral  and 
spiritual  nakedness  of  the  land,  and  evidenced  how  bare  the 
Romish  system  had  left  the  poorer  sort  of  all  culture,  whether 
of  mind  or  soul.  And  this  knowledge  was  of  the  utmost  con- 
sequence, as  a  preliminary  step  to  improvement.  The  map 
of  spiritual  destitution  accurately  delineated,  showed  where 
money,  or  schools,  or  pastors  were  required.  And  so  gross 
was  the  ignorance  thus  brought  to  light  that  Luther,  imme- 
diately on  his  return  home,  set  to  work  to  prepare  his  well- 
known  Catechisms.*  But  it  was  not  in  Saxony  only  that  the 
opportunity  was  seized,  to  give  a  standing  form  and  outward 
organization  to  doctrinal  truth.  On  all  sides  was  seen  the 
spectacle  of  a  revived  Christian  Church,  which,  throwing 
traditional  forms  and  hierarchal  precedents  back  to  the  dust 

*  His  Small  Catechism  comprised  simple  and  brief  explanations  of 
the  Ten  Commandments,  the  Belief,  the  Lord's  Prayer,  and  the  Sacra- 
ments, with  Forms  of  Prayer  for  night  and  morning,  and  Grace  before 
and  after  meals,  and  a  "  House-table"  (Haustafel)  or  collection  of 
Scriptural  texts  for  the  ordering  of  life  in  its  different  states  and  rela- 
tions •.  his  Large  Catechism  treated  the  same  subjects  more  thoroughly  : 
and  both  appeared  early  in  the  ensuing  year. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  153 

whence  they  had  sprung,  modelled  itself  immediately  on  the  1528. 
scriptural  standard,  and  looked  for  its  past  only  to  primitive 
antiquity.  Christianity  refined  from  its  dregs,  or  rather  a  new 
life  bursting  into  vigour  from  a  mass  of  decomposition,  now 
found  its  representation  in  a  regularly  ordered  Church  establish- 
ment. And  thus  the  contest  was  no  longer  that  of  principles 
unembodied  in  any  visible  form  against  an  established  and 
powerful  system,  but  that  of  a  vigorous  institution,  young, 
but  really  more  primitive  than  its  antagonist,  taking  for  its 
rock  the  only  Word  of  God,  and  for  its  head  Jesus  Christ,  in 
alliance  with  civil  power  and  under  shelter  of  the  law,  against 
an  effete  hierarchal  body  corporate,  bending  to  the  ground 
from  the  weight  of  its  crimes,  in  which  the  human  element 
had  almost  quite  effaced  the  Divine.  And  as  before  the 
Reformation  of  Luther  had  stimulated  the  Romanists  to  the 
mock  Ratisbon  Reformation,  and  Luther's  German  version  of 
the  New  Testament  had  been  copied  or  distorted  by  Emser, 
so  Luther's  zeal  in  the  Evangelical  Church  economy  produced 
its  Romish  counterpart,  and  a  visitation  was  instituted  in 
Bavaria  and  in  most  of  the  Romanist  States. 

In  other  respects  the  year  1528  added  strength  to  the 
evangelical  cause.  Hamburg,  and  Brunswick,  and  Goslar, 
were  henceforth  ranked  amongst  the  Lutheran  cities.  And  two 
conversions  in  high  life  attested  how  deeply  society  was 
penetrated,  by  the  scriptural  doctrine.  The  Duchess  of 
Miinsterberg,  by  the  study  of  Luther's  writings,  conceived  a 
disrelish  to  the  conventual  life,  and  effected  her  escape  from  a 
convent  at  Friburg,  in  the  month  of  October,  and  with  two 
of  her  companions,  took  refuge  under  Luther's  roof.  She  was 
first  cousin  to  Duke  George.  Earlier  in  the  year  (in  March), 
Elizabeth,  the  sister  of  the  expelled  King  of  Denmark,  and 
wife  of  Joachim,  Elector  of  Brandenburg,  was  convicted  by 
her  husband  of  studying  Luther's  works,  and  of  receiving  the 


154  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1528.  Lord's  Supper  in  both  kinds,  and  so  hardly  dealt  with  by  him 
as  to  be  confined  to  her  own  apartment,  and  threatened 
with  imprisonment  unless  she  relinquished  the  new  religion. 
In  order  to  exercise  her  faith  in  peace,  she  secretly  fled  from 
Berlin  in  a  waggon  used  by  the  country  people,  and  when 
the  wheel  broke  in  a  difficult  road,  she  took  off  her  head- 
dress and  threw  it  to  the  driver,  to  bind  the  wheel  together. 
She  was  met  on  the  Saxon  boundary  by  Christian  II.,  her 
brother,  to  whom  the  Elector,  his  uncle,  had  graciously  allotted 
an  asylum  at  Torgau,  and  she  was  herself  granted  permission 
to  reside  in  the  Castle  of  Lichtenberg.  In  her  absence  from 
her  husband  and  home  she  found  a  chief  solace  in  Luther's 
instruction;  and  at  one  period  spent  three  months  in  the 
Augustine  convent,  to  enjoy  the  benefit  of  his  spiritual  guid- 
ance, until  in  1546  she  returned  to  Berlin. 

1529.  Towards  the  end  of  January,  Luther  was  again  very  ill  and 
suffering  from  a  strange  giddiness  in  the  head,  which  ren- 
dered him  unfit  for  his  usual  studies  and  exertions.  "  I  know 
not,"  he  said,  "  whether  it  proceeds  from  over-fatigue,  or  is  a 
temptation  from  Satan."  It  lasted  up  to  the  middle  of  Feb- 
ruary, for  up  to  the  13th  of  that  month,  when  he  enclosed  the 
German  Litany  to  Hausmann,  he  complained  that  he  was  "still 
labouring  under  giddiness  of  the  head,  besides  buffetings  from 
the  angel  of  Satan."  The  end  of  February  he  was  left 
almost  alone  at  Wittenberg,  and  the  giddiness  had  been  suc- 
ceeded by  a  severe  cough,  which  at  last  compelled  him,  from 
extreme  hoarseness,  to  discontinue  both  lecturing  and  preach- 
ing -,  and  the  only  friend  whom  he  had  with  him  to  substitute 
in  these  duties  was  Caspar  Cruciger,  who  had  returned  in 
1527  from  Magdeburg.  In  his  letters  of  this  period  he 
speaks  of  himself  as  "a  sinner  exposed  to  many  devils  in 
much  infirmity,"  and  complains  bitterly  that  "  the  voice  of 
Theology  is  no  longer  heard  from  the  chair."     Melancthon 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  155 

was  gone  to  the  Diet  with  the  Elector  ;  Jonas  was  deputed  in  1529. 
Luther's  stead  to  carry  on  the  visitation;  and  Bugenhagen 
had  passed  from  Hamburg  into  Holstein.  Deprived  for  a 
while  of  the  society  in  which  he  delighted,  and  incapacitated 
for  his  customary  duties,  Luther  was  resolved  that  the 
time  should  not  be  altogether  lost  to  himself  or  the 
world;  and  he  translated  in  this  interval  of  sickness  the 
Book  of  Wisdom.  It  was  subjected  to  Melancthon's 
emendations  on  his  return,  and  then  printed.  A  mis- 
fortune had  befallen  the  finished  treatise  against  the 
Turk.  In  the  hurry  of  preparation  for  the  visitation  tour, 
or  in  Luther's  absence  on  that  mission,  several  of  the 
sheets  had  been  mislaid,  and  could  not  be  discovered  by 
the  most  anxious  search.  The  whole  conception  of  the  work 
was  so  much  marred  by  this  deficiency,  that  Luther  prepared 
another  treatise,  which  was  published  in  the  course  of  the 
spring.  At  length,  on  the  3rd  May,  the  hoarseness  was  so 
far  removed  that  he  was  able  to  resume  his  lectures  on 
Isaiah,  and  shortly  afterwards  again  to  occupy  the  pulpit. 
A  bright  ray  of  joy  was  granted  him  on  the  4th,  by  the 
birth  of  a  daughter,  whom  he  named  Magdalene — a  gift  in 
lieu  of  the  one  recalled;  and  it  enhanced  his  delight  that 
Kate  was  "  as  well  and  happy  as  if  she  had  suffered  nothing. 
To  Christ  be  praise  and  glory." 

During  this  period  of  sickness  and  solitude,  the  same  two 
subjects  as  before  continued  to  harass  his  mind :  the  Turks 
and  the  Diet.  And  it  excited  his  undisguised  astonishment 
that  the  King  of  France,  the  Pope,  the  Venetians,  and  Floren- 
tines should  be  abettors  of  the  arms  of  the  False  Prophet. 
"  You  may  see  from  this,"  he  wrote  to  Jonas,  "  what  the  world 
thinks  of  God.  The  Turk  will  be  a  Reformer,  I  fear,  sent  in 
divine  wrath."  But  all  that  was  passing  on  the  theatre  of 
politics,  as  well  as  signs  on  the  earth  and  in  the  sky,  earthquakes 


156  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  and  meteors,  confirmed  him  in  the  persuasion  that  the  end  of 
all  things  was  rapidly  approaching.  "  The  day  of  Christ  is  at 
the  door ;  it  cannot  be  postponed ;  the  cry  will  soon  resound, 
'  The  Bridegroom  cometh/  "  In  reference  to  the  Diet,  there 
were  not  wanting  alarming  tokens  of  the  disposition  of  many 
of  the  Princes ;  and  it  could  not  be  concealed  that  the  Pack 
mystery  had  exerted  an  influence  highly  prejudicial  to  the 
cause  of  the  Reformation.  Notwithstanding  the  progress 
which  the  Turkish  arms  were  making,  King  Ferdinand  was 
resolved  to  be  present  at  Spires,  fresh  from  his  proscriptions 
of  the  Lutherans  in  Hungary  and  Bohemia.  The  Elector  of 
Brandenburg,  too,  had  lately  signalized  his  zeal  by  decoying 
some  of  the  evangelical  preachers  into  a  trap  which  he  had 
laid  for  them,  and  making  them  his  prisoners.  And  it  was 
boastfully  rumoured  by  the  popish  faction  that  John  of 
Saxony  had  not  only  been  interdicted  from  entering  the  city 
of  Spires,  but  had  even  been  deprived  of  his  electoral  dignity. 
The  second  Diet  of  Spires,  which  had  been  summoned  to 
meet  in  February,  did  not  enter  upon  its  deliberations  until 
the  15th  March.  The  very  manner  in  which  the  papistical 
Princes  made  their  public  entrance  into  the  city  marked  their 
confidence  in  the  success  of  their  policy,  and  the  pride  which 
elated  them.  On  the  5th,  King  Ferdinand  entered  the  city 
with  300  armed  knights ;  the  Dukes  of  Bavaria  came  attended 
by  an  equally  large  retinue ;  and  the  Electors  of  Mentz  and 
Treves  were  both  accompanied  by  troops  of  horsemen.  But 
on  the  13th  (the  eve  of  Palm  Sunday)  the  Elector  of  Saxony 
appeared  in  the  streets  of  Spires,  quietly  riding  with 
Melancthon  at  his  side.  The  Landgrave  of  Hesse,  however, 
would  have  put  too  much  force  on  his  nature,  had  he  followed 
this  example;  and  on  the  18th  he  made  his  entry  at  the  head 
of  200  horsemen.  The  Diet  was  opened  by  a  speech  from 
the  Elector  Palatine,  as  lieutenant  of  the  empire,  after  which 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  157 

a  letter  from  the  Emperor,  dated  August  1st,  from  Valladolid,  1529. 
was  read  aloud  in  profound  silence.  It  abolished  altogether 
the  Recess  of  the  previous  Diet  of  Spires,  and  imputed  the 
alarming  progress  of  the  Turks  to  the  growth  of  the 
Lutheran  heresy.  The  bitter  tone  of  the  Imperial  mandate 
prepared  the  minds  of  most  of  the  members  for  a  decision 
adverse  to  the  Reformation,  and  immediately  determined  the 
courtiers  as  to  the  side  which  they  should  take  in  the 
subsequent  debates.  And  the  strong  current  of  feeling, 
among  the  aspirants  to  favour  with  the  King,  was  quickly 
shown  by  the  timid  and  time-serving  Elector  Palatine 
prohibiting  his  followers  from  attending  the  evangelical 
worship  in  the  hotels  of  the  Elector  of  Saxony  and  the 
Landgrave.  "The  Elector  Palatine,"  said  the  Count  of 
Mansfeld,  "will  not  know  a  Saxon."  "We  are  the  off- 
scouring  of  all  things,"  Melancthon  wrote  to  Camerarius. 
And  John  Faber  and  the  Romanist  preachers  proclaimed  from 
the  pulpits  that  the  Turks  were  better  than  the  Lutherans ;  for 
the  Turks  observed  fast- days,  but  the  Lutherans  despised  them. 
But  popular  opinion  was  as  staunch  as  ever  in  favour  of 
the  Reformation ;  and  on  Palm  Sunday,  whilst  the 
Romanist  Princes  were  playing  at  dice,  or  drinking,  no  less 
than  8000  persons  assembled  twice  in  the  day,  in  the  Elector 
of  Saxony's  lodging,  to  worship  God  and  to  hear  his  word. 
It  was  at  once  proposed  to  the  Diet,  in  obedience  to  the 
Imperial  mandate,  to  abolish  the  Edict  of  1526.  The  Elector 
of  Saxony  and  his  friends  stoutly  resisted  such  a  proposition ; 
but  their  objections  were  overruled  by  the  votes  of  the  majo- 
rity. There  was  no  time  for  lengthened  discussion ;  the 
Turks  were  in  possession  of  the  greater  part  of  Hungary,  and 
their  continued  progress  warned  Ferdinand  of  the  imperative 
necessity  of  his  presence  in  the  field  of  battle.  Early  in 
April,   therefore,   the  terms  of   the  Recess  were  arranged. 


158  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  They  ordained,  that  wherever  the  Edict  of  Worms  had 
hitherto  been  obeyed,  it  should  still  be  obeyed ;  and  wherever 
innovations  in  religion  had  taken  place,  and  the  old  ritual 
could  not  be  restored  without  disturbances,  such  innovations 
might  be  retained  till  the  meeting  of  a  general  or  national 
council ;  but  no  further  innovations  must  be  made.  The 
Sacramentarians  were  to  be  punished  with  banishment,  the 
Anabaptists  with  death.  The  sacrament  of  the  mass  was  to 
be  solemnized  without  let  or  hinderance ;  the  Gospel  was  to 
be  explained  according  to  the  interpretations  of  Fathers 
received  by  the  Church ;  the  public  peace  was  not  to  be  vio- 
lated, and  no  one  was  to  molest  another  or  interfere  with  his 
subjects  on  the  ground  of  religion. 

Such  an  edict,  if  it  were  allowed,  not  only  reduced  the 
Reformation  to  a  stand-still,  but  virtually  re-established 
Romanism.  The  Evangelicals  were  fully  aware  of  this,  and 
were  determined,  if  possible,  to  prevent  the  proposition  from 
passing  into  law;  but  at  least,  if  it  should  pass  into  law, 
never  to  accord  their  consent  to  it.  The  Saxon  envoy  Mink- 
witz,  on  the  12th  April,  ably  argued  the  cause  of  the  Luther- 
ans, contending  that,  in  cases  of  conscience,  the  force  of  a 
majority  was  null,  and  the  minority  would  never  consent  to 
the  sentence  of  their  own  condemnation.  But  his  represent- 
ations were  of  no  effect.  The  Elector  desired  Luther's 
opinion  on  the  prominent  question  of  the  power  of  a  majority, 
and  this  was  given,  in  opposition  to  any  acknowledgment  of 
such  a  power  being  vested  in  a  majority  of  the  Diet  as  was 
now  claimed  ;  and  he  insisted  on  the  contempt  into  which  the 
Clergy  had  everywhere  sunk,  the  total  downfall  which 
threatened  the  empire,  and  the  destruction  of  all  religion 
which  must  have  ensued,  if  the  revival  of  Scriptural  doctrine 
had  not  renewed  the  Church  and  regenerated  the  nation  by 
teaching  faith  in  Christ,  and  obedience  to  the   magistrate. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  159 

"  If  the  old  state  of  things  had  been  suffered  to  reach  its }  529. 
natural  termination,  the  world  must  have  fallen  to  pieces, 
and  Christianity  have  been  turned  into  Atheism."  But  it 
was  of  no  use  to  urge  unimpeachable  truths  to  a  confident 
and  triumphant  majority.  On  the  19th  April,  King  Fer- 
dinand thanked  his  coadjutors  for  "their  faithful  and  assi- 
duous services,"  and,  repudiating  the  arguments  of  the  Evan- 
gelicals, insisted  that  the  will  of  the  greater  part  of  the 
Electors  and  Princes,  according  to  ancient  usage,  must  be 
deemed  conclusive.  The  Lutherans  requested  a  brief  delay, 
but  Ferdinand  replied  that  the  commands  of  the  Emperor 
were  explicit,  and  he  abruptly  left  the  house  with  the  com- 
missioners. 

The  behaviour  of  Ferdinand  was  judged  by  the  Lutheran 
party  a  contempt  of  their  dignity  and  persons — an  insult 
added  to  an  injury;  and,  on  constitutional  as  well  as  on  reli- 
gious grounds,  they  felt  the  necessity  of  making  a  firm  stand. 
If  it  were  conceded  that  the  majority  of  the  Diet  had 
the  power  of  directing  the  internal  affairs  of  each  separate 
principality,  as  was  now  demanded,  it  was  clear  that  a  new 
order  of  things  had  commenced  in  Germany;  a  collective 
central  authority  had  usurped  the  rights  of  every  local  admi- 
nistration, and  in  that  usurping  court  the  weightiest  affairs 
were  henceforth  to  be  regulated  by  counting  hands.  But  the 
emergency  which  had  now  arisen  had  been  foreseen,  and 
was  provided  for.  The  Evangelical  Princes  returned  to  the 
chamber  where  the  States  remained  sitting,  and  caused  a 
protest  which  they  had  previously  prepared  to  be  read  aloud 
in  their  name,  and  requested  that  it  might  be  incorporated  in 
the  Recess.  The  protest,  with  a  few  additions,  was  delivered 
to  the  King  the  following  day,  but  Ferdinand  refused  to  accept 
it,  and  sent  it  back  to  them.  The  Diet,  however,  with  more 
courtesy  and  better  sense,  made  an  attempt  at   reconcilia- 


160  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  tion,*  and  deputed  Henry  of  Brunswick  and  Philip  of  Baden  to 
act  as  mediators.  But  the  attempt  failed ;  for  the  Bishops,  who 
had  now  gained  what  they  wanted,  and  King  Ferdinand,  who 
was  much  irritated  at  what  had  occurred,  were  indisposed  to 
accede  to  any  arrangement  short  of  the  decision  arrived  at  by 
the  majority.  The  majority  of  votes  in  their  favour  was  an 
argument  with  them  that  answered  every  objection.  Thus 
the  Evangelical  Princes  were  driven  to  the  publication  of  their 
protest  as  the  only  alternative  that  remained :  as  King  Ferdi- 
nand refused  to  have  it  inserted  in  the  Recess,  they  in  their 
turn  declined  to  comply  with  his  unreasonable  request  that 
they  would  refrain  from  publishing  it  altogether.  And  by 
circulating  such  a  document,  they  in  fact  appealed  from  one 
majority  to  another,  from  that  of  the  Diet  to  that  of  the 
German  people. 

On  Sunday,  April  25,  the  first  Protestants  met  in  the  house 
of  Peter  Muterstadt,  the  Deacon,  near  St.  John's  Church, 
in  St.  John's  Lane,  in  the  little  room  on  the  ground-floor, 
with  their  notaries,  the  Chancellors  of  the  Princes  and  States, 
to  give  the  instrument  of  Appeal  the  form  and  force  of  a  legal 
document.  Immediately  afterwards  it  was  made  public. 
The  Appeal  was  to  the  Emperor,  to  a  free  Christian  or 
National  Council,  or  to  whatsoever  competent  judge,  in  behalf 
of  themselves  and  their  subjects,  and  all  who  now  or  hereafter 
should  adhere  to  the  holy  Word  of  God.  In  this  Appeal  they 
stated  that  they  were  only  doing  what  they  owed  to  their 
conscience  and  to  God,  and  intended  no  injury  or  contempt  to 

*  Melancthon  wrote  to  Camerarius  (Bret.  II.,  p.  1060) — "  Our  adver- 
saries are  now  courting  us  to  remain  :  they  say  they  will  moderate  the 
bitterness  of  the  edict.  I  know  not  what  will  come  of  it  all."  He 
blamed  the  Lutherans  for  not  being  more  accommodating  in  the  matter 
of  the  tax  for  the  Turkish  war ;  and  dedicated  his  exposition  of  Daniel 
to  King  Ferdinand,  using  every  effort  to  pacify  him. 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  161 

any  one.  It  was  lawful  for  any  one  to  appeal  for  another  1529. 
who  had  been  condemned  to  death ;  how  much  more,  then, 
must  this  be  lawful  for  themselves — the  members  of  the  one 
spiritual  body  of  Jesus  Christ,  and  sons  of  one  heavenly 
Father,  in  behalf  of  themselves  and  their  neighbours,  in  a 
cause  affecting  everlasting  salvation  or  condemnation.  In 
such  a  cause  majority  of  votes  had  no  place.  By  the  decrees 
of  the  Diets  of  Nuremberg,  a  Council  had  been  unanimously 
demanded,  and  before  it  should  meet  they  could  not  be 
required  to  recede  from  the  convictions  of  their  conscience. 
They  had  never  consented  to  the  Edict  of  Worms,  and  never 
could  consent  to  it;  much  less  would  they  restore  in  their 
territories  the  mass,  refuted  by  their  preachers  from  the  Word 
of  God,  for  neither  did  the  adverse  party  allow  the  holy 
communion  in  both  kinds  in  their  dominions.  The  Edict 
of  Worms  had  been  abrogated  or  suspended  by  the 
decree  of  the  Diet  of  1526.  They  were  much  aggrieved 
by  the  charge  of  innovation,  which  could  not  rightly 
apply  to  those  who  conformed  to  Scripture,  and  it  was  not 
to  be  endured  that  no  one  henceforth  should  be  permitted  to 
embrace  the  evangelical  doctrine.  The  Word  of  God  was 
not  by  them  interpreted  according  to  the  Doctors  of  the 
Church,  for  it  was  a  question  what  was  meant  by  the  Church  : 
but  Scripture  was  explained  by  Scripture.  This  Appeal  was 
signed  by  John  Elector  of  Saxony,  George  Margrave  of 
Brandenberg,  Ernest  and  Francis  Dukes  of  Luneberg,  Philip 
Landgrave  of  Hesse,  Wolfgang  Prince  of  Anhalt,  and  by  four- 
teen imperial  cities — Strasburg,  Nuremberg,  Ulm,  Constance, 
Lindau,  Memmingen,  Kempten,  Nordlingen,  Heilbronn, 
Beutlingen,  Isny,  St.  Gall,  Wissenburg,  and  Windsheim. 
The  Protestants  included  in  their  number  all  the  cities  who 
upheld  Zwiuglian  doctrine.  They  stood  pledged  to  mutual 
defence  in  resisting  any  attempt  at  compulsion  on  the  part  of 

M 


162  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  the  majority,  in  things  appertaining  to  faith  ;  but  at  the  same 
time  expressed  the  hope  that  no  such  interference  would  be 
tried.  "Protestant,"  says  Pallavicini,  "signifies  traitor  to 
the  Pope  or  to  the  Emperor."  It  may  more  truly  be  said 
that  it  denotes  one  who  takes  Scripture,  and  Scripture  only, 
as  the  one  guide  in  faith  and  conduct  and,  in  heartfelt  sub- 
mission to  that  Divine  rule,  discards  all  human  traditions  and 
human  authority  that  conflict  with  it.  "  It  is  a  No,  which 
is  the  rebound  of  a  Yes" — that  Yes  the  Yea  and  Amen  of  God 
himself.  Negative  in  form,  it  is  in  substance  as  positive  a 
term  as  any  to  be  found  in  language. 

Before  the  Appeal  was  published,  indeed  the  day  after  the 
attempts  at  mediation  proved  fruitless,  a  secret  agreement 
had  been  concluded  by  Saxony  and  Hesse  with  the  cities  of 
Nuremberg,  Ulm,  and  Strasburg.  The  agreement  was  to  the 
effect  that  they  would  defend  themselves,  and  one  another,  if 
any  attack  on  religious  grounds  should  be  made  upon  any  of 
them,  whoever  the  aggressor  might  be,  whether  the  Suabian 
League  or  the  Emperor  himself,  and  delegates  were  to  be  sent 
by  them  in  June  to  Rothach  in  Franconia,  to  mature  the 
plans  of  this  warlike  alliance.  After  the  Appeal  had  received 
its  legal  form,  and  had  been  published,  the  thoughts  of  the 
Protestants,  as  was  natural,  were  more  powerfully  directed  to 
the  importance  of  a  defensive  alliance ;  and  the  scheme  was 
communicated  to  the  Theologians.  It  was  then  for  the  first 
time  distinctly  felt,  what  an  obstacle  the  difference  of  religious 
principles  between  the  Lutherans  and  the  Zvvinglians,  which 
in  the  imminent  jeopardy  to  the  Word  of  God,  had  been  for 
the  moment  quite  overlooked,  must  interpose  against  any 
general  Protestant  alliance  of  this  kind:  and  Melancthon, 
now  awake  to  what  he  had  before  little  thought  of,  began 
severely  to  reproach  himself  for  having  made  joint  cause 
with   the  Sacramentarians,    and   to   consider  the   unfavour- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  163 

able  issue  of  the  national  councils  as  a  retributive  punish-  1529. 
raent.  But  he  did  not  offer  any  opposition  to  the  pro- 
posed alliance  whilst  at  Spires.  It  was  determined  that  an 
Embassy  should  be  sent  to  the  Emperor,  and  with  this  view 
a  meeting  was  to  be  held  at  Nuremberg.  The  alliance  was 
to  be  arranged  at  Rothach.  Thus  the  Protestants  parted; 
and,  on  the  6th  May,  Melancthon  reached  Wittenberg  again  * 
The  Appeal  was  published  by  the  Landgrave  on  the  5th,  by 
the  Elector  of  Saxony  on  the  13th  May,  in  their  respective 
dominions. 

The  prospect  which  now  opened  before  the  mind's  eye  of  a 
military  prince  like  the  Landgrave  of  Hesse,  can  be  denomi- 
nated scarcely  by  a  less  word  than  magnificent.  He  had 
before  been  too  eager  to  grasp  the  sword;  it  now  seemed 
forced  into  his  hand.  And  allies  from  all  quarters  were 
ready  to  start  up  and  unite  in  the  contest  against  the  Papis- 
tical faction  which  had  prevailed  in  the  Diet.  Philip  had 
dived  deeply  into  the  recesses  of  diplomatic  negotiations,  and 
had  alike  sounded  the  intentions  of  courts  and  of  town- 
councils.  He  was,  like  his  friend  the  exiled  Duke  of  Wur- 
temburg,  and  the  Marquis  of  Baden,  on  intimate  terms  with 
the  Swiss  Protestants  and  the  great  Reformer,  Zwingle.     It 

*  They  heard  with  joy  at  Wittenberg  of  the  preservation  of  Simon 
Gryneeus.  He  had  come  to  Spires  to  see  Melancthon,  and  had  im- 
plored John  Faber  of  Constance  to  cease  persecuting  the  Gospel.  A 
man  of  venerable  appearance  stood  at  the  door  of  the  priest's  house 
with  whom  Melancthon  lodged,  and  inquired  for  Grynseus.  He  was 
not  within.  "  I  am  come,"  the  messenger  said,  "  to  warn  him  to  fly 
this  place  :  his  foes  have  laid  snares  for  him."  When  Grynseus  re- 
turned, Melancthon  persuaded  him  to  immediate  flight,  and  accom- 
panied him  to  the  Rhine.  Soon  afterwards  a  band  of  soldiers  appeared 
before  the  priest's  house  to  apprehend  Gryna?us. — Camerar.,  p.  113. 
Melancthon  wrote  to  Camerarius  that  he  regarded  the  interposition  as 
miraculous.  "  Omnino  est  ille  divino  auxilio  ereptus  quasi  e  faucibus 
eorum,  qui  sitiunt  sanguinem  innocentum." — Bret.  II.,  p.  1062. 

M  2 


164  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  is  singular  to  observe  the  different  language  in  which  Luther 
and  Zwingle  spoke  of  the  Landgrave:  with  the  Saxon  he  was 
"a  young  and  hot-headed  prince/'  with  the  Swiss  Reformer 
he  was  "  magnanimous,  steadfast,  and  wise."  But  Zurich 
was  in  negotiation  not  only  with  Philip,  but  with  the  King 
of  France ;  and  it  could  not  be  a  matter  of  doubt  with  what 
avidity  the  impetuous  Francis  would  seize  the  opportunity  of 
stirring  up  strife  against  his  rival  the  Emperor  in  Germany 
itself,  and  therefore  how  welcome  to  him  a  bond  with  a 
congenial  spirit  such  as  the  Landgrave  could  not  fail  to  be. 
Venice,  and  some  also  of  the  German  cities,  would  easily  be 
drawn  into  the  anti-imperial  alliance.  Then  there  were  the 
kings  of  Denmark  and  of  Sweden,  and  Albert  of  Prussia,  all 
sworn  Lutherans.  King  Ferdinand  had  enough  to  do  already 
in  opposing  Sultan  Soliman.  With  such  a  powerful  coalition 
arrayed  against  them  on  every  side,  the  Papistical  German 
princes  might  be  undoubtedly  reduced  to  the  most  compliant 
submission,  and  be  made  to  pay  dearly  for  their  haughty 
carriage  and  intolerant  decisions  at  the  recent  Diet.  A  far 
less  sanguine  character  than  Philip  the  Magnanimous  might 
easily  have  been  entranced  with  such  a  prospect  as  now  pre- 
sented itself;  and  it  cannot  excite  astonishment  that  he  sub- 
sequently toiled  with  all  his  energies  to  reconcile  the  diver- 
gencies of  the  Evangelical  and  Reformed  Churches. 

With  far  other  feelings,  dejected  and  desponding,  Melanc- 
thon  returned  to  Wittenberg.  His  conscience  upbraided 
him  with  having  been  an  accomplice  in  an  unholy  league  with 
those  who  had  divested  the  Eucharist  of  its  awful  mystery, 
and  who  held  many  other  unscriptural  dogmas.  He  was 
half  dead  with  the  sense  of  his  error;  his  studies  and  the 
claims  of  private  friendship  were  neglected,  and  death  seemed 
preferable  to  the  tortures  of  self-recrimination.  His  de- 
spondency was  soon  afterwards  deepened  by  a  domestic  afflic- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  165 

tion,  the  death  of  his  younger  son  George.  It  may  readily  1529. 
be  conjectured  what  Luther  thought  of  an  alliance  with  the 
Swiss,  and  with  what  condoling  sympathy  he  welcomed  the 
repentance,  or  rather  the  self-recollection,  of  Melaucthon. 
Of  the  importance  of  the  protest  he  had  no  conception :  he 
only  recognised  in  the  account  of  what  had  passed  at  the 
Diet,  that  "  the  spiritual  tyrants  and  buffeters  of  the  Saviour  " 
had  been  withheld  by  a  Divine  hand  from  satiating  their  fury 
against  the  Gospel.  And  he  was  now  resolved  to  warn  the 
Elector  of  the  guilt  of  concluding  the  proposed  alliance  with 
heretics,  chargeable  with  setting  aside  the  plain  words  of 
Scripture,  and  trampling  under  foot  the  Sacrament  of  the 
altar.  But  this  was  not  all.  He  had  allowed  the  right  of  an 
Elector  of  the  Empire  to  form  a  defensive  alliance  against  a 
brother  elector  or  potentate,  only  ranking  on  the  same  level 
with  himself;  but  it  was  a  very  different  thing  for  a  subor- 
dinate prince  to  engage  in  a  compact  even  for  self-defence 
against  the  imperial  authority  itself.  Loyalty  was  with  him 
a  plain  Christian  duty.  Obedience  to  the  powers  that  be, 
under  whatever  circumstances,  he  regarded  as  enjoined  in 
every  page  of  the  Scriptures.  But  from  his  correspondence 
it  seems  probable  that  the  antipathy  to  the  Sacramentarian 
error  was  even  yet  stronger  in  his  mind  than  his  conviction 
of  the  doctrine  of  passive  obedience. 

"Master  Philip,"  Luther  wrote  to  the  Elector,  on  the 
22nd  May,  "has  brought  me  intelligence  from  the  Diet 
which  has  moved  me  not  a  little,  that  a  new  league  is  in 
hand  between  your  Grace,  and  the  Landgrave,  and  several 
States.  It  is  only  a  year  ago  that  God  in  his  wonderful 
mercy  delivered  us  from  the  perils  of  a  terrible  plot.  As  I 
hope  that  God  will  henceforth  watch  over  and  give  your 
Grace  spirit  and  counsel  to  abstain  for  the  time  to  come 
from  such  like  compacts,  so  I  cannot  satisfy  the  appeals  and 


166  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  violence  of  my  conscience,  without  approving  to  your  Grace, 
with  what  knowledge  and  experience  I  have,  that  no  one  can  be 
too  industrious  in  anticipating  the  devil  and  his  temptations. 
Christ  our  Lord  will  grant  our  prayer  that  your  Grace  may 
beware,  and  however  the  Landgrave  may  advance  in  his 
league-making,  avoid  all  partnership  and  oonnexion  with 
such  designs.  For  the  folly  that  will  proceed  therefrom,  we 
cannot  think  of  it  all.  In  the  first  place,  such  leaguing  does 
not  proceed  from  God,  nor  from  confidence  in  God,  but  from 
human  wisdom,  and  from  seeking  human  help  wherein  to 
trust,  which  has  no  sure  ground,  and  never  yields  good  fruit. 
Secondly,  it  is  awful  to  reflect,  that  in  such  a  league  we  com- 
prise those  who  strive  against  God  and  the  Sacrament, 
whereby  we  bring  all  their  iniquity  and  profaneness  upon  our 
own  heads,  and  make  ourselves  partakers  in  their  guilt. 
Rather  than  this,  so  help  us  God,  your  Grace  had  far  better 
abandon  the  Landgrave,  as  I  hear  the  Margrave  George  has 
declared  and  done.  For  our  Lord  Christ,  who  has  hitherto 
wonderfully  helped  us  without  the  Landgrave,  yea,  against 
the  Landgrave,  can  help  and  counsel  us  still.  Thirdly,  in  the 
Old  Testament  God  has  ever  condemned  such  a  leaguing 
of  human  help :  as  in  Isaiah,  vii.,  viii.,  and  xxx. ;  and  he 
proclaims,  '  Your  strength  is  to  sit  still.5  We  must  be  the 
children  of  faith  in  God,  in  sure  confidence  in  Him.  '  Cast 
all  your  care  upon  him.  Who  art  thou  that  thou  shouldest 
be  afraid  of  a  man  that  shall  die  ?  }  M 

Afterwards  he  forwarded  a  paper  of  considerations  to  the 
Elector,  in  which  he  answered  the  arguments  of  those  who 
upheld  the  league,  and  stoutly  maintained  that  to  deny  any 
siugle  Christian  doctrine  is  to  deny  the  Christian  faith  alto- 
gether. "  The  whole  virtue  of  a  compact  consists,"  he  said, 
"  in  faith  and  a  good  conscience  :  but  how  can  there  be  such  a 
groundwork  in  conjunction  with  those  who  hold  unworthy 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  167 

views  of  the  Sacrament?"  He  recommended  that  in  sending  1529. 
an  embassy  to  the  Emperor  the  Evangelicals  should  act 
quite  distinctly  from  the  Sacramentarians.  He  wished  the 
merits  of  the  Elector  towards  the  Church  to  be  dwelt  upon  at 
length  in  the  representations  of  the  ambassadors,  particularly 
that  he  had  caused  Jesus  Christ,  and  faith  in  Him,  to  be 
taught  most  purely,  and  as  they  had  not  been  taught  for  1000 
years;  had  abolished  mass-marketings,  indulgence- traffick- 
ings,  excommunications,  and  a  host  of  evils  condemned  by  the 
Diet  of  Worms ;  had  resisted  the  violation  of  churches  and 
images ;  had  opposed  Munzer,  and  preserved  the  public  peace ; 
and  had  done  his  utmost  to  suppress  the  heresies  of  the  Sacra- 
mentarians, and  of  the  Anabaptists,  as  well  as  the  vile  doc- 
trines of  Erasmus  and  others  on  the  Holy  Trinity.  For  the 
time,  however,  another  influence  was  in  the  ascendant : 
Luther's  admonitions  were  disregarded,  and  on  the  27th  May 
a  meeting  was  held  at  Nuremberg,  at  which  it  was  resolved  to 
send  three  ambassadors  to  Charles,  in  the  combined  cause  of 
Lutherans  and  Zwinglians ;  and  their  instructions  were  not 
exactly  in  the  submissive  tone  advised  by  Luther,  but  dwelt, 
as  the  protest  had  done,  on  past  decrees  of  Diets,  and  the 
constitutional  maxims  of  the  empire,  which  Charles  had  in- 
fringed in  abolishing  the  decree  of  1526,  and  petitioned  ear- 
nestly for  the  promised  Council.  But  it  was  not  long  that 
the  Elector  John  trod  in  the  worldly  footprints  of  the  Land- 
grave :  Luther's  scriptural  exhortations  after  a  little  while 
again  prevailed ;  and  the  career  of  the  Reformation  at  a  cri- 
tical period  was  once  more  determined,  and  probably  recalled 
from  imminent  ruin,  by  the  firmness  with  which  he  resisted 
every  argument  of  expediency,  and  acted  on  simple  faith  in 
God. 

The  meeting  took  place,  as  had  been  agreed,  at  Rothach  on 
the  1st  June,  but  the  result  proved  how  much  the  arguments 


168  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  of  Lutlier  had  weighed  upon  the  Elector's  conscience  in  the 
interval.  John  directed  his  delegate  Minkwitz  to  hear  all 
that  was  said,  but  to  be  no  party  to  any  definitive  agree- 
ment ;  and  thus  the  meeting  broke  up  with  no  fruit  be- 
yond the  repetition  of  formal  expressions  of  sympathy  and 
vague  assurances  of  support.  This  was  anything  but  satisfac- 
tory to  the  Landgrave.  Various  letters  passed  between  him 
and  the  Elector,  and  Philip  strove  to  persuade  John  that  the 
point  of  the  Lord's  Supper  was  not  an  essential  article  of 
religion,  like  faith  and  some  other  doctrines ;  and  that 
u  theologians  would  for  ever  be  disputing."  But  as  time 
advanced,  the  influence  of  Luther's  sentiments  on  the  Elec- 
tor's judgment  continued  to  be  on  the  increase.  There  was 
a  meeting  at  Zerbst  on  the  7th  August,  at  which  deputies 
of  most  of  the  Protestant  princes  were  present,  but  again  no 
arrangement  could  be  agreed  upon.  The  Elector  of  Saxony, 
George,  the  Margrave  of  Brandenburg  and  the  city  of  Nu- 
remberg, were  especially  firm  and  decided  in  adhering  to 
Luther's  sacramental  doctrines  and  his  pacific  policy :  and 
the  two  former  afterwards  entered  into  a  mutual  stipulation 
that  they  would  never  assent  to  forming  a  compact  with  such 
as  differed  from  the  evangelical  tenets  on  the  subject  of  the 
Lord's  Supper  and  Holy  Baptism.  But  it  had  been  settled 
that  a  general  Protestant  conference  should  take  place  in  the 
middle  of  October,  at  Schwaback,  and  the  Landgrave  did  not 
remit  anything  of  his  usual  ardour  in  labouring  so  to  settle 
doctrinal  diversities,  that  before  that  congress  the  path  to  a 
defensive  combination  might  be  made  smooth. 

The  plan  conceived  by  Philip  was  that  the  rival  theologians, 
who  he  found,  from  the  recesses  of  their  modest  dwellings 
ruled  the  counsels  of  princes,  and  with  the  pen  determined 
the  action  of  the  sword,  should  hold  a  meeting  under  his 
protection   and   in   his  presence :    and   he   trusted   that   by 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  169 

calmly  talking  over  the  arguments  in  support  of  their  adverse  1529. 
views  the  differences  might  be  adjusted,  or  at  least  all  ill- 
feeling  quieted.  Indeed,  this  plan  had  occurred  to  his  mind 
before  the  Diet  broke  up,  and  he  mentioned  it  to  Me- 
lancthon.  Luther  did  not  refuse  to  accede  to  this  proposal, 
but  from  the  very  first  he,  and  Melancthon  with  him,  so 
wrote  and  acted  as  to  show  that  they  expected  little  or  no 
good  from  any  disputation  or  conference  with  adversaries  who 
had  published  such  bitter  writings  in  maintenance  of  their 
heretical  opinions.  On  the  23rd  June  he  replied  to  the 
Landgrave's  invitation  that  he  would  go  to  Marburg,  and 
give  the  meeting  to  (Ecolampadius  and  his  partisans,  for  his 
opponents  should  never  be  able  to  say  that  they  loved  peace 
and  unity  better  than  he  did  :  but  he  had  no  hope  whatever 
from  argument ;  he  had  well  studied  his  own  ground,  so  had 
his  opponents  theirs  :  he  feared  Satan  might  find  his  own 
advantage  in  the  disputation :  he  certainly  should  not  himself 
yield,  and  if  his  opponents  proved  as  obstinate,  the  Land- 
grave's expense  and  trouble  would  all  be  lost,  although  his 
diligence  to  heal  divisions  was  highly  praiseworthy.  But  if, 
as  his  Grace  hinted,  disunion  should  be  followed  by  shedding 
of  blood,  which  the  depraved  heart  naturally  thirsted  for,  he 
and  his  would  be  guiltless  of  any  such  result.  What  shedding 
of  blood  led  to  had  been  witnessed  in  the  instances  of  Sickin- 
gen,  Carlstadt,  and  Munzer :  from  all  whose  enterprises  he  had 
kept  himself  clear,  and  from  all  similar  enterprises  he  would 
ever  keep  himself  clear,  with  the  help  of  God. 

In  a  paper  of  considerations  of  about  the  same  date — the 
composition  either  of  Luther  or  Melancthon  * — it  was  pro- 


*  It  has  no  signature  attached.  De  "Wette  (III.  p.  475)  ascribes  it  to 
Luther;  Bretschneider  (II.  p.  1066)  to  Melancthon.  It  was  first  pub- 
lished by  Miiller,  in  his  "History  of  the  Augsburg  Confession,"  from 
the  Weimar  Archives. 


170  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  posed  that  some  honest  Papists  should  attend  the  disputation 
as  a  third  and  impartial  party,  both  to  preclude  the  possibility 
of  any  rumour  that  the  Reforming  party  were  hatching  some 
conspiracy,  and  to  serve  as  a  check  on  the  proneness  of  the 
Sacramentarians  to  palm  off  on  the  public  a  false  and  inte- 
rested statement  of  the  arguments  adduced.  Such  a  proposal 
is  itself  a  sufficient  proof  of  the  extreme  reluctance  with 
which  the  Wittenberg  divines  yielded  to  the  importunity  of 
the  Landgrave.  Even  the  gentle  Melancthon  reiterates,  in 
his  correspondence,  that  he  had  ' '  rather  die "  than  be  con- 
taminated by  alliance  with  the  Swiss :  "  they  separated  the 
divinity  of  Christ  from  his  manhood :  they  spoke  of  sin  as 
only  in  the  outward  act,  like  the  Pelagians  and  Papists ;  and 
they  made  faith  a  mere  historical  belief."  Zwingle  was  per- 
sonally odious  to  the  Lutheran  chiefs;  he  is  described  by 
them  as  "  rude,  violent,  and  insolent ;"  and  it  was  thought 
that  the  success  of  his  doctrines  in  the  famous  conference  at 
Bern,  when  it  was  decided  to  abrogate  the  mass,  and  from 
which  he  had  been  brought  home  in  triumph  by  his  country- 
men, the  boys  shouting  in  the  streets,  "Down  with  a  God 
of  bread — a  baker  God,"  had  contributed  to  inflame  his  na- 
tive pride  and  roughness.  Luther  repeated  in  a  stronger 
tone  all  that  he  had  ever  said  against  disputations ;  he  spoke 
of  the  Leipsic  disputation  as  having  produced  more  evil  than 
good :  he  referred  to  the  disputations  in  past  ages  of  the 
Arians  and  orthodox  as  having  never  been  attended  with  any 
benefit :  and  he  complained  of  the  unruly  spirit  of  the  Land- 
grave, and  the  bad  designs  he  was  harbouring.  "  I  know  well 
what  Satan  is  about  in  this  business  :  God  grant  I  prove  not  a 
true  prophet."  He  even  requested  of  his  friends  that  prayers 
might  be  offered  in  the  churches  for  public  peace,  for  "  Satan 
was  meditating  a  great  bane  to  Germany,  and  an  intolerable 
scandal  to  the  Gospel,  by  tempting  the  Reforming  party  to 
take  up  arms." 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  171 

It  was  the  Elector's  care  that  the  great  Doctor  should  1529. 
appear  at  the  conference  apparelled  in  a  manner  worthy  of  his 
patron,  and  he  therefore  sent  him  a  present  of  a  handsome  suit 
of  clothes,  and  cloth  for  a  gown.  In  a  noble  letter  Luther 
returned  his  thanks.  "His  Grace  must  not  believe  those 
who  said  that  he  was  in  want.  He  had  received  more  from 
his  Grace  than  in  his  conscience  he  could  well  bear ;  for  as  a 
preacher  he  ought  not,  and  fain  would  not  have  a  superfluity. 
He  would  not  willingly  be  found  amongst  those  in  this  life  to 
whom  Christ  says,  '  Woe  unto  you  that  are  rich,  for  ye  have 
received  your  consolation/  Besides,  he  would  not  be  bur- 
densome to  his  Grace,  as  knowing  what  demands  he  had  on 
his  charity,  and  how  much  he  required  to  keep  up  his  state  : 
and  ( too  much  bursts  the  bag/  Although  it  would  not  be- 
seem him  to  wear  the  liver-coloured  cloth,  yet  he  would  wear 
the  black  coat  out  of  honour  to  his  Grace,  though  far  too 
costly ;  and  were  it  not  his  Grace's  present,  he  never  could 
wear  such  a  coat  at  all.  His  Grace  must  wait  until  he  en- 
treated a  gift,  that  he  might  not  be  shy  to  intercede  for  others 
far  worthier  than  himself." 

The  conference  was  fixed  for  St.  Michael's  Day.  Luther, 
accompanied  by  Melancthon,  Cruciger,  and  Jonas,  left  Wit- 
tenberg the  23rd  October,  and  took  the  road  by  Erfurth, 
Gotha,  and  Eisenach ;  but  as  soon  as  he  reached  the  frontiers 
of  Hesse,  be  refused  to  proceed  any  farther  until  a  safe-con- 
duct from  the  Landgrave  had  been  sent  him.  When  this  had 
been  received,  he  advanced  to  Alsfeld,  and  rested  there  for  the 
night,  and  on  Thursday,  the  30th  September,  before  mid-day, 
made  his  entrance  into  Marburg.  The  Swiss  had  arrived  the 
day  previously;  and  very  different  were  the  feelings  with 
which  they  had  undertaken  the  journey,  and  prepared  to  en- 
gage in  the  discussion.  Zwingle,  apprehensive  of  impediments 
and  delays,  and  urged  by  a  fourth  messenger  from  that  "  most 


172  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHEK. 

1529.  pious  hero  and  Christian  prince  the  Landgrave,"  quitted 
Zurich  secretly  the  beginning  of  September,  leaving  a  letter  to 
be  delivered  to  the  Small  and  Great  Council,  explaining  his 
departure,  and  telling  his  wife  that  he  was  going  to  Basle  on 
business :  on  the  5th  he  was  at  Basle,  in  CEcolampadius' 
house ;  and  on  the  6th  the  two  theologians,  with  Rudolph 
Fry,  senator  of  Basle,  and  Ulric  Funk,  senator  of  Zurich,  de- 
scended the  Rhine  in  company  with  some  merchants,  and  in 
thirteen  hours  reached  Strasburg,  where  they  remained  some 
days,  and  towards  the  end  of  the  month,  with  Hedio  and 
Bucer,  and  a  Strasburg  senator  of  note,  James  Sturm,  under 
an  escort  of  soldiers  or  horsemen  accomplished  their  route  to 
Marburg.  The  Lutheran  party,  besides  Eberhard,  the  pre- 
fect of  Eisenach,  and  some  others  who  had  joined  them  at 
that  town,  were  increased  by  the  subsequent  arrival,  after 
the  controversy  had  commenced,  of  Osiander  of  Nuremberg, 
Brentz  of  Halle,  and  Stephen  Agricola  of  Augsburg.  It 
had  at  first  been  intended  to  assign  the  disputants  of  the 
two  contending  sides  lodgings  in  the  town :  but  this  scheme 
was  abandoned  ;  and  they  were  all  most  courteously  received 
by  the  Landgrave  in  his  castle,  an  ancient  fortress  standing 
on  the  brow  of  a  hill,  surrounded  with  woods,  and  com- 
manding a  noble  view  of  the  valley  of  the  Lahn.  The  theo- 
logians sat  at  the  same  table  with  the  prince,  and  were 
entertained  with  royal  magnificence.  On  the  30th,  Luther 
conversed  familiarly  for  some  time  with  CEcolampadius  in 
the  castle  yard ;  but  when  Bucer  drew  near  to  him,  he  ex- 
claimed, shaking  his  hand  at  him,  "  You  are  a  good-for- 
nothing  knave." 

The  next  day,  Friday,  October  1,  it  was  arranged  that 
there  should  be  a  separate  conference  in  private,  two  by  two, 
of  the  heads  of  the  opponent  sentiments — Luther  apart 
with  CEcolampadius,  and  Melancthon  with  Zwingle — the  im- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  173 

petuous  matched  against  the  gentle.  After  divine  service  the  1529. 
pairs  of  disputants  withdrew  into  the  apartments  allotted 
them,  and  carried  on  the  discussion  until  they  were  inter- 
rupted by  the  summons  to  dinner.  Zwingle  complains  that 
Melancthon  was  "so  slippery,  and  such  a  Proteus,  that  he 
was  obliged  to  take  a  pen  and  conduct  the  controversy  on 
paper,  in  order  to  fix  him."  But  this  preliminary  interview 
proved  that  on  all  subjects,  save  the  Sacrament  of  the  Lord's 
Supper,  the  disputants  were  agreed.  The  Swiss  allowed  the 
radical  and  total  depravity  of  the  heart;  that  the  Sacraments 
are  channels  for  communicating  grace;  that  by  baptism,  the 
infant  has  original  sin  forgiven  him;  that  the  Holy  Spirit 
acts  not  independently  of,  but  through  the  written  word ;  and 
that  justification  is  to  be  distinguished  from  those  good  works 
which  are  its  fruits  and  effects.  After  dinner  Melancthon  and 
Zwingle  resumed  their  discussion  for  three  hours  longer,  and 
and  entered  more  fully  on  the  debated  point  of  the  Lord's 
Supper ;  but  Luther  did  not  return  to  his  conference  with 
(Ecolampadius.  The  theologian  of  Basle  had  whispered  into 
Zwingle's  ear,  on  joining  him  to  proceed  to  the  dinner  table, 
that  "  he  had  a  second  time  lighted  on  Eck."  Luther  only 
mentions  in  his  correspondence  the  mutual  suavity  of  manner 
observed  in  the  interview. 

The  following  day,  Saturday,  October  2,  the  more  public 
conference  was  to  take  place.  An  apartment  in  the  interior 
of  the  castle,  near  the  Prince's  bedchamber,  had  been  chosen 
for  the  discussion,  for  much  care  was  used  to  prevent  the  in- 
trusion of  the  idly  curious  or  ill-disposed.  Carlstadt  had  re- 
quested permission  to  be  present,  but  Luther  at  once  negatived 
such  a  proposition ;  and  many  who  had  come  from  Switzerland 
or  the  Rhine,  full  of  anxiety  to  be  witnesses  of  the  controversy, 
knocked  in  vain  at  the  castle  gate,  and  implored  to  be  let  in. 
Early  in  the  morning  the  Landgrave  entered  the  hall  and 


174  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  took  his  seat,  with  his  courtiers,  and  counsellors  of  the 
first  mark,  professors  of  his  university,  and  the  nobles  and 
deputies  who  had  been  granted  admission;  about  twenty- 
four  spectators  in  all,  according  to  the  Zwinglian  account,  as 
many  as  fifty  or  sixty  according  to  the  Lutheran.  The  Prince 
was  very  plainly  attired,  and  thus  appeared  eager  to  ignore 
his  rank  on  the  occasion,  and  to  do  homage  to  theology. 
Of  an  intelligent  mind,  and  well  versed  in  the  Scriptures,  he 
listened  with  fixed  attention  to  the  arguments  advanced  by 
either  side.  A  desk,  covered  with  a  velvet  cloth,  divided 
Luther  and  Melancthon  from  Zwingle  and  CEcolampadius, 
and  the  other  theologians  were  seated  behind  the  chiefs  of 
their  respective  parties.  But,  before  the  controversy  began, 
Luther  stepped  forward,  and  with  a  piece  of  chalk  wrote  on 
the  velvet  cloth,  in  large  letters  in  Latin,  the  text  of  Scrip- 
ture on  which  he  depended — "  This  is  my  body/'  It  was  a 
token  that,  as  long  as  that  text  was  found  in  Scripture,  he 
would  not  abandon  the  doctrine  of  the  corporeal  presence. 

The  conference  was  opened  by  Feige,  the  Chancellor  of 
Hesse,  admonishing  the  disputants  of  the  object  for  which 
they  were  met,  viz.  the  establishment  of  concord.  Upon  this 
Luther  declared,  that  he  must  protest  against  the  opinions 
entertained  by  his  opponents  on  the  Lord's  Supper,  and  ever 
should  protest  against  them,  for  the  words  of  Christ  were 
simple  and  conclusive,  "  This  is  my  body."  CEcolampadius 
replied,  that  the  words  of  Christ  thus  quoted  were  figurative, 
and  to  be  explained  by  similar  texts,  such  as,  I  am  the  true 
vine,  I  am  the  door  of  the  sheep,  John  is  Elias,  &c.  Luther 
acknowledged  a  figure  in  the  passages  adduced,  for  the 
simplest  understanding  must  at  once  perceive  them  to  be 
figurative ;  but  he  denied  that  there  was  anything  parallel 
to  them  in  the  declaration,  "  This  is  my  body."  CEcolampa- 
dius then   had  recourse  to  Christ's   own  statement  of  the 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  175 

manner  in  which  eating    his  flesh  and  drinking  his  blood  1529. 
were  to  be    understood,  as    contained   in  John  vi.,  where, 
in  answer  to  the  inquiry,  "  How  can  this  man  give  us  his 
flesh  to  eat  ?  "  he  says,  "  It  is  the  Spirit  that  quickeneth ;  the 
flesh  profiteth  nothing :    the  words  that  I  speak  unto  you, 
they  are  spirit,  and  they  are  life."    Luther  insisted  that  that 
passage  of  Scripture  did  not  refer  to  the  Sacrament  of  the 
Lord's  Supper,  but  to  feeding  on  Christ  spiritually  :  but  even 
if  it  did  refer  to  the   Sacrament,  by  Christ's  words  in  that 
place  must  be  understood  not  his  flesh,  but  our  flesh  ;  in  other 
words,  that  the  body  of  Christ  is  to  be  received  not  with  a 
carnal  but  with  a  spiritual  heart.    For  what  blasphemy  to  dare 
to  say,  "  The  flesh  of  Christ  profiteth  nothing  ! "    Christ  him- 
self saith,  "  His  flesh  bringeth  life."  CEcolampadius  continued 
to  press  him  on  this  point, — "  But  if  there  be  the  spiritual 
manducation,  what  can  the  oral  avail  ?"    "  That,"  said  Luther, 
"  is  a  mere  rationalistic  question ;  it  ought  to  be  enough  that 
the  word  of    God  says    so;    what  that  word  states  we  are 
bound  to  believe  without  a  doubt,  or  a  cavil,  or  objection. 
The  world  must  obey  God's  precepts ;  we  must  all  kiss  his 
word.     Worms,  listen  !     It  is  your  God  who  speaks  !  "    Here 
Zwingle  came  to  the  aid  of  his  friend ;  and  the  controversy 
quickly  assumed  a  sharper  and  more  excited  tone.     "The 
devil,"  Luther  repeated,  "  shall  not  drive  me  from  simple  de- 
pendence on  Christ's  words,  '  This  is  my  body.'     "  You  keep 
on   singing    the    same    song ! "    Zwingle    exclaimed.     This 
Luther  resented  as  rough  and  arrogant  language ;  and  when 
Zwingle  continued,  "  Pardon  me,  my  dear  sir ;  the  Saviour's 
explanation  of  the  meaning  of  his  words  is  decisive :  Christ 
tells   you    at   once " — "  Your  language,"   Luther  retorted, 
"  savours  of  the  camp  and  of  bloodshed,"  glancing  at  the 
ulterior  designs  which  he  supposed  to  be  veiled  by  the  eager- 
ness for  unanimity,  and  yet  more  obviously  alluding  to  the 


176  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  preparations  for  battle  which  had  been  made  by  Zurich  and 
Bern  against  the  Forest  Cantons  in  the  summer,  and  all  but 
brought  to  the  test  of  actual  conflict.  It  was  a  relief  to  the 
Landgrave,  and  all  who  had  harmony  and  concord  at  heart, 
that,  at  this  heated  turn  in  the  discussion,  when  the  argument 
had  degenerated  into  personal  allusion,  the  combatants  were 
parted  by  dinner  being  announced. 

After  dinner  the  discussion  was  renewed,  and  the  fore- 
Sunday,  noon  and  afternoon  of  the  next  day  *  were  devoted  to 
Oct.  3.      ,  .  .  .        -    . 

the    controversy,    but   without  any  impression   being  made 

on  either  party  by  the  representations  of  the  other.  Luther 
stood  throughout  on  the  defensive,  repeatedly  quoting  the 
text  which  he  regarded  as  decisive,  and  the  account  of 
the  institution  of  the  Lord's  Supper  as  given  by  St.  Paul 
in  1  Cor.  xi.  His  adversaries  assailed  him  with  other 
arguments.  "  You  will  not  allow  a  metaphor,  yet  you  ad- 
mit a  synecdoche,"  urged  (Ecolampadius,  "  in  the  words, 
'This  is  my  body.5"  "There  is  a  great  difference,"  Luther 
replied,  "  between  metaphor  and  synecdoche ;  synecdoche 
does  not  involve  a  sign  as  metaphor  does;  but  every  one  un- 
derstands what  is  meant  by  drinking  a  bottle,  that  it  is  the 
beer  in  the  bottle.  The  body  of  Christ  is  in  the  bread  as  the 
sword  in  the  scabbard,  or  the  Holy  Ghost  in  the  dove."  "  The 
term  sacrament,"  (Ecolampadius  continued,  "is  synonymous 
with  a  sign  or  token,  which  is  as  good  as  an  acknowledgment 
that  metaphor  is  employed."  Luther  answered,  that  he  could 
not  accede  to  such  an  inference;  "the  body  and  blood  of 
course  are  signs  in  one  sense ;  they  are  signs  of  our  redemption, 
and  of  the  promises  of  God,  which  hang  upon  them."  Zwingle 
tried  another  argument.     A  body,  he  said,  cannot  be  without 

*  Lingke  states  (D.  M.  L.'s.  Reisegeschichte,  p.  180),  that  Luther 
pi-eached  a  sermon  at  Marburg  this  Sunday,  on  Christian  Justification, 
or  Forgiveness  of  Sins. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  177 

place :  the  body  of  Christ  is  like  our  own,  for  he  took  the  15v2(.> 
form  of  a  servant ;  it  is  now  only  a  glorified  body,  such  as  we 
shall  share;  and  that  body  is  in  heaven,  for  it  is  written  "  He 
ascended  into  heaven ;  "  it  therefore  cannot  be  at  the  same 
time  in  the  bread.  "  I  will  have  nothing,"  Luther  exclaimed, 
"  to  do  with  your  mathematics ;  God  is  above  mathema- 
tics; I  never  stated  that  the  body  of  Christ  is  in  the  bread  as 
in  a  place."  But  when  it  was  attempted  to  lead  him  to  a 
more  precise  statement  of  what  his  doctrine  really  was,  he 
drew  back  in  abhorrence.  To  affect  precision  in  such  a  case 
was,  in  his  judgment,  the  height  of  irreverence  and  impiety ; 
and  to  talk,  as  Zwingle  did,  of  Christ's  body  being  "  finite," 
was  to  degrade  the  Godhead  to  the  level  of  our  ignorant  un- 
derstandings, and  to  separate  the  two  indivisible  natures  of 
Christ.  "  The  whole  Christ,  God  and  man,  was  in  the  Sacra- 
ment." Zwingle  proceeded  to  charge  him  with  bringing  back 
Popery  by  the  doctrine  which  he  held  on  the  Lord's  Supper. 
He  replied  that  he  did  not  in  any  way  recognise  the  papistical 
opus  operatum ;  but  believed  the  sacrament  to  be  effectual 
only  because  of  Christ's  institution  "  by  the  word,"  like  the 
divine  word  itself,  not  losing  its  virtue  by  unbelief  either  in 
the  priest  or  people,  but  to  the  unfaithful  "  a  savour  of  death 
unto  death,"  and  to  the  faithful  "  a  savour  of  life  unto  life."  At 
last  he  tore  the  velvet  cloth  from  the  table,  and  held  up  before 
all  the  assembly  the  large  letters,  "  This  is  my  body,"  as  an 
unassailable  warrant  for  persisting  in  the  plain  literal  inter- 
pretation of  Scripture  against  every  cavil.  It  was  evident  to 
both  parties  that  the  disputation  could  not  be  protracted  with 
any  advantage ;  it  was  therefore  closed,  after  the  Swiss  had 
read  aloud  several  quotations  from  fathers  of  the  church  in 
support  of  their  views,  "  not  to  add  tradition  to  the  founda- 
tion of  Scripture,"  but  to  vindicate  their  doctrine  from  the 
charge  of  novelty.     And  the  Evangelicals  in  reply  collected 

VOL.  II.  N 


178  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  various  passages  from  the  fathers  in  defence  of  their  senti- 
ments, and  gave  the  document  into  the  hands  of  the  Land- 
grave. Throughout  the  sojourn  of  the  theologians  in  his  castle, 
the  Landgrave  was  assiduously  bent  on  effecting  a  recon- 
ciliation ;  he  had  frequent  interviews  in  private  with  Zwingle ; 
he  also  sent  for  each  of  the  disputants,  and  remained  closeted 
with  them  for  some  time,  exhorting,  urging,  and  imploring, 
that,  out  of  regard  to  the  Christian  common  weal,  the  scandal 
of  discord  should  be  removed. 

What  was  to  be  done  ?  All  hopes  of  unanimity  had  proved 
abortive.  Nor  was  a  long  delay  possible ;  for  the  sweating 
sickness,  which  had  previously  spread  its  ravages  and  terrors 
through  other  parts  of  Germany,  in  a  most  sickly  season, 
when  there  was  a  blight  on  the  corn  and  vintage  crops,  so 
that  the  wine  could  neither  be  drank,  nor  yet  converted  into 
vinegar,  had  already  made  its  appearance  at  Marburg.  Before 
departing  from  Wittenberg,  Luther  had  been  mourning  over 
the  devil's  machinations,  that  "  he  struck  some  with  disease, 
and  yet  more  with  panic/'  Aurogallus,  Bruck,  and  Christian 
Beyer  had  all  to  be  roused  to  more  manly  resolution,  or 
they  would  have  sweated  themselves  to  death  from  the 
sheer  force  of  fancy ;  and  now,  at  Marburg,  on  the  last  day 
of  the  disputation,  fifteen  persons  were  seized  with  the  Eng- 
lish malady,  of  whom  one  or  two  died.  A  speedy  with- 
drawal to  a  more  healthy  locality  was  absolutely  necessary. 
But  injury  instead  of  benefit  must  result  to  the  Refor- 
mation if,  by  an  unfriendly  parting,  the  Protestants  wit- 
nessed to  the  whole  world  that  the  division  in  their  ranks, 
which  could  not  be  closed,  was  reciprocally  judged  of  such 
importance  as  to  make  the  Saxons  and  Swiss  avowed  aliens 
from  one  another  on  religious  grounds.  Accordingly  a  gene- 
ral meeting  took  place.  It  was  now  to  be  decided  whether, 
if  there  could  not  be  perfect   doctrinal  union,  there  might 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEH.  179 

not  be  union  in  essentials,  with  allowed  diversity  in  other  1529. 
points.  Luther  held  that  there  might  be  a  difference  of 
opinion  among  Christians  on  images,  crucifixes,  priestly  vest- 
ments, and  such  externals  of  religion ;  but  declared  that  no 
article  of  faith  could  ever  be  a  matter  of  indifference.  Zwingle, 
on  the  other  hand,  decided  that  images,  the  cowl,  and  exter- 
nals were  by  no  means  indifferent;  but  Christians  might  be 
permitted  to  entertain  dissimilar  sentiments  on  the  Lord's 
Supper.  The  Swiss  were  the  less  powerful  side,  partly  on 
account  of  the  animosity  of  most  of  the  nobles  and  princes 
to  their  tenets,  and  partly  because  Lutheranism  was  a  faith 
already  recognised  by  German  Diets.  Zwingle  and  OEcolam- 
padius  therefore  implored  that  the  two  divisions  of  Pro- 
testants, disagreeing  only  on  one  article  of  doctrine,  should 
unite  in  concord,  and  the  Reformed  be  owned  by  the  Evange- 
licals as  Christian  brothers.  Philip  of  Hesse  added  his  voice 
to  theirs  in  urging  this  concession ;  and  the  Hessian  divines, 
Lambert,  Snepf,  and  others,  called  upon  Luther  to  renounce 
every  feeling  which  barred  the  way  against  this  desirable  con- 
cord. But  Luther,  against  every  entreaty,  stood  firm.  He 
could  not  acknowledge  those  as  brothers  who  thought  lightly 
of  the  sacrament  of  the  altar,  and  conceived  that  to  prefer 
such  a  request  argued  a  want  of  confidence  in  their  own 
opinion,  or  an  inadequate  value  of  truth.  Zwingle  was  so 
much  affected  by  this  coldness,  that  he  could  not  disguise 
his  emotions,  but  burst  into  tears.  Luther  came  forward 
and  said,  "We  cannot  accept  you  as  brothers,  but  we  are 
willing  to  hold  out  to  you  the  hand  of  charity."  With  the 
warm-heartedness  of  their  nature  the  Swiss  rushed  forward 
to  clasp  the  extended  hand,  and  the  theologians  of  the  ad- 
verse sides,  Luther  and  Zwingle  first,  and  the  rest  after  them, 
shook  hands  in  token  that  they  regarded  one  another  with 
gentle  and  kindly  feeling.     This  was  no  light  point  gained. 

n  2 


180  THE    LIFE    OF    MAKTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  It  was  resolved  that  henceforth  no  angry  or  bitter  writings 
should  be  exchanged.  And  the  Swiss,  like  the  Saxon  monas- 
teries, whose  inmates  still  clung  to  Romanism,  were  "  com- 
mended to  God,"  and  "dismissed  in  peace."  "Let  us  all 
pray  fervently/'  said  Luther,  "and  by  God's  grace  our  friend- 
ship will  be  changed  to  brotherhood." 

But  before  the  theologians  separated,  it  was  important  that 
a  document  should  be  drawn  up  to  testify  to  the  world  the 
cordiality  of  feeling  which  prevailed  between  the  Evangelical 
and  the  Reformed  branches  of  the  Protestant  Church,  and 
their  agreement  on  every  point  of  faith  excepting  one.  The 
Landgrave  started  this  proposal :  and  every  eye  turned  to 
Luther  as  the  fittest  person  to  execute  the  task.  Luther 
acquiesced  in  the  general  wish,  and  retired  to  his  chamber 
to  prepare  the  document.  He  had  two  dangers  to  shun  :  he 
would  not  be  needlessly  severe  upon  the  Swiss;  but,  above 
all,  he  must  not  infringe  on  the  sacred  truths  of  God's  Word. 
He  drew  up  a  record  of  faith,  with  a  strict  regard  to  accuracy, 
in  fourteen  articles,  known  as  the  Marburg  Articles,  and  re- 
served the  contested  subject  of  the  Lord's  Supper  for  the  last. 

The  Articles  declared  the  entire  unanimity  of  the  Protestant 
belief: — 1.  On  the  Trinity.  2.  The  incarnation  of  the  Son 
of  God.  3.  His  meritorious  death,  resurrection,  ascension, 
and  second  advent.  4.  The  universality  of  original  sin. 
5.  Remission  of  all  sin,  both  original  and  actual,  through  the 
merits  of  Jesus  Christ  alone  by  faith.  G.  Faith  not  earned 
by  works  or  service,  or  of  our  own  strength,  but  the  gift  of 
God  wrought  in  the  heart  by  the  Spirit.  7.  Such  faith  our 
justification  by  the  imputation  of  Christ's  merits  without  any 
works  of  ours;  and  hence  all  monastic  vows  to  be  condemned. 
8.  Faith  ordinarily  through  the  word  of  God  preached  or  read, 
how  and  in  whom  God  will.  9.  Baptism  not  a  bare  sign  or 
token  among  Christians;  but  a  sign  and  work  of  God,  wherein 


THE    LITE    OP    MARTIN     LUTHER.  181 

our  faith  is  required,  and  whereby  we  are  regenerated.  1529. 
10.  Faith  the  parent  of  good  works ;  viz.,  charity,  prayer  and 
patience  under  persecution.  11.  Confession  to,  or  asking 
advice  of,  a  pastor  not  obligatory;  but  very  useful  for  the 
sake  of  absolution  and  consolation.  The  only  true  absolution 
from  the  Gospel.  12.  Magistracies  and  worldly  laws,  judg- 
ments and  appointments,  lawful  and  Christian  ordinances, 
in  opposition  to  the  teaching  of  some  Papists  and  Anabap- 
tists. 13.  Traditions  and  ordinances  of  the  Church,  if  not 
repugnant  to  God's  word,  free  to  be  used  or  rejected;  but 
the  prohibition  of  matrimony  "  a  doctrine  of  devils."  The 
14th  Article  was  as  follows: — "We  all  believe  and  hold, 
concerning  the  Supper  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  that  it 
must  be  administered  agreeably  to  its  institution  in  both 
kinds ;  that  the  mass  is  not  a  work  whereby  one  can  procure 
grace  for  another,  dead  or  living ;  that  the  sacrament  of  the 
altar  is  a  sacrament  of  the  true  body  and  blood  of  Jesus 
Christ ;  and  that  the  spiritual  feeding  on  the  body  and  blood 
is  peculiarly  necessary  to  every  Christian.  In  like  manner 
we  agree  as  to  the  use  of  the  sacrament,  that,  like  the  word, 
it  has  been  transmitted  and  ordained  by  God,  to  excite  weak 
consciences  to  faith  and  love,  through  the  Holy  Ghost.  And 
although  we  are  not  at  present  agreed  whether  the  true  body 
and  blood  be  present  corporeally  in  the  bread  and  wine  of  the 
Lord's  Supper,  yet  the  one  party  shall  declare  to  the  other 
their  Christian  love,  as  far  as  each  individual  conscience  shall 
bear,  and  both  shall  diligently  beseech  Almighty  God  to  esta- 
blish us  by  his  Spirit  in  the  truth.  Amen/'  When  Luther, 
entering  the  Hall  in  which  the  divines  were  assembled,  offered 
these  Articles  for  perusal,  anxiety  was  seated  on  every  coun- 
tenance. They  were  twice  read  aloud,  and  Swiss  and  Saxons 
learnt  with  eager  joy  how  nearly  they  were  agreed  even  in 
the  judgment  of  Luther.     The  signatures  were  affixed  to  the 


182  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  two  copies,  the  Swiss  signing  one  first,  the  Saxons  the  other. 
The  Hessian  divines  and  the  Landgrave  did  not  append  their 
signatures,  in  order  to  maintain  the  character  which  they  had 
supported  throughout,  of  impartial  witnesses. 

On  the  evening  of  the  4th  October,  when  the  articles  had 
been  signed  and  the  document  was  ready  for  the  press, 
Luther  sat  down  to  write  two  letters,  one  to  his  wife, 
the  other  to  his  friend  Gerbel  of  Strasburg,  with  a  brief 
account  of  what  had  passed  at  the  conference.  To  his  wife 
he  wrote  as  follows — "  Grace  and  peace  in  Christ.  Dear 
lord  Kate, — Know  that  our  friendly  conference  at  Marburg 
is  at  an  end,  and  we  are  quite  one  on  all  points,  except  that 
the  opponent  party  will  have  that  it  is  mere  bread  in  the 
Sacrament,  and  Christ  is  only  spiritually  present.  To-day 
the  Landgrave  has  been  endeavouring  that  we  should  be 
one,  or  if  that  could  not  be,  at  least  should  own  one  another 
as  brethren  and  members  of  Christ.  He  has  laboured  for  this 
with  all  his  might.  But  we  will  not  accept  them  as  brethren 
and  members;  we  wish  them  well,  and  hold  them  as  friends. 
.  Tell  Master  Bugenhagen,  that  Zwingle's  best  argument 
has  been,  that  a  body  cannot  be  without  a  place ;  and  (Ecolam- 
padius',  that  the  Sacrament  is  a  sign  of  Christ's  body.  I 
think  God  has  blinded  them,  that  they  have  nothing  better  to 
bring  forward.  I  have  much  to  do,  and  the  messenger  is  in 
haste.  Say  good  night  to  all,  and  pray  for  us.  We  are  all 
sound  and  hearty,  and  live  like  the  princes.  Kiss  little 
Lena  and  Johnny  for  me.  Your  willing  servant,  Martin 
Luther."  The  letter  to  Gerbel  stated  that  "  the  Swiss  had 
receded  from  their  tenets  on  many  points,  and  remained 
obstinate  only  on  the  Sacrament  of  the  altar.  They  had 
been  told  that  unless  they  came  to  their  senses  on  this  point 
also,  they  might  be  counted  as  friends,  but  could  not  be 
deemed  brethren  and   members  of  Christ.     More  had  been 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  183 

effected  than  could  have  been  hoped,  for  controversy  in  writing  1529. 
and  disputing  was  to  cease,  and  thus  not  the  least  part  of  the 
scandal  would    be   removed.     Would   that   the    Lord    Jesus 
might  at  length  remove  the  only  remaining  scruple." 

Early  in  the  morning  of  Tuesday,  the  5th  October,  the 
Landgrave  quitted  Marburg,  and  Luther  and  his  party  took 
their  departure  in  the  afternoon.  The  Reformer  hastened  to 
Scklaitz,  agreeably  to  an  invitation  from  the  Elector,  who  was 
there  waiting  his  arrival  with  the  Margrave  of  Brandenburg 
to  discuss  the  project  of  the  alliance.  On  the  12th  he  was  at 
Jena ;  but  the  only  town  in  which  he  preached  in  his  return 
journey  was  Gotha,  where  he  yielded  to  the  wishes  of  his 
friend  Frederic  Myconius,  and  ascended  the  pulpit.  He  was 
very  ill  during  part  of  the  journey,  "plagued  by  the  angel 
of  Satan;"  and  did  not  reach  Wittenberg  till  the  middle  of 
October. 

His  mind  was  now  kept  on  the  rack  with  anticipation  of 
the  fury  with  which  the  Turk,  as  the  scourge  of  God,  was 
about  to  avenge  "  the  blasphemies  of  the  opponents  of  the 
Gospel,  and  the  intolerable  ingratitude  everywhere  displayed 
by  the  populace."  On  the  19th,  he  wrote  from  Wittenberg 
to  Amsdorf.  "  Yesterday  evening  I  was  dreadfully  vexed  in 
mind.  The  angel  of  Satan,  or  whoever  is  the  demon  of  death, 
harasses  me  beyond  measure,  the  fury  of  the  Turks  perchance, 
which  is  at  the  door,  co-operating  with  him.  May  Christ 
pity  us.  Amen.  Exhort  your  Church  to  repentance  and 
prayer.  It  is  high  time ;  the  necessity  presses."  He  deli- 
vered it  as  his  opinion  that  all  Germans  ought  to  unite  against 
the  Sultan  for  the  common  defence  :  it  was  no  question  about 
leagues  or  offensive  war  ;  the  Turk  was  at  their  hearth  homes ; 
and  Protestants  should  aid  Papists,  as  one  neighbour  would 
help  another  if  his  house  were  in  flames,  or  give  food  to 
an  enemv  who  was  starving.     The  translation  of  the  book  of 


]84  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  Daniel  was  just  ready  for  the  press;  and  it  was  resolved  to 
give  it  to  the  world  with  an  explanatory  treatise,  the  joint 
product  of  Melancthon  and  Jonas,  in  which  passing  events 
and  the  terrible  invasion  of  the  Ottoman  forces  were  cited  as 
the  fulfilment  of  prophetic  foresight*  "  The  scourge  of  God," 
Luther  exclaimed,  "is  about  to  wreak  his  just  wrath  on  us,  on 
account  of  our  sins :  it  will  be  no  child's  play,  but  God's 
final  indignation  :  the  world  will  have  an  end,  and  Christ  will 
come  to  take  vengeance  on  his  foes  and  deliver  his  people." 
Animated  with  his  subject,  Luther  sounded  forth  his  trumpet 
notes  to  his  countrymen  to  muster  their  armies  and  do 
battle  against  the  Turks  and  the  Turks'  devil ;  the  Church, 
in  sackcloth  and  ashes,  was  to  sink  upon  her  knees  before 
God  in  repentance,  tears,  and  prayer,  if  peradventure  He 
would  show  pity  and  be  gracious,  and  leave  a  blessing 
behind  him. 

On  the  26th  October,  welcome  news  reached  Wittenberg. 
After  a  siege  of  twenty-one  days,  the  Ottoman  host,  on  the 
16th  October,  had  suddenly  retired  from  the  walls  of  Vienna; 
the  clouds  of  light  cavalry  rapidly  receded,  from  the  straits 
of  scarcity  and  the  snow  which  lay  round  their  camp,  to  the 
plenty  of  a  warmer  clime.  But  this  memorable  deliverance 
was  hailed  by  the  Germans  with  feelings  far  short  of  the 
gratitude  which  it  ought  to  have  inspired,  and  the  tidings 
were  received  by  some  with  indifference.  "  We  Germans  are 
always  snoring,"  Luther  exclaimed,  in  patriotic  indignation ; 


*  In  his  Battle  Sermon  against  the  Turk  Luther  dwelt  on  the  same 
subject.  The  Antichristian  power  spoken  of  in  Dan.  xii.  39,  &c.,  was 
the  Pope ;  that  in  Dan.  vii.  8,  &c.,  the  Turk.  The  Ten  Horns  of  the 
last  or  Roman  kingdom  were  Spain,  France,  Italy,  Africa,  Egypt, 
Syria,  Asia,  Greece,  Germany,  &c.  The  Little  Horn  coming  up  among 
them,  or  Mahomet,  plucked  up  three  of  them  by  the  roots,  viz.,  Egypt, 
Asia,  and  Greece. — Walch.  XX.,  pp.  2691,  &c. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  185 

"  and  there  are  many  traitors  amongst  us."  "  Pray,"  he  1529. 
wrote  to  Myconius,  "  against  the  Turk  and  the  gates  of  hell ; 
that,  as  the  angel  could  not  destroy  one  little  city  for  the 
sake  of  one  just  soul  in  it,  so  we  may  be  spared  for  the  sake 
of  the  few  righteous  that  are  in  Germany."  He  recognised, 
in  the  wide  devastation  which  the  Sultan's  army  left  behind 
it,  the  print  of  God's  wrath  on  account  of  the  persecuting 
malignity  of  the  Popish  princes,  their  interdiction  of  God's 
Word,  and  the  sinfulness  and  supineness  of  the  people  even 
where  the  Word  was  allowed  to  be  preached.  He  gathered 
from  the  prophecies  of  Daniel  that  the  incursion  would  be 
renewed,  and  although  Germany  would  not  fall  to  the  posses- 
sion of  the  False  Prophet,  yet  his  scourge  would  still  be  in- 
flicted on  guilty  Christendom  till  the  end  of  time.  The  deli- 
verance he  ascribed  to  the  power  of  prayer,  and  "  the  great 
miracle  of  God  ;  "  and  he  exulted  in  the  conviction  that  the 
day  of  God's  judgment  was  at  hand,  when  he  would  "  destroy 
Gog  the  Turk,  and  Magog  the  Pope,  the  political  and  eccle- 
siastical enemies  of  Christ."  It  soon  appeared,  however,  that 
one  danger  had  vanished  only  to  make  way  for  another ;  and 
writing  a  few  days  afterwards,  he  remarks,  "  We  have  two 
Csesars,  one  of  the  east  and  one  of  the  west,  and  both  our 
foes." 

Shortly  after  the  evacuation  of  Vienna,  intelligence  was 
conveyed  from  the  west,  fraught  with  more  special  and  immi- 
nent danger  to  the  lives  and  doctrines  of  the  Protestants  than 
could  be  apprehended  from  the  fellest  havoc  of  the  Turks.  The 
Protestant  ambassadors  found  the  Emperor  at  Placentia,  and 
submitted  their  suit  to  him  on  the  12th  September,  but  were 
not  vouchsafed  an  answer  till  the  expiration  of  a  month. 
They  petitioned  that  the  decree  of  the  first  Diet  of  Spires 
might  be  observed  in  the  matter  of  religion,  and  they  pre- 
sented Pope  Adrian's  confession  of  ecclesiastical  abuses,  and 


186  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEK. 

1529.  the  Centum  Gravamina  of  the  Nuremberg  Diet  of  1522. 
The  tardy  imperial  reply  maintained  that  the  will  of  the 
majority,  which  had  sanctioned  the  decree  of  the  last  Diet, 
was  binding  on  all ;  and  added  "  the  gracious  warning,"  that  if 
the  Elector  of  Saxony  and  his  associates  did  not  please  to 
obey  it,  "  his  Majesty,  to  uphold  obedience  in  his  sacred 
kingdom,  would  impose  serious  punishment  on  them ;  but 
this,  it  was  hoped,  would  be  unnecessary,  especially  at  a  time 
when  the  Turk,  the  hereditary  foe  of  the  Christian  name  and 
faith,  had  seized  upon  Hungary,  meditating  with  his  wonted 
fury  to  extend  his  reign  farther."  Upon  this  answer  being 
returned  through  the  imperial  secretary,  the  ambassadors 
placed  in  his  hands  the  Appeal  of  the  princes  and  states.  The 
secretary  at  first  declined,  but  at  length  consented  to  receive  it : 
but  at  midday  he  returned  with  the  message  that  his  imperial 
Majesty  was  highly  incensed  by  the  Appeal,  and  commanded 
the  ambassadors  not  to  move  a  foot  from  their  lodging,  nor 
communicate  by  letter  or  by  messenger  with  their  friends  in 
Germany.  One  of  the  three  ambassadors,  Michael  Caden, 
was  intentionally  absent  when  the  secretary  returned  with  this 
order,  and,  "  before  writing  should  be  forbidden  to  himself  as 
well  as  to  the  others,"  related  all  that  had  passed  in  a  letter 
to  the  Senate  of  Nuremberg  the  same  day.  The  next  day  the 
ambassadors  had  another  Appeal  drawn  up  and  signed  against 
the  answer  which  the  Emperor  had  transmitted  to  them,  to 
"a  free  common  Christian  Council."  Charles  pursued  his 
route  to  Bologna,  where  he  was  to  be  solemnly  crowned  by 
the  Pope,  and  gave  orders  that  the  ambassadors  should  follow 
him ;  but,  on  the  last  day  of  October,  on  arriving  at  Parma, 
Ehinger  and  Frauentraut  were  dismissed.*  Caden  was  still 
detained,  on  the  plea  that  he  had  offered  to  the  Emperor  a 

*  See  the  whole  account,  Walch.  XVI.,  pp.  542—621. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  187 

Lutheran  book,  in  which  doctrines  were  inculcated  sub-  1529. 
versive  of  the  civil  authority.  The  authority  which  the 
book  really  impugned  was  that  of  the  bishops  in  civil  matters. 
The  fortunate  retreat  of  the  Turkish  forces  did  not  deter 
Charles  from  prosecuting  his  plan  of  proceeding  to  Germany : 
on  the  confrary,  it  offered  an  opportunity,  such  as  might 
never  recur,  of  directing  all  his  attention  to  the  one  object  of 
quelling  religious  differences,  for  the  accomplishment  of  which 
the  treaties  concluded  at  Barcelona  with  the  Pope  in  June, 
and  at  Cambray  with  Francis  in  August,  were  likewise  most 
propitious. 

This  state  of  affairs — the  suit  of  the  ambassadors  rejected 
and  themselves  put  in  custody;  Charles  on  his  way  to  Ger- 
many, where  he  might  be  expected  the  following  spring; 
his  dislike  to  the  anti-Papist  doctrines,  which  the  retreat  of 
the  Turks  and  his  peace  with  Francis  and  with  the  Pope  all 
seemed  to  conspire  to  enable  him  to  gratify — all  portended  ex- 
treme peril  to  the  Protestants,  and  caused  Philip  of  Hesse  to 
redouble  his  exertions  for  effecting  the  armed  coalition.  The 
meeting  held  at  Schwabach  October  15,  postponed  the  consi- 
deration of  the  Protestant  league  to  a  larger  meeting,  to  be 
held  at  Smalkald  :  and  the  threatening  intelligence  which  the 
letter  of  Caden  had  conveyed,  caused  the  Smalkald  convention 
to  be  summoned  for  the  29th  November,  earlier  than  had  been 
anticipated.  But  meanwhile,  the  Elector  of  Saxony  requested 
of  Luther  his  opinion  on  the  true  course  of  action  in  the 
present  menacing  attitude  of  the  Emperor  and  the  Papist 
princes  and  prelates.  If  there  was  any  man  in  Germany  who 
had  reason  to  dread  for  himself  individually  the  advent  of 
Charles  to  his  imperial  dominions,  and  the  execution  by  his 
authority  of  projects  which  the  partisans  of  Rome  had  long 
cherished,  it  was  Luther.  Duke  George  had  boasted  he  would 
tear  Luther  from  the  midst  of  his  sectarian  uuiversitv  :  he  had 


188  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  wanted  power  adequate  to  the  enterprise  :  but  the  Emperor 
was  armed  with  the  sword  of  the  Empire,  and  a  ready  pre- 
text, the  Edict  of  Worms,  for  suffering  its  weight  to  descend 
on  one  convicted  and  condemned.  It  was  now  to  be  seen 
whether,  under  circumstances  of  such  terror  to  his  cause  and 
person,  Luther  would  adhere  steadfastly  to  the  maxims  he  had 
before  laid  down,  or  allow  his  principles  to  swerve  with  his 
interest.  And  there  was  much  that  might  give  a  plausible 
colouring  to  a  change  of  counsel.  The  conference  at  Mar- 
burg, if  it  had  not  effected  all  that  could  have  been  wished, 
had  at  least  terminated  so  amicably,  that  Philip  of  Hesse 
might  well  hope  to  make  it  a  stepping-stone  to  the  accom- 
plishment of  his  designs. 

Such  was  the  aggravation  of  circumstances  under  which 
Luther  was  again  called  upon  to  deliver  his  sentiments  on  the 
proposed  defensive  alliance ;  and  his  answer,  dated  the  18th 
November,  was  to  this  effect: — "We  cannot  in  our  con- 
science approve  or  counsel  such  a  compact ;  but  had  rather 
die  ten  times  over,  than  that  the  Gospel  should  be  a  cause  of 
blood  or  hurt,  by  any  act  of  ours.  Let  us  rather  patiently 
suffer,  and,  as  the  Prophet  says,  be  counted  as  sheep  for  the 
slaughter ;  and  instead  of  avenging  or  defending  ourselves, 
leave  room  for  God's  wrath.  Our  Lord  Christ  is  mighty 
enough,  and  can  well  find  means  and  ways  to  rescue  us  from 
danger,  and  bring  the  thoughts  of  the  ungodly  princes  to 
nothing.  The  Emperor's  undertaking  is  a  loud  threat  of  the 
devil,  but  it  will  be  powerless,  and  at  last  will  turn  to  the  ruin 
of  our  adversaries.  As  the  Psalm  says,  '  It  will  fall  on  his 
owrn  pate.'  Christ  is  only  trying  us  whether  we  are  willing 
to  obey  his  Word  or  no,  and  whether  we  hold  it  for  certain 
truth  or  not.  The  cross  of  Christ  must  be  borne.  The  cause 
is  not  ours,  but  God's.  And  we  shall  still  find,  as  we  have 
hitherto  found,  that   with  prayers  and  entreaties  to  God  we 


THE    LIFE     OF    MARTIN     LUTHER.  189 

shall  avail  more  than  they,  with  all  their  haughtiness.  Only  1529. 
let  us  keep  our  hands  clean  of  blood  and  guilt ;  and  if  the 
Emperor  demand  that  I  or  the  rest  be  surrendered  to  him,  we 
will  with  God's  help  appear  in  our  own  cause,  and  not  expose 
your  Grace  to  peril  on  our  account,  as  I  formerly  often  informed 
ray  gracious  Lord,  your  Grace's  God-fearing  brother.  Your 
Grace  shall  not  defend  my  faith,  or  another's ;  you  cannot  do 
it :  but  you  must  defend  your  own  faith,  and  believe  or  not 
believe  at  your  own  risk,  if  our  Supreme  Ruler  the  Emperor 
demand  it  at  our  hands.  Meanwhile  he  has  much  water  to 
cross,  and  God  will  easily  devise  counsel  whereby  matters  will 
not  go  quite  as  they  think.  Christ  our  Lord  and  our  trust 
strengthen  your  Grace  richly/' 

It  now  remained  to  be  seen  whether  the  influence  of 
Luther  with  the  Elector  was  sufficiently  strong  to  overbear 
the  continued  solicitations  of  the  Landgrave,  backed  by  the 
urgency  of  the  crisis  and  the  obvious  prudential  arguments 
for  self-defence.  And  it  Avas  not  long  before  the  Elector 
became  decidedly  of  Luther's  views;  and  saw  the  scriptural 
line  of  policy  exactly  as  he  saw  it.  Not  only,  however,  the 
Elector,  but  the  Margrave  of  Brandenburg  also  and  the  city 
of  Nuremberg,  stoutly  maintained  the  obligation  of  warring 
with  no  carnal  weapon,  but  only  with  the  sword  of  the  Spirit. 
The  meeting  at  Smalkald  was  largely  attended  by  the  parties 
to  the  protest.  The  Elector  of  Saxony  and  his  son,  the 
Dukes  of  Luneburg,  the  Landgrave,  the  legate  of  the  Mar- 
grave George,  and  deputies  from  Strasburg,  Ulm,  Nurem- 
berg, Heilbronn,  Reutlingen,  Constance,  Memmingen, 
Kempten,  and  Lindau,  together  with  the  ambassadors  who 
had  lately  experienced  the  imperial  rigour,  debated  on  the 
eve  of  momentous  events  the  awful  question  of  peace 
or  war.  There  was  a  sharp  dispute  between  the  strictly 
Lutheran  party  and  the  Landgrave,  whether  or  no  it  was 


190  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  lawful  to  resist  the  Emperor,  the  former  insisting  on  the 
negative.  The  same  section,  animated  with  the  very  spirit  of 
their  Reformer,  persisted  that  before  any  alliance  could  be 
agreed  to,  it  should  be  distinctly  understood  that  there  was  no 
diversity  of  sentiment  on  any  article  of  faith ;  and  they 
carried  this  point  against  the  Zwinglian  party  and  the  Land- 
grave, who  strove  to  act  as  mediator.  Seventeen  articles 
which  had  before  been  brought  forward  at  Schwabach  were 
again  adduced  :  they  are  known  as  the  Schwabach  or  Smal- 
kald  articles ;  and  it  was  required  that  the  princes  and  depu- 
ties should  declare  their  assent  by  affixing  their  signatures. 
These  articles  are  nearly  the  same  with  the  Marburg,  except- 
ing that  they  declare  under  the  tenth  head,  without  any  am- 
biguity, that  the  very  body  and  blood  of  Christ  are  really 
present  in  the  Sacrament,  and  condemn  the  notion  that  the 
bread  is  simply  ordinary  bread.*  This  was  enough  to  break 
up  the  meeting,  for  the  cities  of  Strasburg  and  Ulm  could 
not  accede  to  the  Lutheran  dogma  on  the  Sacrament.  It 
was  arranged,  however,  that  another  convention  should  be 
held  at  Nuremberg  in  the  beginning  of  the  ensuing  year, 
but  the  invitation  to  this  conference  was  limited  to  such 
as  could  concur  with  the  seventeen  articles.  Accordingly, 
the  whole  scheme  of  the  alliance  was  split  upon  this  rock 
of  doctrinal  disagreement ;  for  the  convention  at  Nuremberg, 
which  met  on  the  6th  January,  was  thinly  attended,  and 
the  deputies  parted  with  the  understanding,  that  at  present 
no  settlement  could  be  effected,  the  arrival  of  the  Emperor 
must  be  awaited,  and  meanwhile  each  should  deliberate  at 
home  on  the  plan  of  defence  which  seemed  most  expedient, 
and,  within  the  space  of  a  month,  forward  his  advice  to  the 
Elector.     Thus  by  his  own  policy,  founded  on  religious  con- 

*  See  them,  Walch.  XVI.,  pp.  681,  &c. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  191 

viction,  Luther  was  abandoned  to  the  Emperor  and  the  Pope,  1529. 
and  refused  the  protection  of  man  for  himself  or  the  cause  of 
the  Gospel. 

The  Reformation  was  about  to  undergo  a  new  trial.  It 
had  long  since  conquered  Rome  in  popular  opinion :  but  its 
triumph  had  been  subsequently  much  impaired  by  internal 
differences.  If  Luther  had  understood  better  the  true  spirit 
of  Christian  unity,  the  unanimous  phalanx  of  Protestants 
could  have  set  despotism,  whether  civil  or  ecclesiastical,  at 
defiance ;  but  in  such  an  event  an  appeal  to  arms,  from  a 
sense  of  human  strength,  might  have  earlier  sullied  the  cause 
of  enlightenment  and  the  regeneration  of  the  Christian  world 
with  the  foul  blots  of  blood.  Throughout  its  annals  the  lead- 
ership of  the  movement  had  been  contested  between  two 
principles — one  represented  first  by  Sickingen  and  afterwards 
by  Philip  of  Hesse,  the  other  by  Martin  Luther ;  neither,  it  is 
true,  thoroughly  enlightened  :  but  victory  most  providentially 
rested  with  the  side  which,  with  however  much  of  lingering 
bigotry  and  prejudice,  bore  on  its  banner,  not  Man's  Might, 
but  God's  Word.  Such  Christian  faith,  so  deeply  rooted  in 
the  heart,  was  now  about  to  be  brought  into  collision,  unde- 
fended by  man's  arm,  and  renouncing  such  defence,  with  the 
leagued  despotism  of  State  and  Church,  prepared  to  second 
its  pretensions  with  cannon,  sword,  and  every  available  weapon 
of  force  or  fraud.  Charles  himself  intended  to  continue  his 
route  to  Germany,  and  honour  the  Diet  which  had  been 
appointed  to  meet  at  Augsburg  with  his  presence ;  and  mean- 
while he  was  spending  his  hours  at  Bologna  in  the  society 
of  Clement,  residing  in  the  same  palace  with  him,  talking 
over  political  affairs,  above  all,  planning  the  extinction  of 
heresy. 

The  mention  of  the  Diet  of  Augsburg   suggests  by  asso- 
ciation the  Diet  of  Worms,  which  had  met  nine  years  before. 


192  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1529.  Those  nine  years  have  no  parallel  save  in  the  apostolic  age. 
At  Worms,  one  man,  charged  with  opposing  Scripture  to 
tradition,  had  been  arraigned  and  condemned  :  at  Augsburg, 
the  one  condemned  man  having  in  the  interval  grown  into 
the  nation,  Germany,  in  his  place,  was  about  to  answer  the 
record  of  indictment.  In  so  short  a  period,  ideas,  principles, 
and  institutions  had  been  revolutionized.  Not  only  in  Ger- 
many had  the  doctrines  of  Scripture  spread  with  a  rapidity 
as  marvellous,  and  a  force  as  irresistible,  as  the  light  of  day 
itself;  but  in  Denmark,  Sweden,  Norway,  Prussia,  the  evan- 
gelical teaching  had  been  everywhere  disseminated,  and  was 
perpetuated  in  well-organized  establishments.  Switzerland 
only  complained  that  Germany  was  not  sufficiently  anti-papal. 
England  was  wavering;  and  as  early  as  1527,  an  evangelical 
society  had  established  itself  at  Corpus  Christi  College, 
Oxford.  In  Italy,  at  Faenza  and  among  the  old  literary 
associations;  in  Spain,  among  the  Franciscan  fraternity,  the 
scriptural  revival  had  commenced  with  vigour.  In  France, 
at  Meaux,  at  Metz,  and  in  Dauphiny,  the  Gospel  had  been 
warmly  embraced  ;  persecution  had  now  driven  its  heralds  to 
Basle :  but  Margaret  of  Navarre  still  cherished  the  Reformed 
tenets  at  her  brother's  court.  In  many  countries  and  pro- 
vinces, where  the  sword  was  the  unanswerable  champion  for 
Rome,  the  people  sighed  in  secret  for  the  liberty  of  proclaim- 
ing their  adhesion  to  the  Word  of  God,  and  hearing  it  pub- 
licly preached :  and  now  and  then,  one  bolder  or  more  deeply 
influenced  than  the  rest,  spoke  out  his  convictions,  and  paid 
the  forfeit  of  his  life.  It  seemed  at  this  crisis  as  though  all 
Europe  would  have  turned  from  the  papal  chair  to  the  Word 
of  God,  if  the  ruling  powers  would  have  granted  freedom 
of  religious  belief.  And  with  such  triumphs  already  Avon, 
Luther  might  indeed  well  disclaim  any  aid  except  the  power 
of  that  Word,  which  had  alone  accomplished,  in  spite  of  per- 


TUE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  193 

secution,  "  with  the  unresistible  might  of  weakness/'  all  that  1529. 
he  heard  and  witnessed. 

Before  concluding  the  chapter,  and  passing  to  a  new  epoch, 
it  is  incumbent  to  visit  again  the  domestic  circle  in  the  Au- 
gustine convent,  and  tread  the  streets  of  the  Saxon  town, 
which  had  attained  a  celebrity  so  disproportioned  to  its  size 
and  antecedent  fame.  Wittenberg,  the  focus  of  illumination, 
the  centre  of  those  religious  ideas  which  were  agitating 
society,  from  the  Emperor  to  the  serf,  was  itself  a  quiet, 
studious  retreat,  with  not  much  to  attract  the  outward  eye. 
It  was  in  the  autumn  of  the  year  1529,  that  Mathesius,  the 
contemporary  biographer  of  Luther,  became  a  student  of 
"  the  renowned  university/'  "  the  praise  of  which,  and  of  its 
good  people,"  he  says,  that  "  he  trusts,  if  God  will,  to  divulge 
at  the  last  day,  and  to  all  eternity."  The  next  Sunday  after 
his  admission  to  the  University,  at  vespers,  he  heard  "  the 
great  man,  Dr.  Luther,  preach/'  from  the  Acts  of  the  Apos- 
tles, ii.  38 — the  words  of  St.  Peter  enjoining  repentance  and 
baptism: — What  a  sermon  from  the  lips  of  "the  man  of 
God  !  " — "  for  which  all  the  days  of  his  pilgrimage  on  earth, 
and  throughout  eternity,  he  should  have  to  give  God  thanks." 
At  that  period  Melancthon  lectured  on  Cicero's  "  De  Ora- 
toribus,"  and  his  oration  "Pro  Archia/'  before  noon  on  the 
Epistle  to  the  Romans ;  every  Wednesday  on  Aristotle's 
Ethics  :  Bugenhagen  on  the  Epistle  to  the  Corinthians : 
Jonas  on  the  Psalms :  Aurogallus  on  Hebrew  Grammar : 
Weimar  on  Greek  :  Tulich  on  Cicero's  "  Offices  :"  Bach  on 
Virgil :  Volmar  on  the  theory  of  the  Planets  :  Mulich  on 
Astronomy  :  Cruciger  on  Terence,  for  the  younger  students. 
Perfect  concord  prevailed  between  the  students  and  towns- 
people. The  private  schools  were  vigorously  conducted  ;  and 
Mathesius  had  for  his  host  Wolf  John  von  Rochlitz,  and 
enjoyed  the  elevating  associations  connected  with  the  memory 

VOL.  II.  o 


194  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTJN    LUTHER. 

1529.  of  "  the  dear  martyr  Leonhard  Csesar,"  who  had  sat  at  the 
same  table  before  him,  the  history  of  whose  patient  imprison- 
ment and  courageous  martyrdom  had  been  published  by 
Luther. 

1530.  The  new  year  found  Dr.  Luther  energetic  as  ever  in  his 
studies  and  writings.  A  second  edition  of  the  Battle  sermon 
had  been  issued  ;  a  treatise  on  "  the  rights  of  matrimony" 
was  under  composition ;  a  book  on  the  rites  and  religion  of 
the  Turks,  a  reprint  of  a  work  seventy  years  old,  was  in  the 
press :  the  German  New  Testament  had  undergone  another 
revision,  and  a  careful  explanatory  preface  was  prefixed  to  the 
Apocalypse ;  and,  after  the  publication  of  this  fresh  edition, 
the  translation  of  the  Prophets  was  to  be  resumed.  Indeed, 
before  the  end  of  February  the  translation  of  Daniel,  dedi- 
cated to  John  Frederic,  was  in  the  press,  and  Jeremiah  was 
in  hand.  To  these  unremitting  toils  of  the  closet  must  be 
added  addresses  from  the  pulpit.  But  the  proficiency  of  "  the 
Capernaites  of  Wittenberg"  was  by  no  means  in  proportion 
to  the  pains  and  assiduity  bestowed  on  their  instruction. 
Mathesius  relates,  that  about  this  time  Luther  was  so  much 
offended  with  the  practical  ungodliness  of  his  townspeople, 
that  he  preached  a  vehement  call  to  repentance,  and  warned 
them  that  thenceforth  he  should  no  more  speak  to  them  in 
the  name  of  the  Lord.  And  this  assurance,  says  his  bio- 
grapher, he  kept  for  some  time,  "  till  his  violent  zeal  cooled 
a  little,  or  rather,  till  God's  Word  burnt  in  his  heart  as 
fire,  and  he  could  no  longer  forbear/' 

The  sickness  of  his  aged  father,  of  which  he  received  intel- 
ligence from  his  brother  James,  in  February,  drew  from  him 
a  letter  which  places  his  filial  devotion  in  a  striking  light. 
He  could  not  wait  at  Mansfeld,  he  stated,  on  his  father  in 
this  illness,  because  the  journey  would  be  attended  with 
much  personal  danger  from  the  enmity  of  many  lords,   and 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  195 

even  peasants,  whom  he  had  provoked  by  his  behaviour  in  1530. 
the  late  insurrection ;  he  therefore  entreated  his  father  and 
mother,  were  it  possible,  to  come  to  him ;  and  he  sent  his 
servant  Cyriacus  to  make  the  necessary  preparations,  or  re- 
port to  him  how  matters  stood.  Kate,  and  all  at  the  convent, 
besought  them  to  come,  with  tears.  For  himself,  he  desired 
to  be  "  in  bodily  attendance  on  them,  and,  according  to  the 
fourth  commandment,  to  show  his  gratitude  to  God  and 
them,  with  childlike  truth  and  service."  He  goes  on  to 
express  his  joy  that  his  father  had  been  released  from  the 
wretched  darkness  and  error  of  Popery,  and  his  hope  that 
God's  work  by  Divine  grace  was  begun  in  him.  All  the  scorn 
and  contumely  he  had  endured  on  his  son's  account  were 
so  many  true  tokens  of  resemblance  to  the  Lord  Jesus.  The 
whole  world,  he  continues,  is  a  valley  of  woe,  and  the  longer 
we  live  in  it  the  more  of  sin  and  wickedness,  misfortune  and 
misery,  do  we  see  and  suffer,  which  never  cease  till  the  sex- 
ton's shovel  scoops  us  another  chamber,  where  we  repose 
peacefully  in  Christ's  rest,  till  he  comes  and  wakes  us  up 
with  jubilee.  And  the  separation,  till  all  would  meet  again 
in  Christ's  kingdom,  would  be  a  very  brief  interval,  much 
shorter,  to  God's  reckoning,  than  the  time  spent  in  the  jour- 
ney from  Mansfeld  to  Wittenberg.  "  Kate,  Johnny,  little 
Lena  and  aunt  Lena,  and  the  whole  house,  greet  you  and 
pray  for  you.  Greet  my  dear  mother  and  all  my  friends. 
God's  grace  and  strength  be  with  and  abide  with  you  for 
ever.     Amen." 

The  approaching  Diet  now  engrossed  the  public  mind. 
Resistance  to  the  Turks  would  occupy  a  large  space  in  the 
deliberations;  and  the  ample  grants  the  Pope  would  make 
the  Emperor,  were  the  subject  of  angry  rancour;  but  such 
concessions,  every  one  knew,  meant  more  than  met  the  ear, 
and  it  was  concluded  that  the  chief  article  of  deliberation 

o  2 


196  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  would  be  the  settlement  of  religious  variances.  In  the  begin- 
ning of  March ,  Luther  received  a  communication  from  the 
Elector,  putting  the  question  to  him  in  the  most  direct 
form — "Whether  armed  resistance  to  the  Emperor  were  jus- 
tifiable ? "  Luther  consulted  with  Jonas,  Bugenhagen,  and 
Melancthon,  and  replied — "  No  one,  who  would  be  a  Christian, 
could  oppose  his  ruler,  but  must  endure  patiently,  right  or 
wrong.  If  the  Emperor  should  break  all  the  commands  of 
God,  nay,  should  be  a  heathen,  he  would  still  be  the  Em- 
peror. For  the  Elector  of  Saxony  to  arm  his  subjects  against 
the  Emperor,  would  be  as  if  a  burgomaster  of  Torgau  should 
arm  his  boroughmen  against  the  Elector  of  Saxony."  The 
lawyers  differed  from  Luther  in  the  decision  of  this  nice 
point  of  casuistry,  the  determination  of  which  the  history  of  the 
world  has  so  often  forced  on  the  mind ;  and,  taking  rather  a 
constitutional  than  a  theological  view  of  the  question,  denied 
that  the  relation  of  the  Elector  of  Saxony  to  the  Emperor 
was  similar  to  that  of  a  burgomaster  of  a  town  in  Saxony  to 
the  Saxon  Prince.  But  it  was  evident  from  experience  whose 
verdict  would  weigh  the  most  with  the  Elector  John.  On 
the  14th,  Luther  received  from  the  Court  the  gracious  request 
that  himself,  Bugenhagen,  Jonas,  and  Melancthon  would 
concert  measures  in  reference  to  the  Diet,  which  was  close  at 
hand,  and  then  come  to  Torgau.  Jonas  was  absent  on  a 
visitation  tour,  but  Luther  immediately  wrote  to  him  to  urge 
his  return ;  and  the  Elector  having  despatched  another  letter 
to  request  that  the  deliberations  might  be  conducted  at 
Torgau,  the  Reformers  went  thither  at  the  end  of  March,  and 
reviewed  there  the  Schwabach  Articles,  which  hence  are  some- 
times called  the  Torgau  Articles,  and  gave  them  their  sanc- 
tion, as  well  adapted  to  serve  as  the  basis  of  a  more  extended 
and  systematic  statement  of  the  evangelical  tenets.  It  had 
now  ceased   to  be  a  question  whether  the  Elector  and  his 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEK.  197 

Lutheran  allies  should  boldly  meet  the  Emperor  at  Augsburg,  1530. 
and  face  the  fury  of  the  storm,  or  dare  the  worst  their  enemies 
could  do  against  them  at  a  distance  :  Luther's  admonitions  to 
obedience  and  courage  had  conquered ;  and,  before  his  de- 
parture with  the  Elector,  he  implored  that  the  Church  would 
diligently  pray  for  a  blessing  on  the  national  consultations. 
"  Only  let  us  pray,  and  the  gates  of  hell  will  never  prevail/5 


198 


CHAPTEE  VII. 

FROM    THE    3RD    APRIL,    1530,    TO    THE    30TH    MAY,    1536. 

1530.  On  Sunday  the  3rd  April  (Judica)  the  Elector  of  Saxony, 
with  the  nobles  and  theologians  who  were  to  accompany  him 
to  the  Augsburg  Diet,  assembled  in  the  Castle  Church  to 
join  in  devout  prayers  to  God,  and  hear  from  the  great  Re- 
former an  exhortation  to  that  courage  and  constancy  which 
their  situation  and  the  crisis  so  peremptorily  demanded  of  the 
first  Protestant  champions.  Luther  took  for  his  text  Matt.  x. 
32,  "  Whosoever  shall  confess  me  before  men,  him  will  I  also 
confess  before  my  Father  which  is  in  heaven ;"  and  rarely  has 
the  spirit  of  a  sermon  been  evidenced  with  such  power  by  the 
subsequent  conduct  of  those  who  heard  it.  In  the  afternoon, 
the  Elector  John,  with  his  son  John  Frederic,  Francis  Duke 
of  Luneburg,  Wolfgang  Prince  of  Anhalt,  and  Albert  Count 
of  Mansfeld,  with  other  noblemen  and  gentlemen,  to  the 
number  of  seventy,  which  was  increased  by  attendants  to  a 
cavalcade  of  160  horsemen,  quitted  Torgau,  and  took  the 
road  to  Grimma.  Luther,  Jonas,  Melancthon,  Spalatin,  and 
Agricola,  were  the  theologians  who  had  been  chosen  to 
accompany  the  Elector,  and  by  their  instructions,  and  their 
example,  aid  the  steadfastness  of  his  testimony  to  Christ. 
The  notes  of  Luther's  hymn  of  unshaken  confidence  in  God, 
that  well-known  paraphrase  of  his  favourite  forty-sixth  Psalm, 
frequently  resounded  along  the  troop  of  horsemen,  as  well  as 
animated  the  hearts  of  the  evangelical  worshippers  throughout 
their  churches  during  this  season  of  anxiety.     On  Monday 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  199 

morning  the  Elector  and  his  retinue  proceeded  to  Altenburg,  1530. 
and  on  the  following  Wednesday  advanced  to  Eisenbcrg,  and 
on  the  eve  of  Palm  Sunday  reached  Weimar ;  and  on  Palm 
Sunday  the  whole  company  received  the  communion  in  both 
kinds,  and  listened  to  more  than  one  address  from  Luther. 
On  Tuesday,  the  12th,  they  again  set  forward,  and  rested 
that  night  at  Saalfeld,  where  Luther  again  preached.  On 
Maundy  Thursday  they  reposed  at  the  Castle  of  Grafenthal ; 
on  Good  Friday  at  Neustadtel,  at  the  entrance  of  the  Thu- 
ringian  Forest;  throughout  each  day  of  the  sacred  week 
Luther  continuing  his  discourses  from  the  pulpit.  On  Easter 
Eve  they  halted  before  the  Elector's  fortress  of  Coburg. 

The  Elector  remained  at  Coburg  until  the  afternoon  of 
Saturday,  the  23rd  April,  and  then  proceeded  on  his  journey, 
passing  through  Bamberg,  Nuremberg,  and  Donauwerth ; 
and  on  Monday,  the  2nd  May,  to  the  surprise  and  admira- 
tion of  the  Protestants  of  Augsburg,  made  his  entrance  into 
that  city  before  the  arrival  of  any  of  the  Papist  princes. 
Luther  had  been  left  at  Coburg,  as  had  been  intended  from 
the  first ;  for  the  Edict  of  Worms  was  regarded  by  the  Em- 
peror as  still  legally  in  force,  and  it  would  have  been  not 
more  impolitic  than  unjustifiable,  on  moral  grounds,  to  rouse 
the  resentment  of  the  Romanists  by  any  act  of  temerity  and 
defiance.  The  Castle  of  Coburg,  Luther's  second  Wartburg, 
stands  on  a  high  hill  above  the  town,  in  a  pleasant  situation 
overlooking  the  river  Itz.  It  was  placed  entirely  at  Luther's 
command,  the  keys  of  every  room  were  given  into  his  hands, 
and  the  inmates,  fourteen  in  number,  of  whom  twelve  kept 
guard  by  night  and  two  acted  as  watchmen  by  day,  and  as 
couriers,  paid  him  all  the  respect  that  could  be  rendered  to  a 
master.  Cyriacus,  his  own  servant,  waited  on  him ;  and  his 
friend  Veit  Dietrich  was  at  once  his  companion  and  amanu- 
ensis.    But  it  was  not  thought  desirable  that  Luther  should 


200  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  spend  much  time  in  study ;  his  constitution,  naturally  of  the 
strongest  mould,  had  lately  shown  symptoms  that  the  im- 
mense toil  and  endurance  of  his  whole  lifetime  were  begin- 
ning to  tell  on  it,  and  Dietrich  was  enjoined  to  restrain  his 
ardour  for  writing,  and  amuse  him  with  conversation  and 
such  other  means  as  offered  themselves.  Meanwhile  Melanc- 
thon  was  busily  engaged  with  the  celebrated  "  Confession/' 
which  had  been  partly  begun  at  Coburg  with  Luther's  aid, 
and  was  now  prosecuted  at  Augsburg  with  great  vigour ;  and 
a  brisk  correspondence  was  maintained  between  the  Re- 
formers. 

Shortly  after  he  was  left  alone,  Luther  wrote  to  Melanc- 
thon,  "  We  have  at  last  come  to  our  Sinai,  dearest  Philip ; 
but  we  shall  make  a  Sion  of  this  Sinai,  and  rear  three  taber- 
nacles :  one  to  the  Psalms,  one  to  the  Prophets,  and  one  to 
iEsop;  the  last  only  temporary."  Strange  juxtaposition; 
highly  emblematical  of  Luther's  almost  contradictory  tastes 
and  faculties  !  These  studies,  however,  could  not  be  under- 
taken immediately,  for  the  requisite  books  and  papers  had  not 
arrived  from  Wittenberg,  and  indeed  did  not  come  to  hand 
until  the  end  of  the  month ;  and  therefore  Luther  spent  the 
first  shafts  of  his  zeal  in  an  Admonition  to  the  Ecclesiastics 
assembled  at  the  Diet  of  Nuremberg.  Thoughts,  he  said, 
like  landsnechts,  came  rushing  fierce  and  dense  upon  him, 
as  he  sat  at  his  work,  and  he  found  difficulty  in  restraining 
the  impetuosity  of  his  ideas,  and  tempering  his  caustic  style. 
From  the  Papists  he  turned  to  the  Turks,  the  other  arm  of 
Satan ;  and  translated  the  two  chapters  of  Ezekiel  containing 
the  prophecy  of  Gog  and  Magog,  and  prefixed  an  expository 
preface.  But  the  emotions  which  these  subjects  kindled 
were  too  vehement  for  mind  or  body  to  bear  long ;  he  sought 
refuge  in  his  flute  :  this  required  mending ;  and  applying 
himself  to  this  task  seemed  to  divert  his  anxiety.     Then  the 


THE    LITE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  201 

scenery  around  the  castle  was  full  of  interest :  a  sloping  1530. 
lawn  in  front  of  his  window,  environed  with  woods,  was  the 
chosen  resort  of  rooks  and  jackdaws,  which  were  "  screaming 
in  his  ears  all  day  and  all  night" — "all  the  fowl  of  that 
feather  in  the  world  seemed  congregated  there ;"  and  he  found 
relief  from  the  internal  tragedy  by  framing  their  antics  into 
a  comedy. 

"  I  have  no  need  to  go  to  the  Diet  of  Augsburg/'  he  wrote 
to  his  messmates  at  Wittenberg,  and  to  Spalatin  at  Augsburg, 
"  I  have  a  diet  immediately  in  front  of  my  own  window. 
Here  I  see  magnanimous  kings,  dukes,  and  nobles,  consult 
over  the  affairs  of  their  realm,  and  with  unremitting  clang 
proclaim  their  decrees  and  dogmas  through  the  air.  They 
do  not  meet  in  caves  or  dens  of  courts  called  palaces ;  but 
the  spacious  heaven  is  their  roof,  verdant  grass  and  foliage 
their  pavement,  and  their  walls  are  wide  as  the  ends  of  the 
earth.  They  are  not  arrayed  in  gold  and  silk,  but  all  wear 
a  vestment  of  black,  have  eyes  of  a  gray  hue,  and  speak  in 
the  same  music,  save  the  diversity  of  youth  and  age.  Horses 
and  harness  they  spurn  at,  and  move  on  the  rapid  wheels  of 
wings.  As  far  as  I  understand  the  herald  of  their  decrees, 
they  have  unanimously  resolved  to  wage  this  whole  year  a 
war  on  barley,  wheat,  oats,  and  every  kind  of  grain;  and 
great  deeds  will  be  done.  Here  we  sit,  spectators  of  this 
diet ;  and,  to  our  great  joy  and  comfort,  observe  and  hear 
how  the  princes,  lords,  and  estates  of  the  empire  are  all  sing- 
ing so  merrily  and  living  so  heartily.  But  it  gives  us  espe- 
cial pleasure  to  remark  with  what  knightlike  air  they  swing 
their  tails,  stroke  their  bills,  tilt  at  one  another,  and  strike 
and  parry ;  so  that  we  believe  they  will  win  great  honour 
over  the  wheat  and  barley."  Looking,  however,  more  atten- 
tively at  the  spectacle  in  front  of  the  castle,  he  was  better 
pleased   with  a  more  close  and   special   application   of  the 


202  THE    LIEE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEK. 

1530.  comedy.  "  It  seems  to  me  that  these  rooks  and  jackdaws 
are  after  all  nothing  else  but  the  sophists  and  Papists,  with 
their  preachings  and  writings,  who  will  fain  present  them- 
selves in  a  heap,  and  make  us  listen  to  their  lovely  voices  and 
beautiful  sermons."  In  his  letter  of  the  28th  April,  he 
notes,  "  To-day,  for  the  first  time,  we  have  heard  the  night- 
ingale ;  the  weather  is  bitterly  cold/'  He  dated  his  cor- 
respondence from  "  Gruboc  "  inverting  the  letters  of  Coburg, 
or  else  from  "  the  Region  of  the  Birds/'  or  "  the  Diet  of 
the  Jackdaws." 

The  end  of  April  the  books  arrived  from  Wittenberg,  and 
he  returned  to  his  translation  of  the  Prophets,  resuming  his 
version  of  Jeremiah,  and  applied  with  such  energy  to  the 
the  work,  that  he  indulged  the  hope  of  completing  the  ver- 
sion of  the  Prophets  before  Whitsunday.  The  translation  of 
some  of  iEsop's  fables,  for  the  edification  of  youth,  was  to 
engage  his  attention  afterwards.  But  he  quickly  found  that 
he  had  reckoned  on  the  abilities  of  the  mind,  without  taking 
into  the  calculation  the  wear  and  tear  of  the  body ;  for  a 
very  few  days  of  severe  intellectual  toil  laid  "  the  outward 
man,  unable  to  bear  the  force  and  vigour  of  the  inner  and 
new  man,"  quite  prostrate.  His  head  resounded  with  noises, 
claps  like  thunder  dinned  through  it;  and  the  work  was 
compelled  to  be  laid  aside,  and  for  some  weeks  his  eyes  could 
not  endure  the  sight  of  a  letter.  "  My  caput,"  he  wrote  to 
Melancthon,  "  is  turned  to  a  chapter  (capitulum) ,  it  will  soon 
become  a  paragraph,  and  then  dwindle  to  a  period."  And 
he  availed  himself  of  the  opportunity  to  warn  Philip,  by  his 
example,  to  "  take  care  of  his  own  precious  little  body,  and 
not  commit  homicide."  "God,"  said  he,  "is  served  by 
rest,  by  nothing  more  than  rest,  and  therefore  he  has  willed 
that  the  Sabbath  should  be  so  rigidly  kept."  In  this  state 
of  weakness  and    prostration  of  body,    spiritual    temptation 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  203 

supervened;  "an  embassage  from  Satan"  waited  on  hhn,  1530. 
and  he  sighed  and  groaned  for  the  day  when  the  power  of 
the  tempter  should  be  destroyed.  When  he  was  able  to 
resume  his  studies,  he  used  great  caution  and  moderation, 
but  was  able  to  complete  the  version  of  Jeremiah  before  the 
end  of  June.  Ezekiel  was  then  taken  in  hand,  but  it  proved 
a  very  onerous  task,  and  was  laid  aside  for  a  time ;  but  was 
subsequently  resumed  and  finished.  Before  the  middle  of 
August,  the  Minor  Prophets,-  "  leisurely  and  by  way  of 
recreation,"  had  all  been  translated,  with  the  exception  of 
Haggai  and  Malachi.  But  translation  was  not  the  only 
fruit  of  Luther's  Coburg  retirement.  He  wrote  an  admirable 
discourse  on  the  necessity  of  schools  for  children ;  an  exposi- 
tion of  the  113th  Psalm  (Confitemini),  "an  alms-giving  to 
the  poor  printers;"  expositions  of  the  117th,  and  of  the  2nd 
Psalms,  the  latter  addressed  to  the  Archbishop  of  Mentz,  and 
also  of  other  passages  of  Scripture.  In  the  latter  part  of  July 
he  composed  a  tract  on  the  Papist  lies  about  Purgatory,  which 
he  followed  up  by  a  tract  on  the  Papist  lies  about  the  Keys ; 
and  in  September  he  wrote  an  Epistle  on  the  Interpretation 
of  Scripture,  and  on  the  Intercession  of  Saints. 

The  letter-carriers  from  Wittenberg  passed  by,  for  the 
most  part,  Luther's  beacon  tower  on  their  way  to  Augsburg, 
and  thus  the  Reformer  generally  learnt  the  news  from  home 
before  the  theologians  who  were  in  attendance  upon  the  Diet. 
Luther  had  heavy  tidings  to  break  to  Jonas — the  death  of  a 
son  born  since  their  departure  from  Wittenberg,  and  weak 
from  the  birth — the  second  domestic  affliction  which  had 
lighted  upon  the  same  family  in  a  brief  space  of  time.  On 
the  19th  May,  Luther  wrote  a  letter  of  consolation  to  his  sick 
father,  and  lamented  that  he  could  console  him  no  better, 
"  being,  like  the  region  round  him,  parched  and  arid." 
"  Remember,"  he  said,  "  the  blessings  you  still  enjoy,  for  a 


20-1  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEH. 

1530.  virtuous  woman  is  a  crown  to  her  husband,  and  do  not  wish 
like  a  glutton  to  have  every  delight  of  life,  and  so  resemble 
in  no  respect  the  brethren  of  Christ,  who  must  through  much 
tribulation  seize  the  kingdom  of  God  by  violence."  Luther 
had  to  deal  out  his  consolations  on  all  sides.  The  Elector 
had  sent  him  a  message  to  request  he  would  take  the  poor 
accommodation  he  found  at  the  castle  in  good  part,  and  not 
think  his  sojourn  there  very  tedious.  He  replied  that  "  he 
lived  like  the  Lords,"  and  the  weeks  which  he  had  spent  at 
Coburg  had  flown  so  rapidly  that  they  had  scarcely  appeared 
three  days.  But,  having  heard  from  the  theologians  that 
John  was  much  depressed  in  spirits  because  the  Emperor 
still  delayed  his  entrance  into  Augsburg,  whereby  the 
rumours  of  his  ungracious  feelings  towards  himself  seemed 
confirmed,  and  the  expenditure  of  his  table,  which  was  very 
great,  was  necessarily  enhanced,  the  Reformer  directed  the 
eye  of  his  Prince  to  a  more  cheering  and  encouraging  picture 
than  immediate  circumstances  afforded.  "  Your  trials,"  he 
said,  "  are  tokens  that  God  is  gracious  towards  you.  Think 
how  good  he  is  to  you.  Your  Grace's  land  has  the  best 
teachers  and  preachers  in  the  whole  world,  who  proclaim  the 
pure  Gospel,  and  preserve  the  blessings  of  peace.  A  tender 
youth  of  boys  and  girls  is  there  growing  up,  nurtured  with 
the  Catechism  and  Scriptures,  who  can  pray,  believe,  and 
speak  of  God  and  Christ,  as  no  cathedral,  cloister,  or  school 
has  hitherto  been,  or  is  now  able.  Such  a  youth  is  a  fair 
Paradise,  the  like  whereof  is  not  to  be  seen  upon  earth  else- 
where. And  God  builds  it  in  your  Grace's  bosom.  It  is  as 
though  he  said  to  you,  '  Here,  dear  Duke  John,  I  commit  to 
thee  my  most  precious  treasure,  my  gladsome  Paradise  :  thou 
shalt  be  father  over  it ;  I  place  it  under  thy  shelter  and  rule, 
and  do  thee  such  honour  as  to  make  thee  warden  of  my 
garden.'     All  these  children  must  eat  your  Grace's  bread, 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  205 

which  is  as  if  God  himself  was  your  Grace's  guest  and  pen-  1530. 
sioner.  On  the  other  hand,  the  Papist  Princes  give  not  a 
draught  of  cold  water  to  God  of  all  their  goods — nay,  to  the 
thirsty  Christ  upon  the  cross  they  hold  out  vinegar,  myrrh, 
and  gall.  The  young  children  will  bring  a  blessing  on  your 
head,  who  with  their  innocent  tongues  cry  so  heartily  to 
heaven,  and  so  truly  commend  your  Grace  to  the  tender- 
hearted God  as  their  dear  father." 

Turning  his  thoughts  homeward,  whence  he  received  good 
tidings  of  his  son  Johnny,  from  Weller  his  tutor,  he  indited 
a  letter  to  the  child  to  encourage  him  in  learning.  "  Grace, 
and  love  in  Christ,  my  dear  little  son.  I  see  with  delight 
that  you  learn  well,  and  love  to  pray.  Go  on  so,  my  little 
son,  and  when  I  return  home,  I  will  bring  you  a  pretty 
fairing.  1  know  a  beautiful,  delightful  garden,  where  many 
children  go  in,  and  have  on  golden  jackets,  and  gather  beau- 
tiful apples  under  the  apple-trees,  and  pears,  and  cherries, 
and  plums ;  sing,  and  jump,  and  are  merry :  they  have 
beautiful  ponies  with  golden  bits  and  silver  saddles.  I  asked 
the  man  to  whom  the  garden  belongs,  Whose  children  are 
these  ?  He  said,  '  They  are  children  who  love  to  pray,  and 
learn  well,  and  are  good.'  So  I  said,  '  Dear  man,  I  have  a 
son,  called  Johnny  Luther,  may  not  he  come  into  this  garden 
and  eat  such  beautiful  apples  and  pears,  and  ride  such  pretty 
ponies,  and  play  with  these  children  ?  '  Then  he  said,  '  If  he 
loves  to  pray,  and  learn,  and  is  good,  he  may  come  into  the 
garden,  and  Lippus  and  Jost  too;  and  if  they  all  come 
together,  they  shall  have  pipes,  drums,  lutes  and  every  kind 
of  stringed  instrument,  and  dance,  and  shoot  with  little 
cross-bows.'  So  he  showed  me  a  lovely  meadow  in  the 
garden,  prepared  for  dancing,  where  were  many  golden  pipes, 
drums,  and  beautiful  silver  cross-bows.  But  it  was  too 
early  for  the  children  to  come ;  so  I  could  not  wait  to  see 


206  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEIl. 

1530.  the  dancing,  but  said  to  the  man,  f  Dear  sir,  I  shall  soon 
come  again,  and  I  shall  write  all  this  to  my  dear  little  son, 
Johnny,  that  he  may  love  to  pray,  and  learn  well,  and  be 
good,  so  that  he  may  come  into  this  garden.  But  he  has 
an  aunt,  Lena,  who  must  come  with  him.'  So  the  man  said, 
'  Yes  it  shall  be  so ;  and  go  and  write  to  him.'  Therefore, 
dear  little  son  Johnny,  learn,  and  pray  cheerfully,  and  tell 
Lippus  and  Jost  to  do  so  too,  and  so  you  shall  all  come 
together  into  the  garden.  Herewith,  I  commend  you  to 
Almighty  God,  and  greet  aunt  Lena,  and  give  her  a  kiss 
from  me.  Your  dear  father,  Martin  Luther."  It  was  about 
the  time  of  writing  this  letter  that  the  Reformer  received 
intelligence  of  the  death  of  his  aged  father,  whose  removal  to 
Wittenberg  in  his  failing  state  of  health  had  not  been  pos- 
sible, and  he  was  overwhelmed  with  the  keenest  sorrow  at  the 
tidings.  "Whatever  I  am,  or  have,"  he  said,  "I  owe  under 
God  to  him,  who  made  and  fashioned  me  such  as  I  am,  by  the 
sweat  of  his  brow ;  and  though  I  am  much  comforted  that  he 
has  sweetly  fallen  asleep  in  Christ,  the  recollection  of  his 
society  has  so  shaken  my  soul,  that  I  scarcely  ever  had  such 
a  contempt  of  death.  But  the  righteous  is  taken  away  from 
the  evil  to  come.  We  so  often  die,  ere  we  die  once  !  I  am 
now  the  old  Luther  of  my  family." 

The  Landgrave  of  Hesse,  who  only  attended  the  Diet  at 
all  in  compliance  with  the  advice  and  example  of  the  Elector 
John,  had  entered  Augsburg  on  the  12th  May,  accompanied 
by  120  horsemen.  On  the  15th,  the  deputies  of  Nuremberg, 
with  Osiander,  made  their  entrance,  and  took  up  their  quar- 
ters nearly  opposite  to  the  Landgrave's  lodging.  But  consi- 
derable apprehensions  were  entertained  in  regard  to  Philip's 
constancy  by  the  strict  Lutherans  :  he  was  continually  assailed 
with  letters  on  the  sacramentarian  controversy  by  the  Swiss; 
his  chancellor   Feige   (Ficinus)    avowed    his    sympathy   with 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEll.  207 

Zwingle;  and  Snepf,  who  remained  attached  to  Luther,  was  1530. 
doubtful  Loth  as  to  his  prince's  maintenance  of  the  pure 
evangelical  faith,  and  of  the  maxims  of  peace.  By  order  of 
the  Elector  and  Landgrave,  Protestant  preachers  immediately 
proceeded  to  hold  their  discourses  in  the  principal  churches ; 
those  selected  by  the  Elector  preached  first  in  the  Dominican 
church,  afterwards  at  St.  Catharine's,  and  were  all  strict 
Lutherans ;  those  appointed  by  Philip  were  of  the  Reformed 
or  Evangelical  church  indiscriminately,  and  preached  at  first 
in  the  Cathedral,  afterwards  at  St.  Ulric's.  The  Lutheran 
preachers,  Osiander  and  Agricola,  were  extremely  popular; 
and  the  citizens  of  Augsburg,  in  unprecedented  numbers, 
flocked  to  the  temples  of  God.  Meanwhile  the  Emperor  con- 
tinued to  delay  his  advent :  he  had  moved  in  the  sacred  week 
from  Mantua,  and  in  the  beginning  of  May  had  advanced  as 
far  as  Innspruck,  but  there  he  remained  stationary.  One  of 
the  first  princes,  who  tendered  him  his  homage  at  Innspruck, 
was  his  brother-in-law,  Christian,  the  ex-king  of  Denmark, 
and  one  of  the  earliest  pieces  of  intelligence  from  the  imperial 
court  was,  that  this  banished  monarch,  who  had  become  a 
Lutheran  to  appease  his  subjects,  had  now  returned  to  Popery 
to  please  the  Emperor.  This  seemed  a  prognostication  of  the 
personal  interest  of  Charles  in  the  religious  conflict.  Pre- 
sently the  Elector  of  Brandenburg,  the  Duke  of  Bavaria,  and 
Duke  George  of  Saxony,  arrived  in  Augsburg ;  but  finding 
that  the  Emperor  was  still  at  Innspruck,  hastened  on  from  the 
contaminating  vicinity  of  the  Elector  of  Saxony  and  the 
Landgrave,  to  breathe  orthodox  air  in  the  imperial  court, 
which  was  honoured  by  the  presence  of  the  Legate  Campegio. 
Thus  the  Protestants  at  Augsburg  and  the  Romanists  at 
Innspruck  lay,  like  two  hostile  armies  in  adverse  camps,  pre- 
paring for  battle,  making  their  reconnoissances  and  maturing 
their  own  plan  of  operations.     At  Augsburg  the  "  Apology," 


208  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  or  rather  "Confession/'  which  Melancthon  had  been  appointed 
to  draw  up,  had  assumed  shape  and  polish  under  his  unflag- 
ging diligence,  which  scarcely  knew  intermission  by  day  or 
night;  and  on  the  11th  May  it  was  forwarded  for  Luther's 
examination  to  Coburg,  with  a  letter  from  the  Elector,  and 
also  a  letter  from  Melancthon,  in  which  he  intimated  that  he 
had  been  mindful  in  its  preparation  of  the  calumnies  which 
Eck  and  Cochkeus  were  reiterating  against  the  evangelicals. 
Luther  returned  it  with  his  approval,  and  without  a  single 
alteration,  and  spoke  of  it  in  his  letter  to  the  Elector  in  the 
following  terms  : — "  I  have  read  over  Master  Philip's  Apology  : 
it  pleases  me  right  well,  and  I  know  not  how  to  better  or  alter 
anything  in  it,  and  will  not  hazard  the  attempt ;  for  I  cannot 
myself  tread  so  softly  and  gently.  Christ  our  Lord  help,  that 
it  bear  much  and  great  fruit ;  as  we  hope  and  pray.  Amen." 
After  receiving  back  his  work,  Melancthon  still  toiled  on  with 
his  revisions  and  emendations.  At  Innsprnck,  on  the  other 
hand,  Duke  George  and  the  extreme  Papists  were  bent  on 
persuading  the  Emperor  that  the  Elector  of  Saxony  was  me- 
ditating snares  against  the  imperial  person,  and  spoke  of  the 
multitude  of  armed  retainers  whom  they  had  seen  round  his 
hotel,  in  their  passage  through  Augsburg.  The  upshot  of 
these  complaints  was,  that  the  town-council  of  Augsburg  were 
commanded  to  remove  the  chains  and  bolts  which  had  been 
fixed  to  some  of  the  street  walls,  and  to  disband  the  troops 
which  they  had  enlisted,  with  a  view  to  maintaining  order. 
But  in  the  Emperor's  cabinet,  as  well  as  among  the  Pro- 
testants, there  were  two  parties;  and  Charles'  chancellor, 
Cardinal  Gattinara,  who  sincerely  entertained  the  moderate 
sentiments  which  Glapio  had  professed  at  Worms,  served  as 
a  counterpoise  to  the  extreme  faction,  and  looked  forward  to 
a  Council  as  the  only  means  of  abolishing  abuses  in  the 
Church,  and  restoring  the  purity  of  the  faith.     His  health, 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  209 

however,  had  for  some  time  been  drooping,  and  his  death,  1530. 
which  took  place  on  the  4th  June,  gave  preponderance  to  the 
violent   Papists,   and   was  lamented  as  a  real  affliction   by 
Melancthon. 

The  first  subject  of  direct  collision  between  the  Papists  and 
Protestants  was  the  question  of  free  preaching.  Before  the 
Emperor  took  any  overt  step  in  this  matter,  rumour  antici- 
pated his  intention  of  putting  an  end  to  the  Protestant  dis- 
courses, which  attracted  large  audiences,  and  served  to  keep 
the  zeal  of  the  party  at  a  high  temperature.  The  Elector 
John,  therefore,  required  of  his  theologians  their  opinions  as 
to  the  propriety  of  yielding  to  the  Emperor,  and  desisting 
from  preaching,  if  he  should  demand  it.  They  all  delivered 
it  as  their  judgment,  that  the  Emperor  ought  to  be  implicitly 
obeyed.  In  his  written  judgment  Melancthon  distinguishes 
between  public  and  private  preaching,  and  argues  that  the 
former  might  certainly  cease  if  the  latter  were  allowed ;  but 
he  goes  on  to  affirm,  that  if  the  Emperor  should  prohibit  the 
latter  also,  that  point  too  must  be  surrendered  to  him.  "We 
are,"  he  said,  "  under  necessity,  like  those  cast  into  chains." 
"  We  are  in  the  Emperor's  city,"  he  wrote  to  Luther,  "  and, 
as  it  were,  his  Majesty's  guests."  Strange  to  say,  the  verdict 
of  Luther  coincided  with  Melancthon' s,  and  he  declared  "  The 
Emperor  is  master ;  the  State  and  all  are  his ;  and  to  oppose 
his  will  would  be  as  if  any  one  should  contend  against  the 
Elector  in  his  town  of  Torgau."  But  he  suggested  that  fit 
and  prudent  representations  should  be  offered  to  induce  his 
Imperial  Majesty  not  to  condemn  the  preaching  unheard, 
with  the  assurance  that  nothing  whatever  tending  to  tumult 
or  fanaticism  was  inculcated.  But  if  this  would  not  help, 
then  "  might  must  go  for  right,"  and  the  Evangelicals,  having 
done  their  duty,  must  leave  results  to  God.  The  Elector, 
however,  remained  still  firm — in  Melancthon's  language,  "  an 

VOL.  II.  p 


210  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  obstinate  old  man ;"  and  Brack,  with  his  usual  sagacity,  per- 
ceiving the  importance  of  the  subject  in  dispute,  and  the  effect 
which  yielding  on  the  first  point  attacked  must  have  in  in- 
flating the  confidence  of  the  Romanists,  advised  him  by  all 
means  to  resist  the  Emperor's  demand,  "  for  it  was  a  question 
of  preferring  the  command  of  God,  or  that  of  man."  The 
Elector  accordingly  sent  Dolzig  to  present  his  reply  in  the 
negative  to  the  order  which  the  Counts  of  Nassau  and  Nuenar 
had  delivered  to  him  from  Charles,  and  at  the  same  time  to 
some  accusations  insinuated  against  him  in  their  words  with 
something  like  a  threat ;  and  although  a  second  embassage 
repeated  the  command  that  the  preaching  must  be  discon- 
tinued, John  was  not  to  be  moved.  It  was  then  debated 
among  the  Lutherans  what  reply  should  be  made,  if  the 
Emperor  demanded,  according  to  expectation,  that  the  fast- 
days  of  the  Romish  Church  should  be  observed;  and  Luther 
and  Melancthon  again  counselled  obedience.  This,  however, 
was  a  question  of  a  different  nature. 

The  Emperor  still  lingered  on  at  Innspruck.  Ambassadors, 
who  had  implored  him  to  come  to  Augsburg,  received  a 
courteous  answer,  but  could  not  quicken  his  movements.  It 
became  noised  abroad  that  Charles  had  no  intention  of  visit- 
ing Augsburg  at  all ;  that  his  purpose  was  to  waste  the  sub- 
stance of  the  Protestant  princes  by  keeping  them  and  their 
large  retinues  in  lengthened  expectation  of  his  arrival,  at  a 
time  when  the  pric.  vfi  all  commodities  was  most  exorbitant. 
Luther,  in  his  castle,  received  these  floating  reports,  but  was 
not  dismayed  by  any  of  them.  He  only  complained  that 
although  letter-carriers  frequently  passed,  his  friends  at  Augs- 
burg had  failed  to  write  to  him  for  three  weeks ;  and  when  at 
last  letters  from  Melancthon  arrived,  he  would  not  for  some 
time  open  them.  But  he  resolved  to  be  in  good  spirits. 
"  God,"  said  he,  "  is  not  the  God  of  the  dead,  but  of  the  living. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  211 

He  is  the  God  not  of  sorrow,  but  of  joy.  If  birds  will  fly  153°- 
over  your  head,  at  least  let  them  not  nestle  in  your  hair.  If 
cares  flock  in,  be  sure  that  they  flock  out  again."  The  tones 
of  his  voice  or  the  notes  of  his  flute  echoed  along  the  massive 
walls  of  the  fortress,  and  put  "  that  proud,  melancholy  spirit 
Satan,"  with  all  his  rout,  to  flight.  Finding  an  old  piece  of 
music  in  the  castle,  he  patched  it  up,  and  made  additions,  and 
exulted  in  the  jest  of  palming  it  off  as  an  exquisite  composition, 
on  a  friend  who  fancied  himself  a  connoisseur  in  the  art. 
The  abodes  of  the  rooks  and  jackdaws  were  visited  by  him  in 
person ;  to  his  amusement,  they  were  in  consternation  at  his 
approach ;  he  clapped  his  hands,  and  threw  up  his  cap,  and 
enjoyed  their  terrors :  it  seemed  to  him  that  they  were  "  the 
harpies  of  the  Papists  trembling  at  the  word  of  God."  He 
complained,  however,  bitterly  of  being  himself  disturbed  in 
his  retirement,  like  the  poor  rooks,  by  intruders.  Afgula 
Von  Stauffen  paid  him  a  visit  on  the  2nd  June ;  and  at  a 
later  period  Urban  Regius,  who  as  a  youth  had  been  the  pro- 
tege of  the  great  lawyer  Zasius,  and  as  a  man  under  the  very 
wing  and  patronage  of  Eck,  at  Ingolstadt,  had  warmly  em- 
braced the  Lutheran  opinions  when  they  were  first  promul- 
gated. Urban  Regius  has  left  it  on  record  : — "  The  most 
pleasant  day  I  spent  in  my  whole  life  I  passed  with  Luther,  at 
Coburg.  He  is  a  greater  theologian  than  any  previous  age 
has  produced ;  and  I  am  astonished  at  the  folly  of  those  who 
can  put  Carlstadt  in  competition  with  him,  who  does  not  come 
up  to  his  shadow.  Luther's  books  show  his  genius ;  but  if 
you  see  him  face  to  face,  and  hear  him  speak  of  godly  matters 
with  apostolic  spirit,  then  will  you  say,  it  is  true  Luther  is 
too  great  for  any  sciolist  to  be  able  to  comprehend  him." 
Another  of  the  numerous  visitors  to  his  retreat  was  his  old 
playmate  John  Reineck,  with  whom,  thirty-seven  years  before, 
he  had  travelled  on  foot  to  the  choral  school  at  Magdeburg. 

r  2 


212  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  But  the  greater  part  of  his  visitors  were  only  an  interruption 
and  annoyance ;  so  that  he  formed  the  plan  of  counterfeiting 
a  flight,  to  put  curiosity  on  the  wrong  scent,  and  of  then  re- 
turning unobserved  to  his  lair.  Yet  he  was  sometimes  to  be 
seen  in  the  town,  where  he  was  pleased  with  the  society  of 
John  Sternberg,  and  of  the  pastor  of  the  place,  who  often 
gave  him  absolution  and  administered  to  him  the  holy  com- 
munion, as  well  as  of  others  of  the  good  people  of  Coburg. 
On  one  occasion  he  was  invited  to  a  wedding  entertain- 
ment in  Coburg ;  he  declined  to  attend  personally,  but 
sent  his  nuptial  gift — a  figure  of  a  child  made  out  of  tin, 
filled  with  salt,  with  a  ducat  attached,  bearing  the  words, 
"  In  marriage  are  three  things  —  pain  and  toil,  joy  and 
delight,  care  and  woe."  His  love  of  humour  — which  per- 
haps necessity,  as  at  the  Wartburg,  brought  into  more 
active  exercise  than  was  even  his  wont — pervaded  all  his  spe- 
culations in  his  private  hours  on  the  threatening  aspect  of 
public  affairs.  He  represents  in  his  correspondence,  the  Ve- 
netians, the  Florentines,  Mr.  Par-ma-foi,  or  the  King  of  France, 
and  Mr.  In-nomine-Domini,  or  the  Pope,  as  making  a  most 
holy  league,  and  contributing  largely  from  their  coffers  to 
help  forward  their  design,  so  that  it  became  a  very  costly 
affair ;  but  that,  he  said,  belongs  to  the  chapter  of  Non-cre- 
dimus.  Mr.  Par-ma-foi  could  never  forget  the  defeat  at  Pavia  : 
Mr.  In-nomine-Domini  was,  first,  a  born  Italian,  bad  enough; 
next  a  Florentine,  yet  worse ;  thirdly,  born  of  harlotry,  that 
is,  the  Devil  himself;  and  moreover  had  never  relieved  his 
memory  of  the  sack  of  Home.  The  Venetians  were  Vene- 
tians, sufficient  in  itself;  but  they  had  also  grounds  for  revenge 
on  the  blood  of  Maximilian ;  and  thus  the  dreadful  league  all 
went  to  pieces ;  and  this  belonged  to  the  chapter  Firmiter- 
credimus.  But  occasionally  the  gloomy  forebodings  of  others 
cast  a  passing  shadow  on  his  own  mind.      His  "  lord  Kate  " 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  213 

wrote  him  word  that  the  Elbe  had  overflown  its  banks  in  a  1530. 
season  of  continued  drought,  and  prodigies  and  portents  were 
related  from  all  sides. 

Augsburg  was  now  filling  fast  with  the  members  of  the 
Diet.  On  Tuesday,  the  17th  May,  the  Archbishop  of 
Cologne  had  made  his  entrance,  and  on  the  following  day  the 
Archbishop  of  Mentz ;  and  a  few  days  later  the  Elector  of 
Saxony's  firm  ally,  the  Margrave  George  of  Brandenburg, 
passed  through  the  streets  with  200  horsemen,  all  clad  in 
green ;  and  a  waggon  followed  with  his  learned  men  and 
preachers.  On  the  27th  May,  Duke  George  of  Saxony  re- 
turned to  Augsburg  from  Innspruck ;  and  it  was  whispered 
that  he  was  not  altogether  satisfied  with  all  that  he  had  seen 
and  heard  at  the  Imperial  Court.  These  tidings  put  spurs  to 
curiosity  :  and  at  last  on  the  1 9th  June,  Luther  learnt  from  a 
traveller,  who  passed  through  Coburg  fresh  from  the  spec- 
tacle, that  the  Emperor  had  made  his  public  entrance  into 
Augsburg  four  days  earlier.  Charles  quitted  Innspruck  on 
the  Gth  June,  and  arrived  at  Munich,  the  streets  of  which 
were  gay  with  tapestry  for  the  occasion,  on  the  10th  ;  and  early 
in  the  morning  of  the  15th  imperial  commissioners  appeared 
in  Augsburg,  and  apprised  the  princes  that  the  Emperor 
would  make  his  entrance  into  the  city  on  that  clay,  and  that 
it  was  his  pleasure  that  they  should  meet  him  a  little  beyond 
the  city  gates.  Accordingly,  at  three  o'clock  in  the  afternoon 
the  princes  and  deputies  proceeded  from  the  city  as  far  as  the 
little  bridge  spanning  the  precipitous  current  of  the  river  Lech, 
and  there  on  some  rising  ground  awaited  the  arrival  of  the 
Emperor.  The  aspect  of  the  road  gave  full  indications  that 
something  extraordinary  was  going  forward ;  horses  and  bag- 
gage trains,  waggons  and  passengers  on  foot,  officers  of  the 
Emperor's  household,  and  strangers  hastening  to  enjoy  a  novel 
spectacle,  from  an  early  hour  in  the  morning,  and  some  days 


214  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  previously,  had  been  rolling  amidst  clouds  of  dust,  to  the  sound 
of  whip  and  horn,  or  slowly  wending  their  steps  into  Augs- 
burg. The  princes,  however,  for  some  tedious  hours  looked  in 
vain  for  signs  that  the  Emperor  himself  was  at  hand.  At 
last,  towards  eight  o'clock,  a  large  mass  of  dust  moving  on 
towards  them,  and  presently  the  notes  of  music  and  the 
sound  of  voices,  intimated  his  near  approach.  The  princes, 
as  soon  as  he  could  be  recognised,  dismounted  their  horses, 
and  on  their  side,  the  Emperor  and  King  Ferdinand  leapt  from 
their  saddles,  and  greetings  were  interchanged  with  every 
demonstration  of  regard  and  cordiality.  The  Archbishop  of 
Mentz  addressed  the  Emperor  in  the  name  of  the  princes,  and 
Frederick  Count  Palatine,  in  the  absence  of  his  brother,  the 
Elector  Louis,  replied  in  behalf  of  Charles.  Three  only  of 
the  company  had  continued  on  horseback,  the  Legate  Cam- 
pegio,  with  the  Archbishop  of  Salzburg,  and  the  Bishop  of 
Trent,  and  when  the  addresses  were  closed,  the  apostolic 
Legate  pronounced  his  benediction  on  the  Emperor  and 
princes,  which  the  Romanists  received  on  bent  knees,  whilst 
the  Protestants,  with  studied  indifference,  remained  standing. 
Charles,  who  rode  a  Spanish  horse  of  the  purest  white,  was 
now  helped  to  his  seat  by  the  younger  princes :  the  procession 
formed,  and  slowly  advanced.  The  households  of  the  electors 
in  order,  with  the  households  of  the  dukes  of  Bavaria,  who 
had  forced  their  way  before  the  Margrave  George  and  his 
retinue,  preceded  the  Emperor :  and  immediately  before  him 
rode  the  Elector  of  Saxony,  bearing  a  naked  sword  as  grand 
marshal  of  the  Empire,  with  Joachim  of  Brandenburg  on  one 
side,  and  a  representative  of  the  Elector  Palatine  on  the  other. 
A  rich  damask  canopy,  red,  white,  and  green,  was  borne  over 
the  Emperor's  head  by  six  of  the  principal  citizens  of  Augs- 
burg ;  the  Elector  of  Mentz  was  on  Charles'  right  hand,  and 
the  Elector  of  Cologne  on  his  left :  the  Papists  had  desired  a 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTIIEK.  215 

different  arrangement ;  but  King  Ferdinand  and  the  Legate  1530. 
were  obliged  to  be  content  with  bringing  up  the  rear.  The 
procession  was  preceded  and  closed  by  troops  of  soldiers  both 
on  horse  and  foot.  The  cannon  roared  from  the  ramparts,  the 
bells  pealed  from  the  cathedral  and  churches,  and  kettle  drum 
and  trumpet  mingled  their  welcome  with  the  applause  of  the 
populace,  who  admired  the  stately  form  and  dexterity  in 
horsemanship  of  their  youthful  emperor,  and  his  handsome 
countenance,  in  which  amiability  and  gravity  seemed  equally 
blended.  The  procession  moved  on  to  the  cathedral,  at  the 
doors  of  which  the  Bishop  and  the  clergy  were  waiting  in 
their  white  robes.  During  the  chanting  of  the  Te  Deum, 
Charles  was  observed  to  be  conversing  in  a  low  tone  with  the 
Archbishop  of  Mentz,  and  nodded  once  familiarly  to  Duke 
George;  but  when  the  Te  Ergo  Qusesumns  liegan,  rising  from 
his  seat  and  rejecting  an  embroidered  gold  cushion  which  was 
offered  him,  he  knelt  down  on  the  bare  stones,  raising  his 
hands  to  heaven.  The  whole  crowd  throughout  the  cathe- 
dral now  fell  upon  their  knees,  with  the  exception  of  the 
Elector  of  Saxony  and  the  Landgrave ;  and  the  Margrave 
George,  although  he  had  at  first  followed  in  the  general 
movement,  observing  that  his  associates  remained  standing, 
rose  from  the  ground  and  imitated  their  firmness.  After  the 
service  the  procession  formed  anew,  and  Charles  was  con- 
ducted to  the  Palatinate,  the  palace  of  the  Bishop  of  Augs- 
burg, which  had  been  prepared  for  his  reception. 

Here  he  dismissed  the  other  princes,  for  it  was  past  ten 
o'clock :  but  made  a  sign  to  the  Elector  of  Saxony,  the 
Landgrave,  the  Duke  of  Luneburg,  and  the  Margrave  George, 
to  attend  him  into  his  private  apartment.  There,  using 
Ferdinand  as  his  mouthpiece,  who  communicated  with  the 
princes  in  German,  and  with  the  Emperor  in  French,  Charles 
demanded  of  them  to  impose  silence  on  their  preachers,  and 


216  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  to  join  in  the  procession  of  the  body  of  Christ  on  the  follow- 
ing day ;  but  was  met  with  a  respectful  but  firm  refusal  to 
both  these  requests.  The  Landgrave  urged,  that  their 
preachers  proclaimed  nothing  "either  new  or  bad,  but  simply 
the  doctrines  of  Augustin,  Hilary,  and  other  early  fathers  of 
the  Church."  And  when  the  Emperor  still  laboured  to  con- 
quer their  repugnance,  the  Margrave  George,  with  great  ani- 
mation, exclaimed,  "  Rather  than  let  the  Word  of  God  be 
taken  from  me,  and  deny  my  God,  I  would  kneel  down  and 
have  my  head  struck  off."  And  suiting  the  action  to  the 
words,  he  struck  his  neck  with  his  hand.  The  Emperor  him- 
self was  moved,  and  replied  with  vivacity,  "Not  the  head  off, 
not  the  head  off"  (nicht  kopf  ab), — the  only  words  which  he 
was  heard  to  utter  in  German.  When,  at  the  close  of  the 
interview,  Ferdinand  declared  that  "  his  Imperial  Majesty 
could  not  brook  their  disobedience/'  the  Landgrave  answered 
that  "his  Majesty's  conscience  was  not  lord  and  master  over 
their  consciences."  The  princes  were  then  dismissed,  with 
the  often  repeated  threat  that  they  would  call  down  upon 
them  the  Emperor's  severest  displeasure  if  they  persisted  in 
their  obstinacy :  and  they  were  directed  to  reflect  more 
maturely  upon  his  Majesty's  requests,  and  to  report  their 
answer  in  person  early  the  next  morning.  After  the 
princes  had  departed,  Charles  was  so  violently  agitated  by 
the  resistance  which  had  been  shown  to  his  authority,  that  he 
could  obtain  no  rest ;  he  paced  up  and  down  his  apartment, 
and  in  the  middle  of  the  night  despatched  a  messenger  to  the 
Elector  of  Saxony,  desiring  his  immediate  attendance.  The 
Elector  John,  however,  made  his  advanced  age  and  the  state 
of  his  health  a  plea  for  disregarding  the  summons,  and  replied 
that  his  Imperial  Majesty  should  have  the  answer  of  the 
evangelical  princes  at  the  time  which  he  had  appointed. 
At  seven  o'clock  the  following  morning,  the  princes  met  in 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  217 

private,  and  having  unanimously  agreed  upon  the  reply  to  be  1530. 
made  to  the  Emperor,  proceeded  together  to  the  Palatinate  ; 
but  John  Frederic  attended  in  place  of  his  father,  the  Elector, 
who  alleged  the  infirmities  of  age  in  excuse  of  his  absence. 
The  Margrave  George  was  their  spokesman,  and  stated  that 
they  held  it  to  be  most  objectionable  that  the  bread  only, 
without  the  cup,  was  carried  in  the  procession  of  the  host ; 
but  that,  further  than  this,  there  was  no  scriptural  authority 
whatever  for  exposing  to  view,  or  carrying  about  in  proces- 
sion, the  sacramental  elements.     And  on  the  other  head  of 
preaching,  an  equally  direct  negative  was  returned ;  and  allu- 
sion was  made  to  the  lateness  of  the  hour  at  which  the  Em- 
peror  had   preferred   his   demands.      After    delivering    the 
common  answer,  the  Margrave  George  said  a  few  words  for 
himself  personally.      He  briefly  touched  upon  the  services 
rendered  by  his  father  and  himself  to  the  House  of  Austria, 
and  implored  the  Emperor  not  to  credit  the  calumnies  circu- 
lated against  him  by  his  enemies  :  "  but/'  he  continued,  "the 
divine  command  is  immutable,  and  at  the  risk  of  whatever 
suffering,  even  at  the  cost  of  my  head,  I  must  obey  God 
rather  than  man."     The  Emperor,  after  awhile,  changed  his 
ground,  and,  laying  aside  the  argument  of  authority,  requested 
them  to  comply  with  his  wishes,  as  a  tribute  of  personal  de- 
ference to  himself;  but  here,  too,  the  princes  remained  firm  ;    • 
and  the  audience  having  been  protracted  almost  up  to  the 
very  time  when  the  procession  was  to  commence,  they  were 
dismissed  with  the  understanding  that  they  would  let  the 
Emperor  have  a  written  statement  of  their  views  relative  to 
the  question  of  free  preaching.     The  procession  began  about 
ten  o'clock,  the  streets  being  lined  with  soldiers  to  keep  off 
the   crowd.     The   host  was    carried  by   the   Archbishop  of 
Mentz,  with  uncovered  head,  beneath  a  superb  canopy.     The 
Emperor  himself  immediately  followed,  his  head  bare,  and  a 


218 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTIIEK. 


1530.  burning  torch  in  his  hand.  But  much  as  there  was  in  such  a 
spectacle  to  attract  the  curious,  it  was  computed  by  lookers  on, 
that  not  more  than  a  hundred  citizens  of  Augsburg  were 
present.  Charles  himself  returned  to  the  Palatinate  disap- 
pointed and  incensed ;  not  only  the  evangelical  princes,  but 
the  inhabitants  of  his  imperial  city,  recoiled  from  a  supersti- 
tious ceremony,  in  which  he  himself  bore  the  most  prominent 
part.  With  a  hurried  and  indignant  step  he  paced  his  apart- 
ment, a  prey  to  conflicting  thoughts  :  and  did  violence  to  his 
own  feelings  in  refraining  from  at  once  forwarding  safe  con- 
ducts to  the  Protestant  Princes,  with  the  command  that  they 
should  depart  from  Augsburg  without  delay. 

Luther,  in  his  castle,  received  the  tidings  of  the  firmness 
and  constancy  of  the  princes  with  lively  gratitude  to  God ;  and 
from  the  repeated  accounts  transmitted  to  him  that  the 
Emperor  himself,  and  his  secretary  Alphonso  Valdeso,  were 
the  best  disposed  of  all  the  court  towards  the  evangelical 
cause,  felt  the  hope  revive  that  Charles  might  yet  be  won  over 
to  the  Gospel.  "The  Papists/'  said  he,  "rage  and  are  ter- 
rible ;  but  our  Prince,  endued  with  marvellous  courage, 
confesses  Christ  boldly ;  so  does  the  Margrave  George :  on 
the  other  hand,  the  Emperor's  clemency  is  so  incredible,  that 
he  must  be  provided  with  a  good  angel  from  God."  The 
Coburg  fortress  had  now  been  converted  into  a  temple,  for 
Luther  felt  that  the  battle  was  begun.  Three  hours  at  the 
least  of  every  day,  and  those  not  such  as  could  be  most  readily 
spared,  but  the  most  appropriate  for  study,  were  consecrated  by 
him  to  prayer ;  and  thus,  while  the  conflict  against  Amalek 
was  going  on  in  the  valley,  says  Mathesius,  Moses  himself  re- 
mained on  the  hill,  with  his  hands  uplifted  to  Jehovah.  Over 
his  bed,  and  around  the  walls  of  the  castle,  Luther  had 
written  with  his  own  hand  some  of  his  favourite  texts,  the  con- 
stant sight  of  which  gave  fresh  strength  and  steadfastness  to 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTIIEK.  219 

his  faith,  such  as — "This  just  man  cried,  and  the  Lord  heard  1530. 
him  " — "  God  is  nigh  unto  all  them  that  call  upon  him  " — 
"  Call  upon  me  in  the  day  of  trouble,  and  I  will  deliver  thee  " 
— "  I  shall  not  die,  but  live,  and  declare  the  works  of  the 
Lord."  The  words,  "  I  will  both  lay  me  down  in  peace,  and 
sleep,  for  thou  Lord  only  makest  me  dwell  in  safety,"  afforded 
him  such  especial  comfort,  that  in  a  letter  to  the  celebrated 
Bavarian  musician,  Louis  Senfel,  he  requested  him  to  set  them 
to  music  for  him,  and  obtained  from  him  this  favour,  and  also 
chants  to  several  other  scriptural  texts.  Luther  composed  at 
this  time  a  paper  of  Consolatory  Reflections,  drawn  from  the 
Holy  Scriptures,  in  which  he  expresses  his  grateful  joy  that 
"  the  cause  is  not  in  our  hands,  but  in  God's ;" — that  "  He 
who  is  in  us,  is  greater  than  he  that  is  in  the  world ;"  and 
that,  "  if  we  go  to  the  ground,  Christ  himself  must  go  with 
us  '"  that  the  trials  of  Christians  under  Maximian  and  Dio- 
cletian, and  in  the  time  of  John  Huss,  in  Germany  itself,  were 
far  greater,  and  more  full  of  peril,  than  the  present  trials  j  and 
that,  with  heartfelt  sighing  and  Christian  prayer,  Christian 
people  in  many  lands  were  imploring  the  succour  of  Almighty 
God.  "  You  are  furnishing  arms  to  Satan  against  yourself/' 
he  wrote  to  Melancthon,  whose  timidity  had  already  taken  the 
alarm,  and  was  every  day  gaining  ground.  "  "What  can  the 
devil  do  more  than  strangle  us  ?  Christ  died  once  for  sin ;  he 
now  lives  and  reigns  for  justice  and  truth.  What  can  harm 
the  truth,  if  Christ  is  reigning  ?  I  find  my  own  hopes  better 
than  I  had  hoped.  If  we  are  not  worthy  to  be  God's  instru- 
ments in  this  work,  He  will  provide  himself  with  others. 
Cast  all  your  care  upon  Him." 

As  had  been  promised,  on  the  morning  of  the  17th,  the 
reasons  of  the  evangelical  princes  for  declining  assent  to  the 
Imperial  command  in  regard  to  their  preachers,  were  placed 
in  the  Emperor's  hands.     They  were  to  the  effect,  that  the 


220  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  evangelical  preachers  proclaimed  the  true  gospel,  in  accord- 
ance with  the  decree  of  the  Nuremberg  Diet,  as  it  had  been 
understood  by  the  ancient  fathers  of  the  Church ;  that  they 
could  not  in  their  conscience  forego  this  spiritual  nourish- 
ment; that  the  discourses  forbade  all  sedition  and  tumult, 
and  were  followed  by  prayers  for  the  happy  issue  of  the  Diet. 
From  the  hour  of  noon  the  Emperor,  Electors,  and  Prelates 
deliberated  on  this  topic.  And  the  next  day  it  was  proposed 
to  the  Lutheran  Princes  to  settle  the  question  by  a  compro- 
mise, viz. :  that  the  preachers  of  both  parties  should  for  a 
time  desist  from  their  office,  and  none  preach  but  such  as  had 
been  nominated  by  the  Emperor,  who  should  carefully  abstain 
from  touching  on  anything  that  could  give  offence  to  either  side. 
The  evangelical  divines  declared  in  favour  of  this  compromise  : 
"  It  is  as  good  as  a  promise,"  they  said,  "  that  the  Emperor 
will  hear  our  cause ;  we  are  called  to  confess  our  faith,  not  to 
preach — we  are  not  the  parish  ministers  of  Augsburg."  And 
the  princes  informed  the  Emperor  of  their  acquiescence  in 
the  proposal,  and  the  same  evening  the  inhabitants  and  so- 
journers in  Augsburg  were  apprised  by  proclamation  of  the 
Imperial  decision.  Expectation  was  on  the  qui  vive  to  see 
"  what  sort  of  chimera  or  tragelaphus  "  the  Emperor's  nomi- 
nees would  prove;  the  congregations,*  French,  Spaniards, 
Italians,  iEthiops,  and  Stratiots,  intermingling  with  the  Ger- 
mans, stood  in  the  churches  the  next  morning  with  erect  ear, 
but  they  heard  neither  Evangelical  nor  Papist,  but  "  a  tex- 
tualist  or  scribe,"  who  read  off  Scripture  without  adding  a 
word  of  comment. 

Another  question  now  arose.  On  Monday,  the  20th  June, 
the  solemn  mass  of  the  Holy  Ghost  was  to  be  performed  in 

*  "  Ibi  videas  hie  Gallos,  illic  Hispanos,  hie  iEthiopes,  illic  etiam 
iEthiopissas,  hie  Italos,  illic  etiam  Turcos,  aut  quos  vocant  Stratiotas," 
&c. — Brentz   Letter  to  Isenmann. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  221 

the  cathedral.  Would  the  Elector  of  Saxony,  the  Papists  1530. 
inquired,  in  his  capacity  of  grand  marshal,  bear  the  sword 
before  the  Emperor  at  this  high  ceremonial  ?  The  theolo- 
gians, Luther  among  them,  were  consulted  on  the  subject ; 
and  they  agreed  that  the  Elector  might  attend  in  the  cathe- 
dral, provided  he  took  no  part  in  the  service,  in  his  simple 
capacity  of  grand  marshal,  just  as  Naaman  the  Syrian  was 
permitted  to  hold  his  arm  for  his  master  to  lean  upon,  when 
he  worshipped  in  the  house  of  his  god  Rimmon.  Before  the 
offertory,  from  a  high  stool  in  front  of  the  high  altar, 
Pimpinelli,  Archbishop  of  Rossan,  delivered  a  Latin  oration  of 
an  hour's  length,  urging  the  assembled  princes  to  unanimity 
against  the  Turk,  and  calling  on  St.  Peter  and  St.  Paul  to 
use  their  keys  and  sword  to  exterminate  heresy ;  and  on  the 
conclusion  of  the  service,  the  Emperor  and  princes  rode  to  the 
Town  Hall,  and  the  Diet  was  opened.  It  was  the  subject  of 
querulous  remark  among  the  Protestants,  that  King  Ferdinand 
took  his  seat  on  a  very  high  throne  opposite  to  the  Emperor, 
arrayed  in  a  gold  robe,  and  wearing  the  crown  of  Hungary. 
Frederic  Count  Palatine,  in  a  long  speech,  declared  the 
Emperor's  sentiments,  both  in  reference  to  the  Turkish  war 
and  the  religious  dissensions;  after  which  the  proposition 
was  read  by  Alexander  Schweitz,  the  imperial  secretary, 
which,  in  its  first  article,  spoke  of  the  Turk ;  in  the  second, 
of  the  gravamina  of  the  temporal  rulers  against  the  eccle- 
siastical, and  of  the  ecclesiastical  against  the  temporal ;  and 
in  the  third,  of  the  necessity  of  removing  religious  divisions. 
The  States,  by  the  mouth  of  Joachim  of  Brandenburg, 
returned  thanks  to  the  Emperor,  and  requested  permis- 
sion to  take  copies  of  the  proposition,  with  a  view  to  deli- 
berating on  its  contents.  Three  hours,  accordingly,  were 
allowed  for  the  secretaries  of  the  several  princes  and  states  to 
copy  the  proposition,  which  was  read  aloud  by  the  secretary 


222  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  of  the  Cardinal  of  Mentz.  It  was  agreed  on  both  sides  that 
the  religious  question,  as  underlying  every  other,  should 
be  first  taken  into  consideration  by  the  Diet;  and  on  the 
22nd  the  Emperor  requested  of  the  Elector  of  Saxony  and  his 
allies  to  be  favoured,  in  the  space  of  two  days,  with  the  sura 
of  the  opinions  entertained  by  them  in  the  matter  of  religion, 
the  ecclesiastical  abuses  they  complained  of,  and  the  remedies 
which  they  proposed  to  apply.  On  the  23rd  the  Protestants 
assembled  in  a  private  meeting,  the  deputies  of  Nuremberg 
and  Reutlingen  being  present  among  the  evangelical  princes, 
and  the  Apology  was  read  aloud,  and  unanimously  approved 
of.  The  next  day  Campegio,  the  papal  legate,  about  three 
o'clock  in  the  afternoon  exhibited  his  letters  of  credential, 
and  then  from  the  throne,  which  at  the  opening  of  the  Diet 
had  been  occupied  by  King  Ferdinand,  delivered  a  speech  of 
more  than  half  an  hour's  length,  exhorting  the  Emperor, 
Electors,  and  Princes,  as  members  of  the  TLoraan  Church,  not 
to  fall  off  from  their  allegiance  to  her,  but  to  maintain  stead- 
fastly the  faith  of  their  ancestors.  After  the  speech  he  left  the 
Town  Hall,  and  rode  back  to  his  lodging.  Then  deputies  from 
Carynthia,  Styria,  and  other  provinces  which  had  suffered 
grievously  from  the  Ottoman  inroads,  appeared  before  the 
imperial  throne,  and  implored  succour  for  their  countrymen. 
When  these  had  retired,  the  Elector  of  Saxony,  the  Margrave 
George,  the  two  Dukes  of  Luneburg,  and  the  Landgrave  of 
Hesse,  rose  from  their  seats,  and  took  their  station  in  front  of 
the  throne,  and  by  the  mouth  of  Bruck  petitioned  with  all 
submission,  "that,  inasmuch  as  all  the  new  sects,  heresies, 
and  errors,"  which  had  arisen  in  the  sacred  German  empire, 
were  imputed  to  them  as  the  occasion  and  source,  his  Majesty 
would  be  pleased  to  hear  the  articles  of  faith  which  were  held 
by  them,  and  were  preached  in  their  dominions.  Charles 
requested,  in  reply,  that  the  document  might  be  given  into 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  223 

his  own  hands,  in  order  that  he  might  read  it  over  with  his  1530. 
council,  and  grant  them  a  gracious  answer.  Brack  persisted 
in  the  entreaty  that  his  Majesty  would  be  pleased  to  hear  it 
publicly  read.  The  Emperor  consulted  with  his  brother,  and 
the  Electors  and  Princes,  and  by  the  mouth  of  Count  Nuenar 
replied  that  the  document  must  not  be  read  publicly  in  the 
Diet,  but  he  consented  to  hear  it  read  in  the  Palatinate,  in 
the  presence  of  the  Electors  and  Princes ;  and  he  appointed 
the  next  day  for  the  reading. 

The  next  day,  at  three  o'clock  in  the  afternoon,  the  Emperor,  Saturday, 
King  Ferdinand,  the  Electors  and  Princes  were  assembled  in  ^une  ^°- 
the  chapel  of  the  Palatinate,  which  was  capable  of  holding 
about  200  persons,  to  hear  the  declaration  of  the  articles  of  the 
evangelical  faith.  John,  Elector  of  Saxony ;  George,  Margrave 
of  Brandenburg ;  Ernest,  Duke  of  Luneburg ;  Philip,  Land- 
grave of  Hesse ;  John  Frederick,  Duke  of  Saxony ;  Francis, 
Duke  of  Luneburg ;  Wolfgang,  Prince  of  Anhalt,  and  the 
deputies  of  Nuremberg  and  Reutlingen,  advanced  in  front  of 
Charles'  throne,  the  old  chancellor  Brack  holding  in  his  hand 
the  Latin  version  of  the  Apology,  and  the  other  chancellor, 
Christian  Beyer,  the  German  version.  "  Read  it,"  the  Em- 
peror said,  "  in  Latin."  John  the  Constant  coming  forward, 
said,  "  We  stand  on  German  ground,  and  we  trust  your 
Majesty  will  permit  us  to  use  the  German  tongue."  Charles 
signified  his  assent,  and  Beyer  read  the  "  Augsburg  Confes- 
sion "  in  German,  in  a  voice  so  firm  and  distinct  that  his 
words  could  be  intelligibly  heard  as  far  as  the  lower  gate  of 
the  court-yard.  The  reading  exceeded  two  hours  in  length  ; 
and  when  it  was  finished,  Chancellor  Brack  delivered  both  the 
copies  to  the  imperial  secretary.  The  Emperor  roused  him- 
self from  the  nap  in  which  he  had  indulged  during  the  read- 
ing, and  took  into  his  own  hand  the  Latin  version,  and 
courteously  dismissing  the  evangelical  princes,  assured  them 


224  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  that  he  and  his  council  would  give  the  matter  due  deliberation ; 
but  he  insisted  that  the  Apology  should  not  be  made  public. 

The  Protestants  returned  to  their  lodgings  full  of  thank- 
fulness to  God  that  so  far  their  cause  had  been  triumphant. 
Accounts  of  all  that  had  passed  were  transmitted  to  Coburg, 
and  Luther  replied  with  the  most  cordial  assurances  of  his 
joy.  "  It  delights  me,"  he  wrote,  "  to  have  lived  to  the  pre- 
sent hour,  when  our  Lord  Christ  has  been  proclaimed  pub- 
licly by  an  army  of  confessors.  The  evangelical  preaching 
was  prohibited,  and  the  scriptural  confession  has  preached 
Christ  with  more  power  than  any  ten  preachers.  We  see,  as 
Paul  said,  that  God's  Word  cannot  be  bound.  Forbidden  in 
the  pulpit,  it  is  proclaimed  in  the  palace.  If  all  else  should 
be  silent,  the  stones  would  cry  out."  Luther's  delight  over- 
flowed in  expressions  of  gratitude  towards  the  Emperor  per- 
sonally, of  whose  courteous  bearing  he  was  informed  by  Me- 
lancthon:  "He  is  an  excellent  youth,  worthy  of  the  love  of  God 
and  men."  And  it  was  very  soon  evident  that  the  Confession 
was  yielding  happy  fruit,  both  in  confirming  the  Lutherans, 
and  drawing  over  many  of  the  Romanist  party  to  the  side  of 
truth.  The  Count  of  Nassau,  who  had  before  shown  symp- 
toms of  indecision,  now  declared  himself  a  convert  to  the 
evangelical  faith.  The  Archbishop  of  Cologne,  it  was  also 
known,  gave  his  approval  to  the  Lutheran  tenets.  The  Bishop 
of  Augsburg  spoke  of  the  Apology  as  "the  truth,  the  pure 
truth :"  and  a  Spanish  monk,  confessor  to  the  Court,  main- 
tained that  the  doctrine  of  "justification  by  faith  alone  "  had 
always  been  the  doctrine  of  the  Catholic  Church.  Even  the 
legate  Campegio,  who  took  care  to  be  absent  from  the  read- 
ing, but  had  the  document  submitted  to  him  for  examination 
by  the  Emperor,  pronounced  that  "  the  differences  were 
chiefly  verbal ;  the  great  point  was  to  prevent  further  discus- 
sion." "  All  that  they  say,"  observed  the  Archbishop  of  Salz- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  225 

burg,  who  had  been  peculiarly  bitter  in  his  reproaches  against  1530. 
Melancthon  and  the  other  Reformers,  "  is  right  enough. 
The  mass  ought  to  be  reformed  :  liberty  as  to  feast  days  and 
fast  days  ought  to  be  conceded,  and  the  yoke  of  human  ordi- 
nances to  be  removed :  but  that  a  miserable  monk  should  be 
the  Reformer — that  is  intolerable."  And  it  was  a  subject  of 
congratulation  among  the  Lutherans,  at  the  same  time,  that 
their  confession  had  been  kept  free  from  any  Zwinglian  tinc- 
ture, that  Philip  of  Hesse,  who  had  acknowledged  to  Urban 
Regius  that  he  inclined  to  Zwingle's  view  of  the  Sacrament 
of  the  Lord's  Supper,  and  who  had  been  engaged  while  at 
Augsburg  in  a  correspondence  with  Melancthon  and  Brentz 
on  his  old  subject  of  a  general  Protestant  alliance,  had 
nevertheless  finally  taken  his  post  by  the  side  of  the  Elector 
and  the  Margrave  George,  and,  though  he  still  said  "  he  was 
not  quite  satisfied  about  the  Sacrament,"  would  scarcely 
recede  from  a  faith  to  which  his  signature  was  now  annexed. 

It  was,  of  course,  absolutely  necessary  that  an  answer 
should  be  written  to  the  Apology.  Most  of  the  Romanist 
Princes  had  brought  their  learned  men  with  them  to  the  Diet. 
"  Some,"  Jonas  said,  "  have  brought  their  ignoramuses ; 
for  Cochlseus,  Usingen,  Wimpina,  and  Mensingen  are  here." 
Faber  and  Eck,  however,  were  really  possessed  of  learning, 
although  their  ability  scarcely  rose  to  second-rate ;  and  it 
was  felt  by  the  Romanists  themselves  that  it  was  beyond  the 
power  of  their  learned  men  to  produce  anything  that  could  in 
the  least  match  the  clearness  and  terseness  of  the  Apology. 
Erasmus,  indeed,  had  been  invited  to  Augsburg,  both  by  the 
Papists  and  by  Melancthon,  but  he  saw  the  wisdom  of 
staying  away,  and  pleaded  his  feeble  health  as  a  sufficient 
reason  for  keeping  quietly  at  Basle.  "  Ten  councils,"  he  re- 
plied to  Melancthon,  "  could  not  unravel  the  deep  plot  of 
your  tragedy,  much  less  could  I.     If  any  one  starts  a  propo- 

VOL.  II.  Q 


226  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  sition  that  has  common  sense  on  its  side,  it  is  at  once  set  down 
as  Lutheranism."  To  the  Romanist  invitations  he  replied 
with  his  stereotyped  abuses  of  the  Lutherans.  However, 
something  must  be  done ;  and  the  Romanist  Doctors,  twenty- 
four  in  number,  were  formed  into  a  committee,  with  Eck  at 
their  head,  to  take  the  Apology  into  consideration,  and  draw 
up  a  confutation.  Their  first  attempt  was  not  successful :  it 
spread  to  the  length  of  280  pages ;  but  was  vapid  in  propor- 
tion to  its  bulk,  breathed  blood  and  cruelty,  and  was  sent 
back  by  the  princes  to  the  committee  to  be  retrenched  and 
improved.  Meanwhile,  Charles  was  refreshing  himself  after 
the  fatigues  of  opening  the  Diet,  with  sports  and  recreations. 
On  the  morning  of  Monday,  the  27th  June,  he  received  in 
front  of  the  town-hall  the  homage  of  his  good  citizens  of  Augs- 
burg :  and  afterwards  he  and  Ferdinand,  and  several  of  the 
lords  spiritual  and  temporal,  rode  out  for  a  day's  hunt  in  the 
neighbourhood,  and  in  the  evening  "  the  two  Queens  of 
Hungary  and  Bohemia,  Mary  and  Anna/'  joined  the  royal 
hunting  party,  and  the  night  was  spent  at  the  Castle  of  Wel- 
lenburg.  Moreover,  the  Augsburg  citizens  employed  their 
best  efforts  to  afford  diversion  to  his  Imperial  Majesty  with 
the  pageantry  and  mysteries  in  fashion  in  that  age.  On  one 
occasion,  when  the  Emperor  and  his  Court  were  seated  at 
table,  a  man  in  the  garb  of  a  doctor  entered,  bearing  in  his 
arms  a  number  of  straight  and  crooked  sticks,  which  he  laid 
on  the  hearth ;  and  withdrawing  as  soon  as  this  was  done, 
showed  upon  his  back  Reuchlin,  inscribed  in  large  letters. 
Then  another  entered,  also  in  the  habit  of  a  doctor,  -who 
walked  to  the  hearth,  and  busied  himself  for  some  time  in 
adjusting  the  straight  and  crooked  sticks,  but  all  to  no  pur- 
pose, and  retired  with  a  sardonic  laugh  on  his  countenance. 
Erasmus  was  the  name  on  his  back.  Next  entered  a  friar, 
wearing  the  Augustinian  frock  and  cowl,  with  a  chafing-dish 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  227 

full  of  live  coals  ;  he  raked  the  sticks  together,  threw  the  1530. 
coals  among  them,  and  blowing  the  flame,  quickly  raised  a 
blazing  fire.  An  Emperor  next  rushed  in,  who  in  his  impa- 
tience to  extinguish  the  flame,  thrust  his  sword  into  the  fire, 
and  thereby  made  it  burn  the  faster.  The  Pope  followed, 
with  Peter's  keys  suspended  from  his  girdle,  and  the  triple 
crown  on  his  head,  and  seizing  a  bottle  of  water  with  one 
hand,  and  of  oil  with  the  other,  and  hurrying  to  the  hearth, 
threw  the  oil  on  the  fire  instead  of  the  water,  and  made 
the  flame  burn  so  fiercely  that  he  was  obliged  to  retreat  with 
all  speed  from  its  fury.  Charles  made  inquiries  whose  in- 
genuity had  devised  the  comedy,  but  the  author  could  not  be 
discovered. 

But  the  conduct  of  the  Emperor  towards  the  Protestants 
had  now  undergone  a  manifest  change.  At  first  he  was  so  con- 
descending that  Melancthon  was  full  of  complaints  to  Luther 
of  the  ill  requital  made  by  the  evangelical  princes  to  so  much 
complacency,  and  requested  a  letter  from  Coburg  to  John 
Frederic  in  inculcation  of  gentle  and  more  humble  deport- 
ment. But  not  only  was  the  imperial  visage  clouded  :  every 
kind  of  rumour  and  mode  of  threat,  studied  neglect,  and 
direct  opposition,  were  brought  into  play  to  shake  the  stead- 
fastness of  the  Elector  John.  The  Emperor  never  spoke  to, 
or  noticed  him  :  his  wishes  and  interests  were  always  disre- 
garded :  and  Charles  would  not  even  accede  to  his  request  to 
grant  him  infeudation,  or  confirm  the  marriage  articles  be- 
tween his  son  and  Sibylla  of  Cleves.  And  so  much  did  all 
this  work  upon  the  Elector,  that  in  his  dreams  he  used  to 
conceive  himself  buried  under  a  high  mountain,  at  the  top  of 
which  stood  his  cousin  Duke  George :  but  after  he  had  been 
harassed  by  this  dream  several  consecutive  nights,  at  last  he 
dreamed  that  he  saw  Duke  George  roll  from  the  summit  of  the 
mountain,  and  lie  dashed  to  pieces  at  his  feet.     None,  how- 

q  2 


228  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  ever,  of  the  evangelical  party  felt  the  difficulties  of  their  situ- 
ation so  sensitively  as  the  timid  Melancthon.  "  The  monks," 
he  wrote  to  Luther,  "  are  every  day  inflaming  the  Emperor's 
hate  against  us  ;  the  hishops  detest  us  cruelly ;  our  friends 
forsake  us ;  we  are  here  alone  and  desolate,  tossed  by  innu- 
merable perils."  "Very  few  are  on  our  side,"  wrote  Spalatin, 
"  all  are  Papists  or  Sacramentarians."  It  was  just  that  crisis 
in  which  Luther's  faith  was  peculiarly  called  upon  to  impart 
some  of  its  own  confidence  to  the  drooping  hearts  of  his 
friends.  "1  was  lately  looking  out  of  my  window,"  he 
wrote  to  Brack,  "  when  I  beheld  two  wonders :  there  were 
the  stars  of  heaven,  and  all  God's  bright  firmament ;  but  I 
could  discern  no  walls  on  which  the  Master  had  based  such  a 
firmament :  yet  the  heaven  does  not  fall  in,  and  the  firma- 
ment stands  quite  fast.  Now,  there  are  some  who  are  seek- 
ing and  groping  about  to  find  where  the  walls  are.  The 
other  wonder  was,  that  I  beheld  a  great  dense  cloud  float  over 
us — such  a  mass  !  as  though  it  were  a  mighty  sea ;  but  I  could 
not  descry  any  pavement  on  which  it  rested,  or  coffer  in  which 
it  was  inclosed :  yet  it  did  not  fall  on  our  heads,  but  greeting 
us  with  a  black  frown  passed  on.  When  it  had  passed,  a 
rainbow  appeared,  but  a  weak,  dim,  subtle  bow,  which  soon 
vanished  into  the  clouds.  Now,  there  are  some  who  think 
more  of  the  dense  cloud  and  the  mass  of  waters,  than  of  the 
slender  and  dim  rainbow,  and  are  in  terror  lest  the  clouds 
should  pour  down  an  eternal  deluge."  "  Be  confident," 
Luther  wrote  to  the  Elector  John,  "  Christ  is  with  you,  and 
will  in  turn  own  you  as  his  father,  as  you  have  confessed 
him  before  this  wicked  generation  ;  "  and  he  recommended 
him  to  study  the  37th  Psalm,  as  an  excellent  antidote  against 
the  wiles  of  Satan.  The  Elector  John  heartily  reciprocated 
such  counsel :  he  had  too  much  of  Luther's  own  faith  to 
recoil   from   danger  :    Bruck  and  the  theologians  were  also 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN     LUTHER.  229 

convinced  that  Luther  was  right  in  his  unwavering  trust  in  1530. 
God ;  Melancthon  alone  continued  to  be  agitated  with  every 
kind  of  doubt  and  apprehension.  "  "What  is  the  meaning," 
Luther  wrote  to  him,  "  of  fearing,  trembling,  caring,  and 
sorrowing?  Will  He  not  be  with  us  in  this  world's  trifles, 
who  has  given  us  his  own  Son  ?  In  private  troubles  I  am 
weak,  and  you  are  strong :  if,  at  least,  I  can  call  private  the 
conflicts  I  have  with  Satan  ;  but  in  public  trials  I  am  what 
you  are  in  private.  The  cause  is  just  and  true;  it  is  Christ's 
cause.  Miserable  saintling  as  I  am !  I  may  well  turn  pale 
and  tremble  for  myself;  but  I  can  never  fear  for  the  cause." 
"Our  cause  is  deposited  in  a  common  place  not  to  be  found  in 
your  book,  Philip ;  that  common  place  is  faith."  "  I  pray, 
have  prayed,  and  shall  pray  for  thee,  Philip,"  he  wrote  in 
another  letter,  "  and  I  have  felt"  the  Amen  in  my  heart." 
"  Our  Lord  Christ,"  he  wrote  to  Jonas,  "  is  King  of  kings, 
and  Lord  of  lords.  If  he  disown  the  title  at  Augsburg,  he 
must  disown  it  in  heaven  and  earth.     Amen." 

"  The  constancy  of  '  our  dearest  father,'  Veit  Dietrich  wrote 
to  Melancthon,  "  his  cheerfulness,  faith,  and  hope  are  won- 
derful :  it  is  because  he  studies  God's  Word  so  diligently.  I 
have  once  heard  him  praying,  communing  with  God  as  a 
father  and  friend,  and  reminding  him  of  his  own  promises 
from  the  Psalms,  which  he  was  certain  would  be  made  good. 
'  I  know,  O  God,  thou  art  our  dear  God  and  Father :  there- 
fore am  I  certain  that  thou  wilt  destroy  the  persecutors  of  thy 
Church.  If  thou  dost  not  destroy  them,  thou  art  in  like 
danger  with  us.  It  is  thy  own  cause.  The  enemies  of  the 
cross  of  Christ  assault  us :  it  appertains  to  thee  and  the 
honour  of  thy  name  to  protect  thy  confessors  at  Augsburg. 
Thou  hast  promised  ;  thou  wilt  do  it ;  for  thou  hast  done  it 
from  the  beginning.  Let  thine  help  shine  forth  in  this  ex- 
tremity.' "     Luther's  prayer  was  the  struggling  of  a  wrestler 


230  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  in  the  grips  of  conflict  :  sighs  and  tears  escaped  him ;  he 
groaned  and  cried  aloud,  and  often  rose  from  his  knees  over- 
come by  the  vehemence  of  his  supplications :  and  for  some 
time  afterwards  "  his  head  was  very  weak  "  from  the  fervour 
of  his  soul. 

There  was  a  wide  divergency  between  his  views  and  those 
of  Melancthon  as  to  the  results  to  be  desired  from  the  deli- 
berations of  the  Diet.  Melancthon  hoped  for  concord,  and 
even  union,  with  the  Papists,  and  with  this  object  had  re- 
stricted the  evangelical  ultimatum  to  three  points :  the  Com- 
munion in  both  kinds,  liberty  to  priests  and  monks  to  marry, 
and  the  Reformation  of  the  Mass.  He  had  conferences  with 
Valdeso,  the  Spanish  secretary  to  the  Emperor,  and  with 
Campegio ;  and  if  sometimes  he  was  cast  down  with  the  perils 
of  the  situation  and  the  weight  of  his  own  responsibilities,  at 
other  times  he  wrote  encouraging  accounts  of  the  affability  of 
the  secretary  and  cardinal,  and  the  fair  promises  which  they 
held  out.  Luther,  with  far  more  insight  into  human  nature, 
smiled  at  Philip's  credulity,  and  answered,  "I  would  not 
believe  any  Italian  in  a  single  My."  The  Elector  of  Bran- 
denburg, the  Duke  of  Bavaria,  and  "  the  Clown/'  Melancthon 
represented  as  full  of  rage  and  sanguinary  counsels ;  but  the 
Emperor's  sister  was  labouring  to  pacify  her  brother,  the 
Archbishop  of  Mentz  was  favourable  to  peace,  and  the  Le- 
gate was  extremely  courteous.  Philip  was  miserably  mis- 
taken as  to  the  last ;  for  it  is  now  ascertained  that  Cam- 
pegio was  one  of  those  who  most  zealously  admonished  the 
Emperor  to  "  root  out  the  noxious  plant  of  heresy  with  fire 
and  sword."  On  the  9th  July  the  evangelical  Princes  were 
summoned  into  the  imperial  presence ;  and  it  was  demanded, 
first,  whether  they  had  touched  on  all  the  controverted  points 
in  their  Apology,  and  were  ready  to  abide  in  all  respects  by 
that  document;  and  secondly,  whether  they  were  willing  to 


THE    LIFE    OF    MAKTIN    LUTHER.  231 

accept  the  Emperor  as  judge.  The  answer  to  the  first  ques-  1530. 
tion  was  returned  two  days  later,  that  "  the  Apology  had 
confined  itself  to  essentials, — such  errors  and  abuses  as  had 
proved  a  burden  to  the  conscience."  In  reference  to  the 
second  the  Elector  of  Saxony  consulted  Luther,  who  replied, 
"  that  no  verdict  against  Scripture  could  be  admitted  :  to 
believe  a  doctrine  on  any  ground  saving  that  of  Holy  Writ 
would  be  the  same  as  to  be  a  Christian  without  Christ,  a  lord 
without  land,  rich  without  money,  or  learned  without  know- 
ledge." Luther  was  beginning  to  be  more  and  more  discon- 
tented with  the  long  continuance  of  the  Diet,  and  with  Melanc- 
thon's  fits  of  melancholy,  and  alternate  hopes  and  fears.  "  As 
for  concord,"  said  he,  "  I  have  never  prayed  God  for  it ;  it  is 
an  impossibility  :  '  What  concord  hath  Christ  with  Belial  ? '  " 
All  he  desired  was  religious  toleration,  or,  as  he  termed  it, 
political  peace.  "  May  God  scatter  the  nations  that  delight 
in  war."  And  by  exhibiting  the  confession  of  their  faith,  he 
regarded  the  evangelical  princes  as  having  discharged  their 
duty  to  the  full.  "  You  have  now,"  he  wrote,  "  done  enough  : 
you  have  confessed  Christ  in  the  Assembly  of  Masks ;  would 
that  I  had  myself  shared  such  an  honour.  I  absolve  you  in 
the  name  of  the  Lord  from  the  Diet.     Home  !   Home  !  " 

Melancthon,  at  one  time  depressed,  at  another  elated,  was 
recounting  to  Luther  the  various  publications,  new  or  re- 
printed, with  which  the  Romanist  doctors  were  filling  Augs- 
burg, and  which  they  were  offering  to  the  Emperor  to  inflame 
his  resentment  against  the  Lutherans.  Then,  on  some  fresh 
pretext,  the  Protestant  princes  were  summoned  before  Charles, 
and  threats  and  promises  alternately  tried  to  shake  their 
firmness.  The  Augsburg  citizens  had  succumbed  to  the 
influences  of  various  kinds  brought  to  bear  on  them ;  and 
their  preacher,  Urban  Regius,  offended  by  the  little  value 
they  set  on  the  Gospel,  had  engaged  to  accompany  the  Duke 


232  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  of  Luneburg,  to  superintend  the  Churches  in  his  Duchy,  as 
soon  as  he  should  leave  the  Diet.  On  the  other  hand,  the 
Confession  had  been  forwarded  to  Rome,  and  the  Papal  reply 
had  not  yet  arrived ;  and  in  the  meantime  Campegio  still 
smiled,  and  Valdeso  was  as  friendly  as  ever.  Supposing 
concord  should  be  attainable,  Melancthon's  mind  was  put  to 
the  rack  to  determine  what  conclusions  could  be  assented  to 
by  the  evangelicals,  on  the  subject  of  traditions  ;  and  he  was 
of  opinion,  that  for  the  sake  of  good  order  it  might  be  con- 
ceded that  none  but  an  ordained  priest  should  administer  the 
sacrament ;  that  the  order  of  prayers  in  the  Mass  should 
be  retained,  &c. ;  that  fast  days  and  feast  days  might  be 
allowed,  as  a  bodily  discipline ;  that  as  the  Encaenia  was  in- 
stituted by  the  Maccabees  to  testify  gratitude  to  God,  so 
ordinances  appointed  with  the  same  object  by  bishops  might 
be  acquiesced  in  —  bishops  being  "  of  authority  by  human 
right."  Luther  stated  that  "  the  first  point  was  to  be  agreed 
on  the  principles  of  the  Christian  faith ;  when  that  agreement 
had  been  accomplished,  it  would  be  time  enough  to  look 
further;  and  for  his  own  part  he  could  endure  any  outward 
restriction  that  his  conscience  would  permit,  but  to  load  his 
conscience  his  Christ  would  not  suffer  it."  *  Then  the  subject 
of  the  mass  was  more  attentively  considered,  and  the 
Romanists  endeavoured  to  give  a  specious  colouring  to  the 
most  objectionable  of  their  practices,  by  representing  the 
private  mass  as  merely  an  eucharistical  worship.  Melancthon 
was  debating  the  question  on  learned  grounds;  but  Luther, 
with  his  practical  good  sense,  at  once  tore  the  flimsiness  of 
such  an  argument  to  tatters.  "  It  is  not  enough,"  he  wrote, 
"  that  the  intention  of  any  practice  be  presumed  good ;  the 

#  See  Bedenken.  De  Wette,  IV.,  p.  95.  Ccelestin  regards  the 
paper  as  a  reply  to  questions  proposed  by  the  queens  Anne  and  Mary  ; 
but  there  seems  no  ground  for  such  a  supposition. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  233 

only  question  is,  '  Is  there  the  Word  of  God  for  it  ?  '    A  man  1530. 
may  be  a  monk,  as  an  eucharistical  worship,   or  anything 
whatever   may  be  justified  by  such  a  pretence.     The  only 
place  for  a  thief  is  the  gallows." 

In  July  Bucer  and  Capito  came  to  Augsburg  with  the  con- 
fession of  the  four  cities,  Strasburg,  Constance,  Lindau,  and 
Memmingen,  which  was  presented  to  the  Emperor.  A  separate 
confession  of  faith  was  also  delivered  in  by  the  city  of  Ulm  ; 
and  Zwingle  forwarded  his  own  private  confession  of  faith  to 
the  Diet,  which,  in  the  judgment  of  the  Lutherans,  revived 
his  old  heresies  on  human  depravity,  and  the  use  of  the  sacra- 
ments. It  was  not  until  the  3rd  August  that  the  Confutation 
was  at  last  read,  in  the  chapel  of  the  Palatinate,  in  the  German 
version.  It  was  read  as  the  authoritative  decision  of  the 
religious  questions;  and  before  the  reading,  the  Emperor 
declared  that  he  should  firmly  abide  by  the  sentiments  con- 
tained in  it,  and  that  if  any  of  the  princes  persevered  in  con- 
trary tenets,  as  defender  of  the  faith  he  would  no  longer 
brook  such  schism  :  and  with  these  words  he  composed  him- 
self for  a  sound  nap.  After  the  reading,  the  votes  of  the 
Diet  were  called  for,  and  a  considerable  majority  signified 
their  approval  of  the  Confutation.  The  Emperor  then  turn- 
ing to  the  Protestant  princes  demanded  that  they  too  should 
concur  in  the  decision  of  the  majority,  and  give  in  their 
adhesion  to  the  doctrines  comprised  in  the  document  which 
they  had  just  heard  read.  The  Lutherans,  in  reply,  requested 
that  a  copy  of  the  Confutation  might  be  given  into  their 
hands.  The  Romanists  demurred  to  this  request ;  it  seemed 
to  them  decisive  that  the  majority  had  declared  their  verdict, 
and  that,  therefore,  further  argument  or  difference  of  opinion 
was  not  to  be  allowed.  But,  on  being  hard  pressed  to  grant 
a  copy,  they  at  length  consented,  on  the  condition  that  it 
should  not  be  seen  by  any  one  except  the  evangelical  princes, 


234  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  deputies,  and  theologians,  then  present,  themselves,  and  after 
perusal  should  be  returned  to  the  Emperor.  The  Protestants 
declined  to  accept  a  copy  under  such  restrictions ;  and  the 
Emperor  stated  that  he  required  time  for  deliberation,  before 
he  coidd  accord  them  the  favour  they  sought  on  any  other  terms. 
Two  days  later  Charles  again  summoned  the  Protestants  into 
his  presence,  and  renewed  his  command  that  they  would  accept 
the  Confutation ;  as  to  the  copy,  the  reluctance  he  felt  to  grant 
it  arose,  he  said,  from  apprehension  that  it  would  be  published 
or  transcribed.  This  led  to  altercations,  which  were  pro- 
tracted until  eight  o'clock  in  the  evening,  when  the  Electors 
of  Mentz  and  Brandenburg,  and  Henry  of  Brunswick, 
approaching  the  Protestant  princes  implored  them  to  relin- 
quish the  dispute,  and  to  avoid  irritating  the  Emperor  any 
further,  for  they  had  hopes  of  offering  them  such  proposals 
as  would  have  the  effect  of  terminating  all  variances.  A 
private  conference  followed;  but  the  mode  of  terminating 
variances,  which  the  Romanists  resorted  to,  was  rather  to 
menace  than  to  conciliate ;  so  that  Philip  of  Hesse,  whose 
hot  temper  had  long  been  chafing  at  the  conduct  pursued  by 
the  Emperor  and  his  court  towards  the  Protestants,  having 
previously  applied  to  Charles  for  leave  of  departure  without 
success,  effected  his  escape  on  the  night  of  the  6th  August 
with  great  wariness,  by  a  secret  postern,  from  Augsburg,  and 
departed  home,  leaving  his  excuses  in  a  letter  to  the  Elector 
John,  viz.,  the  ill  state  of  his  wife's  health,  and  the  facility 
with  which  the  remaining  business  could  be  conducted  by 
his  chancellor.  That  very  same  night  the  Emperor  posted 
guards  of  soldiers  at  all  the  city  gates,  anticipating,  it  would 
appear,  the  Landgrave's  intentions,  who  had  requested  an 
audience,  and  received  the  reply  that  his  Majesty  could  not 
sue  him  until  the  Sunday  following.  Philip,  however,  had 
made   his   escape   in  the   dusk   before  the   gates  were  shut, 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTJX    LUTHER.  235 

with  only  five  or  six  attendants,  and  having  assumed  a  dis-  1530. 
guise  to  avoid  being  recognized. 

Early  on  Sunday  morning  the  Protestant  princes  were  Aug.  7. 
called  into  the  Chapter  House,  where  they  found  George 
Truchsess,  Duke  George  of  Saxony,  Henry  of  Brunswick,  the 
Bishops  of  Augsburg,  Salzburg,  and  Spires,  and  many  more, 
who  addressed  them  on  the  necessity  of  religious  union,  in 
failure  of  which,  "  bloodshed  and  destruction  of  land  and 
people,  oppression  of  subjects,  dangers  and  injuries  of  all 
kinds "  would  inevitably  light  upon  the  unhappy  German 
nation.  The  Protestant  Princes,  on  their  side,  expressed  their 
willingness  to  lend  their  heartiest  efforts  towards  an  accom- 
modation consistently  with  the  dictates  of  their  consciences. 
But  at  midday  the  evangelical  Princes  were  summoned  to 
appear  before  the  Emperor  himself,  who  had  now  heard  of  the 
flight  of  the  Landgrave,  and  was  the  more  vexed  and  irritated 
that  the  measures  he  had  taken  to  prevent  such  a  movement 
had  been  forestalled.  The  Princes  alleged  in  their  behalf, 
that  the  Landgrave's  departure  had  been  without  their  know- 
ledge, and  did  not  meet  with  their  approbation,  but  that  it 
must  have  been  occasioned  by  weighty  reasons :  and  for 
themselves,  that  they  were  ready  to  co-operate  with  all  their 
power  for  "a  just,  profitable,  and  good  termination  of  the 
Diet."  But  they  complained  of  sentinels  being  posted  at  the 
city  gates ;  and  begged  that  in  consideration  of  the  heavy  cost 
which  the  long  continuation  of  the  Diet  had  involved,  his 
Imperial  Majesty  would  expedite  matters  as  far  as  he  could. 
The  Emperor  replied,  that  the  guards  had  been  placed  at  the 
gates  to  repress  disorders  in  the  city,  a  Spanish  soldier  having 
lately  been  killed  in  an  uproar ;  and  he  dismissed  the  Princes 
with  more  than  ordinary  courtesy.  The  Protestants  found 
that  the  decided  conduct  of  the  Landgrave  had  made  the 
llomauists  less  hauyiitv  and  more  tractable. 


238  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  On  Saturday  the  13th  August,  it  was  decided  that  seven 
delegates  should  be  appointed  by  either  side,  two  princes,  two 
lawyers,  and  three  theologians,  to  whom  the  task  should  be 
committed  of  recombining  Lutherans  and  Papists  into  one 
church.  The  delegates  appointed  on  the  Papist  side  were 
Henry  of  Brunswick,  and  the  Bishop  of  Augsburg,  the  Chan- 
cellors of  Baden  and  Cologne,  Eck,  Msnsingen,  and  Coch- 
lrcus;  on  the  Protestant,  the  Margrave  George,  and  John 
Frederic,  Bruck  and  Heller,  Melancthon,  Brentz,  and  Snepf. 
The  demands  of  the  Evangelicals  were  simply  stated :  that 
Rome  should  allow  them  to  preach  the  same  doctrines  as 
they  had  hitherto  preached ;  should  concede  the  communion 
in  both  kinds,  the  reformation  of  the  Mass,  and  the  marriage 
of  priests  and  monks ;  and  they,  on  their  part,  were  prepared 
to  yield  jurisdiction  to  the  bishops,  and  submit  to  traditions 
and  ceremonies  as  far  as  their  consciences  would  permit.  On 
Tuesday  the  16th  matters  were  proceeding  very  smoothly,  and 
a  reconciliation  was  effected  ou  ten  articles  of  the  Lutheran 
Confession  :  but  on  the  18th  Henry  of  Brunswick  quitted 
Augsburg,  being  sent  by  Charles  to  watch  the  proceedings  of 
the  Landgrave,  whose  warlike  tendencies  were,  not  un- 
naturally, a  subject  of  apprehension ;  and  Duke  George  of 
Saxony  was  substituted  as  delegate  in  his  place.  The  Pro- 
testants did  not  like  the  change ;  although  Brentz  states,  that 
in  some  points  the  Duke  very  decidedly  snubbed  Dr.  Eck. 
Melancthon  on  one  side  and  Eck  on  the  other  were  the  prin- 
cipal speakers,  and  Spalatin  was  the  secretary.  But  on  the  22nd 
the  Conference  ended ;  for  although,  on  many  points,  agree- 
ment had  been  attained,  there  remained  a  difference  of  opinion 
on  fourteen  articles.  The  Romanists  would  not  allow  that 
justification  is  by  faith  alone;  that  our  good  works  do  not 
earn  grace ;  that  it  is  not  necessary  to  make  special  enumera- 
tion of  sins  in  confession ;    that  to  repentance  faith  is  neces- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  23? 

sary  as  well  as  contrition,  and  satisfaction  on  our  part  is  not  1530. 
requisite ;  that  the  Sacraments  are  ineffectual  without  faith ; 
that  for  church-union  all  that  is  essential  is  doctrinal  harmony; 
that  human  ordinances  and  vows,  if  supposed  to  earn  grace, 
are  diametrically  opposed  to  the  Gospel;  that  men's  ordi- 
nances are  only  to  be  kept  in  a  spirit  of  love,  to  avoid 
divisions ;  that  there  is  but  one  Mediator ;  that  it  is  unscrip- 
tural  to  forbid  communion  in  both  kinds,  and  the  marriage 
of  priests  and  monks ;  and  that  the  Mass  is  not  a  good  work 
to  earn  grace  but  must  be  received  in  faith,  and  through  faith, 
not  ex  opere  operato,  grace  is  increased  in  it. 

No  one  was  more  deeply  grieved  than  Melancthon  that  the 
conference  should  have  proved  fruitless :  he  was  haunted  by 
the  apprehension  of  war  and  bloodshed  as  inevitable,  if  the 
breach  were  not  closed ;  and  letters  from  Erasmus,  which 
spoke  of  the  Diet  as  "the  prelude  of  a  fearful  drama,"  con- 
firmed him  in  this  idea.  He  generally  suffered  much  from 
wakefulness  in  the  few  hours  of  the  night  which  he  allotted 
to  rest,  but  during  this  period  he  could  obtain  scarce  any 
sleep  at  all;  and  his  anxiety  and  want  of  repose  had  brought 
on  a  dreadful  cough,  which  shook  his  slender  frame  convul- 
sively, as  though  it  would  tear  it  in  pieces.  His  terror  of  war 
had  even  led  him  to  acquiesce  in  the  government  of  the  Pope 
over  evangelical  Christians,  which  he  compared  to  the  domi- 
nion of  Pharaoh  over  the  Israelites  in  Egypt;  a  stretch  of 
concessional  amiability  which  excited  the  surprise  of  Bruck, 
who  inquired  "  How  then  can  we  aver  that  the  Pope  is  Anti- 
christ ?  "  There  cannot,  indeed,  be  a  doubt  that  the  true 
cause  of  the  attempts  at  reconciliation  proving  abortive  must 
be  laid  at  the  door,  rather  of  the  Papists  than  of  the  Pro- 
testants :  letters  had  arrived  from  Rome  declaring  the  Pon- 
tiff's positive  refusal  even  to  vouchsafe  that  minimum  of 
concessions  which  the  Lutherans  had  demanded,  not  out  of 


238  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  regard  to  abstract  truth,  but  in  simple  deference  to  their 
own  consciences,  in  their  anxiety  to  heal  divisions  and  pre- 
serve peace :  and  hence  the  conference  terminated  as  it  did. 
Thus  the  Pope  is  himself  the  author  of  that  schism  which 
has  rent  western  Christendom  in  two ;  first,  by  his  Bull  ex- 
communicating Luther,  and,  secondly,  by  his  refusal,  in  the 
conference  at  Augsburg,  to  come  to  any  terms  with  Melanc- 
thon  and  the  evangelical  Church  at  all  compatible  with  the 
doctrines  of  Scripture.  But  it  is  no  less  certain  that  the 
Pope's  decision  in  this  respect  was  really  overruled  by  God  to 
the  safety  of  the  Reformation :  and  Roselli  and  the  Pro- 
testants of  Italy,  and  the  numerous  Protestants  of  Germany, 
who  had  implored  that  the  truth  should  not  be  sacrificed 
from  want  of  trust  in  God,  "  who  would  not  fail  them  in 
temporal  things  if  they  continued  to  cleave  to  Him  in  spi- 
ritual," were  as  much  rejoiced  at  this  issue,  as  Melancthon 
was  dismayed  by  it. 

The  Papists  were  now  resolved  to  see  whether  the  Luther- 
ans would  not  succumb  entirely.  The  delegates  were  reduced 
to  three  in  number  on  either  side ;  Bruck,  Heller,  and  Me- 
lancthon, against  Dr.  Eck,  and  the  Chancellors  of  Cologne 
and  Baden :  and  on  the  24th  August  negotiations  were 
resumed.  But,  meanwhile,  many  of  the  Protestants  had 
vehemently  denounced  the  timid  concessions  of  Melancthon, 
which  were  frittering  away  the  Gospel ;  the  deputies  of 
Nuremberg  repudiated  Episcopal  jurisdiction  :  Philip  of  Hesse 
wrote  to  his  representatives  not  to  recede  a  hair-breadth  from 
the  truth,  and  that  the  bishops  were  in  doctrine  and  life  such  as 
Annas,  Caiaphas,  and  Pilate ;  and  his  theologian  Snepf  asserted 
that  "  bishops  ought  to  be  shunned  like  wolves."  Even  John 
Frederic  took  part  against  Melancthon ;  who  on  his  side 
complained  in  private,  that  a  fatal  blindness  was  cast  upon 
Germany,  and  few  had  a  love  of  peace.     The  Papists  spread 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  239 

their  snares  artfully ;  tliey  represented  that  they  were  quite  1530. 
willing  to  concede  the  cup  to  the  laity,  provided  the  Luther- 
ans would  allow  that  the  contrary  practice  was  not  against  the 
institution  of  Christ ;  and  Eck  suggested  that  an  agreement 
should  be  arrived  at  upon  as  many  articles  as  possible,  and 
the  rest  be  referred  to  a  Council.  But  on  the  30th  August  the 
Commission  ceased  their  sittings :  the  Romanists  would  not 
surrender  satisfaction  as  a  part  of  repentance,  or  the  meri- 
toriousness  of  good  works ;  above  all,  the  mass  presented  dif- 
ficulties that  were  insurmountable.  However,  the  Papists 
did  not  even  thus  resign  every  hope.  Henry  of  Brunswick, 
and  a  prelate  and  councillor  of  the  Emperor,  supped  with  the 
Elector  of  Saxony  the  very  evening  that  the  efforts  of  the 
Commission  of  Six  had  failed,  and  threw  out  many  hints,  in 
the  course  of  conversation,  about  fresh  attempts  at  reconcili- 
ation. The  Protestants,  however,  had  had  enough  of  negoti- 
ation. Luther  and  Philip  of  Hesse  were  for  once  of  the  same 
mind,  and  both  reiterated  their  conviction  that  the  Papists 
were  "  only  duping  them  with  lies  and  deceit." 

The  Elector  of  Saxony  and  the  Margrave  George  now  re- 
quested permission  of  the  Emperor  to  leave  Augsburg,  and 
Charles  was  forced  to  play  his  last  card.  Several  Diets  had 
held  out  the  promise  of  a  Council :  Charles  himself  had 
treated  on  the  subject  with  the  Pope  at  Bologna,  he  had  re- 
discussed  it  in  letters  from  Augsburg,  and  although  he  knew 
that  Clement  VII.  was  decidedly  opposed  to  summoning  a 
Council  on  personal  grounds,  both  as  a  bastard  and  as  having 
reached  St.  Peter's  chair  by  simoniacal  means,  which  made 
it  possible  that  a  Council  might  deal  with  him  as  the  Council 
of  Constance  had  dealt  with  John  XXIIL,  yet  Charles  felt 
that  the  Pope  was  very  much  at  his  mercy.  Accordingly 
the  Protestant  Princes,  on  the  7th  September,  many  threats 
having  been  played  off  upon  them  in  the  interval,  were  sum- 


240  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  moncd  into  the  Imperial  presence,  and  the  promise  was  made 
them  that  his  Majesty  would  demand  of  his  Holiness  to  con- 
vene a  Council,  if  in  the  mean  time  they  would  return  to  the 
bosom  of  the  Church.  They  requested  time  to  deliberate,  and 
the  following  day  returned  their  answer,  which  was  to  the 
effect  that  they  "  had  never  seceded  from  the  Church,"  that 
they  were  no  new  sect,  but  the  Papists  were  the  innovators, 
and  that  a  Council  had  been  already  decreed  by  the  last  Diet 
of  Spires.  Late  in  the  evening  the  Protestants  were  again 
summoned  to  the  Palatinate,  and  were  warned  by  Count 
Truchsess  to  reconsider  their  answer.  The  Emperor  had 
diligently  read  their  Confession,  and  found  that  it  differed 
materially  from  the  Catholic  doctrine.  They  were  to  reflect 
how  few  they  were,  and  to  give  their  consent  to  further 
negotiations,  or  the  Emperor  "  would  know  what  course  to 
adopt."  At  the  expiration  of  two  days,  the  Protestant  Princes 
gave  their  answer  in  a  most  respectful  tone,  to  the  effect  that 
from  the  paramount  obligation  of  God's  Word  it  was  impos- " 
sible  that  they  could  make  any  farther  concession ;  that  all 
they  implored  was  political  peace  until  the  meeting  of  the 
Council,  about  which  they  were  well  disposed  to  treat.  The 
Romanists  were  boiling  with  rage;  and  Charles  himself  in 
his  indignation  proposed  to  force  the  Lutherans  to  return  to 
the  old  religion,  and  either  restore  the  ecclesiastical  property, 
or  deliver  it  into  his  keeping  as  sequestrator,  till  the  deter- 
mination of  the  Council  should  be  given.  Riot  and  conster- 
nation reigned  in  the  streets  of  Augsburg,  and  swords  were 
drawn  in  the  tumult.  The  Elector  of  Saxony  now  renewed 
the  demand  for  permission  to  quit  the  city,  and  on  the  12th 
September  his  son,  John  Frederic,  abruptly  took  his  de- 
parture. 

But  even  so,  the  Papists  were  most  reluctant  to  see  the  prey 
escape  from  their  grasp.     They  approached  Melancthon,  and 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  211 

proposed  that  trial  should  be  made  of  a  private  discussion,  1530. 
to  avoid  even  yet  the  impending  horrors  of  war.  Jerome 
Wehe,  Chancellor  of  Baden,  and  Count  Truchsess,  met 
Bruck  and  Melancthon  at  six  in  the  morning  in  the  church 
of  St.  Maurice.  The  old  topics  were  rehandled,  and  some 
ill-fangled  concord  was  suggested  until  the  settlement  of 
doctrinal  and  ceremonial  differences  by  the  Council.  But  the 
Protestants  were  no  longer  in  the  mood  to  make  concessions, 
and  Melancthon  himself  had  so  far  isolated  himself  from  bis 
party  that  his  name  was  used  as  a  sign  of  contempt  or  distrust. 
It  was  said  that  an  advocate,  hired  by  Clement  VII.  himself, 
could  not  have  pleaded  the  Papist  cause  with  more  zeal ;  he 
was  compared  to  Ahithophel  or  Erasmus  :  his  friend  Camer- 
arius  heard  nothing  at  Nuremberg,  "  the  eye  and  ear  of  Ger- 
many," as  Luther  termed  it,  but  abuses  of  his  dear  Philip, 
and  his  character  seemed  to  his  co-religionists  very  feebly 
retrieved  by  the  Apology  for  the  Confession  which  he  drew 
up  a  few  days  later,  and  which  exhibited  in  every  line  charac- 
teristic traits  of  his  singular  ability. 

Luther,  on  the  other  hand,  had  revived  in  popular  estima- 
tion the  glories  of  his  early  stand  for  the  Gospel  at  Worms. 
His  private  correspondence  circulated  on  all  sides  :  copies 
were  sent  by  Brentz  to  the  citizens  of  Halle,  that  they  might 
see  "  what  an  incomparable  man  Luther  was  !  "  Some  of  Lis 
correspondence  even  fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Papists,  by 
whom  it  was  immediately  sent  to  the  press,  and  a  laugh  was 
raised  at  the  terms  in  which  Philip's  timidity  was  spoken  of. 
His  tracts  were  sold  in  front  of  the  hotel  of  the  Saxon  Elector  : 
his  Admonition  to  the  Ecclesiastics  was  read  to  the  members 
of  the  Diet  by  the  Bishop  of  Augsburg :  and  whilst  the  Pa- 
pists were  ransacking  his  books  to  find  "contradictions"  and 
"  heresies,"  he  sent  them  a  list  of  doctrines  which  he  was 
"ready  to  maintain  against  the  whole  synagogue  of  Satan." 

VOL.   II.  R 


242  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  "  Remember/'  he  wrote  to  the  Elector  on  the  26th  August, 
"  that  the  very  principle  of  our  faith  is,  that  what  God's  Word 
has  determined  can  never  be  a  matter  of  indifference.  Com- 
munion, therefore,  in  one  or  both  kinds,  cannot  be  indifferent. 
Can  the  Romanists  themselves  hold  anything  indifferent  for 
which  they  burn,  banish,  persecute,  and  anathematize  ?  If 
we  allow  private  masses  we  must  give  up  the  whole  Gospel ; 
for  if  we  concede  one  human  fiction,  why  not  another,  or  why 
not  all  ?  It  is  not  in  our  power  to  adopt  ceremonies,  gar- 
ments, gestures,  fasts,  feasts,  which,  without  God's  Word, 
are  made  a  part  of  God's  service."  "  You  have  begun,"  he 
wrote  the  same  day  to  Spalatin,  "  a  wonderful  work  to  make 
the  Pope  and  Luther  agree ;  the  Pope  had  rather  not,  and 
Luther  deprecates  it.  If,  against  the  will  of  both,  you  suc- 
ceed in  your  purpose,  I  will  undertake  to  reconcile  Christ 
and  Belial."  "  You  write  me  word,"  he  said  to  Melancthon, 
"  that  Eck  allows  that  we  are  justified  by  faith.  Can  you  go 
one  step  farther,  and  persuade  Eck  not  to  be  a  liar  ?  In  the 
Church  of  God,  and  in  the  worship  of  God,  we  will  not  ordain 
or  permit  anything  save  what  can  be  defended  by  the  Word 
of  God ;  and  beyond  measure  do  I  abhor  that  sacrilegious 
word  '  indifferent.'  They  call  themselves  '  the  Church;'  the 
Word  of  God  is  more  than  the  Church.  I  know  that  in 
your  concessions  you  always  make  express  reservation  of  the 
Gospel ;  but  beware  of  their  treachery.  Their  intention  is 
to  accept  your  concessions  in  a  sense  very  large,  more  large, 
most  large;  to  interpret  their  own  in  a  sense  very  rigid, 
more  rigid,  most  rigid.  All  their  offers  are  deceit  and  lies. 
The  only  possible  mode  of  concord  is  for  the  Pope  to  resign 
his  papacy."  "  Believe  me,"  he  wrote  to  Jonas,  "  if  I  am 
any  part  of  Christ,  that  Campegio  is  a  great  and  pre-emi- 
nent devil.  I  am  greatly  moved  by  your  concessions,  by 
which  you  suffer  demons   to   sport  and  mock  at  our  cross. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  243 

The  devil  would  be  a  lion  if  he  could;  if  not,  he  will  be  a  1530. 
serpent."  In  a  letter  of  the  28th  August  to  Spalatin,  he 
stated  that  he  should  have  something  to  say  to  any  pretended 
harmony  with  Rome.  "  If  you  yield  anything  against  the 
Gospel,  and  put  the  eagle  in  a  sack,  doubt  it  not,  Luther  will 
come,  will  come,  and  release  the  eagle  gloriously.  As  sure 
as  Christ  lives,  so  shall  it  be."  But  it  was  his  consolation, 
that  <f  if  the  theologians  were  snoring  to  their  own  shame, 
Christ  was  awake  to  his  own  glory." 

He  was  consulted  by  an  inquirer,  probably  the  widowed 
Queen  Mary  of  Bohemia,  what  a  Christian's  duty  would  be, 
in  the  event  of  the  cup  being  refused  in  the  sacrament,  or 
communion  in  both  kinds  being  proscribed  by  the  magis- 
trates. "  If/'  Luther  replied,  "  there  is  a  firm  conviction 
that  the  sacrament  ought  to  be  partaken  of  in  both  kinds, 
it  is  far  better  to  abstain  from  receiving  it,  and  to  feed 
on  Christ  spiritually,  confirming  the  conscience  by  his  Word, 
and  meditating  on  his  passion,  than  to  disobey  the  Word  of 
God.  Nor  can  the  most  severe  mandate  of  the  magistrate, 
the  dread  of  punishment,  or  the  plea  of  obedience  to  the 
civil  power  as  divinely  enjoined,  justify  disobedience  to  the 
revealed  Word.  The  creature  must  always  be  postponed  to 
the  Creator." 

The  whole  time  that  the  Diet  continued,  Luther  was  la- 
bouring under  bodily  infirmity  as  much,  or  more,  than  Me- 
lancthon  :  he  suffered  a  great  deal  from  constant  singing  in 
the  head  ;*  so  that  he  said,  "  the  winds  that  beat  on  the  tower 

*  John  Mannlius  relates  that  "  by  three  torches  flashing  before  his 
eyes  in  the  night,  Luther  was  convinced  that  one  of  his  swooning  fits 
was  near.  He  therefore  called  his  servant,  and  made  him  drop  almond 
oil  into  his  ear,  and  oil  of  nutmeg,  and  rub  his  feet  with  warm  cloths ; 
after  which  he  desired  him  to  read  the  Epistle  to  the  Galatians  to 
him,  and  during  the  reading  he  fell  asleep.     These  preventives  suc- 

R   2 


244  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  were  all  in  his  head."  Then  he  complains  of  violent  tooth- 
ache ;  and  he  had  an  attack  of  the  gravel,  which  he  attri- 
buted to  the  Coburg  wine ;  but  his  first  seizure  with  this 
disease,  from  which  he  afterwards  suffered  so  much,  had  been 
in  the  summer  of  1526.  His  words,  however,  were  never 
more  cheerful.  He  had  procured  for  his  "  Emperor  Kate  " 
some  oranges,  her  favourite  fruit,  from  Nuremberg;  and  he 
wrote,  on  the  15th  August,  that  on  that  day  the  singing 
in  his  head  had  left  him,  and  notwithstanding  the  wetness  of 
the  summer,  he  was  enjoying  some  ripe  grapes.  His  various 
infirmities,  which  pointed  out  to  him  old  age  as  near  at  hand, 
and  made  him  fix  on  the  spot  in  which  he  should  wish  his 
remains  to  rest—"  in  the  chapel  under  the  cross" — rendered 
the  tedium  of  his  confinement  more  irksome,  and  he  renewed 
his  solicitations  to  his  friends  to  hasten  home.  "  Would  that 
you  would  return,  even  under  the  bann  of  Pope  and  Emperor, 
for  there  is  one  greater  than  Pope  and  Emperor."  He  had 
approved  of  the  flight  of  the  Landgrave;  and  with  much  joy, 
on  the  15th  September,  in  a  letter  to  Melancthon,  he  com- 
municated the  intelligence  of  John  Frederic's  arrival  at  Co- 
burg, "  a  sudden  guest,"  the  day  before.  The  Prince  "  had 
offered  to  take  him  home  in  his  train,  but  he  had  re- 
fused, wishing  to  see  Philip  and  his  other  friends,  and  wipe 
off  their  sweat  on  their  exit  from  the  bath."  "  The  Prince," 
Luther  relates,  "gave  me  a  gold  ring;  but  it  was  never 
intended  that  I  should  wear  gold ;  for  soon  after  I  had  put 
it  on  my  finger  it  fell  off,  being  too  large.  I  exclaimed, 
'I  am  a  worm,  and  no  man/  It  ought  to  have  been  given 
to  Faber  or  Eck :  lead  or  a  rope  would  suit  me  better." 
"  Be  like  Lot  in  Sodom,"  he  goes  on  to  urge  Melancthon, 
"  and  leave  God  to  work  now.     You  have  all  of  you  done 

ceeded ;  and  Luther  said,  '  Come,  let  us,  in  contempt  of  Satan,  sing 
the  De  Profundis  with  four  voices.'  " — Keil.  III.,  p.  6. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTIIEli.  245 

enough.  You  have  confessed  Christ,  offered  peace,  obeyed  1530. 
the  Emperor,  borne  injuries,  been  saturated  with  blas- 
phemies, returned  good  for  evil ;  in  fine,  God's  saintly  work 
you  have  handled  as  beeometh  saints.  I  will  canonize  you 
as  faithful  members  of  Christ :  what  glory  can  you  want 
greater  than  that  ? "  But  after  this  letter  the  final  ne- 
gotiation with  Wehe  and  Truchsess  was  reported  to  Luther 
by  Link  and  others,  with  severe  reproaches  on  Melancthon's 
pusillanimity.  Luther  forwarded  these  letters — "thunders 
and  lightnings,"  as  he  called  them — at  once  to  Melancthon, 
and  stated  in  what  way  he  had  replied  to  them.  But  to 
Jonas  he  wrote  without  any  restraint :  "  I  will  brook  no 
concessions,  although  an  angel  from  heaven  should  com- 
mand them.  Our  adversaries  have  no  idea  of  yielding  them- 
selves :  We  are  to  yield  the  canon,  the  mass,  one  kind,  celi- 
bacy, and  a  jurisdiction  unheard  of  before,  and  to  confess 
that  they  did  right  in  murdering  us.  To  surrender  a  single 
point  is  to  deny  the  whole  Gospel.  It  is  well  to  keep  peace 
in  view,  but  the  Author  and  Arbiter  of  peace  and  war  is 
more  than  peace.  I  pray  you  leave  off  negotiating,  and 
return." 

Some  days  before  this  letter  reached  Augsburg,  the 
Elector's  resolution  to  return  home  had  been  formed;  but  he 
had  been  prevented  from  doing  so  on  the  17th  September, 
by  Henry  of  Brunswick  entering  his  apartment  in  the  night, 
and  requesting  him  to  wait  upon  the  Emperor  in  the  morn- 
ing, between  seven  and  eight  o'clock  ;  when  Charles  implored 
him  to  remain  two,  four,  or  six  days  longer.  But  four  days 
later,  every  arrangement  had  been  made  again  for  the  jour- 
ney home,  and  the  baggage  and  cooks  had  been  sent  on 
before,  when  an  express  message  from  Charles  requested  a  few 
days'  further  postponement.  On  the  22nd,  late  in  the  evening, 
after  candles  had  been  lighted,  the  Emperor  convened  the 


246  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  evangelical  princes  in  the  Palatinate,  and  had  the  project  of 
the  Recess  read  to  them;  it  was  a  muffled  sound  of  the 
Recess  which  fulminated  its  terrors  afterwards,  which  even  in 
this  suppressed  form  breathed  war  and  tyranny.  In  addition 
to  the  deputies  of  Nuremberg  and  Reutlingen,  the  deputies  of 
four  other  cities,  Kempten,  Heilbronn,  Windsheim,  and 
Weissenburg  now  appeared  in  the  Protestant  ranks,  having 
added  their  signatures  to  the  Augsburg  Confession.  Up  to 
the  very  last,  however,  space  was  left  open  for  fresh  nego- 
tiation, for  a  paper  was  privately  slipped  into  the  hands  of 
the  Protestants,  conveying  the  assurance  that  if  a  prolong- 
ation of  the  term,  on  the  expiry  of  which  the  Recess  was 
to  take  effect,  which  had  been  fixed  for  the  15th  April  next, 
should  be  desired,  the  Emperor  would  not  prove  inexorable. 
After  the  reading  of  the  project  Bruck  stepped  forward,  and 
having  stated,  in  reply  to  the  assertion  that  the  Confession 
had  been  refuted  from  Scripture,  that  the  Confession  was 
"  grounded  in  the  Word  of  God,  the  godly  truth,  which  they 
should  stand  to  at  the  last  judgment,"  offered  the  Apology 
for  the  Confession.  The  Count  Palatine  took  it  into  his 
hands,  but  the  Emperor  refused  to  receive  it,  and  returned  it 
to  Bruck.  The  next  morning  the  Protestants  held  a  private 
meeting  in  the  hotel  of  the  Margrave  George;  when  the 
project  of  the  Recess  was  again  read,  and  it  was  unanimously 
agreed  that  it  was  impossible  to  accede  to  it.  It  now  only 
remained  to  notify  their  rejection  of  the  project,  pay  a  fare- 
well visit  of  respect  to  the  Emperor,  and  hasten  away  from 
Augsburg.  Accordingly,  with  the  exception  of  the  Elector 
John,  who  refreshed  himself  at  his  hotel  previous  to  his 
journey,  and  followed  the  rest  a  little  afterwards  to  the 
Palatinate,  the  evangelical  princes  and  deputies  assembled  by 
eight  o'clock  in  the  morning  for  the  final  audience ;  and  after 
being  kept  an  hour  in   suspense,  they  were  admitted  to  the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  2  17 

Imperial  presence  and  declared  that  they  could  not  give  their  1530. 
consent,  to  the  Recess.  Joachim  of  Brandenburg  made  reply  : 
"  The  Emperor,  too,  has  a  conscience  ;  and  since  you  refuse 
to  submit  to  the  will  of  the  majority,  his  Majesty  will  unite 
his  forces  to  those  of  the  States  of  the  Empire,  and  utterly 
root  out  this  new  error  and  sect  •"  and  with  a  good  deal  of 
menace  he  proceeded  to  charge  the  princes  with  originating 
the  peasant  insurrection,  "  in  which  100,000  men  were  slain/' 
They  denied  that  they  had  given  any  occasion  to  the  peasant 
rebellion ;  and  answered  that  "  they  put  their  trust  and  hope 
in  the  matter  only  in  God,  and  looked  to  the  Emperor  to  be 
their  all-gracious  lord."  Meanwhile,  the  Elector  John  had 
entered  the  room,  and  they  all  advanced  in  a  body  to  take 
their  farewell  of  the  Emperor.  "  Uncle,  uncle,"  Charles  ex- 
claimed, with  visible  emotion,  as  he  gave  his  hand  to  the 
Elector,  "  I  had  not  expected  this  from  you."  John,  on  his 
part,  was  unable  to  refrain  from  tears  :  he  was  personally 
attached  to  his  Sovereign ;  but  feelings  with  him  had  long 
been  made  subordinate  to  principle.  Late  in  the  afternoon 
of  the  same  day,  the  Elector  and  his  retinue  quitted  Augs- 
burg :  a  joyful  release  from  a  scene  of  protracted  and  se- 
vere trial,  which  Luther  in  his  congratulations  compared  to 
"  getting  loose  from  hell."  "  We  are  in  God's  hands,"  he 
said  to  the  Elector,  "  and  so  are  they  :  I  have  committed 
the  cause  to  my  Lord  God.  He  has  begun  it,  that  I  know ; 
He  will  bring  it  to  pass,  that  I  believe." 

A  new  Recess  was  framed,  which  was  at  length  read  in 
the  Diet  the  19th  November,  in  more  bitter  terms  than  the 
preceding  project.  It  re-established  Popery  in  the  full ;  con- 
demned the  errors  of  Lutherans,  Zwinglians,  and  Anabaptists ; 
made  restitution  to  the  Church  of  all  her  property ;  declared 
Catholic  subjects  of  heretical  governments  to  be  under  the 
protection  of  the  Empire ;  and  promised  that  a  council  should 


248  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  be  convened  within  six  months,  to  commence  its  sittings 
within  a  year.  The  carrying  out  this  Recess  was  to  devolve 
upon  the  Imperial  Chamber,  which  was  re-organised :  and 
before  this  tribunal,  such  princes  or  cities  as  should  be  guilty 
of  disobedience  to  the  edict,  were  to  be  indicted  by  the 
Imperial  fiscal.  Five  days  afterwards  Charles  and  his  Court 
quitted  Augsburg,  and  descended  the  Rhine  to  Cologne, 
where  he  intended  to  have  his  brother  Ferdinand  elected 
King  of  the  Romans — a  provision  of  the  utmost  importance 
in  order  to  consolidate  and  perpetuate  the  power  of  his  house, 
which  his  own  frequent  and  lengthened  absence  from  Ger- 
many gave  a  ready  pretext  for  demanding.  With  such  an 
object  in  view,  Charles  might  well  regret  that  he  had  es- 
tranged from  him  the  Elector  of  Saxony :  but,  on  the  other 
hand,  the  asperity  of  the  Recess,  and  the  devotion  with  which 
he  professed  to  surrender  himself,  "  body  and  soul/'  to  the 
defence  of  the  Catholic  Church,  had  served  to  secure  in  other 
influential  quarters  a  more  ready  compliance  with  his  des- 
potic schemes. 

The  Romanists  and  Protestants  were  now  at  leisure  calmly 
to  survey  the  course  of  events  down  to  the  final  issue  of  the 
Augsburg  Diet,  and  to  weigh  in  the  scales  of  cool  reflection 
the  advantages  reciprocally  obtained.  On  the  one  hand,  the 
voice  of  authority  had  proclaimed  its  sentence  :  the  Pope,  the 
Emperor,  and  the  majority  of  the  princes  had  inscribed  their 
condemnation  of  "  the  Elector  and  five  princes  and  six  cities" 
in  letters  of  blood.  But  notwithstanding  this  union  of  po- 
tentates,* and  their  authoritative  sentence  of  condemnation, 

*  It  was  part  of  the  bargain  between  Pope  and  Emperor  that 
Clement's  son  Alexander  should  marry  Charles'  natural  daughter 
Margaret.  Alexander  was  received  at  Augsburg  with  great  pomp. 
Luther  commented  on  the  news — "Does  not  the  Pope  set  priests  a 
public  example  of  taking  wives,  or  rather  strumpets  ?" — De  Wette,  IV. 
p.  191. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  249 

the  solid  advantages  of  the  struggle  almost  exclusively  re-  1530. 
roained  with  the  Protestants.  The  working  of  the  national 
mind  was  more  decidedly  than  ever  in  their  favour;  and 
signs  of  this  were  continually  rising  to  the  surface  in  the 
conversion  of  nobles  and  priuces  to  the  faith  of  Scripture. 
In  argument,  the  Protestant  party  had  gained  an  indisput- 
able and  signal  triumph.  Both  the  Confession,  and  the 
Apology  for  the  Confession,  in  matter  and  in  style,  were 
masterpieces  of  reasoning  and  eloquence ;  while  the  Confuta- 
tion, as  Melancthon  said,  was  "  so  utterly  puerile,"  that  its 
authors  feared  nothing  so  much  as  its  publication — "  such 
a  bat,"  Luther  said,  that  its  strength  and  vitality  consisted 
in  not  seeing  the  light.  There  was  a  swarm  of  anecdotes  in 
ridicule  of  the  Romanist  logic.  The  words  of  God  to  Eli, 
that  He  would  "  raise  him  up  a  faithful  priest,"  to  whom 
"  every  one  that  was  left  in  his  house  should  come  and  crouch 
for  a  piece  of  silver  and  a  morsel  of  bread,  and  say,  Put  me, 
I  pray  thee,  into  one  of  the  priests'  offices,  that  I  may  eat 
a  piece  of  bread,"  had  been  quoted  in  the  Confutation  to 
prove  that  communion  in  one  kind  is  scriptural.  The  Jews 
having  their  "  loins  girded  "  when  they  ate  the  Passover  was 
cited  as  a  reason  for  priests  abstaining  from  matrimony. 
And  when  they  were  at  great  straits  in  the  conference  for  a 
biblical  justification  of  the  invocation  of  saints,  Eck  sug- 
gested, as  applicable  to  the  subject,  the  text  in  which  Jacob, 
speaking  of  Manasseh  and  Ephraim,  says,  "  Let  my  name  be 
named  on  them,  and  the  names  of  my  fathers  •"  but,  some 
more  relevant  passage  being  demanded,  Cochlseus  exclaimed, 
"  How  can  you  expect  to  have  saint  worship  proved  to  you 
from  the  Old  Testament,  when  the  saints  were  yet  in  the  loins 
of  their  fathers  ?"  "  There,"  said  John  Frederic,  turning  to 
Eck,  "  you  have  got  the  answer  to  your  text."  Admissions, 
too,  of  the  necessity  of  a  reformation  of  the  Church  from  the 


250  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  highest  authorities  were  in  universal  circulation.  The  Em- 
peror had  declared,  "  If  the  clergy  had  done  their  duty,  there 
would  have  been  no  work  for  Luther."  "  What  do  you  want 
to  do  with  us  ?"  the  Archbishop  of  Salzburg  had  said  to 
Melancthon ;  "  we  ecclesiastics  always  were  a  good-for- 
nothing  set."  And,  in  fact,  the  very  violence  and  sanguinary 
tone  of  the  Recess  sounded  too  much  like  exaggeration,  to 
produce  the  effect  intended  by  it.  Sixteen  cities,  and  amongst 
them  Augsburg,  which  had  before  displayed  such  submissive 
docility  to  the  Emperor's  will,  refused  their  assent  to  its 
rigorous  enactments.  And  before  quitting  Augsburg,  the 
Electors  of  Mentz  and  of  Treves  both  declared  that  "  they 
would  have  nothing  to  do  with  taking  up  arms ; "  and  the 
former  was  bold  enough  to  put  the  question  in  its  prudential 
form  to  Charles  himself — "  Our  subjects  are  all  Lutherans  : 
is  it  to  be  expected  that  they  will  fight  for  us  against  their 
own  faith  ?"  Risings,  too,  amongst  the  peasantry  in  Fran- 
conia,  even  whilst  the  Diet  was  sitting,  gave  a  practical  de- 
monstration of  what  might  be  expected  from  an  attempt  to 
put  down  Lutheranism  by  the  sword :  and  it  was  whispered 
that  even  the  Emperor  spoke  of  the  words  used  by  the  Elector 
of  Brandenburg,  in  the  final  interview  with  the  Protestant 
princes,  as  "  sharp,  and  more  than  he  was  bidden  to  say." 

It  was,  moreover,  a  happy  prognostic  that  the  fury  and 
hatred  of  their  opponents  were  beginning  to  impress  the 
German  Protestants  with  the  importance,  and  even  necessity 
of  internal  concord.  Bucer  and  Capito  corresponded  with 
Melancthon,  Brentz,  and  Bruck  ;  and  Bruck  on  the  one  side 
stated  Luther's  doctrine  to  be,  that  "  Christ  is  present  in  the 
bread  and  wine,  not  locally,  but  in  the  same  way  in  which  he 
is  present  in  his  Church,  and  in  all  creatures :"  and  Bucer  on 
the  other  side  affirmed,  that  Christ  is  present  in  the  Sacra- 
ment by  "  the  contemplation  of  faith,"  that  "  the  pure  heart 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTTN    LUTHER.  251 

by  faith  is  raised  to  heaven,  where,  as  the  old  fathers,  and  as  1530. 
Luther  himself  taught  in  the  Postils,  his  best  book,  Jesus 
Christ,  man  and  God,  is  seated  at  the  Father's  right  hand :" 
and  Bucer  spoke  with  some  satisfaction  of  the  more  recent 
works  of  Luther  and  Brentz  on  the  Sacrament.  The  Tetra- 
politan  Confession  was  read  by  Luther  with  approval,  and  it 
stated  on  the  Sacrament,  that  "  the  bread  and  wine  were  the 
true  body  and  true  blood  of  Christ,  for  the  food  and  drink  of 
the  soul."  And  a  little  later  Bucer  proceeded  to  Coburg, 
and  succeeded  in  mitigating  the  prejudices  which  Luther, 
who  generally  styled  him  "  the  fox,"  entertained  against  him 
personally,  and  in  making  some  nearer  approach  to  doctrinal 
agreement.  "  Bucer  had  a  familiar  colloquy  with  me,"  Lu- 
ther wrote  to  his  friend  Brismann,  communicating  the  results 
of  the  Diet,  "  while  I  was  at  Coburg ;  and,  if  he  is  not  de- 
ceiving us — and  I  told  him  in  plain  terms  not  to  act  the 
hypocrite — I  have  no  little  hope  of  reconciliation  with  Stras- 
burg.     We  must  all  pray  against  Satan." 

With  a  glad  heart  and  a  bright  countenance,  John  the 
Constant  rode  from  the  scene  of  his  courageous  confession  of 
the  Gospel.  He  had  departed  from  Augsburg  too  late  in  the 
afternoon  to  travel  beyond  a  neighbouring  castle  that  night. 
On  the  27th  he  entered  Nuremberg,  and  Melancthon  had  the 
exquisite  pleasure  of  supping  with  Camerarius,  and  venting 
by  word  of  mouth  his  displeasure  against  the  deputies  of  that 
city,  and  the  councillors  of  Hesse  and  Luneburg.  On  the 
3rd  October  the  cavalcade  reached  Coburg.  On  the  5th  or 
6th  the  prophet  of  Germany  descended  from  his  tower,  and, 
in  company  with  his  Prince  began  the  long-wished-for  jour- 
ney home.  On  the  8th  the  party  reached  Altenburg  ;  where 
the  theologians  were  accommodated  in  Spalatin's  house  ;  and 
Luther  preached  that  evening,  and  the  following  Sunday 
morning,  before  the  Elector,  as  he  had  indeed  done  on  all 


252  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  the  previous  days  of  the  journey.  Sunday  evening  the 
Elector  proceeded  to  Grimma;  and  on  the  10th  was  once 
more  securely  lodged  in  his  palace  of  Torgau,  where  Luther 
remained  until  after  the  following  Sunday,  when  he  preached 
in  the  chapel  of  the  palace.  Before  the  18th,  Luther  had 
received  the  greetings  of  Kate  in  the  Augustine  Convent,  and 
her  hearty  congratulations  that  the  Papists  had  been  disap- 
pointed in  their  design  to  "  send  the  monks  and  nuns  clean 
back  to  their  cells."  But  she  did  not  find  Luther  improved  in 
health.  During  his  six  months'  residence  at  Coburg,  "  Satan 
had  sorely  buffeted  him  in  his  wilderness  •"  and  he  com- 
plained of  a  considerable  decline  of  strength,  and  a  sense  of 
advancing  age;  and  the  ringing  in  the  head  was  still  at  times 
troublesome,  particularly  in  the  early  hours  of  the  morning. 
Instead,  however,  of  relaxing  his  industry,  on  Bugenhagen's 
being  summoned  in  November  to  establish  the  Reformation 
in  Lubeck,  Luther  at  once  undertook  his  duties  in  the  Church, 
and  the  care  of  the  parish. 

The  Elector's  attention  was  now  directed  to  two  points  espe- 
cially: the  demand  of  the  Emperor  to  have  his  brother  Ferdi- 
nand elected  King  of  the  Romans,  and  the  obvious  necessity  of 
some  united  plan  on  the  part  of  the  Evangelicals  in  resistance 
to  the  proceedings  soon  to  be  instituted  against  them  before 
the  Imperial  Chamber.  As  usual,  Luther  was  consulted  on 
both  subjects.  But  in  reference  to  the  election  of  Ferdinand, 
he  delivered  it  as  his  decided  opinion  that  the  Elector  of 
Saxony  should  not  oppose  his  veto  to  it.  He  regarded  this  as 
the  true  course,  because  it  was  the  path  of  peace  and  obedience ; 
he  reminded  the  Elector,  moreover,  that  it  would  be  very 
unwise  to  augment  the  Emperor's  displeasure,  which  had 
displayed  itself  so  strongly,  in  refusing  him  investiture ;  and 
as  to  Ferdinand's  notorious  antipathy  to  the  Gospel,  and  per- 
secuting blood-thirstiness,  Luther  observed,  "Our  Lord  God 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  253 

will  still  remain  master  and  controller  of  events."  In  his  own  1530. 
language  the  Emperor  had  proved  himself  to  be  "  the  mere 
tool  of  the  biggest  rogue  in  Christendom,"  (the  Pope ;) 
Ferdinand  had  never  shared  Luther's  sympathies :  but  not- 
withstanding all  this,  "  the  only  true  course  was  to  stand 
by  God,  and  not  run  into  uncertain  peril  without  need." 
Brack,  however,  and  the  lawyers,  took  the  opposite  side. 
They  saw  through  the  Emperor's  designs,  and  warned  the 
Elector  to  resist  the  nomination  of  a  King  of  the  Romans 
in  Charles'  lifetime  as  an  unconstitutional  act.  Again,  in 
regard  to  the  question  of  a  defensive  alliance,  Luther  and 
the  lawyers  drew  their  verdict  from  different  sources,  and 
viewed  the  subject  from  opposite  points.  Luther  regarded 
the  German  Empire  as  directly  descended  from  the  Empire 
under  which  Christ  himself  and  his  Apostles  lived,  to  which 
they  were  obedient,  and  enjoined  others  to  render  obedience 
also.  The  lawyers  insisted  that  the  prerogatives  of  the 
Emperor  as  much  as  the  privileges  of  the  Electors  were 
derived  from  law,  that  the  whole  political  system  was  purely 
a  matter  of  compact,  and  that  the  Emperor  was  no  more  to 
be  permitted  to  infringe  this  compact  than  an  Elector  or 
noble.  Into  legislative  and  constitutional  researches  Luther 
was  unwilling  to  descend  :  the  utmost  that  he  would  allow 
was,  that  supposing  Brack's  view  of  the  case  to  be  just,  then 
a  citizen,  at  the  command  of  his  own  immediate  Sovereign, 
as  a  citizen,  would  be  justified  in  bearing  arms  to  resist  an 
unlawful  demand  of  the  Emperor.  He  had  before  endea- 
voured to  reconcile  prelatical  episcopacy  with  Scripture  by  a 
similar  distinction :  the  bishop  and  prince  were,  he  said, 
incompatible ;  but  the  same  man  might  bear  two  characters, 
that  of  bishop  and  that  of  prince,  to  be  carefully  kept  apart : 
and  so  now  he  maintained  that,  as  a  Christian,  no  one  must 
form  leagues  or  take    up  arms  against  the  Emperor ;  as  a 


254  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  citizen,   a  man  might  take  up  arms   at  the  behest  of  the 
magistrate. 

It  seemed  to  the  Protestants  that  no  time  was  to  be  lost. 
Ferdinand  and  the  Pope  were  in  correspondence,  and  troops 
were  levying  in  Italy.  Accordingly,  on  the  22nd  December, 
the  evangelical  princes  held  a  memorable  meeting  at  Schmal- 
kald,  in  which  it  was  agreed  that  ' '  the  cause  of  one  should 
be  the  cause  of  all,"  and  that  a  joint  appeal  from  the  Augs- 
burg Recess  should  be  drawn  up,  and  the  Augsburg  Confes- 
sion should  be  translated  into  the  other  languages  of  Europe, 
for  circulation  in  all  lands,  and  more  particularly  amongst 
the  princes  and  delegates  at  that  time  assembled  at  Cambray. 
The  Landgrave  cordially  concurred  with  the  Elector  in  the 
necessity  of  "  putting  a  bit  in  Ferdinand's  mouth,"  by  resist- 
ing his  elevation  to  be  King  of  the  Romans ;  and  the  other 
princes  and  deputies  were  ready  enough  to  follow  in  the 
wake  of  Saxony  and  Hesse,  with  the  exception  of  the  Mar- 
grave George,  who  was  now  with  Charles  at  Cologne,  and  of 
the  deputies  of  Nuremberg,  who  adhered  steadfastly  to  the 
pacific  policy  marked  out  by  Luther.  It  was  likewise  agreed 
that  if  the  verdicts  of  law  should  be  enforced  by  arms,  as 
the  Recess  declared,  and  any  one  of  the  confederate  princes 
or  cities  should  be  assailed,  the  rest  would  contribute  their 
aid,  and  ward  off  the  attack.  But  here,  again,  the  deputies 
of  the  Margrave  dissented  ;  and  out  of  the  deputies  of  fifteen 
evangelical  cities  that  were  present,  only  the  deputies  of  two, 
Magdeburg  and  Bremen,  went  heart  and  hand  with  Saxony 
and  Hesse,  and  signed  the  defensive  alliance.  The  hills 
around  the  little  town,  to  which  this  alliance  has  given  an 
immortal  name,  were  capped  with  snow,  whilst  the  Protest- 
ant princes  and  deputies  were  keeping  their  Christmas  there  ; 
the  season  of  the  year,  as  well  as  the  urgency  of  the  occasion, 
demanded  speed,  and  on  the  31st  December  the  deliberations 
were  closed. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  255 

Meanwhile,  the  electoral  prince  John  Frederic  was  at  1530. 
Cologne,  opposing  the  Saxon  protest  to  the  election  of  Ferdi- 
nand. The  opposition  of  Saxony  had  been  foreseen;  and 
at  first  the  idea  had  been  to  deprive  the  Elector  John  of 
the  right  of  voting,  as  under  the  bann  of  the  Augsburg 
Diet :  but  the  other  electors,  and  especially  the  Elector  Pala- 
tine, had  rejected  such  a  measure  as  a  dangerous  precedent 
tending  to  the  dishonour  of  their  order.  A  papal  brief, 
therefore,  had  been  provided,  as  an  effectual  answer  to  John 
the  Constant's  Appeal  to  the  Golden  Bull.  But  the  Elector, 
on  his  part,  was  not  so  rash  as  to  conceive  for  a  moment  that 
his  veto  would  prevent  the  will  of  the  Emperor  from  being 
carried  into  effect :  he  relied,  and,  as  events  proved,  with 
sufficient  reason,  on  the  moral  weight  of  his  protest.  The 
Dukes  of  Bavaria  were  instigated  by  personal  motives  to 
make  common  political  cause  with  Saxony.  And,  although 
Ferdinand  was  elected  King  of  the  Romans  at  Cologne  on  the 
5th  January,  and  crowned  at  Aix-la-Chapelle  on  the  11th,  he  1531. 
soon  found  that  his  new  dignity  was  no  better  than  titular : 
public  opinion  went  with  the  Protestants,  both  on  religious 
and  constitutional  grounds ;  Ferdinand  was  not  allowed  his 
new  title  by  Saxony,  Bavaria,  or  the  majority  of  the  cities ; 
and  before  long  he  complained  to  the  Emperor  that  he  had  no 
more  authority  in  the  empire  than  any  other  prince. 

At  this  crisis,  with  angry  feelings  on  all  sides,  leagues,  and 
rumours  of  leagues,  and  his  own  Prince  in  deliberate  resist- 
ance to  Csesar,  Luther  felt  his  responsibility,  and  raised 
high  a  voice  of  warning  to  his  "  dear  Germans/'  "  We  are 
reviled,"  he  said,  "  as  Lutherans ;  but  we  have  without 
ceasing  prayed  and  implored  for  nothing  else  but  peace 
and  quiet :  and  lately  at  the  Diet  we  desired  peace  to  the 
utmost,  and  in  the  most  humble  form  entreated  it.  If, 
then,  war  or  tumult   arise,  let  no  man  say,  '  Lo !  here  is 


256  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1531.  the  fruit  of  the  Lutheran  doctrine :'  on  the  contrary,  let 
him  exclaim,  f  Behold  !  the  fruit  of  the  Papist  doctrine :  the 
Papists  could  neither  have  peace  themselves,  nor  let  others 
have  it.'  They  may,  if  they  please,  kill  me;  but  what  will 
that  avail  their  Pope  and  monks  ?  for  I  in  the  name  of  God 
shall  go  to  heaven,  and  they  in  the  name  of  all  the  devils 
will  sink  to  hell.  If  they  must  have  war,  yet  they  will  meet 
with  no  good  fortune  in  it,  for  their  consciences  are  loaded 
with  gross  lies,  bitter  blasphemies,  with  innocent  blood, 
wilful  murder,  and  every  atrocity,  above  all  with  hard  impeni- 
tent hearts,  and  sins  against  the  Holy  Ghost."  So  if  the 
thirsty  bloodhounds  must  have  war,  he  for  his  part  should 
keep  still  and  be  silent,  and  not  mix  himself  up  with  it ;  but, 
as  he  had  done  in  the  peasant  rebellion,  let  things  take  their 
own  course.  Their  joy  was  his  confidence — their  wrath  his 
laughter;  for  all  they  could  take  from  him  was  a  sackful  of 
sickly  flesh;  but  what  he  could  take  from  them  —  that  they 
should  learn  in  their  hearts.  How  every  German  must  turn  red 
with  shame  to  think  of  the  Diet  of  Augsburg  !  What  must 
the  Turk  and  his  whole  kingdom  say  to  it  ?  What  Tartar 
and  Muscovite?  Who  under  the  whole  heaven  could  assert 
ought  honest  in  behalf  of  the  Germans,  when  he  heard  that 
they  had  suffered  the  accursed  Pope  and  his  masks  to  mock 
them,  treat  them  as  fools  and  children,  as  clods  and  blocks, 
by  their  handling  of  his  blasphemous,  sodomitish,  and  scan- 
dalous doctrine  and  living — scandalous,  yea,  over  and  above 
scandalous,  in  open  Diet,  against  all  right  and  truth.  What 
German  but  must  blush  to  have  been  born  a  German,  and  to 
bear  the  name  ?  The  Confession  had  been  acknowledged,  even 
by  the  Papists,  to  be  the  plain  truth  in  accordance  with 
Scripture  ;  but  as  to  the  Reply  to  it,  they  must  hang  the 
head,  and  own  by  their  gestures,  it  was  a  weak  frivolous  thing, 
so  paltry  that  a  woman,  a  child,  a  layman,  a  country  boor  was 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  257 

quite  man  enough — God  be  praised  ! — to  stand  up  against  it  1531. 
with  good  ground  of  Scripture  and  truth.  If  their  Reply  were 
not  a  paltry  thing,  why  should  it  be  mewed  up  that  it  should 
not  see  the  light  ?  As  Christ  said,  "  Every  one  that  doeth  evil 
hateth  the  light."  Then  came  a  commission,  which  took  for 
the  basis  of  examination  not  the  Reply,  but  the  Confession. 
Here  they  gave  up  the  one  kind  in  the  communion  :  yet  be- 
fore they  had  shed  blood  in  behalf  of  it.  This  in  plain  German 
was  truly  to  blow  hot  and  cold  from  the  same  mouth.  Had 
the  Lutherans  made  any  such  concession,  the  whole  world 
would  have  heard  the  news  — "  Dear  people,  see,  these 
Lutherans  are  recanting;"  but  like  Reply,  like  Commission. 
The  Reply  was  a  midnight  bat ;  the  Commission  a  mere  cheat 
and  fraud.  And  since  he  was  called  "  the  German  Prophet/' 
as  became  a  true  teacher  he  would  warn  his  dear  Germans  of 
their  shame  and  danger,  and  give  them  Christian  counsel 
how  they  must  act,  if  the  Emperor,  instigated  by  his  devil 
the  Papists,  should  summon  them  to  arms  against  the  evan- 
gelical princes  and  states.  Not  that  he  thought  the  Emperor 
would  follow  such  poison-blowers,  but  he  would  satisfy  his 
conscience.  In  such  a  case  they  must  not  hearken  to  the 
Emperor;  and  whoever  should  hearken,  must  know  that  he 
would  be  disobeying  the  dear  God,  and  bringing  ruin  on  him- 
self, body  and  soul,  eternally.  For  the  Emperor,  if  he  called 
to  arms,  would  break  not  only  God's  law,  but  the  law  of  his 
own  empire,  his  oath,  his  obligation,  his  own  seal  and  letters. 
And  if  they  should  take  up  arms  in  obedience  to  the  Emperor, 
they  would  be  acting  against  God's  truth,  and  would  be  re- 
storing the  sins  and  abuses  of  Popery,  and  be  subverting 
the  blessings  which  had  already  sprung  from  the  Reforma- 
tion. In  conclusion,  he  dwelt  upon  the  great  doctrine  of 
justification  by  faith  alone,  which,  he  said,  would  "prevail 
against  all  the  gates  of  hell." 

VOL.  II.  s 


258  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1531.      He  promptly  followed  up  this  address  by  "  Notes  on  the 
Edict  of  Augsburg/'  asserting  that  the  Edict  was  not  the 
genuine  product  of  the  Imperial  will,  but  language  forged  by 
the  Pope  and  the  monks.     He  reviewed  its  numerous  doc- 
trinal errors,  and  affirmed  that,  "  if  the  Church  failed  to  obey 
God's  word,  she  was  no  longer  the  Church,   the   bride  of 
Christ,  but  became  the  harlot  of  Satan."     As  to  the  Papist 
pretence  that  the  Church  could  not  err,  "  the  whole  Church 
had  reason  to  cry  every  clay — '  Forgive  us  our  debts.'     Yet  a 
return  to  Scripture  was  branded  as  innovation,  when  in  truth 
all  Popery  was  an  innovation.     Where  were  the  two  canons, 
cassock  and  cup,  tonsure  and  cowl,  mumbling  and  howling, 
selling  the  Mass  for  sixpence  to  buy  the  soul  in  purgatory,  &c. 
to  be  found  in  the  Scriptures  ?  Eagles  and  lynxes  were  reputed 
acute  of  sight,  but  they  must  be  stone-blind  in  comparison 
with  the  doctors  who  could  descry  such  things  in  Holy  Writ. 
In  declaring  that  the  will  is  not  bound,  the  Augsburg  Idols 
had  handled  a  topic  they  did  not  understand  :  in  human  mat- 
ters, indeed,  the  will  was  not  bound ;  but  in  divine  matters  the 
will  was  by  nature  bound  and  lifeless.      The  will  was  by 
nature  a  captive  to  Satan,  death,  and  sin."     He  concluded  by 
reverting  to  the  doctrine  of  justification  by  faith  alone,  on 
which,  he  said,  the  entire  controversy  really  hinged.     "  I  see 
that  this  doctrine  in  particular,  the  Devil  is  ever  blaspheming 
through  his  swinish  doctors,  and  cannot  leave  alone.     There- 
fore I,  Dr.  Martin  Luther,  unworthy  evangelist  of  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ,  hereby  declare  that  this  article — that  faith  with- 
out any  work  justifies  before  God,  the  Roman  Emperor,  the 
Turkish  Emperor,  the  Tartar  Emperor,  the  Persian  Emperor, 
the  Pope,  all  cardinals,  bishops,  priests,  monks,  nuns,  kings, 
princes,  lords,  the  whole  world,  and  all  devils,  shall  leave  firm 
and  unshaken,  and  in  reward  of  their  blasphemy  shall  have 
the  fire  of  hell  upon  their  heads.     I,  Dr.  Luther,  declare  this 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  259 

by  the  inspiration  of  the  Holy  Ghost ;  and   this  is  the  true  1531. 
gospel.     Amen." 

These  two  compositions,  and  two  others,  falsely  ascribed  to 
Luther,  raised  the  bile  of  Duke  George,  and  he  again  applied 
to  the  Elector  to  prohibit  the  violence  of  the  Reformer's 
writings.  These  complaints  were  transmitted  to  Luther,  and  in 
a  letter  to  the  Elector  received  the  following  reply  : — "  I  never 
intended  that  the  edge  of  my  writings  should  be  dull,  and  only 
grieve  that  it  is  no  sharper.  Have  the  deeds  of  our  opponents 
been  dull  and  gentle?  Is  the  Edict  of  Augsburg  gentle? 
They  have  shed  our  blood  like  water  ;  is  that  their  gentleness  ? 
But  if  they  dislike  keen  writings,  why  does  not  King  Ferdi- 
nand restrain  Faber,  and  the  Dukes  of  Bavaria  Eck,  and  Duke 
George  himself  Cochlseus  ?  Their  writings  have  not  spared 
your  electoral  Grace ;  and  Duke  George  has  written  of  me  in 
a  strain  that  would  disgrace  Cochlseus  or  Emser.  If  on  their 
side  a  hundred  thousand  were  writing,  nay,  every  leaf  and 
blade  of  grass  could  take  tongue,  and  vilify  me  most  foully 
and  falsely,  all  would  appear  to  them  just  and  right.  They 
may  do  anything,  and  I  nothing ;  they  are  to  babble  as  they 
like,  and  I  must  be  silent.  Every  act  of  ours  is  wrong,  though 
we  could  raise  the  dead ;  all  they  do  is  good,  although  they 
have  deluged  whole  provinces  with  innocent  blood  !  These 
gentle  people  must  be  touched  with  a  finger  of  cotton,  and  be 
told — f  Well  done,  my  masters  !  what  sweet,  nice  people  you 
are  V  1  did  not  write  drunk,  or  in  my  sleep ;  but  I  know  that 
a  hard  knot  requires  a  sharp  wedge."  Luther  did  not  much 
mend  the  matter  by  publishing  immediately  afterwards  another 
tract  "Against  the  Assassin  of  Dresden."  But  shortly  after- 
wards, when  the  Elector  and  Duke  George  were  reconciled, 
Luther  came  forward  and  professed  that  he  should  be  most 
reluctant  to  be  a  cause  of  dissension ;  he  would  be  satisfied 
that  Duke  George's  back  bore  "  memorable  knots  and  lumps" 

s  2 


260  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1531.  from  the  encounters  between  them,  and  thenceforward  he 
would  spare  him ;  but  this  immunity  was  not  to  extend  to 
the  Papists  generally. 

Luther  published  this  year  a  new  edition  of  the  Psalter, 
which  he  intended  should  be  the  last,  and  some  sermons  and 
expositions  of  some  of  the  Psalms.  He  continued  to  suffer 
severely  from  the  old  malady  in  the  head,  and  was  in  a  state 
of  continued  weakness,  which  obliged  him  more  than  once  to 
seek  change  of  air  and  recreation.  On  the  5th  May,  by  the 
Elector's  command,  he  preached  before  Duke  Henry  of 
Saxony,  at  Torgau.  A  month  later  he  was  at  Lochau  with 
his  children,  whose  health  he  wished  to  benefit  as  well  as  his 
own  by  the  trip,  having  previously  informed  Stiefel,  the  pastor 
of  the  place,  that  "  he  should  be  with  him  about  church 
time."  The  next  month  he  was  again  at  Torgau  on  business ; 
and  towards  the  close  of  the  year  he  paid  a  visit,  for  the  sake  of 
his  health,  to  John  Loser,  hereditary  marshal  of  Saxony,  in  his 
castle  of  Pretsch,  on  the  Elbe,  and  accompanied  his  host  with 
a  hunting  party  to  the  chase.  Whilst  horsemen  and  hounds 
were  busy  with  the  sport,  Luther's  meditations  were  directed 
to  the  147th  Psalm,  and  he  composed  an  exposition  of  it, 
which  he  committed  to  writing  on  his  return,  and  published 
with  a  dedication  to  John  Loser.  His  weak  state  of  health 
made  him  feel  the  weight  of  his  labours  and  duties  as  more 
than  ever  onerous.  "To  do  all  that  is  required  of  me, 
the  time,"  he  said,  "  ought  to  be  three-fold  longer  than 
it  is."  "  I  am  only  able  to  give  a  seventh  part  of  myself," 
he  says,  in  writing  to  a  friend,  "  to  this  letter."  His 
prefaces  to  his  own  Expositions,  and  to  the  publications  of 
others,  become  unusually  brief:  the  details  of  his  domestic 
life  are  omitted  from  his  correspondence ;  and  in  communi- 
cating the  birth  of  his  second  son  on  the  7th  November,  his 
words  are  simply,  "God  has  given  me  from  my  Kate  another 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  261 

son,  Martin."     His  longing  for  death  breaks  out  repeatedly  1531. 
— "  Overwhelmed  with  toil  I  have  been,  am,  and  ever  shall  be, 
until  that  happy  release  \"    Yet  with  all  the  harassing  fatigue 
of  mind  and  body  which  he  endured,  two  hours  of  every  day 
were  devoted  to  perfecting  his  version  of  the  Prophets. 

He  received  intelligence  in  May,  from  his  brother  James, 
of  the  dangerous  illness  of  his  mother,  and  immediately  wrote 
to  console  her : — He  would  willingly  be  present  bodily  with 
his  heart-loved  mother,  but  as  that  could  not  be,  he  would  be 
present  by  letter.  She  knew  from  God's  grace  that  her  sick- 
ness was  his  fatherly  and  gracious  rod ;  she  knew,  too,  the 
essential  of  salvation  to  repose  her  trust  on  in  every  need  — 
Jesus  Christ,  the  corner-stone,  the  Saviour  of  all  poor  sinners. 
His  words  must  be  her  comfort — "  Be  not  afraid,  I  have  over- 
come." "  He  has  overcome  Satan,  sin,  and  death.  You  may 
therefore,  with  confidence  say  to  death,  f  Knowest  thou  not, 
O  Death,  that  thou  art  conquered,  and  art  dead  ?  Knowest 
thou  not  Him  who  has  said,  I  have  overcome  ?  O  Death  !  thy 
victory,  sting,  and  power,  are  swallowed  up  in  Christ's  victory  ; 
and  though  thou  mayest  gnash  thy  teeth,  thou  canst  not  harm 
me  !'  What  thanks  are  due,  dear  mother,  that  God  has  not 
left  you  in  Papist  darkness,  to  build  on  your  own  works,  the 
monk's  holiness,  and  run  to  Mary  and  the  Saints,  away 
from  Christ,  as  from  a  judge  and  tyrant ;  but  that  you  know 
Him  as  the  only  comfort,  our  Saviour.  That  God  has  called 
you  to  this  salvation,  you  have  the  seal  and  letters  in  the 
Gospel,  Baptism,  and  the  Sacrament.  So  rejoice  in  the 
words,  '  Be  not  afraid ;  I  have  overcome.' "  This  proved 
the  death -illness  of  Margaret  Luther,  who  thus  survived  her 
husband  only  a  year ;  and,  deprived  of  both  parents,  Luther 
was  increasingly  sensible  of  his  advancing  years. 

Twice  in  the  year  Luther  wrote  to  the  Margrave  George, 
who  appeared,  from  deference  to  the  Emperor,  to  be  rather 


262  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1531.  wavering  in  the  profession  of  the  truth,  and  had  declined 
into  conformity  with  Popery  in  the  article  of  one  kind  in  the 
Sacrament.  A  constant  subject  of  annoyance  was  the  treat- 
ment which  the  pastors  received  from  the  people,  the  insuffi- 
cient maintenance  allowed  them,  and  the  fewness  of  pastors 
in  proportion  to  the  wants  of  the  population.  The  year  was 
one  of  pestilence,  as  well  as  of  scarcity  and  high  prices,  and 
such  trials  seemed  to  sour  the  German  temper.  The  town 
council  of  Zwickau,  acting  on  the  democratic  principle  of  the 
right  of  the  congregation  to  elect  their  own  minister,  expelled 
the  minister  of  St.  Catherine's,  contrary  to  the  wish  of  Haus- 
mann,  and  placed  another  in  his  office.  Luther  addressed  to 
the  town  council  a  thundering  letter,  and  requested  Haus- 
mann,  whom,  as  principal  pastor  of  the  town,  he  styled  Bishop 
of  Zwickau,  to  deal  candidly  with  the  council,  represent  to 
them  plainly  the  wickedness  of  their  disorderly  behaviour, 
and  in  default  of  their  returning  to  a  sense  of  duty,  to  leave 
the  place,  shaking  off  the  dust  of  his  feet  for  a  testimony 
against  them.  The  town  council,  in  their  turn,  addressed 
various  letters  to  Luther,  who,  however,  returned  them  their 
epistles  partly  unread  and  partly  unopened,  with  the  observa- 
tion that  "  they  were  not  worth  the  waste  of  either  words  or 
time."  Hausmann  complied  implicitly  with  Luther's  direc- 
tions, and  expostulated  in  strong  terms  with  the  council ;  and, 
on  their  refusing  to  amend  their  ways,  quitted  Zwickau,  and 
after  a  time  sojourned  with  the  Reformer  in  the  Augustine 
convent,  to  which  he  had  at  first  been  very  averse,  on  account 
of  Luther's  poverty,  until  the  continued  entreaties  to  "  come 
and  share  his  plenty,  till  the  Elector  could  provide  for  him 
elsewhere — God  would  be  all-sufficient,"  overcame  his  re- 
pugnance.*    The  dispute  as  to  the  right  of  patronage  was 

*  Hausmann  was  recommended  by  Luther  to  the  Princes  of  Anhalt, 
as  "  a  true  heart  and  good  man,  who  would  teach  God's  word  quietly 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN     LUTHER.  263 

referred  to  the  Elector;  and  it  was  arranged,  with  Luther's  1531. 
reluctant  consent,  that  in  this  one  instance  the  caprice  of  the 
town  council  should  be  gratified,  but  that  thenceforward  no 
infringement  of  the  right  of  patronage  should  be  attempted. 
The  whole  transaction  made  Luther  more  eager  in  pressing 
for  another  visitation,  which  proceeded  on  its  duties  rather 
more  than  a  year  later. 

In  the  autumn  of  1531,  Robert  Barnes  arrived  at  Witten- 
berg, sent  from  England  by  Henry  VIII.  to  consult  the 
Lutheran  doctors  on  the  subject  of  his  contemplated  divorce 
from  Catherine  of  Arragon.  The  reference  of  this  important 
case  to  Wittenberg,  as  well  as  Rome,  affords  an  opportunity 
of  contrasting  Clement  VII.  and  Martin  Luther.  The  dilatory 
time-serving  conduct  of  Clement  is  generally  known.  Luther, 
without  a  thought  of  expediency,  and  the  obvious  interest 
that  would  accrue  to  the  Reformation,  from  humouring  a  des- 
potic monarch  such  as  Henry  in  his  favourite  whim,  gave  his 
opinion  unambiguously  in  opposition  to  the  proposed  divorce. 
The  Jewish  law,  he  stated,  was  obligatory  on  Christians,  only 
so  far  as  it  was  identical  with  the  law  of  nature.  But  even 
supposing  it  to  be  valid,  he  denied  that  Leviticus  xviii.  was 
more  binding  than  Deuteronomy  xxv.  His  sentence  was, 
that  the  King  of  England  had  erred  in  marrying  his  brother's 
widow,  but  that  he  would  be  guilty  of  a  much  more  heinous 
crime  if  he  put  her  away,  and  so  rendered  both  her  and  her 
daughter  incestuous.  Of  the  progress  of  the  Gospel  in  Eng- 
land, and  Henry's  conniving  at  the  zeal  of  the  evangelical 
missionaries,  Luther  received  accounts  from  Barnes,  which 
filled  him  with  joy  and  gratitude  to  God. 

and  chastely,  and  loved  it."  For  some  while  he  was  preacher  at  Des- 
sau, and  of  great  service  in  establishing  the  Reformation  there.  After- 
wards he  was  raised  to  the  office  of  superintendent  in  Freyberg ;  but 
in  his  first  sermon  was  struck  with  the  death-stroke,  to  Luther's  ex- 
treme regret.     Hausmann  became  pastor  of  Zwickau  in  1521 . 


264  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1531.  A  little  later  news  arrived,  which  dimmed  the  eyes  and 
sorrowed  the  hearts  of  many  of  the  German  Protestants,  but 
was  not  at  all  unexpected  intelligence  to  Luther.  On  the  11th 
October,  Zwingle  had  fallen  at  Cappel.  In  the  dreadful  con- 
flict against  the  warriors  of  the  Five  Cantons,  he  had  been  at 
his  post  in  his  capacity  of  chaplain ;  and,  when  the  battle  was 
over,  he  was  found  quite  dead  under  a  pear-tree,  "  lying  on 
his  back  with  clasped  hands  and  eyes  upturned  to  heaven." 
After  a  short  interval  CEcolampadius,  wasted  with  sickness 
and  anxiety,  followed  him  to  the  tomb.  "  Such  is  the  end  of 
that  glory/'  Luther  exclaimed,  "  which  they  sought  by  blas- 
phemies against  Christ's  Supper.  The  leagues  with  the 
Landgrave  and  foreign  princes  are  all  ended  now.  It  is 
written,  '  Whose  glory  shall  be  turned  into  shame.'  "  ' '  We 
see  the  judgment  of  God,"  lie  wrote  to  Link,  "  now  for  the 
second  time — first  in  Munzer,  then  in  Zwingle.  I  was  a  true 
prophet  when  I  said,  c  God  would  not  endure  those  raving 
blasphemies.' " 

All  talk  of  war  had  for  some  time  been  subsiding.  "  King 
Ferdinand,"  said  Luther,  "  has  more  reason  to  dread  an  attack 
from  the  Landgrave,  than  the  Landgrave  from  King  Ferdi- 
nand." The  evangelical  confederates  had  met  in  June,  atFrank- 
fort,  when  it  was  resolved  that  the  defence  before  the  Imperial 
Chamber  should  be  made  in  the  name  of  all  the  Protestants 
conjointly;  and  Duke  Barnim,  of  Pomerania,  who  had  deter- 
mined to  establish  the  Reformation  in  his  dominions,  his  brother 
George  being  now  dead,  requested  admission  into  the  alliance. 
At  the  same  time  the  Dukes  of  Gueldres  and  Cleves,  who  were 
highly  incensed  with  the  Emperor,  on  account  of  private 
wrongs,  were  in  correspondence  with  the  Landgrave.  The 
Turk  might  be  expected  again  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Vienna 
in  the  ensuing  year;  the  King  of  England  and  the  King  of 
France  were  both  in  negotiation  with  the  Schmalkald  confe- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  265 

derates,  and  the  Pope,  although  his  compact  with  the  Emperor  1531. 
had  been  cemented  by  the  union  of  their  children,  was,  after 
all,  very  suspicious  of  the  overweening  greatness  of  an  old 
rival.  Moreover,  Ferdinand  could  never  be  King  of  the 
Romans  except  in  title,  until  the  Saxon  protest  was  with- 
drawn; and  on  that  subject,  so  important  to  Charles,  Bavaria 
had  combined  with  Saxony.  In  this  state  of  things  the 
Electors  of  Treves  and  the  Palatinate  offered  their  mediation 
to  the  Protestants,  with  a  view  to  procuring  peace ;  and  their 
mediation  being  accepted  on  the  condition  that  proceedings 
before  the  Imperial  Chamber  should  be  suspended,  delegates 
from  the  Emperor,  who  was  now  in  the  Low  Countries,  ap- 
peared in  Saxony  in  the  month  of  August.  Everything  showed 
how  correctly  Luther  had  estimated  the  pacific  influence  of  so 
many  discordant  elements  in  the  atmosphere  of  politics. 

Without  going  the  same  lengths  as  Melancthon,  Luther 
was  prepared  to  go  a  great  way  to  avoid  what  he  always  re- 
garded as  the  heinous  sin  of  schism.  "  The  Bishops,"  he 
declared,  "are  wolves,  foes,  and  tyrants;  but  the  Jews,  as 
Josephus  writes,  received  their  chief  priests  even  from  Herod 
and  the  Romans.  The  Bohemian  brethren,  to  the  present 
day,  have  their  bishops  consecrated  at  Rome ;  the  holy 
prophets  were  obedient  to  the  kings  of  Israel,  who  persecuted 
them ;  the  father  of  John  the  Baptist  received  his  ministry 
from  Annas  and  Caiaphas.  The  bishops  are  wolves  and 
tyrants,  but,  as  they  sit  in  the  Apostles'  seat,  we  may  accept 
their  jurisdiction,  provided  they  suffer  our  doctrine  to  remain, 
and  do  not  force  us  to  do  ought  against  God/'  Matrimonial 
causes,  which  had  occasioned  him  great  trouble,  he  was  quite 
ready  to  resign  into  the  bishops'  hands.  He  was  most  eager 
for  a  specific  truce,  and  with  as  little  delay  as  possible. 
"  The  delay  of  one  day,"  he  wrote  to  the  Elector,  expressing 
strongly  his  approval  of  the  mediation  of  the  Electors   of 


266  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1531.  Treves  and  the  Palatinate,  "  often  brings  after  it  the  delay  of 
a  year." 

Meantime  it  was  resolved,  by  delegates  of  Saxony  and 
Hesse,  who  met  at  Nordhausen,  that  the  Elector  and  Land- 
grave should  not  attend  the  Diet,  which  had  been  transferred 
from  Spires  to  Ratisbon,  and  summoned  to  meet  in  the  latter 
town  in  the  following  spring.  It  was  also  determined  that 
aid  against  the  Turks  should  be  refused;  that  the  protest 
against  Ferdinand's  election,  and  the  correspondence  with 
the  Dukes  of  Bavaria,  should  be  continued,  and  negotiations 
should  be  opened  with  the  Waywode.  And  at  a  meeting  of 
the  Schmalkald  confederates,  held  at  Frankfort  on  the  19th 
December,  John  Frederic  and  the  Landgrave  were  conjointly 
appointed  the  leaders  of  the  alliance. 

But  the  Electors  of  Mentz  and  the  Palatinate  were  still  ac- 
tive in  the  work  of  peace,  and  early  in  the  spring  negotiations 
were  recommenced  at  Schweinfurt.  The  main  obstacles  to 
an  accommodation  were,  on  one  side,  the  claims  that  Fer- 
dinand should  be  recognised  as  King  of  the  Romans,  and  that 
the  Church  property  should  be  restored ;  on  the  other,  that 
•  all  future  adherents  to  the  Augsburg  Confession  should  be 
included  in  the  terms  of  peace,  and  that  the  processes  before 
the  Imperial  Chamber  should  be  at  an  end.  Luther's  opinion 
was  required  on  the  various  questions.  He  ridiculed  the 
demand  for  the  restitution  of  Church  property :  "  Let  the 
Papists,"  he  said,  "  first  restore  the  innocent  blood  which  they 
have  shed."  But  he  entreated  the  Elector  to  acknowledge 
Ferdinand  as  King  of  the  Romans.     "It  is  true,"  he  wrote  to 

1532.  him  in  February,  1533,  "  that  Ferdinand  was  elected  against 
the  Golden  Bull ;  but  you  have  sufficiently  marked  your 
sense  of  that  violation  of  law.  In  this  world  many  wrong 
acts  will  ever  be  done,  which  oftentimes,  when  done,  we  must 
allow,  to   prevent   greater  wrong.      God  is  holding  out  Lis 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  267 

gracious  hand  to  you;  let  him  not  hold  it  out  in  vain."  It  1532. 
would  be  an  awful  thing,  he  said,  to  go  to  war  "  for  a  little 
article  of  the  Golden  Bull."  He  denied  that  the  cities  would 
ever  fight  in  earnest  for  the  princes;  and  hinted  that  the 
"  Dukes  of  Bavaria  had  made  a  sop  for  Saxony  to  sup  up, 
whilst  they  intended  to  look  on  :"  above  all,  he  objected  funda- 
mentally to  the  Schmalkald  alliance :  "  It  was  a  relying  on 
human  help  in  neglect  of  the  arm  of  the  Almighty." 

Whilst  these  negotiations  were  pending,  the  Elector  John 
was  seized  with  violent  inflammation  in  the  right  foot ;  mor- 
tification was  apprehended,  and  the  physicians  thought  it 
necessary  that  the  great  toe  should  be  amputated.  For 
twenty  weeks  the  good  Elector  was  unable  to  stand  upon  his 
foot,  and  endured  great  pain  with  remarkable  patience ;  and 
was  consoled  by  letters  from  Luther,  and  twice  visited  by 
him,  and  greatly  cheered  by  his  prayers  and  conversation. 
At  the  end  of  February,  Luther  was  staying  with  the  Elector 
at  Torgau,  and  wrote  thence  to  his  wife :  "  My  heart-loved 
Kate,  I  trust  to  be  again  with  you  to-morrow,  or  the  day 
after.  Pray  God  to  bring  me  home  brisk  and  well.  I  sleep 
over  well,  sometimes  six  or  seven  hours  together.  It  is  the 
fault  of  the  beer ;  but  I  am  now  more  sober,  as  at  Witten- 
berg. Give  Johnny  a  dressing  for  me :  and  tell  him,  Mag- 
dalen, and  Cousin  Lena  to  pray  for  the  dear  Elector  and  for 
me.  I  cannot,  although  it  is  the  fair,  find  anything  here  to 
buy  for  the  children.  Tell  me  what  I  shall  do  about  it."  A 
little  later  the  Elector  was  much  better,  and  able  to  write 
Luther  a  letter  with  his  own  hand.  But  Luther  spoke  of 
himself  as  still  suffering  in  his  head ;  ' '  the  devil  tilted  through 
it,  so  that  he  could  neither  read  nor  write."  In  May  he 
visited  the  Elector  again ;  and  about  the  same  time  he  was 
relieved  from  some  of  his  laborious  duties,  by  the  return  of 
Bugenhagen  from  Lubeck.    His  letters  cease  to  be  subscribed 


268  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1532.  "  Martin  Luther,  sick  in  my  head ;  "  and  in  June  he  informs 
Amsdorf :  "  By  your  prayers  I  am  at  length  released  from 
my  malady."  In  July,  he  paid  another  visit  to  John  Loser, 
the  hereditary  marshal,  and  stood  god-father  to  his  son. 

The  negotiations  had  failed  of  their  object;  principally 
because  the  Protestants  insisted  on  the  peace  embracing  all 
those  who  thereafter  might  join  the  evangelical  ranks.  Lu- 
ther objected  to  their  claiming  such  a  stipulation.  "Every 
one,"  he  said,  "  is  bound  to  believe  and  acknowledge  the 
Gospel  at  his  own  peril :  it  is  enough  that  we  do  not  for- 
bid, but  offer  the  Gospel  to  all.  The  Emperor  of  his  grace 
permits  us  the  free  celebration  of  our  faith  and  worship, 
and  cannot  by  right  be  compelled  to  extend  the  same 
favour  to  those  who  as  yet  are  not  of  our  creed."  How- 
ever, John  Erederic  and  Chancellor  Brack  took  the  oppo- 
site view  of  the  question,  and  carried  their  point.  But  on 
the  17th  April  the  Diet  was  opened;  and  nine  days  after- 
wards Sultan  Soliman,  having  mustered  his  hosts,  set  out 
for  the  scenes  of  his  former  ravages.  In  June  he  crossed  the 
Hungarian  frontier  at  the  head  of  250,000  men.  A  little 
longer,  and  his  myriads  would  cover  with  their  tents  the  plains 
around  Vienna.  Luther  was  full  of  patriotic  indignation  : 
"  What  a  portentous  age  !  the  Pope  and  the  King  of  the  Erench 
are  unwilling  to  succour  the  Emperor  against  Mahomet.  What 
has  become  of  the  money  gathered  by  the  Pope,  for  ages, 
against  the  Turk  ?"  Sultan  Soliman,  however,  thought  more 
of  Luther  than  of  the  Pope  or  the  King  of  Erance  :  as  each 
day's  march  drew  him  nearer  to  his  prey,  he  continued  to 
ask  the  question,  "  Has  the  Czar  Charles  made  peace  with 
Martin  Luther  ?"  Charles  on  his  side  felt  how  powerless 
he  was  to  make  any  head  against  the  hereditary  foe  of 
Germany,  without  the  contingents  of  the  Protestant  Princes. 
The  cities  which  were  the  manufacturers  and  capitalists  of 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  269 

the  day,  with  more  of  worldly  wisdom  than  of  the  simple  1532. 
faith  of  their  Reformer,  would  not  forward  the  cannon  and 
ammunition,  or  supply  the  specie.  Had  the  Sultan  been 
disposed  to  treat,  the  evil  might  have  been  staved  off  in 
that  way;  but  Soliman  would  listen  to  no  overtures.  In 
this  dilemma,  Charles  fell  back  on  the  only  alternative  that 
was  left  him,  and  resolved  to  come  to  terms  with  the  evan- 
gelical princes,  and  persevered  in  this  resolution  against 
the  will  of  the  majority  of  the  Romanist  States.  Luther 
on  his  side  reiterated  his  injunctions  to  the  Evangelicals  to 
accept  peace.  "  Opportunity/'  he  warned  John  Frederic, 
"  has  a  forehead  full  of  hairs,  but  its  head  behind  is  bald." 
Peace  was  signed  at  Nuremberg.  In  the  Recess,  which  July  23. 
was  published  the  27th  July,  no  mention  was  made  of  it ; 
but  Charles  proclaimed  it  by  an  edict  published  a  week  later. 
The  Lutherans,  on  their  side,  relinquished  the  demand  of  pro- 
spective toleration;  and  Charles,  on  his  side,  gave  a  private  as- 
surance that  the  legal  proceedings  before  the  Imperial  Chamber 
should  cease.  And,  under  the  shade  of  the  peace  of  Nuremberg, 
the  Reformation  took  a  new  start,  and  spread  its  branches 
with  increased  vigour  far  and  near,  as  it  had  before  done 
under  the  shelter  of  the  first  Diet  of  Spires.  But  the  Emperor 
had  received  such  vexatious  proofs  of  the  impracticable 
doggedness  of  the  German  temper,  that  he  governed  by  his 
own  authority  through  his  brother,  without  summoning 
another  Diet  until  eight  years  afterwards. 

With  internal  peace  the  ardour  against  the  common  foe 
revived  on  all  sides ;  and  most  of  the  cities  emulated,  accord- 
ing to  their  ability,  the  zeal  of  Nuremberg,  which  doubled 
her  contingents  in  men,  money,  and  flour.  And  in  a  short 
time,  Charles,  just  recovered  from  a  tedious  illness,  was 
before  the  walls  of  Vienna  at  the  head  of  an  army  of  75,000 
men,  who  shared  his  own  eagerness  to  do  battle  for  the  Cross. 


270  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1532.  Luther  addressed  to  the  Margrave  Joachim  of  Branden- 
burg, the  imperial  lieutenant,  a  spirited  letter,  commending  his 
"Christian  heart  and  enterprise/'  and  engaging  that  he  "would 
himself  fight  with  his  '  our  Father '  under  the  banner  of  the 
dear  Charles,  against  Satan  and  his  members."  But  before 
the  armies  could  meet,  Soliman  had  received  a  repulse  from 
the  ruined  walls  of  Guntz,  which  convinced  him  that  the  God 
of  battle  was  no  longer  on  his  side.  When  the  Turks  were 
sure  of  victory,  a  horseman  in  complete  armour  descended  in 
the  air,  brandishing  his  sword,  and  forbidding  the  Moslem  to 
approach  Jurischitz  and  his  devoted  band.  The  Sultan  with- 
drew his  troops,  and,  sending  about  20,000  light  armed  sol- 
diers into  Austria,  who  were  eventually  almost  all  cut  to 
pieces,  pressed  on  himself  with  the  bulk  of  his  army  into 
Styria,  and  appeared  before  Gratz.  But  news  of  the  suc- 
cesses of  Doria,  the  imperial  admiral,  reached  him  soon 
afterwards,  and  confirmed  his  despondency,  and  he  beat  a 
hasty  and  inglorious  retreat.  The  Emperor  was  now  anxious 
to  employ  his  magnificent  army  in  recovering  Hungary  from 
John  Zapolya:  but  the  Princes  regarded  the  object  for  which 
they  had  enlisted  their  followers  as  achieved  by  the  Sultan's 
retreat,  and  declined  any  share  in  an  attempt  to  regain  a 
throne  for  Ferdinand,  and  aggrandise  the  house  of  Austria. 

But  before  this  glorious  result  to  the  efforts  of  united 
Germany,  within  a  month  of  the  signing  of  the  peace  of 
Nuremberg,  John  the  Constant  had  been  suddenly  removed 
from  the  turmoil  of  negotiations,  wars,  and  jealousies.  He 
had  repaired,  on  the  12th  August,  with  his  two  daughters 
and  the  Electress  of  Brandenburg,  to  his  castle  of  Schweinitz, 
thinking  that  the  sport  of  hunting  might  prove  of  service  to 
his  health;  and  on  the  morning  of  the  14th,  when  he  went 
out  for  the  chase,  his  temper,  always  serene,  was  observed  to 
be  more  than  usually  cheerful.     But  about  four  o'clock  the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  271 

next  morning  he  was  seized  with  pains  in  the  head,  followed  1532. 
by  an  apoplectic  stroke,  which  deprived  him  of  the  power  of 
speech.  A  messenger  was  immediately  despatched  to  sum- 
mon Luther :  and  the  Reformer,  with  Melancthon  and 
Augustin  Schurf,  the  physician,  left  Wittenberg  about  five 
o'clock  on  the  morning  of  the  16th,  and  arrived  at  Schweinitz 
five  hours  later.  "When  Luther  and  his  companions  entered 
his  apartment,  the  Elector  made  an  effort  to  raise  himself  on 
both  his  hands,  but  fell  back  exhausted,  and  within  a  little 
time  afterwards  expired.  "  It  has  happened  to  him,"  Luther 
said,  "  as  to  children,  who  are  born,  live,  and  die  without 
forethought ;  and  when  he  shall  awake  at  the  last  day,  he  will 
think  he  has  just  returned  from  the  chase  in  his  forest  of 
Lochau." 

His  remains  were  interred  at  Wittenberg  ;  and  two  sermons  Aug.  18. 
were  preached  on  the  occasion  by  Luther,  who  took  for  his 
text  the  passage  from  which  he  had  preached  at  the  funeral 
of  the  Elector  Frederic.  He  described  the  Elector  John  as 
"  a  right  good  friendly  man,  without  any  falsehood,  in  whom 
he  could  never  discern  the  least  pride,  anger,  or  envy ;  ever 
ready  to  forgive,  nay,  too  mild."  He  spoke  of  his  "  bitter 
death  at  Augsburg,"  his  manful  confession  "  of  the  death  and 
resurrection  of  Christ,  at  the  peril  of  loss  of  land,  body  and 
life."  Compared  with  that,  "  the  death  of  the  reason  and  five 
senses  was  a  child's  death."  He  had  not,  indeed,  been  exempt 
from  errors  in  government :  "  but  every  prince,"  he  con- 
tinues, f '  has  ten  devils  about  him,  when  a  private  man  has 
only  one."  Simple,  childlike,  unpretending,  pure  from  his 
youth,  and  full  of  earnestness  of  moral  purpose,  in  Luther's 
words,  "  without  guile  and  without  bile,"  the  Elector  John, 
in  act  and  motive,  may  vie  with  the  most  unsullied  characters 
on  the  page  of  history.  He  was  not  gifted  with  the  abilities 
of  his  brother  Frederic;    but   Frederic  only  preserved  the 


272  THE    LTFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1532.  adherents  of  the  Gospel  from  those  who  sought  their  ruin ; 
John  embraced  the  Gospel  from  its  first  revival,  and  gave 
up  all  for  it.  At  Augsburg,  when  his  theologians  proposed 
to  present  the  Confession  in  their  own  names,  to  save  him 
from  the  perils  which  hemmed  him  round,  he  indignantly 
refused,  exclaiming,  "  I  too  would  confess  my  Christ."  "  Wis- 
dom died,"  Luther  declared,  "  with  Frederic  the  Wise,  and 
honesty  with  John  the  Constant :  the  nobles  will  reign 
now."* 

It  is  probably  to  be  attributed  to  the  loss  of  a  Prince  after 
his  own  heart  that  Luther  endured  another  attack  of  the 
ringing  in  his  head  in  September.  Somewhat  later  in  the 
autumn  he  was  very  anxious  about  Kate,  who  was  again 
advanced  in  pregnancy,  and  suffering  from  fever.  On  the 
10th  November,  however,  matters  wore  a  more  cheerful  as- 
pect, and  Luther,  Kate,  and  a  party  of  guests  sat  down  to 
a  repast  on  a  boar,  a  present  from  one  of  the  Princes  of 
Anhalt,  to  celebrate  the  anniversary  of  St.  Martin,  and  the 

1533.  natal  days  of  the  two  Martin  Luthers.  The  first  month 
of  the  new  year  made  the  Reformer  again  a  father  by 
the  birth  of  his  fourth  living  child,  and  third  son.  The 
infant  was  born  late  in  the  night  of  Tuesday  the  28th 
January,  St.  Paul's  day  :  and  at  one  o'clock  the  following 
morning  a  letter  was  written  by  the  Reformer  to  John  Loser, 
the  hereditary  marshal,  to  ask  him  to  "  lift  the  new  born 
infant  from  the  baptismal  water."  The  baptism  was  to  take 
place  in  the  evening,  that  the  child  might  "  remain  a  heathen 
as  short  a  time  as  possible j"  and  the  name  to  be  given  was 
Paul.  Luther  implored  his  Lord  God  to  make  of  his  infant 
son  "  a  new  foe  to  the  Pope  and  the  Turk." 

*  The  Prince  Consort  of  England  is  lineally  descended  from  John 
the  Constant,  the  progenitor  of  the  Saxon  houses  of  Weimar  and 
Gotha. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  273 

Luther  was  now  again  involved  in  a  contest  with  Duke  1533. 
George.  In  the  preceding  year  eighty  families  had  been 
driven  out  of  Leipsic,  because  they  communicated  in  both 
kinds,  and  had  taken  refuge  under  the  Elector's  safeguard  at 
Holzhausen  :  a  consolatory  letter  had  been  addressed  to  them 
by  Luther ;  and,  some  time  afterwards,  an  exhortation  to 
patience  and  fortitude.  In  this  latter  epistle  the  Reformer 
spoke  of  Duke  George  as  "  an  Apostle  of  the  Devil."  Many 
copies  were  made,  which  passed  from  hand  to  hand ;  and  one 
travelled  in  a  goldsmith's  pack  from  Nuremberg  to  Leipsic, 
and  was  detected  by  the  town  council.  Duke  George  im- 
mediately inquired  of  Luther  whether  he  was  the  author? 
and  the  Reformer  replied  with  no  little  asperity.  The  Duke 
then  complained  to  John  Frederic  of  an  infraction  of  the 
treaty  entered  into  between  them,  and  that  Luther  was  stimu- 
lating the  lower  orders  to  rebellion.  The  Reformer  stated  in 
his  defence  that  "he  had  never  encouraged  sedition;  if  it 
could  be  proved  he  had,  he  would  revoke  on  Balaam's  ass, 
and  on  all  the  asses  aud  cows  in  the  world.  Duke  George, 
as  a  prince,  was  entitled  to  the  obedience  of  his  subjects;  but 
in  the  sight  of  God  he  was  f  an  Apostle  of  the  Devil,'  and  no 
better  than  Pilate,  Herod,  or  Judas  Iscariot."  Not  satis- 
fied with  this,  Luther  addressed  another  consolatory  epistle  to 
the  banished  Leipsickers,  in  which  he  taxed,  with  his  usual 
keenness,  the  cruelty  and  bloodthirstiness  of  Duke  George, 
contrasting  him  with  the  gentle  Emperor,  and  uttered  what 
has  always  been  reckoned  among  his  prophecies  —  "  What 
has  not  occurred  within  twelve  years  from  the  Diet  of 
"Worms !  what  will  not  have  occurred  within  ten  years  from 
the  Diet  of  Augsburg !  The  fury  of  Duke  George  will  not 
last  for  ever ;  it  will  have  an  end,  sooner  than  he  thinks,  or 
any  one  may  imagine."  He  had  ceased,  he  said,  to  pray  for 
Duke  George ;  his  persecutions  had  been  repaid  more  than 

VOL.   II.  T 


274  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1533.  tenfold  on  his  own  head ;  he  was  hurrying  visibly  to  the  pit 
of  hell.  The  old  smouldering  embers  of  strife  were  now 
effectually  stirred  into  a  blaze.  Cochlseus  replied  for  Duke 
George.  Luther  received  from  the  printers  some  sheets  of 
the  work,  as  it  was  going  through  their  hands,  and  contrived 
that  his  answer  should  be  exposed  for  sale  with  Cochlseus' 
"  Reply/'  at  the  Leipsic  fair  in  the  autumn.  As  the  tract 
bore  Duke  George's  arms,  Luther,  who  despised  Cochlseus, 
whom  he  nicknamed  "Dr.  Snivel-spoon,"  or  "Dr.  Gawk," 
entitled  his  answer,  "  Against  Duke  George's  Last  Book." 
It  discussed  the  accusation  that  he  was  "  a  runaway  monk,  a 
perjured  man."  "  Yes  !"  said  Luther,  "  such  a  runaway,  as  a 
Mameluke  who  should  turn  Christian,  or  a  sorcerer  who 
should  renounce  his  compact  with  the  Devil  for  repentance 
in  Christ."  "  For  twenty  years,"  he  continues,  "  I  have 
been  employed  with  prayers  and  watchings  in  the  study  of 
the  sacred  writings  :  I  have  lectured  and  written  on  the 
Scriptures  for  twelve  years  amidst  daily  trials  and  persecu- 
tions, with  incredible  toil,  and  yet  I  find  myself  still  only  a 
novice,  learning  the  rudiments  of  Divine  knowledge."  But 
before  the  end  of  the  year  the  Elector  and  Duke  were  recon- 
ciled at  Grimma,  and  Luther  wrote  in  December — "The 
princes  are  again  friends ;  for  this,  and  the  preceding  peace 
with  the  Emperor,  praise  be  to  God.     Amen." 

A  treatise  on  the  Private  Mass  and  the  Ordination  of  Priests 
was  also  published  by  Luther  at  this  time,  by  way  of  chal- 
lenge to  the  Papists.  He  observed  in  it,  that  at  Augsburg 
the  Papists  had  implored  the  Emperor  to  beg  of  the  Pope  to 
issue  no  more  Indulgence  letters :  he  had  once  offered  to  be 
silent  on  that  question,  but  they  would  not  let  him :  if  it 
should  go  with  the  rest  of  Popery,  as  it  had  gone  with 
Indulgences,  whose  would  the  fault  be  ?  "  We  cannot  acknow- 
ledge," he  said,  "  the  Papacy  as  the  Church,  or  even  a  part 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  275 

of  it,  but  only  as  its  corruption  and  desolation ;  Antichrist  1533. 
invading  the  Church,  the  word  and  order  of  God,  and  raising 
himself  above  God.  "We  cannot  locally  separate  ourselves 
from  Antichrist,  for  Christ  teaches  that  until  the  end  of  the 
age  he  shall  sit  in  the  holy  place  :  but  spiritually  let  us 
separate  ourselves,  avoid  his  corruptions,  renounce  his  abomi- 
nations, and  maintain  the  pure  faith."  "  The  bishops  of  the 
early  times,"  he  said,  "were  only  presbyters,  the  principal 
pastors  of  towns,  as  Augustin  was  Bishop  of  Hippo,  a  town 
not  larger  than  Leipsic  or  Torgau ;  yet  he  was  greater  than 
any  pope  or  cardinal,  and  consecrated  many  bishops  and 
pastors.  The  Christian  Church  is  where  the  Gospel  is 
purely  preached." 

In  the  second  visitation  of  the  Saxon  churches,  which  com- 
menced in  the  spring,  Luther  took  no  part  beyond  recom- 
mending to  the  commissioners  a  superannuated  clergyman  for 
a  pension ;  another  clergyman  for  pecuniary  compensation,  on 
account  of  the  destruction  of  his  parsonage  by  fire;  and  a 
schoolmistress  for  maintenance,  who  had  been  removed  from 
her  school.  By  direction  of  the  visitors,  the  Larger  Catechism 
was  to  be  taught  on  Sundays,  the  Smaller  on  the  other  days 
of  the  week ;  fines  were  imposed  on  the  idle  or  profane,  such 
as  bought  indecent  books,  or  sang  obscene  or  blasphemous 
songs.  But  it  was  again  proved  how  much  the  efficiency  of 
the  Church  system  was  impaired  by  the  covetous  disinclina- 
tion of  the  laity  to  contribute  to  the  support  of  their  clergy. 
On  the  whole  the  visitation  had  good  results,  and  the  example 
of  Saxony  was  followed  in  other  parts  of  Germany. 

The  Emperor  in  the  beginning  of  the  year  was  with 
Clement  again  at  Bologna,  and  persuaded  him  to  send  a 
nuncio,  in  company  with  his  own  ambassador,  to  carry  his 
proposals  to  the  six  Electors  and  the  six  circles  relative  to  a 
council.     The  Pope  proposed  that  "  the  council  should  be 

t  2 


276  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1533.  a  free  Christian  council,  as  from  the  beginning,  according 
to  the  custom  of  the  Church."  Whilst  the  ambassadors 
were  at  Wittenberg,  John  Frederic  removed  thither,  and  at- 
tended Luther's  preaching  every  day.  Luther  regarded  the 
proposed  council  as  a  mere  delusion.  "A  council  as  from 
the  beginning/'  he  said,  "  must  decide  upon  Scriptural  war- 
rant ;  a  council  according  to  custom  would  be  Constance, 
Basle,  Pisa,  over  again;  or,  worse  than  all,  the  last  Lateran. 
Here  was  half  angel  half  devil."  "  Moreover,  the  Pope  was 
a  party  to  the  cause,  and  could  not  therefore  be  judge  :  the 
question  was,  Scripture  or  the  Pope."  But,  on  maturer 
reflection,  Luther  and  his  colleagues  judged  it  better  not 
positively  to  decline  the  council,  but  to  state  objections,  and 
then,  whether  the  council  should  be  or  should  not  be,  "  with 
the  day  counsel  too  would  come."  The  Schmalkald  con- 
federates held  a  meeting  on  the  24th  June,  and  on  the  last 
day  of  June  the  proposed  council  was  rejected  by  them,  and 
three  conditions  were  stated  as  essentially  requisite  to  any 
council  which  they  could  accept — 1.  That  it  should  be  con- 
vened in  Germany ;  2.  That  the  Pope  should  not  be  judge ; 
3.  That  the  decision  should  be  according  to  Scripture.  It 
was  also  debated  among  the  Protestants,  whether  they,  on 
their  part,  should  summon  a  council.  But  Luther's  voice  was 
raised  against  it : — "It  would  only,"  he  said,  "  declare  their 
disunion.  God's  Word  was  enough ;  compared  with  his  Word, 
what  were  councils  ?  a  drop  against  the  sun  !  Christ  had 
the  whole  Holy  Ghost  without  any  devil." 

Clement  had  been  overawed  by  Charles  to  make  overtures 
relative  to  a  council,  but  his  contradictory  offers  had  impe- 
rilled nothing,  and  he  was  able  to  congratulate  himself  that 
he  had  satisfied  the  Emperor  without  compromising  his  own 
interests.  In  March,  Charles  embarked  for  Spain,  and  his 
departure  was  felt  by  his  Holiness  much  as  a  second   re- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEU.  277 

lease  from  captivity.  Accordingly,  in  the  autumn  Clement  1533. 
set  out  for  Marseilles,  taking  with  him  his  niece  Catherine 
de*  Medici,  the  bride  elect  of  the  heir  to  the  French  throne. 
What  may  have  been  the  exact  nature  of  the  consulta- 
tions between  Clement  and  Francis,  at  Marseilles,  has  never 
transpired ;  but  there  is  scarcely  a  doubt  that  they  concerted 
schemes  to  the  detriment  of  their  common  rival  the  Emperor; 
that  Francis  communicated  to  Clement  the  negotiations  which 
he  had  entered  into  with  the  Landgrave,  and  that  the  project 
of  exciting  the  Schmalkald  confederates  against  Charles,  and 
thus  giving  him  enough  to  do  in  Germany,  received  the  appro- 
bation of  his  Holiness. 

Nor  was  the  Prince  of  Hesse  the  man  to  suffer  the  oppor- 
tunity to  slip  for  maintaining  the  cause  of  independent 
sovereignty  in  Germany,  striking  a  blow  at  Ferdinand,  and 
adding  strength  and  extent  to  the  Reformation.  The  old 
Duke  of  Wurtemburg  had  been  deprived  of  his  duchy  by  the 
Suabian  League,  and  the  investiture  of  his  hereditary  rights 
and  dominions  had  been  bestowed  on  King  Ferdinand  at  the 
Diet  of  Augsburg.  Long  had  Philip  revolved  the  project  of 
restoring  an  ancient  house  to  its  rightful  sovereignty;  but 
never  before  had  every  circumstance  seemed  propitious  to  such 
an  enterprise.  The  Nuremberg  peace  was  no  hindrance  to 
his  plans,  because  the  Protestants  had  long  been  complaining 
that  the  Emperor  had  not  been  true  to  his  word,  and  the 
judicial  processes  before  the  Imperial  Chamber  had  not  ceased. 
The  Dukes  of  Bavaria  made  common  cause  with  Wurtemburg ; 
the  Suabian  League  was  tottering ;  Brandenburg,  Cologne, 
and  the  Palatinate,  were  so  far  on  an  understanding  with  the 
Landgrave,  that  their  neutrality  was  promised.  Treves  even 
afforded  succours ;  and  the  only  remaining  desideratum, 
money,  was  obtained  from  Francis  I.,  with  whom  the  Land- 
grave had   an  interview  in  January,   at  Bar-le-duc.     Philip  1534. 


278  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1534.  completed  his  preparations  with  his  usual  promptitude,  and 
with  15,000  foot  and  4000  horse,  early  in  the  spring  ap- 
proached the  forces  of  King  Ferdinand,  which,  being  inferior 
in  numbers,  awaited  his  attack  at  Laufen,  on  the  banks  of  the 
Neckar.  The  first  conflict  took  place  on  the  12th  May,  and 
the  Landgrave  had  the  advantage ;  in  consequence  of  which, 
Ferdinand's  troops  the  next  morning  made  an  attempt  to 
gain  a  better  guarded  position.  Philip  observing  the  move- 
ment, dashing  on  with  his  cavalry,  charged  them  in  flank,  and 
was  enabled  to  keep  them  at  bay  until  his  artillery  had  time  to 
come  up ;  and  this  effective  arm  soon  put  the  Austrians  to  a 
complete  rout.  The  success  was  sufficiently  rapid  and  complete 
to  astonish  even  the  sanguine  Landgrave :  one  after  another 
the  castles  throughout  the  Duchy  surrendered  to  him,  and  in 
less  than  a  month  Duke  Ulric  and  his  son  Christopher  were 
masters  of  their  hereditary  dominions.  The  German  princes 
and  nobles,  for  the  most  part,  sympathized  with  the  resto- 
ration of  a  sovereign  house ;  and  the  Pope  silenced  every 
murmur  of  disapprobation  with  the  inquiry,  "  Where,  then,  is 
the  Emperor?"  Duke  George  of  Saxony  alone  appreciated 
the  importance  of  the  blow  which  had  been  struck,  and  di- 
rected his  rage  against  the  recreant  Pontiff,  accusing  him  of 
being  the  abettor  of  strife  and  confusion,  in  order  to  prevent 
the  summoning  of  a  council.  By  this  revolution  a  new  ter- 
ritory was  added  to  the  Evangelical  side  :  the  Suabian  League 
shortly  afterwards  fell  to  pieces ;  the  cities,  which  had  be- 
longed to  it,  subscribed  the  Augsburg  Confession,  and  trans- 
ferred their  allegiance  from  the  defunct  Romanist  League  of 
the  south,  to  the  Protestant  Confederacy  of  the  north.  But 
the  most  surprising  effect  of  the  Landgrave's  triumph  is,  that 
on  the  29th  June  peace  was  signed  at  the  village  of  Cadan, 
near  Annaberg,  in  Bohemia,  between  Ferdinand  and  the 
Protestants.     On  the  one  side  Ferdinand  was  acknowledged 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  279 

as  King  of  the  Romans,  and  on  the  other  side  it  was  agreed  1534. 
that  the  Duke  of  Wurtemburg  should  hold  his  territories  in 
fief  of  Austria,  with  a  seat  and  voice  in  the  Diet ;  that  the 
judicial  processes  should  cease ;  that  investiture  should  be 
granted  to  John  Frederic,  and  his  marriage  articles  should  be 
ratified.  Religious  differences  were  to  be  no  ground  for  war. 
And  thus  the  peace  of  Cadan  was  the  supplement  to  that  of 
Nuremberg. 

The  Landgrave  had  found  no  more  strenuous  opponent  to 
his  undertaking  than  Luther  ;  and  John  Frederic  and  Melanc- 
thon  had  echoed  Luther's  censures.  "  Your  enterprise  will 
disturb  the  public  peace,"  the  Reformer  warned  the  Land- 
grave, "  and  will  affix  a  stain  on  the  Gospel."  Luther  and 
Melancthon  had  recently  been  full  of  congratulation  that  dif- 
ferences which  had  arisen  between  the  town  of  Erfurth  and 
John  Frederic  had  been  adjusted,  and  that  amity  had  been 
restored  with  Duke  George.  When  they  heard  of  the  "  Mace- 
donian," as  they  called  the  Landgrave,  grasping  the  sword, 
they  deemed  that  a  new  fountain  of  innumerable  troubles 
had  been  unsealed.  But  as  soon  as  Luther  found  his  fore- 
bodings not  realized,  and  that  war  had  issued  in  peace  and 
the  advancement  of  the  Reformation,  without  exonerating 
the  Landgrave,  he  gratefully  recognized  the  hand  of  God. 
"  God's  hand  is  to  be  traced  in  the  whole  matter ;  and,  con- 
trary to  the  expectation  of  all  of  us,  our  fear  is  turned  to 
peace.     He  who  has  begun  will  carry  through.     Amen." 

But  Luther  was  himself  engaged  in  a  contest  of  another 
kind.  In  1533  an  Exposition  of  the  84th  Psalm  had  been 
published  by  Erasmus,  with  the  object  of  reconciling  Romanists 
and  Protestants.  Luther  discerned  in  the  Exposition  many 
symptoms  of  a  sceptical  tendency,  a  low  value  for  doctrinal 
truth,  and  a  time-serving  deference  to  custom  and  human 
authority.      Erasmus    had    been    answered   by    a    Zwinglian 


280  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1534.  divine  and  by  a  Lutheran ;  and  to  the  work  of  the  latter 
Luther  had  written  a  preface,  in  which  he  spoke  strongly  of 
Erasmus'  mistake  in  confounding  the  union  of  charity  with 
the  union  of  truth.  But  Amsdorf  persuaded  Luther  that  he 
was  further  in  duty  bound  himself  to  assail  Erasmus  in  a 
specific  treatise,  as  the  true  source  and  fountain-head  of  error, 
under  whose  authority  Faber  and  Cochlseus,  and  the  minor 
tribe  of  Papist  writers,  sheltered  their  own  impotence.  It 
was,  moreover,  to  Erasmus  that  Luther  imputed  the  rapid  in- 
crease of  sceptical  opinions  in  Germany.  At  Munster,  Ana- 
baptism  had  raised  its  stronghold,  and  the  tenets  of  Munzer 
and  the  Zwickau  fanatics  were  carried  out  to  their  full  poli- 
tical and  moral  consequences,  under  the  government  of  a 
tailor  from  Leyden,  John  Bockelson,  more  commonly  called 
John  of  Leyden,  who  had  been  proclaimed  king.  Community 
of  women  and  goods  of  all  kinds  had  been  established,  and 
a  filthiness  degrading  human  nature  below  the  brute  was 
defended  by  the  pretence  of  immediate  inspiration.  Happily, 
in  June  of  the  following  year,  the  efforts  of  the  Bishop  of 
Munster  were  seconded  by  the  Landgrave  and  the  Elector  of 
Saxony ;  the  city  was  surrendered ;  and  the  ringleaders  of 
fanaticism  were  made  a  terrible  example  for  the  warning  and 
instruction  of  others.  In  other  parts  of  Germany,  the  doc- 
trines of  the  incarnation  of  the  Son  of  God,  of  the  Trinity, 
and  all  the  distinctive  articles  of  the  Christian  faith,  were 
called  into  question,  or  exposed  to  ridicule.  In  all  this  Luther 
perceived  so  many  proofs  of  the  depraved  influence  which  the 
scholar  of  Basle  was  exercising  on  public  taste  and  religious 
ideas.  "  Erasmus/'  he  said,  "  was  the  palmer-worm,  who 
had  crept  into  the  paradise  of  the  Church,  and  had  filled  every 
leaf  with  his  maggots."  Accordingly,  in  the  spring  of  1534 
he  assailed  this  prop  and  pillar  of  scepticism,  in  a  tract  pub- 
lished under  the  form  of  a  letter  to  Amsdorf.     "  It  was  the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  281 

levity/'  he  said, <c  with  which  Erasmus  treated  the  most  sacred  1531. 
subjects  which  had  induced  him  before  to  give  him  a  sharp 
prick,  in  the  hope  of  rousing  him  from  his  snoring,  and 
awakening  him  to  sober  reflection.  But  all  had  been  in  vain, 
aud  he  had  only  provoked  the  viper  to  produce  the  viper-asp. 
He  had  now  learnt  that  Erasmus5  defect  was  not  simply  levity, 
but  far  worse,  malice  and  an  entire  ignorance  of  Christianity. 
To  Erasmus,  the  Trinity,  the  divinity  of  Jesus  Christ,  the 
depravity  of  man,  the  redemption  of  man,  the  resurrection  of 
the  body,  and  all  the  peculiar  doctrines  of  the  Christian  faith, 
were  matter  for  jest.  His  catechism  for  children  contained 
the  question — fWhy  in  the  Apostles'  Creed  is  the  Father 
called  God ;  the  Son,  not  God  but  Lord ;  the  Spirit  neither 
God  nor  Lord,  but  only  Holy?'  This  was  to  children  !  Why, 
here  was  Satan  himself!  as  of  old,  disputing  God's  word,  and 
insinuating  the  doubt  —  '  Thou  shalt  not  surely  die  !'  "  *  He 
then  reviewed  other  writings  of  Erasmus,  pointing  out  their 
sceptical  tendency;  and  concluded  by  saying  that  Erasmus 
himself  was  unworthy  of  an  answer  :  he  had  enough  to  do  in 
teaching  others,  above  all  in  translating  the  Scriptures,  a 
work  which  itself  required  his  full  energies,  to  forsake  important 
duties  to  catch  at  clouds  and  emptiness.  But  he  would  leave 
his  testimony  concerning  Erasmus.  Erasmus  replied  to  this 
letter  with  his  habitual  acerbity.  And  Melancthon  lamented 
"  the  petulance  of  old  age  "  in  both  his  great  contemporaries. 
The  following  memorandum  appears  among  Luther's  corre- 
spondence— "  Erasmus,  the  foe  of  all  religion,  and  the  pre- 
eminent adversary  of  Christ,  is  the  exact  pattern  and  copy  of 
Lucian  and  Epicurus.  I,  Martin  Luther,  with  my  own  hand 
enjoin  thee,  my  dearest  son  John,  and  through  thee  all  my 
children,  and  all  the  children  of  Christ's  holy  church,  to  lay 
this  deep  in  your  heart.     It  is  no  light  thing."* 

*  "I  have  sometimes  thought  of  writing  a  Dialogue  of  the  Dead,  in 


282  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1534.  The  infirmities  of  age  were  creeping  fast  upon  the  Reformer, 
so  that  his  sermons  for  the  year  were  given  to  the  world  by 
Caspar  Cruciger,  as  editor;  and  besides  these,  his  lectures  on 
Isaiah,  taken  down  from  his  mouth  in  previous  years  by  some 
of  his  audience,  and  Expositions  of  the  44th  and  100th  Psalms, 
were  the  only  additions  to  his  works.  In  the  spring  he  was 
again  attacked  with  the  ringing  in  the  head,  and  Kate  suf- 
fered much  from  fever,  to  which  she  was  very  liable  from  the 
damp  and  exposed  situation  of  Wittenberg,  the  north  and 
east  winds  blowing  with  penetrating  keenness  over  "  the  sand 
and  marshes."  In  the  autumn  Luther  had  a  severe  cough, 
with  a  great  huskiness,  which,  like  the  ringing  in  the  head, 
had  now  become  a  periodical  visitor. 

In  the  month  of  June  Luther  paid  a  visit  to  Prince 
Joachim,  of  Anhalt,  at  Dessau,  who  was  labouring  under 
lowness  of  spirits  and  debilitated  health.  The  Reformer 
recommended  him,  in  order  to  drive  away  melancholy,  to 
resort  to  pastimes,  hunting,  &c,  always  to  maintain  a  cheerful 
air  and  countenance,  so  as  to  shame  the  Devil,  and,  above  all 
things,  frequently  to  resort  to  music.  Luther  promised  the 
Prince  a  second  visit  as  soon  as  he  had  supplied  the  printers, 
whose  importunities  were  most  clamorous,  and  to  "bring 
Bugenhagen  with  him,  and  remain  eight  days."  And  this 
promise  he  kept  about  the  end  of  July  :  a  little  afterwards  he 
was  the  Elector's  guest  at  Torgau,  whence  he  wrote  to  Kate 
that  "  the  Court  beverages  did  not  suit  him ;  he  thought  of 
the  good  wine  and  beer  he  had  at  home,  and  of  his  good  wife, 
or  rather,  he  ought  to  say,  lord."  Of  John  Frederic  himself 
he  spoke  in  the  highest  terms  of  eulogy,  but  the  spirit  of  his 
courtiers  was  as  antagonistic  as  ever  to  the  Gospel. 

which  Lucian,  Erasmus,  and  Voltaire  should  mutually  acknowledge 
the  danger  of  exposing  an  old  superstition  to  the  contempt  of  the  blind 
and  fanatic  multitude." — Gibbon,  Miscell.  Works,  I.  p.  269. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  283 

On  Thursday,  the  17th  December,  at  twelve  o'clock,  his  1531. 
"  lord  Kate  "  was  safely  delivered  of  a  daughter ;  aud  the 
same  day  and  hour  Luther  wrote  to  Prince  Joachim,  of  An- 
halt — "The  Almighty  God  has  given  me  this  hour,  by  my 
dear  Kate,  a  little  daughter.  I  told  your  Grace  before  that  I 
should  ask  of  you  to  undertake  the  Christian  office  of  god- 
father ;  and  I  pray  you,  for  Christ's  sake,  not  to  think  this 
humility  a  burden  to  help  the  poor  heathen  from  her  sinful 
birth  of  death,  to  a  new,  holy,  and  saving  second  birth  by  the 
sacred  laver  of  baptism.  But  as  the  weather  is  cold,  and  little 
suited  to  your  Grace's  state  of  health,  I  would  gladly  spare 
your  Grace's  own  person,  and  suggest  to  you  to  depute  in 
your  place  some  one  from  Dessau  or  hence.  Philip  and 
Franciscus  are  absent.  However,  your  Grace  will  well  know 
how  to  accomplish  your  pleasure.  God  will  reward  it ;  and 
wherewith  I  can  with  all  submissiveness  serve  you,  I  am  in 
duty  bound.  I  would  fain  have  the  babe  baptized  to-morrow. 
Christ  be  with  your  Grace  unto  salvation.  Amen."  Not- 
withstanding his  increasing  number  of  children,  pecuniary 
straits  or  worldly  difficulties  of  any  kind  were  no  trial  to 
Luther.  Three  days  after  the  birth  of  his  daughter  Mar- 
garet, he  writes  to  his  old  friend  Eberhard  Brisger,  the  ex- 
prior,  who  had  offered  him  the  purchase  of  a  house  which 
he  owned  in  Wittenberg,  and  was  anxious  to  part  with  for 
the  benefit  of  his  family,  for  a  very  moderate  sum.  Luther 
writes  that  he  could  not  raise  half  the  price,  or  give  so 
much  as  200  florins  for  it ;  he  would  have  him  sell  it  to 
Bruno,  who  was  in  negotiation  for  it,  and  not  be  hard  on 
him,  but  let  him  have  it  for  440  florins.  "  Why  torment 
yourself,"  he  adds,  ' '  about  providing  for  your  children  ?  I  am 
poorer  than  you,  and  so  far  ought  to  be  providing  for  mine ; 
but  I  know  all  my  care  would  be  fruitless.  I  commend  them, 
therefore,  to  Him  who  up  to  this  day  has  granted  abundance, 


284  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

X534.  an(j  jf  j  am  Jeserving  vvill  still  grant  it."  A  few  months 
later  lie  speaks  of  his  intention  to  purchase  a  small  dwelling 
for  his  old  servant  Wolfgang,  who  was  past  service,  and  had 
lost  the  use  of  his  left  arm,  and  Luther  could  not  bear  to 
think  of  his  becoming  an  inmate  of  an  hospital,  or  living  on 
alms.  And  from  the  incidental  mention  subsequently  in  his 
correspondence  of  "  the  debts  he  had  contracted,  and  his 
obligation  to  maintain  many  domestics,"  there  can  be  little 
doubt  but  his  generous  intention  was  carried  into  effect.* 

From  scepticism  Luther  turned  in  a  very  acrid  mood  to 
Romanism.  Preaching  on  the  festival  of  All  Saints,  he  is 
reported  to  have  warned  his  congregation  to  "  pray  no  more 
for  the  bloodhounds,  the  Elector  of  Mentz  and  Duke  George 
of  Saxony,  but  rather  to  pray  that  God  would  hurl  them  into 
hell.  They  might  still  pray  for  the  Elector  of  Brandenburg." 
Luther  had  every  provocation  to  such  language,  that  could 
be  given  by  virulence  of  persecution  redoubling  in  activity  in 
consequence  of  the  rapid  progress  of  the  Gospel ;  but  a  com- 
plaint was  immediately  lodged  against  him,  with  the  Elector, 
by  Duke  John,  the  son  of  Duke  George.  The  Reformer 
acknowledged  that  he  had  applied  the  term  "  bloodhound"  to 
the  Archbishop  of  Mentz,  against  whom  he  intended  soon  to 
publish  a  tract :  but ' '  he  had  no  recollection  of  having  included 
Duke  George  in  his  denunciation.  He  had  dined,  however, 
after  the  sermon,  with  the  Electress  of  Brandenburg,  and  had 
repeated  at  her  table  what  he  had  declared  in  the  pulpit,  and 
he  might  perhaps  then  have  added  the  name  of  Duke  George. 
But  Duke  George  was  not  to  be  softened  by  mildness, 
or  to  be  satisfied  by  any  answer ;  the  Elector  Frederic  had 

*  Luther's  humorous  "  Petition  of  the  Birds  against  his  Servant, 
Wolfgang  Siebergern,"  that  they  might  not  be  dislodged  from  his 
newly-acquired  property,  or  be  neglected,  is  a  more  conclusive  proof. 
— Walch.  XIV.,  p.  1358. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  285 

said  of  him,  '  my  cousin  is  a  rude,  gross  man,  and  with  such  1534. 
heads  the  first  indignation  is  ever  the  best/  "  John  Frederic 
in  reply,  gently  requested  that  Luther  would  be  more  guarded 
in  his  expressions  from  the  pulpit  for  the  future.  The  Re- 
former brought  a  very  grievous  subject  of  complaint  against  the 
Archbishop  of  Mentz  in  the  next  year,  that  he  had  put  Hans  1535. 
Schanz  to  death  by  hangiug,  without  any  legal  condemnation 
or  trial.  The  affair  was  much  talked  of  at  Wittenberg,  and 
in  the  Augustine  Convent  at  Luther's  table,  with  whom 
Louis  Rabe,  a  subject  of  the  Archbishop,  happened  to  be  on  a 
visit.  The  Archbishop  at  once  suspected  that  Rabe  had 
turned  informer,  and  threatened  him  with  punishment,  which 
caused  Luther  to  take  up  the  pen  very  warmly  in  his 
defence.  " Louis  Rabe,"  he  said,  "sat  over  his  platter  as 
meek  and  modest  as  a  maid :  he  did  not  run  up  and  down 
the  streets,  but  remained  quietly  in  his  own  chamber.  Rabe 
had  indeed  spoken  more  good  of  his  hellish  Cardinal  than  he 
for  his  part  should  ever  credit,  and  he  hoped  the  Archbishop 
would  not  be  for  hurrying  him  to  the  gallows  quite  so  fast  as 
he  had  hurried  poor  Schanz.  If  all  were  straightway  to  be 
hanged  who  spoke  evil  of  the  Cardinal,  soon  there  would  not 
be  hemp  enough  in  Germany.  But,  as  thought  was  free,  the 
Archbishop  must  not  be  surprised  to  find  his  acts  freely  can- 
vassed in  spots  where  he  could  not  erect  his  gibbet."  And 
before  closing  the  letter  Luther  alluded  to  the  atrocious 
murder,  by  the  Cardinal,  of  George  Winkler.  In  the  March 
of  the  following  year  another  letter  followed  in  a  more  solemn 
tone.  "  Be  assured,"  he  wrote  to  the  Cardinal  Archbishop, 
"  that  Abel  lives  in  God,  and  cries  louder  than  Cain,  the 
murderer,  may  think.  I  inclose  to  your  Grace  fresh  intelli- 
gence, that  the  blood  of  John  Schanz  is  not  so  silent  in 
Germany  as  in  your  Grace's  palace,  amidst  the  buzzing  flattery 
of  your  courtiers.     Your  Grace's  conscience  must  sing  a  fine 


286  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1535.  descant  in  such  tenor,  and  against  your  will,  must  cry,  Amen. 
You  will  say  Schanz  was  a  thief:  I  think  not.  But  who  was 
it  stole  the  goods  of  St.  Maurice  ?  If  every  thief  is  to  hang, 
then  the  Cardinal  of  Mentz  ought  to  hang  ten  times,  on  a 
gallows  raised  to  the  height  of  three  gibbets.  You  plunder 
churches  and  pilfer  cloisters,  as  though  they  were  a  Car- 
dinal's peculium  at  Rome,  and  then  squander  your  thefts  on 
gluttony  and  profligacy.  As  to  harlots,  I  know,  that  from  the 
poor  miserable  Elsa  at  Magdeburg  you  took,  as  she  said  on 
her  death-bed,  what  you  could  not  restore  to  her.  Not  to 
say  what  wrong  and  robbery  it  is  to  persecute  the  burghers 
of  Halle  without  right  or  cause.  I  tell  you  what  I  will  do : 
I  will  take  the  last  words  of  Hans  Schanz  as  Shrove-tide 
music  for  your  Grace.  So  let  your  Grace's  feet  itch  for  the 
dance,  and  I  will  be  your  piper.  If  Cain  can  say,  '  Am  I  my 
brother's  keeper?'  so  can  God  say,  'Cursed  art  thou  from  the 
earth.' "  But  the  threatened  Treatise  against  the  Archbishop 
was  delayed  until  nearly  four  years  later. 

In  the  summer  of  1535  the  plague  again  fell  upon  the  town 
of  Wittenberg :  and  John  Frederic  wrote  to  Luther  to  request 
him  to  lose  no  time  in  repairing  with  his  wife  and  family  to 
a  place  of  safety.  But  the  Reformer,  though  "  old  in  strength, 
but  not  in  years/'  was  as  little  disposed  to  retreat  before 
"  the  devil  and  his  pestilence,"  or  rather  his  "  clamour  of  a 
pestilence,"  as  he  had  before  been  in  1527.  His  reply  to  the 
Elector  ran  in  his  peculiar  vein  of  humour.  "  My  weather- 
gauge  is  the  prefect  of  Saxony,  John  Metsch,  who  has  such 
a  keen  nose  for  a  pestilence,  that,  were  it  five  ells  under 
ground,  he  would  scent  it  out.  He  is  still  at  Wittenberg, 
and  as  long  as  he  remains  here,  there  is  no  fear  of  a  pesti- 
lence. But  since  the  dog-days  are  at  hand,  to  allay  appre- 
hensions I  have  made  my  rounds  through  the  town,  to  search 
out  about  the  pestilence,   and  the  following  are  the  results 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  287 

of  my  investigations  : — There  is  a  good  deal  of  sickness.  1535. 
Some  have  got  bad  sores  in  their  purses;  others  have  the 
colic  in  their  books ;  some  the  scurvy  in  their  pen ;  others  the 
gout  in  their  paper :  and  many  complain  of  mould  in  their 
ink ;  others  have  the  heartache  to  see  their  fatherland.  The 
fear  is,  that  if  our  heads  and  elders  do  not  labour  with  all 
their  surgical  and  medical  skill  to  cure  and  stay  these  dis- 
orders, the  whole  land  will  die  out,  and  there  will  be  neither 
preacher,  pastor,  nor  schoolmaster."  Luther  makes  a  similar 
statement  in  a  letter  to  Dame  Jorgerin,  acknowledging  the 
gift  of  500  florins  for  the  relief  of  poor  students;  that,  "un- 
less his  inquiries  had  made  him  acquainted  with  the  facts,  he 
never  could  have  supposed  that  there  were  at  Wittenberg 
such  a  multitude  of  impoverished  students,  toiling  on,  despite 
penury,  in  their  eagerness  to  study  the  Scriptures,  and  ac- 
quire the  languages  in  which  they  are  written." 

However,  there  was  another  plague  at  Wittenberg,  besides 
the  intellectual  and  spiritual  one,  which  Luther  could  alone 
detect,  and,  in  the  middle  of  August,  the  university,  as  before, 
was  removed  to  Jena.  Melancthon  followed  with  his  scholars. 
Jonas  fled  from  the  contagion.  Luther  remained  at  his  post  in 
the  deserted  town.  His  health  was  very  infirm ;  but,  in  the 
absence  of  his  friends,  he  put  his  own  admonitions  in  practice, 
maintained  a  cheerful  face,  and  scared  away  the  devil  with 
music,  mirth,  and  good  cheer.  In  September,  the  degree  of 
Doctor  was  to  be  conferred,  and  the  Professors  intended  to 
return  for  a  day  or  two  for  the  occasion.  Luther  prepared 
the  theses  for  disputation,  and  provided  a  handsome  enter- 
tainment. Jonas  was  to  send  a  supply  of  game  and  fowl, 
and  a  dollar  was  sent  to  him  for  this  purpose;  and  Kate 
brewed  her  best  ale,  to  the  joy  of  her  husband,  whose  stock 
of  his  favourite  beverage  had  for  some  time  before  been  run 
dry.     The  19th  October  was  the  twenty-third  anniversary  of 


288  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1535.  Luther's  own  promotion  to  the  academical  rank  of  Doctor,  and 
he  was  invited  by  Kate  to  a  repast,  which  she  had  prepared  in 
commemoration  of  the  day.  He  wrote  with  great  glee  to  his 
friends  of  the  intended  feast :  "  I  hope/'  he  adds,  "  that  I 
shall  not  survive  another  anniversary,  but  shall  enter  heaven 
this  year.  Amen."  The  plague  had  now  revealed  itself  un- 
mistakeably  ;  in  one  house  husband  and  wife  had  both  fallen 
victims  to  it,  and  Matthesius  relates  that  Luther  at  once  took 
the  orphan  children  into  the  Augustine  convent,  and  smiled 
when  he  was  told  that  he  was  tempting  God.  About  this 
time  he  writes  to  his  friends — "  My  charioteer  has  been 
struck  from  her  seat ;"  the  plague  was  suspected  to  be  at  the 
root  of  Kate's  malady,  but  it  turned  out  to  be  no  more  than 
the  fever  to  which  she  was  subject. 

Luther's  lectures  on  the  Epistle  to  the  Galatians,  taken 
down  from  his  lips  by  some  of  his  audience,  were  published 
this  year ;  but  though  his  mental  vigour  continued  unim- 
paired, his  application  was  no  longer  what  it  had  been ;  he 
had  ceased  to  read  Latin,  and  confined  his  attention  to 
Hebrew,  and  the  German  books  and  poems  of  the  day,  which 
he  carefully  studied  from  love  of  the  national  literature,  and 
also  with  a  view  to  perfecting  his  translation  of  the  Scriptures. 
His  interest  in  the  diffusion  of  Christianity  led  him  to  trace 
the  triumphs  of  the  Emperor  over  the  Saracens  in  Africa  with 
zealous  interest,  and  he  expressed  his  hope  that  the  arms  of 
Charles  would  not  pause  in  their  career  of  victory  until  Con- 
stantinople had  been  wrested  from  the  Mussulman,  and  re- 
united with  the  western  Empire.  On  the  other  hand,  the 
decease  of  Clement  VII.,  which  had  taken  place  on  the  25th 
September  in  the  foregoing  year,  is  unnoticed  in  Luther's 
correspondence.  Yet  the  elevation  of  Cardinal  Farnese, 
under  the  title  of  Paul  III.,  to  St.  Peter's  chair,  marked  an 
entire  change  of  policy  and  a  new  era  in  Romanism.     The 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  289 

new  Pontiff  created,  at  his  elevation,  a  number  of  cardinals,  1535. 
all  of  them  more  or  less  disposed  to  a  reform  of  abuses,  and  a 
reconciliation  with  the  Protestants ;  and  the  principal  person 
among  the  newly  elected,  was  Contareni  the  Venetian,  a  firm 
maintainer  of  Luther's  sentiments  on  justification  by  faith 
alone,  and  the  spiritual  bondage  of  the  will.  It  was  not  long 
before  Paul  III.  adopted  measures  to  arrange  the  long-agitated 
question  of  a  council;  and  the  Elector  communicated  to 
Luther  the  information  which  had  reached  him  on  the  subject. 
Luther,  however,  retained  his  incredulity.  He  replied,  "  I 
am  like  unbelieving  Thomas ;  I  can  never  credit  the  Pope's 
sincerity,  unless  I  put  my  hand  in  the  side  and  feel  the  nail 
prints.  A  council  really  free  and  Christian,  I  should  welcome 
with  joy,  but  such  a  council  the  Pope  can  never  summon.  To 
do  so  would  be  to  renounce  his  Papacy." 

However,  on  Saturday  the  6th  November,  Verger,  the 
nuncio  of  his  Holiness,  with  twenty-one  horses  and  an  ass, 
arrived  at  Wittenberg,  and  was  honourably  received  by  the 
Prefect  of  Saxony,  and  lodged  in  the  castle.  The  nuncio's 
instructions  were  to  offer  a  council  without  any  conditions; 
but  it  was  hinted  that  he  might,  if  circumstances  should  war- 
rant it,  suggest  Mantua  as  the  fittest  place  for  meeting 
within  the  Imperial  dominions :  but  his  main  efforts  were  to 
be  directed  to  removing  every  suspicion  of  the  insincerity  of 
the  Pontiff's  professions  on  this  long  debated  question.  There 
was,  however,  one  condition  carefully  concealed,  but  in  itself 
tantamount  to  all  the  rest,  which  the  Pope  could  never 
relinquish :  viz.,  that  the  decisions  of  former  councils,  par- 
ticularly of  more  recent  ones,  must  be  deemed  sacred.  The 
very  evening  of  the  nuncio's  arrival,  Luther  was  invited  to 
sup  with  him ;  but  he  declined  the  invitation  for  that  even- 
ing, and  agreed  to  breakfast  at  the  castle  the  next  morning. 
Sunday  morning,  accordingly,  he  sent  for  his  barber,  and 

VOL.  II.  u 


290  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1535.  informed  him  with  a  smile,  that  he  had  been  summoned 
to  wait  upon  the  nuncio  of  the  most  Holy  Father,  and 
he  was  very  anxious  to  appear  in  his  best  looks,  and  to 
seem  as  youthful  as  possible,  that  his  adversaries  might 
say,  "Luther  has  yet  a  long  time  to  live."  After  his 
hair  had  been  arranged,  the  Reformer  equipped  himself 
in  his  best  attire,  and  put  a  gold  chain,  a  present  from  the 
Elector,  round  his  neck.  Master  Henry,  the  barber,  objected, 
that  such  costly  array  would  give  offence.  "  It  is  for  that  I 
wear  it,"  Luther  replied ;  "  they  have  offended  us  more  than 
enough :  this  is  the  way  to  deal  with  serpents  and  foxes." 
Ascending  the  carriage,  which  had  been  sent  from  the  castle 
to  fetch  him,  and  having  Bugenhagen  seated  by  his  side,  he 
exclaimed,  "  Behold  the  German  Pope,  and  Cardinal  Bugen- 
hagen; this,  too,  is  the  work  of  God  !"  His  reception  was 
most  courteous  from  the  nuncio,  whom  in  return  he  greeted 
with  great  politeness,  but  with  none  of  the  ceremonial  respect 
generally  paid  to  a  papal  emissary.  Luther  insisted  that 
"  the  Pope  was  not  in  earnest  in  desiring  a  council.  He 
was  in  joke;  but  even  if  a  council  should  meet,  the  matter 
for  deliberation  would  be  of  the  most  frivolous  kind ;  they 
would  talk  about  tonsures  and  copes  and  such  like  fools'-play, 
and  omit  the  essentials  of  Christianity,  justification  by  faith 
alone,  and  the  unity  of  spirit  and  of  faith."  "  And  yet,"  he 
continued,  "  of  these  points  of  doctrine  we  are  assured  by  the 
Spirit  of  God,  and  need  no  council  to  enhance  our  cer- 
tainty :  but  it  is  important  that  the  true  doctrine  should 
reach  even  to  the  Papists ;  so  come,  if  you  will,  call  a  council, 
and  by  God's  grace  I  will  appear  at  it,  at  the  peril  of  being 
burnt." 

Nuncio. — "  Where  would  you  wish  the  council  to  meet?" 
Luther. — "Anywhere;    at    Mantua,  Padua,   Florence,    or 
where  you  like." 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  291 

Nuncio. — "  What !   would  you  assent  to  Bologna  V  1535. 

Luther. — "  In  whose  territory  is  Bologna  ?" 
Nuncio. — "  It  belongs  to  his  Holiness  the  Pope." 
Luther. — "  Indeed  !  Good  Heavens  !  What !  has  the  Pope 
succeeded  in  getting  Bologna  too  within  his  grasp  ?     Well,  I 
will  go  even  to  Bologna." 

Nuncio. — "  But  what  should  you  say  if  the  Pope  himself 
were  to  come  to  Wittenberg  ?" 

Luther. — "  We  should  all  give  him  a  hearty  welcome." 
Nuncio. — "  Would  you  have  him  come  with  an  army,  or 
without  an  army  ?  " 

Luther. — "  Just  as  he  might  prefer.  Come  as  he  would, 
we  should  welcome  him." 

The  conversation  now  turned  to  the  consecration  of  minis- 
ters, and  Luther  pointed  to  Bugenhagen  as  the  Bishop  of 
Wittenberg,  consecrated  by  the  Wittenberg  Presbytery.  A 
private  interview  followed  this  more  public  one,  and  the 
Reformer  maintained  his  doctrine  against  a  good  deal  of 
flattery,  and  implied  promises  of  promotion,  even  to  the  papal 
chair  itself,  declaring  "  that  it  was  more  likely  that  the 
nuncio  and  the  Pontiff  would  embrace  the  evangelical  faith, 
than  that  he  himself  should  ever  forsake  it."  And  these  words 
proved  in  part  prophetical,  for  Verger  subsequently  became  a 
Lutheran.  But  the  nuncio  was  in  haste  to  be  gone ;  he  had 
suddenly  arrived,  and  he  as  suddenly  departed.  "  He  flies," 
Luther  said ;  "  he  does  not  ride."  The  nuncio,  as  he 
mounted  his  horse,  smiled  on  the  Reformer,  as  he  said  to 
him,  "  Be  sure  and  be  ready  for  the  council."  "  Do  not 
fear,"  Luther  answered,  "  I  shall  bring  my  neck."  Luther 
wrote  to  Jonas,  "  I  played  Luther  during  the  whole  break- 
fast, and  answered  the  nuncio  in  terms  most  Verger-like." 
The  nuncio  wrote  to  Rome,  of  his  interview  with  the 
Reformer,  in  strong  terms  of  contempt  for  his  rudeness  and 

u  2 


292  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1535.  insolence.  From  Wittenberg  the  nuncio  urged  his  way 
with  all  haste  to  the  Margrave  of  Brandenburg,  and  thence 
prosecuted  his  route  to  Prague,  and  on  the  last  day  of 
November  had  an  audience  of  the  Elector  of  Saxony,  who 
had  reached  that  city  on  his  return  journey  from  Vienna, 
where,  in  accordance  with  the  stipulations  of  the  Cadan 
peace,  he  had  received  investiture  at  the  hands  of  Ferdi- 
nand. Verger,  with  every  protestation  of  sincerity,  made 
John  Frederic  the  offer  of  a  "  free,  pious,  universal,  and  pure 
council :  the  mode  of  the  proceedings/'  he  said,  "  would  be 
dictated  by  the  Holy  Ghost  when  the  council  met ;"  and  he 
stated  his  conviction  that  "  the  Protestants  had  done  right  in 
refusing  the  former  proposals  for  a  council."  John  Frederic 
deferred  his  final  answer  until  it  could  be  given  conjointly 
with  his  Schmalkald  allies.  This  alliance,  which  now  num- 
bered fourteen  princes,  two  counts,  and  twenty-two  cities, 
met  shortly  afterwards  at  Schmalkald,  and  took  into  con- 
sideration the  nuncio's  written  propositions,  offering  a 
council  without  any  express  condition,  excepting  the  place 
of  meeting,  which,  it  was  suggested,  should  be  Mantua, 
the  fury  of  the  Anabaptists  and  Sacramentarians  being  made 
an  objection  against  holding  it  in  Germany.  On  the  21st 
December,  the  Protestant  answer  was  given  in  rejection  of 
the  offer.  "  How  was  it,"  the  Schmalkald  league  inquired, 
"  that  enmity  and  persecution  still  dogged  the  heels  of  the 
evangelical  preachers  ?  No  council  could  be  free  unless  it 
were  held  on  German  ground,  the  form  of  proceedings  duly 
arranged,  and  the  Pope  emphatically  excluded  from  being 
either  judge  or  referee.  A  council  was  not  intended  to  be 
merely  a  pontifical  or  sacerdotal  tribunal ;  it  appertained  to 
the  Emperor,  to  Kings,  Princes,  and  Rulers,  to  amend  the 
false  worship  and  doctrines  of  Popery." 

1536.  Luther  was  in  very  feeble  health  at  this  period.     In  Janu- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  293 

ary  a  severe  attack  of  cold  and  hoarseness  incapacitated  him  1536. 
for  his  public  duties,  and  interfered  even  with  his  correspond- 
ence. But  early  in  the  year  the  University  was  recalled 
from  Jena ;  this  was  a  source  of  great  joy,  and  soon  afterwards 
its  endowments  were  increased  by  the  appropriation  of  the 
funds  of  All  Saints  Cathedral  to  educational  uses.  The 
annual  stipends  both  of  Luther  and  of  Melancthon  were  thus 
raised  from  200  to  300  florins,  and  the  former,  in  considera- 
tion of  his  past  services,  and  many  and  increasing  infirmities, 
was  exempted  from  the  burden  of  lecturing,  and  from  all 
other  academical  functions.  But  Luther  was  so  far  restored 
to  health  at  the  end  of  February,  that  he  was  able  to 
be  the  Elector's  guest  at  Lochau,  and  on  Quinquagesima 
Sunday,  the  27th,  to  preach  before  him  and  his  court,  and  the 
same  evening  perform  the  ceremony  of  uniting  in  marriage 
Philip,  Duke  of  Pomerania,  and  Maria,  the  Elector's  sister. 
It  is  related  that  by  some  accident  one  of  the  spousal  rings 
slipped  from  his  fingers,  and  rolled  along  the  chapel  floor. 
Luther  exclaimed  with  emotion,  "  Satan  !  Satan  !  but  thou 
shalt  not  attain  thy  wish,"  and  then  turning  to  the  princely 
couple  he  pronounced  with  great  emphasis  the  benediction, 
"  Increase  and  multiply."  It  was  customary  that  a  blessing 
should  be  prayed  for  on  the  wedded  pair  the  morning  after 
the  marriage,  but  Luther  was  prevented  from  the  discharge 
of  this  duty  ;  in  the  interval  he  had  been  suddenly  seized  with 
a  swooning  fit,  and  Bugenhagen  acted  as  his  substitute. 

The  Reformer  had  often  said,  that  if  union  on  the  subject 
of  the  Lord's  Supper  could  be  accomplished  between  German 
Protestants,  he  should  then  be  able  with  joy  to  say,  "Lord, 
now  lettest  thou  thy  servant  depart  in  peace."  Endeavours 
for  this  important  union  had  never  for  a  moment  slumbered. 
In  153^,  a  conference  between  the  Divines  of  the  two  parties 
had  been  held  at  Cassel,  and  had  been  attended  by  Melanc- 


294  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1536.  thon.  In  the  October  of  1535,  Luther  had  himself  addressed 
separate  letters  to  the  preachers  of  Strasburg,  Augsburg, 
Ulm,  and  Eslingen,  inviting  them  to  a  conference,  and  he  had 
communicated  with  John  Frederic  on  the  same  subject.  The 
cities,  with  the  jealousy  of  democratic  bodies,  had  objected  to 
the  Princes  being  mixed  up  with  the  affair  at  all ;  but  Luther 
replied,  that  the  approval  of  the  Princes  must  have  the  effect 
of  giving  to  the  projected  union  greater  stability  :  if,  however, 
the  Princes  should  be  unwilling  to  bear  their  share  in  the  mat- 
ter, that  should  not  stand  in  the  way  of  achieving  such  a  bless- 
ing as  concord.  Luther  proposed  in  the  first  instance,  Eisenach 
as  the  place  of  meeting;  but  as  the  time  approached,  he 
found  himself  ' '  still  faint  and  worn  with  his  last  illness,"  and 
requested,  in  a  letter  to  Capito,  that  the  theologians  of  the 
cities  would  not  refuse  to  come  as  far  as  Grimma,  three  miles 
beyond  Leipsic.  But  even  so,  he  feared  that  the  state  of  his 
health  would  prevent  his  attendance ;  but  in  that  case,  said 
he,  "  I  shall  be  able  to  send  and  receive  letters  every  day." 
In  fact,  his  strength  proved  too  feeble  even  for  a  journey  to 
Grimma ;  and  the  theologians  paid  him  the  tribute  of  respect 
to  extend  their  travels  to  Wittenberg  itself,  which  some  of 
them  were  curious  to  see,  where,  on  the  22nd  May,  the 
conference  was  opened.  Several  of  the  Lutheran  preachers 
had  joined  the  Oberland  theologians  at  the  different  towns 
they  passed  through,  and  by  this  means  the  controverted 
points  were  familiarly  talked  over  in  the  friendly  discussions 
of  fellow  travellers,  the  explanations  of  Myconius  and  Menius 
cleared  away  difficulties,  and  before  arriving  at  Wittenberg, 
the  way  to  harmony  had  been  made  plain.  Melancthon 
could  hardly  believe  the  good  news  which  Myconius  and  his 
other  friends  told  him,  and  took  them  to  Luther ;  and  the 
Sunday,  evening  of  their  arrival  the  theologians  supped  at  the  Augus- 
May  21.  ^ne  conveut^  and  the  conversation  was  protracted  till  mid- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MAKTIN    LUTHER.  295 

night.  The  next  day  Capito  and  Bucer,  at  seven  o'clock  in  1536. 
the  morning,  paid  a  visit  to  Luther,  and  gave  into  his  hands  y 
a  statement  of  their  doctrines.  At  three  o'clock  in  the 
afternoon  Bucer  and  Capito  returned :  the  principal  mem- 
bers of  the  Lutheran  party  were  also  present.  Luther  was 
resolved  that  nothing  should  be  done  except  on  free  convic- 
tion; he  stated  that  he  would  not  touch  on  other  points  of 
Christian  doctrine  until  concord  had  been  attained  on  the 
Lord's  Supper  ;  that  the  question  was  not  about  words ;  the 
true  doctrine  was,  that  "  the  bread  is  the  body  of  Christ, 
given  and  received  in  hand  and  mouth,  as  well  by  the  god- 
less as  the  godly."  He  condemned  the  epistles  of  Zwingle 
and  (Ecolampadius,  recently  published,  and  warned  Bucer 
and  his  adherents  to  ' '  act  sincerely  as  in  the  sight  of  God, 
without  guile."  He  required  them  to  renounce  their  former 
error ;  and  as  they  had  been  for  some  time  advancing  step 
by  step  towards  the  truth,  so  as  to  believe,  first,  that  the 
elements  were  spiritually  the  body  and  blood  of  Christ,  then, 
that  they  were  Christ's  true  and  natural  body  to  his  faithful 
followers,  so  now  to  acknowledge  plenarily  that  "  the  godless 
as  well  as  the  godly  takes  in  his  heart  and  with  his  mouth,  the 
true  body  and  blood  of  Christ."  On  the  23rd  the  discussion 
was  resumed;  and  Luther  demanded,  first  of  Bucer,  and 
then  of  each  of  the  other  theologians  of  Bucer's  party,  a 
declaration  of  his  faith  on  the  Sacrament  of  the  Lord's 
Supper.  Bucer  stated,  and  the  rest  concurred  in  his  state- 
ment, that  "  the  true  body  and  the  true  blood  of  Christ  are 
in  the  Lord's  Supper ;"  and  that  "  the  Sacrament  depends 
not  on  the  worthiness  or  unworthiness  of  the  partaker,  but 
on  the  word  of  God."  Luther  and  the  divines  of  his 
side  withdrew  to  a  private  apartment,  and  it  was  determined 
"  as  out  of  one  mouth  "  to  propose  further  the  explicit  ques- 
tion, whether  "  as  the  name  of  God,  used  by  an  infidel,  is 


296  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1536.  yet  God's  name,  and  the  Lord  Jesus,  kissed  by  Judas  the 
traitor,  is  yet  the  Lord  Jesus,  so  they  held  the  body  and 
blood  of  Christ,  received  by  an  unbeliever,  to  be  still  the 
body  and  blood  of  Christ."  They  returned,  and  Luther, 
with  solemnity  and  earnestness  graven  on  every  feature  of 
his  countenance,  put  this  question.  The  reply  was  given  in 
the  affirmative :  and  then  Luther,  addressing  Bucer  and 
his  friends  with  "  My  lords  and  brethren,"  stated  that  they 
"  owned  and  took  them  for  dear  brothers  in  Christ."  Luther 
and  Bucer  shook  hands,  and  after  them  all  the  theologians 
of  both  sides  clasped  one  another's  hands,  and  "  with  God- 
fearing supplications "  thanked  God  for  unity  in  the  faith. 
Bucer  and  Capito  wept  for  joy.  The  next  morning  agree- 
ment was  attained  on  Baptism,  as  "  the  laver  of  regenera- 
tion," on  absolution,  school  discipline,  &c.  On  the  25th  the 
Formula  of  Concord  drawn  up  by  Melancthon  was  read 
aloud;  and  it  was  decided  that  not  only  those  present,  but 
also  the  absent,  should  be  invited  to  append  their  signatures  ; 
and  in  the  evening  Luther  preached  from  Mark  xvi.  15,  "  Go 
ye  into  all  the  world,  and  preach  the  gospel  to  every  creature." 
,c  I  had  often,"  Myconius  says,  "heard  Luther  preach  before, 
but  this  time  it  seemed  as  if  it  was  not  Luther  who  spoke, 
but  God  himself  thundered  his  word  from  heaven.""* 

The  time  from  the  close  of  the  conference  to  the  departure 
of  Bucer  and  his  friends,  was  a  gala  season  at  Wittenberg. 
The  churches  resounded  with  the  Word  of  God.  The 
Oberland  theologians  and  the  Wittenberg  doctors  preached 
in  turn.  In  the  evening  of  the  day  that  Bucer  preached,  he 
supped  with  Luther.  It  is  related  that  in  the  presence  of 
the   assembled    guests,    Luther   congratulated   him   on    his 

*  See,  for  the  whole  transaction,  the  accounts  of  Myconius  and  of 
Bernard,  pastor  of  Frankfort,  Walch.  xvii.  p.  2533 — 599 ;  Bucer's 
Letter,  Id.  p.  2565,  De  Wctte,  iv.  p.  691—4;  Bret,  iv,  p.  75—599. 


THE    LI1E    OF    MARTIN     LUTHER.  297 

sermon — "  He  had  made  an  admirable  discourse ;  yet/'  he  1536. 
added,  "  I  am  the  better  preacher  of  the  two."  The  com- 
pany seemed  surprised  by  the  frank  avowal.  Bucer  at 
once  assented,  that  "  of  course  Luther  was  much  the  better 
preacher  of  the  two."  "  Do  not  mistake  me/'  Luther  re- 
plied ;  "  I  am  but  a  worm,  and  have  never  in  my  life  delivered 
such  a  discourse  as  I  heard  from  you  to-day.  But  whenever 
I  preach,  I  make  a  point  of  observing  what  kind  of  audience 
I  have  to  address,  and  suit  whatever  I  may  say  to  their  feel- 
ings and  understanding.  Now  you,  Bucer,  soar  too  high ; 
and,  however  acceptable  your  eloquence  may  be  to  the 
learned,  it  is  far  beyond  the  comprehension  of  the  multitude. 
A  preacher  should  resemble  the  mother,  who,  when  her  infant 
cries,  bares  her  breast,  and  gives  it  the  natural  milk." 

And  thus  the  chapter  in  the  history  of  Luther's  life,  which 
had  begun  in  the  dark  clouds  and  portentous  thunders  of  the 
Augsburg  Diet,  closed  in  the  serene  air  and  pulpit  exhorta- 
tions of  the  Wittenberg  concord.  The  north  and  the  south  of 
Germany  were  now  united  in  doctrinal  harmony ;  and  all  the 
secular  princes  of  northern  Germany,  with  the  exception  only 
of  Duke  George  and  the  Duke  of  Brunswick,  had  become 
Lutheran.  Joachim  of  Brandenburg  had  died  in  July,  1535, 
and  the  new  Elector  was  well  inclined  to  the  Reformation, 
and  a  little  later  professed  himself  a  Protestant.  The  Mar- 
grave of  Baden  had  embraced  the  evangelical  faith.  The 
Hanse  towns  were  all  Lutheran.  In  Denmark,  a  Lutheran, 
the  Count  of  Holstein,  had  gained  the  throne  against  the 
Romanist  faction.  Wurtemburg  had  been  added  to  the 
evangelical  states ;  and  by  its  geographical  position,  as  well 
as  by  the  moderation  of  Duke  Ulric,  seemed  to  form  a  link 
between  the  German  and  Swiss  Protestants.  England,  by 
an  Act  of  Parliament  passed  in  1534,  had  rejected  the  yoke 
of  Rome;  and  in  the  following  year  the  royal  supremacy  "in 


298  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1530.  matters  ecclesiastical  as  well  as  civil "  had  been  established. 
The  King  of  France  and  the  King  of  England  were  both  in 
negotiation  with  the  Schmalkald  allies;  and  the  French  court 
had  entreated  a  visit  from  Melancthon  in  his  character  of 
theologian.  Even  in  the  citadel  of  Popery  the  promotion  of 
such  a  man  as  Contareni  to  the  cardinalate,  proved  the  same 
movement  to  be  going  forward,  which  had  long  engaged 
contemplative  minds  in  the  alcoves  of  Venice.  "  At  the  Diet 
of  Augsburg,"  said  Luther,  "our  princes  seem  devoured  and 
destroyed ;  they  were  really  only  the  more  vivified  and  invi- 
gorated. Everything  that  is  to  be  strong  must  begin  in 
weakness,  as  Christ  says,  'My  strength  in  your  weakness/ 
Thus  the  roots  of  those  trees  which  are  to  yield  timber  for 
houses,  machines,  and  ships,  are  at  first  only  slender  threads. 
The  kings  of  God,  who  shall  one  day  judge  angels,  are  sprung, 
as  Job  says,  from  a  drop  of  milk.  It  is  thus  God  works.  '  Be 
not  afraid,  I  have  overcome/  '  I  live,  and  you  shall  live/ 
On  the  other  hand,  man's  works  begin  in  strength  to  end  in 
folly." 


299 


CHAPTER   VIII. 

FROM  THE  30TH  MAY,  1536,   TO  THE  18TH  FEBRUARY,  1546. 

The  refusal  of  the  Protestants  to  the  overtures  made  them  1536. 
by  Paul  III.,  did  not  divert  the  Pontiff  from  his  policy  of 
summoning  a  council,  which  was  absolutely  necessary  to 
dissipate  the  general  idea  of  the  insincerity  of  the  Vatican, 
and  was  perseveringly  demanded  by  the  Emperor.  Charles, 
on  his  return  from  his  victorious  African  expedition,  had 
written  in  very  severe  terms  to  the  Protestants :  his  letter 
had  been  considered  by  the  Schmalkald  allies  in  the  spring 
of  1536,  and  a  deputation  sent  to  deliver  their  answer. 
But  now  war  with  France  was  recommenced,  and  it  was  no 
longer  expedient  or  practicable  to  carry  things  with  a  high 
hand,  and  rouse  the  enmity  of  his  German  subjects.  Charles 
therefore  passed  from  Naples  to  Rome,  had  an  interview  of 
seven  hours'  duration  with  the  Pope,  but  resisted  all  his 
solicitations  to  make  peace  with  Francis,  in  order  to  turn  his 
arms  with  effect  against  the  German  heretics :  he  could  not 
resign  Milan.  The  conversation  was  next  directed  to  the 
subject  of  the  council :  Mantua  was  retained  as  the  place  of 
meeting  against  the  Protestant  objections;  but  the  clause, 
"  according  to  the  usage  of  former  councils,"  was  struck  out. 
The  Emperor  was  desirous  that  the  diploma  convoking  the 
council  should  be  got  ready  and  published  immediately, 
whilst  he  remained  at  Rome  :  Paul  replied  that  it  could  not 
be  prepared  with  such  haste.  On  the  2nd  June,  however, 
the  council  was  convoked  to  meet  at  Mantua  on  the  23rd 


300  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1536.  May  in  the  ensuing  year,  "  for  the  destruction  of  heresy,  the 
peace  of  Christendom,  and  the  conversion  of  the  infidels."* 
And  from  his  camp  in  Savoy  in  July,  Charles  addressed  fresh 
letters  to  the  Protestants,  in  a  much  milder  strain  than  he 
had  used  previously.  The  Romanist  Princes  were  elated  by 
the  long-promised  council  being  at  last  convoked.  Duke 
George  was  writing  "  a  big  book  about  the  Bishops/'  and  was 
full  of  hopes  that  their  irregularities  would  now  be  checked, 
and  decorous  manners  and  morality  of  life  would  again  adorn 
the  mitre.  "A  hard  task  this,"  Luther  said,  "to  make 
Satan  assent  to  God."  The  Reformer  commented  upon  the 
council,  as  follows :  "  In  this  Bull  of  Paul,  or  rather  of  the 
cardinals,  not  the  cardinal  virtues,  but  the  cardinals,  capitals, 
heads  of  Satan,  we  are  condemned  already."  "  The  Man- 
tuan  council  will  not  have  very  many  learned  men,  although 
it  will  greatly  outnumber  us  in  the  mules,  horses,  and  asses, 
carrying  the  greatest  asses  on  their  backs. " 

1537.  rj^g  Schmalkald  allies  met  very  early  in  the  spring  at 
Schmalkald,  to  deliberate  on  the  matter  of  the  council  now 
actually  summoned.  The  Wittenberg  theologians  were  to  be 
present,  and  the  principal  divines  from  other  parts  of  Ger- 
many were  also  to  be  in  attendance.  It  was  debated  whether 
the  papal  nuncio  should  be  allowed  to  appear  before  the 
alliance.  Luther  gave  his  answer  in  the  affirmative,  and  this 
point  was  conceded  against  the  judgment  of  John  Frederic. 
On  the  question,  which  was  again  mooted,  of  resistance  to  the 
Emperor,  Luther  signed  his  verdict,  that  "  if  the  Emperor,  in 
a  question  not  appertaining  to  the  civil  jurisdiction,  such  as 
the  acceptance  of  a  council,  should  appeal  to  force,  in  such  a 

*  In  another  Bull,  dated  the  23rd  September,  Paul  III.  committed 
the  Reformation  of  the  State  of  Eome,  "  the  head  of  Christendom, 
whence  all  other  Christians  are  wont  to  learn  good  morals  and  godly 
ways,"  to  five  cardinals  and  three  bishops. — Walch.  xvi.  p.  2322. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  301 

case  resistance  even  to  the  Emperor  would  be  allowable."  1537. 
He  was  also  requested  by  the  Elector  to  draw  up  some  theolo- 
gical articles,  to  serve  as  landmarks  how  far  the  Protestants 
might  yield,  and  within  what  lines  no  concession  must  be 
made.  Luther  described  the  Mass  in  these  articles  as  "  abomi- 
nable idolatry/'  and  stated  that  the  invocation  of  saints  was 
idolatrous,  and  that  all  that  came  out  of,  or  depended  upon 
the  Mass,  was  to  be  abhorred,  and  he  gave  characteristic 
prominence  to  the  merits  of  Christ,  and  justification  by  faith 
alone.  These  articles  were  copied  out  by  Spalatin  and  sub- 
scribed by  Luther  and  thirty-five  theologians,  and  on  the 
3rd  January  were  inclosed  by  Luther  to  the  Elector,  who 
pronounced  them  to  be  "  Christian,  pure,  and  plain." 

A  little  time  before,  Luther  had  been  suffering  from  the 
gravel  and  stone ;  but  after  a  long  prostration  of  strength, 
his  health  was  so  far  restored  that  he  was  able  to  undertake 
the  journey  to  Schmalkald  in  the  beginning  of  February, 
although  the  weather  was  very  cold.  On  the  2nd  February, 
Luther  and  his  fellow-travellers  reached  Altenburg,  and  were 
entertained  and  lodged  by  Spalatin,  whom  the  Reformer 
addressed  in  some  Latin  verses  on  the  occasion.  On  Sexa- 
gesima  Sunday,  the  4th,  Luther  preached  at  Weimar,  and 
complained,  the  attendants  of  the  papal  nuncio  being  among 
his  audience,  that  the  Kings  and  Bishops  were  greater  foes 
to  the  Gospel  than  the  Turks  :  and  on  the  Monday  following, 
the  Elector  took  the  road  to  Arnstadt,  and  Luther  the  road 
to  Gotha,  and  on  the  7th  made  his  last  day's  journey  to 
Schmalkald.  He  wrote  thence  on  the  9th,  that  the  Land- 
grave and  the  Duke  of  Wurtemburg  had  entered  the  town 
the  previous  day,  and  he  was  about  to  preach  before  the 
Princes  in  the  parish  church,  which  was  so  large  that  his 
voice  would  sound  like  "the  squeak  of  a  mouse."  It  is 
recorded  that  he  preached  three  times  at  Schmalkald,  but  the 


302  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1537.  last  time  in  the  Quaestor's  residence,  as  he  could  not  he  heard 
in  the  Church.*  He  continued  to  suffer  grievously  from  the 
stone ;  but  on  the  14th  he  writes  to  Jonas  that  "  St.  Valen- 
tine had  cured  him  that  night :  not  the  St.  Valentine,  the  idol 
of  Epileptics,  but  the  true  and  only  Valentine,  who  makes  all 
well  who  trust  in  Him."  "  He  and  his  friends,"  he  said, 
"  had  eaten  bread  with  the  Landgrave  and  the  Duke  of  Wur- 
temburg,  and  found  their  bakers  first-rate ;  and  they  had  drunk 
wine  with  the  deputies  of  Nuremberg."  This  Schmalkald 
convention,  or,  to  use  Luther's  term,  "  council,"  was  more 
numerously  attended  than  any  previous  meeting  of  the  Protes- 
tants :  besides  the  Princes,  the  deputies  of  upwards  of  twenty- 
six  cities  were  present,  and  the  theologians  numbered  thirty- 
five.  But  in  reference  to  the  deliberations,  Luther  warned 
the  Princes  not  to  regard  the  summoning  a  council  in  a 
serious  light  at  all,  for  it  was  not  seriously  meant ;  the  Bull 
was  a  lie.  True,  there  was  business  enough  to  employ  a 
council ;  the  Pope  and  his  cardinals  were  the  most  rapacious 
of  Church  plunderers  ;  the  Cardinal  of  Mentz  alone  held  three 
bishoprics  in  his  grasp ;  but,  when  such  were  the  mal-prac- 
tices  of  Ecclesiastics,  who  could  credit  that  they  were  sincere 
in  desiring  a  council  ?  "  Be  assured,"  he  said,  "  of  three 
things: — 1.  The  Pope  and  Luther  are  not  to  be  reconciled; 
2.  The  Mantuan  council  is  a  subterfuge;  3.  The  Cardinal 
of  Mentz  is  a  knave." 

On  the  25th  February,  Peter  Worst,  Bishop  of  Aix,  the 
nuncio,  appeared  in  Schmalkald,  and  presented  two  epistles 
from  the  Pope  to  John  Frederic,  which  the  Elector  refused  to 
receive,  and  the  nuncio  on  his  part  would  not  take  back 
again,  but  left  on  the  table.     A  somewhat  bitter  altercation 

*  Another  of  the  preachers  was  Urban  Regius,  who  preached  at 
great  length,  and  Luther  meeting  him  as  he  came  from  the  pulpit,  said 
smiling,     "  Hoc  neque  Urbanum  neque  Eegium  est/' 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  303 

followed,  which  has  afforded  Pallavicini  an  opportunity  to  1537. 
style  the  Schmalkald  convention  "  an  assembly  of  beasts,"  to 
which  Seckendorf  retorts,  that  it  would  have  deserved  the 
name,  if  credit  had  been  given  to  that  little  fox  or  ape  sent 
from  Rome.  The  nuncio,  in  his  arguments  with  the  Elector, 
accused  the  Protestants  of  schism,  and  cited  St.  Paul's  reproof 
of  the  Corinthians  :  "  Now  this  I  say,  Every  one  of  you  saith, 
I  am  of  Paul;  and  I  of  Apollos;  and  I  of  Cephas;  and  I  of 
Christ."  "  It  is  the  Church  of  Rome,"  the  Protestants 
replied,  which  says,  "  I  am  of  Cephas."  Some  of  the  Pro- 
testants were  for  acceding  to  the  council  conditionally,  that  is, 
if  the  Pope  were  not  judge;  but  the  majority  foresaw  that  the 
least  concession  would  be  turned  to  good  account  by  the 
Papists,  and  therefore  determined  to  reject  the  council 
entirely.  The  answer  of  the  alliance  was  given  on  the  2nd 
March,  and  complained  that  in  the  Bull  no  mention  was 
made  of  the  reform  of  ecclesiastical  abuses,  which  had  been 
acknowledged  by  Pope  Adrian;  that  the  Evangelicals  were 
branded  as  heretics,  and  so  their  cause  was  pre-judged;  that 
the  Pope  arrogated  the  office  of  judge,  whereas  his  true  cha- 
racter was  that  of  culprit ;  and  that  the  place  of  meeting  was 
beyond  the  limits  of  Germany.  The  Book  of  Renunciation 
was  published  on  the  5th  March,  and  was  translated  into 
various  languages,  and  forwarded  to  most  of  the  Princes  of 
Europe. 

As  regards  other  debated  points,  Vice-Chancellor  Held, 
the  Imperial  ambassador,  required  of  the  Protestants  either 
to  afford  aid  against  the  Turks,  or  to  succour  the  Emperor  in 
his  war  with  France.  They  refused  compliance,  unless  peace 
was  assured  them  at  home,  the  judicial  processes  before  the 
Imperial  Chamber  suspended,  and  liberty  granted  them  to 
receive  all  their  co-religionists  into  the  alliance.  The  am- 
bassador replied  with  so  much  harshness  as  to  determine  the 


304  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1537.  Princes  on  making  the  best  provision  they  could  for  their  own 
security.  They  renewed  negotiations  with  France,  and  ad- 
mitted Duke  Henry  of  Saxony,  brother  of  Duke  George,  into 
the  confederation.  Among  the  Protestants  themselves  there 
was  some  debate  on  doctrinal  points,  but  without  much 
heat  of  controversy ;  and  the  Swiss  Protestants  tendered 
proposals  by  Bucer,  with  a  view  to  concord  with  their  Ger- 
man brethren  on  the  subject  of  the  Lord's  Supper.  The 
convention  closed  with  the  publication  of  an  edict  respecting 
the  sufficient  maintenance  of  ministers,  and  the  endowment 
of  schools  and  hospitals,  to  which  the  sequestrated  Church 
property,  rescued  from  spoliation  according  to  a  petition  pre- 
ferred by  the  theologians,  was  to  be  devoted.  So  firm  was  the 
cohesion  between  the  members  of  the  alliance,  that  it  decided 
the  nuncio  and  the  Romanist  princes  to  form  a  similar  com- 
bination ;  and  Maimburg  dates  the  origin  of  the  Popish  league 
of  the  south  to  this  period,  although  it  was  not  actually  set 
on  foot  until  the  following  year. 

But  before  the  convention  broke  up,  Luther  had  been 
obliged  to  return  to  Wittenberg.  Melancthon  had  just  written 
to  f  Doctoress  Catherine  "  of  her  husband's  improved  health, 
Feb.  18.  and  Luther  had  himself  preached  on  the  Sunday  morning  what 
Melancthon  terms  a  "  very  clear  sermon,"  when,  on  the  even- 
ing of  the  same  day,  he  was  seized  with  a  violent  attack  of  the 
stone,  and  endured  such  agonies  as  he  had  never  suffered 
before.  The  Elector  sent  to  Erfurth  for  the  physician  George 
Sturtz,  and  all  the  Princes  were  unremitting  in  their  attentions 
to  the  Reformer.  The  Duke  of  Wurtemburg  prescribed  for 
him  juniper-berries  boiled  in  wine  and  water.  The  Landgrave 
of  Hesse,  at  the  very  time  that  the  nuncio  was  waiting  to  have 
an  interview  with  him,  quitted  his  lodging,  under  the  nuncio's 
eyes,  to  make  inquiries  for  Luther.  The  Elector  of  Saxony 
left  nothing  untried  that  was  likely  to  add  to  the  Reformer's 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  305 

comfort,  or  to  serve  as  the  means  of  his  recovery.  "  If  it  is  1537. 
God's  will  that  you  should  die/'  he  said  to  Luther,  "your 
wife  shall  be  my  wife,  and  your  children  my  children  :  but  for 
his  name  and  word's  sake,  I  trust  God  will  be  gracious  to  us, 
dear  father,  and  grant  us  your  life."  Luther  replied,  that 
God's  will  was  the  "  all-best."  "  O,  thou  true  God,  my  Lord 
Jesus  Christ,"  he  ejaculated,  "thy  name  has  so  often  helped 
me,  help  me  now,  my  dear  God.  Thou  knowest  I  have  taught 
thy  word  with  truth  and  diligence.  If  it  be  for  the  glory  of 
thy  name,  make  me  better;  if  not,  close  my  eyes.  My  Lord 
Christ,  how  glorious  to  die  by  the  sword  for  thy  word  !  Now 
I  die  a  foe  to  thy  foes,  and  under  the  Pope's  ban.  I  thank 
thee  that  I  die  in  the  knowledge  of  thy  truth."  The  Elector 
turned  away  his  face  to  hide  his  tears.  On  the  26th  Feb- 
ruary, however,  Luther  was  so  far  better  that  John  Frederic 
sent  him  away  on  his  return  home  in  his  own  carriage,  in 
company  with  Sturtz  the  physician  and  his  intimate  friends 
Bugenhagen  and  Spalatin.  The  disease  had  been  aggravated 
by  solicitude  for  the  cause  of  the  Reformation ;  and  as  he 
was  leaving  Schmalkald  the  Reformer  looked  back  on  the 
building  in  which  the  confederates  held  their  sittings,  and 
exclaimed,  "  Our  Lord  God  fill  you  with  hatred  of  the  Pope." 
They  journeyed  along  a  hilly  track  towards  Tambach,  and 
reached  that  village  before  nightfall.  The  jolting  of  travelling, 
the  fresh  air  and  change  of  scene,  were  not  without  their 
service  on  Luther's  frame;  at  Tambach  he  relished  a  simple 
supper  and  drank  some  red  wine,  and  in  the  course  of  the 
night  he  experienced  considerable  relief,  and  wrote  to  his 
"heart- dearest  Philip,"  "This  Tambach  is  a  Phanuel  wherein 
God  has  appeared  to  me.  From  this  example  let  us  learn 
to  pray,  and  to  dare  to  expect  aid  from  heaven.  May  God 
trample  Satan  with  his  leagued  monsters  of  Rome  beneath 
his  feet !     Amen.     Given  the  third  hour  of  the  night."     The 

VOL.  II.  x 


306  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1537.  next  morning  Luther  wrote  to  Kate,  "  I  was  as  one  dead,  and 
commended  myself  *and  my  children  to  God  and  my  good 
lord,  as  if  I  should  never  behold  them  a^ain.  I  felt  sore  pity 
for  you,  and  had  no  hope  of  recovery;  but  prayers  have  been 
offered  to  God  so  fervently  for  me,  mixed  with  many  tears, 
that  God  has  shown  me  mercy,  and  I  feel  as  one  born  anew. 
Therefore  praise  God,  and  let  the  dear  children  and  cousin 
Lena  thank  the  true  Father.  It  is  only  of  his  mercy  that 
you  have  not  lost  me.  The  good  Prince  did  all  he  could,  and 
tried  his  very  utmost,  but  all  would  not  do  ;  even  your  skill 
would  have  done  nothing.  But  God,  through  the  prayers  of 
his  people,  has  wrought  wonders  upon  me  this  night.  I  write 
this  because  the  good  Prince  has  ordered  the  Prefect  to  send 
you  to  meet  me,  which  is  now  unnecessary :  God  has  so 
richly  holpen  me,  that  I  trust  soon  to  come  to  you  full 
of  joy.  We  shall  sleep  at  Gotha  to-night."  The  tidings 
of  Luther's  improvement  in  health  were  received  by  the 
Protestants  with  public  rejoicings,  and  by  command  of  the 
Princes,  thanksgivings  were  offered  to  God  in  the  church  of 
Schmalkald,  and  it  was  ordered  that  the  prayers  before 
appointed  should  be  continued  that  his  life  might  be  spared 
to  the  glory  of  God  and  the  comfort  of  his  Church. 

By  the  Elector's  wish  the  road  through  Erfurth  was  avoided 
on  account  of  the  ill-feeling  entertained  by  the  Archbishop  of 
Mentz  to  Luther,  and  the  road  through  Gotha  was  taken ; 
Gotha  was  reached  on  Thursday,  the  29th  February ;  and 
here  Bucer  and  Lycosthenes,  who  had  been  deputed  by  the 
Oberland  churches  to  the  Schmalkald  convention,  overtook  the 
Reformer,  and  placed  in  his  hands  the  letters  from  the  Swiss 
earnestly  entreating  unity  on  the  subject  of  the  Lord's  Supper. 
But  Luther  replied  that  unity  was  impossible  until  identity  of 
doctrine  and  belief  should  be  attained.  "  I  am  a  man/'  he 
said,  "  who  know   not  how   to  semble  or  dissemble."     At 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  307 

Gotha  the  malady  returned  with  so  much  force,  that  the  1537. 
Reformer  again  prepared  himself  for  immediate  death ;  and 
having  made  his  will  in  the  journey  from  Schuialkald,  gave  it 
into  Bugenhagen's  hand  with  his  last  prayer,  in  which  he 
thanked  God  that  he  had  given  him  strength  to  "  assail  the 
Papacy,  the  enemy  of  God,  of  Christ,  and  the  Gospel.  It 
must  be  the  consolation  of  his  dear  Kate,"  he  said,  "that 
they  had  lived  together  for  twelve  years  in  so  much  happiness. 
She  had  been  an  excellent  wife — nay,  more  than  a  wife,  a 
servant  to  him."  And  he  commended  her  and  his  children  to 
those  present.  "  Tell  the  Princes,"  he  continued,  "  to  trust 
God  as  regards  his  Gospel,  and  confidently  execute  what  the 
Holy  Spirit  may  suggest.  I  do  not  prescribe  them  any  par- 
ticular line  of  policy.  I  have  earnestly  committed  them  in 
prayer  to  the  Lord ;  and  although  they  are  wanting  in  some 
points  of  Christian  virtue,  I  trust  that  God  will  never  let 
them  relapse  into  papist  blasphemy."  After  a  few  words 
about  his  opponents,  whose  calumnies  he  had  intended  to 
answer  if  his  life  had  been  spared,  he  resigned  himself  to  the 
expected  stroke,  saying,  "  I  now  commend  my  soul  into  the 
hands  of  my  Father,  and  of  my  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  whom  I 
have  preached  and  confessed  on  earth.  Amen."  But  in  this 
extremity  deliverance  was  again  vouchsafed,  and  he  was  able 
to  return  to  Wittenberg  soon  afterwards,  although  in  the 
most  feeble  condition,  and  by  slow  degrees  regained  his  usual 
health  and  strength. 

In  the  year  1536,  a  memorable  conversation  had  passed  be- 
tween Luther  and  Melancthon  on  the  subject  of  justification 
and  good  works  :  Melancthon  questioning  whether  justifica- 
tion is  not  by  the  creation  of  the  new  man  in  the  heart,  not 
simply  by  faith,  but  by  all  the  gifts  and  virtues  of  the  Spirit ; 
and  such,  he  thought,  was  the  meaning  of  Augustin.  Luther, 
on  the  contrary,  affirmed  that  we  are  just  before  God  solely 

x  2 


308 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 


1537.  by  the  gratuitous  imputation  of  Christ's  righteousness  by  faith. 
"  We  are  not  justified  by  works  before  faith/'  Luther  said, 
"  nor  by  works  after  faith ;  but  we  are  accounted  just  through 
faith  the  gift  of  God,  and  the  justified  man  is  a  new  cha- 
racter, and  the  new  character  does  new  acts.      The  sun  is 
not  the  sun  because  it  shines,  but  because  it  is  the  sun  it 
must  shine;   the  Christian,  because  he  is   a  Christian,  must 
live  to  God's  glory."     In  his  sick  chamber  at  Schmalkald, 
Luther   had    lamented   to   John   Frederic   the   deviation   of 
Melancthon   and  others   from  the    strict   evangelical   creed, 
and   his   words    did  not  fall  on  deaf  ears.      In   the  follow- 
ing May,  when  Luther's  health  was  nearly  re-established, 
the  Elector  of  Saxony  was  at  Wittenberg,  and  by  the  mouth 
of  Brack  addressed  the  assembled  professors  to  the  following 
effect : — "  I  have  heard  with  pain  that  Melancthon  and  Cru- 
ciger  use  different  language  from  Luther  on  the  subject  of 
justification  and  good  works,  and  I  find  in  a  new  edition  of 
the  Augsburg  Confession,  that  a  change  of  terms  has  been 
made  without  the  consent  of  all  those  who  subscribed  that 
Confession,   which  is  utterly  unjustifiable.     If  such    things 
take  place  when  you,  Luther,  and  I  are  alive,  what  may  we 
not  expect  after  our  decease  ?"  and,  in  conclusion,  he  exhorted 
Luther  to  persist  in  upholding  the  pure  scriptural  faith  in  the 
university. 

During  the  latter  part  of  the  year  Luther  again  became 
Bugenhagen's  substitute  in  the  church  and  parish.  Bugen- 
hagen  had  been  summoned  to  Denmark,  and  was  chosen  to 
place  the  Danish  crown  on  the  head  of  the  Count  of  Holstein, 
and  declare  him  king,  under  the  title  of  Christian  III.,  and 
the  coronation  was  followed  by  very  important  ecclesiastical 
changes — the  displacement  of  the  bishops,  and  the  establish- 
ment of  the  Lutheran  worship  and  church  government 
throughout  Denmark.     The  chief  idea  in  Luther's  mind  con- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  309 

tinued  to  be  the  council,  and  lie  amused  himself  in  his  lighter  1537. 
moments  with  composing  his  "  Question  from  the  holy  order 
of  Card-players  to  the  Council  at  Mantua/'  and  with  bur- 
lesquing the  Romanist  fiction  of  the  donation  of  Constantine, 
and  the  legend  or  lie  of  St.  John  Chrysostom.  His  "  Preface 
to  the  Council  held  at  Gangra  in  Paphlagonia/'  and  his  Preface 
and  Epilogue  to  the  "  Letters  of  John  Huss,  written  from  his 
prison  at  Constance/'  were  more  serious  works  for  the  edifica- 
tion of  the  fathers  of  the  Mantuan  Council.  The  next 
year  he  enjoyed,  in  his  own  language,  "  a  sabbath  from  the  ^38. 
stone/'  and  was  not  vexed  so  much  as  usually  by  the  buffet- 
ings  of  Satan. 

The  most  remarkable  of  his  compositions  at  this  period 
are  his  comments  on  the  14th,  15th,  and  16th  chapters  of 
St.  John's  Gospel,  and  also  on  the  first  eighteen  chapters  of 
St.  Matthew.  "Philip  and  I,"  Luther  wrote  to  Jonas,  in 
April,  "  are  wearied  out  with  business  and  disputes  whilst  you 
are  absent.  According  to  my  time  of  life,  I  should  deserve 
my  discharge  and  the  liberty  of  spending  old  age  in  watching 
the  marvels  of  God  in  the  increase  of  trees,  flowers,  herbs,  and 
birds;  but  my  former  sins  do  not  permit  me  to  taste  such 
pleasure."  At  this  time  there  was  an  outburst  in  Wittenberg 
of  Antinomian  teaching,  led  by  one  of  Luther's  friends  and 
disciples.  It  will  be  remembered  that  John  Agricola,  of 
Eisleben,  had  impugned  Melancthon's  view  of  the  law  of 
Moses  as  given  in  his  Visitation  Book,  and  subsequently  he 
had  shown  himself  a  rival  to  Luther  himself,  by  choosing  the 
same  topics  to  treat  of  from  the  pulpit  as  those  recently 
handled  by  Luther,  as  though  to  outdo  the  great  Reformer. 
Small  in  stature,  big  with  importance,  his  walk,  his  voice, 
his  every  gesture  an  index  of  his  immoderate  vanity,  little 
Grickel,  as  Luther  called  him,  was  the  very  person  to  rush 
into  a  similar  eccentric  career  to  that  pursued  by  Carlstadt. 


310  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1538.  Luther  had  himself  before  requested  that  Agricola  would 
lecture  in  the  University,  and  in  1536  this  request  had  been 
complied  with ;  but  immediately  on  discovering  what  princi- 
ples he  maintained,  the  Reformer  addressed  a  letter  to  him 
directing  that  his  lectures  should  be  discontinued,  unless 
the  University  should  authorize  his  proceeding  with  them. 
Luther,  moreover,  at  once  set  to  work  to  counteract  the 
poisonous  errors  which  "little  Grickel"  had  been  disseminating. 
He  publicly  maintained  doctrines  diametrically  opposed  to 
Antinomianism  in  several  successive  disputations ;  and  in  the 
beginning  of  the  next  year  he  published  a  writing  in  the 
epistolary  form  "  Against  the  Antinomians."  "  Popery  itself," 
he  declared,  ' '  was  a  less  evil  than  a  heresy  which  separated 
justification  from  sanctification."  Luther's  courage  and 
exertions  increased  with  every  addition  to  his  trials.  "  I  am 
a  worn-out  old  man,"  said  he,  "  spent  with  toil ;  but  I  get 
young  again  every  day,  that  is,  new  sects  spring  up,  to  resist 
which  I  have  need  of  a  new  youth.  But  this  is  a  decisive 
proof  that  we  are  the  elect  of  Heaven,  and  have  the  true 
Word  of  God,  that  we  are  assailed  by  so  many  sects  springing 
up  from  amongst  ourselves,  to  say  nothing  of  the  Papists  and 
my  private  conflicts  with  Satan,  and  the  contempt  of  God's 
Word  amongst  us."  Somewhat  later,  Agricola  was  brought 
to  trial  for  his  heterodox  opinions,  by  the  Elector  of  Saxony ; 
but  before  the  verdict  had  been  pronounced,  Agricola  made 
his  escape  to  Berlin,  whither  he  had  been  invited  by  the 
Elector  of  Brandenburg.  Efforts  were  made  by  that  Prince 
to  reconcile  Agricola  and  the  Wittenberg  theologians,  and 
it  ended  in  a  recantation  by  the  former  of  his  dangerous 
tenets,  which  Luther  accepted  "with  much  distrust  of  its 
sincerity." 

Luther  was  also  much  annoyed  at  this  time  by  the  appear- 
ance of  some  scurrilous  verses  from  the  pen  of  Simon  Lemnius, 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  311 

a  member  of  a  small  knot  of  poets  of  no  very  decent  fame,  to  1538. 
which  Sabinus,  the  son-in-law  of  Melancthon,  likewise  be- 
longed. The  verses  in  question  were  more  complimentary  to 
the  Elector  of  Mentz,  and  the  leaders  of  the  Romanist  party, 
than  to  the  Elector  of  Saxony  or  Dr.  Luther.  Melancthon 
himself  was  rector  of  the  University  during  the  summer  in 
which  these  verses  made  their  appearance,  and  the  fault  of 
their  publication  was  therefore  imputed  by  many  to  him ;  but 
Philip  ingenuously  acknowledged  that  he  had  trusted  the 
statements  of  his  son-in-law  as  to  the  innocence  of  the  verses, 
without  having  himself  read  them.  But  when  the  affair 
created  a  hubbub,  Lemnius  made  his  escape  from  Wittenberg 
by  the  aid,  as  it  was  supposed,  of  Sabinus,  which  involved 
Melancthon  in  fresh  suspicion ;  and,  after  his  flight,  Lemnius 
published  a  new  edition  of  his  lampoons,  in  which  no  measure 
was  observed  in  his  abuse  of  the  members  of  the  evangelical 
phalanx.  Luther  took  up  the  matter  with  great  warmth,  and 
placarded  a  counter- writing  entitled  "A  Programme  against 
the  infamous  Verses  of  Simon  Lemnius,"  in  which,  from  the 
"  scandalous  poetaster, "  he  passed  to  the  Elector  of  Mentz 
himself,  and  painted  his  character  in  his  most  severely  truth- 
ful style.  "  To  praise  Bishop  Albert  was  to  make  a  Saint 
out  of  the  devil :  the  Dirt-bishop  was  a  false  perjured  man." 
The  whole  house  of  Brandenburg  was  roused  by  this  publica- 
tion. The  Duke  of  Prussia  expostulated  with  Luther :  the 
Elector  of  Brandenburg  complained  to  John  Frederic :  even 
the  Landgrave  of  Hesse  reprobated  Luther's  vehemence.  "  It 
is  not  meet,"  John  Erederic  replied  to  the  Landgrave,  ' '  either 
to  forget  Luther's  merits,  or  the  demerits  of  the  Elector  of 
Mentz."  The  Reformer,  in  his  defence,  quoted  the  saying  of 
a  prince  of  the  house  of  Brandenburg,  that  he  would  not 
acknowledge  the  Archbishop  as  a  kinsman.  The  affair  was 
closed  by  Lemnius  being  formally  expelled  from  the  University, 


312  THE    LTFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1538.  and  a  mild  admonition  from  the  Elector  to  Luther   to  use 
more  caution  in  his  censures  for  the  future. 

The  Mantuan Council  had  been  first  prorogued  on  the  ground 
that  the  Duke  of  Mantua  would  not  allow  the  Pope  any  legal 
jurisdiction  in  his  city,  and  then  had  been  transferred  to 
Vicenza,  where,  at  last,  in  the  summer  of  1538,  three  cardinals 
made  their  appearance.  Luther's  incredulity  of  the  Pope's  sin- 
cerity continued  as  strong  as  ever.  It  could  not,  however,  be 
disguised  that  the  proclamation  of  a  council  by  Paul  III.,  and 
the  rejection  of  it  by  the  Protestants,  had  changed  the  relation 
in  which  the  latter  stood  to  the  Emperor.  The  Nuremberg 
peace  had  only  been  provisional,  till  a  council  should  be  sum- 
moned. The  peace  of  Cadan  had  not  even  been  assented  to 
by  Charles  himself,  but  was  simply  an  agreement  between  the 
Schmalkald  allies  and  Ferdinand.  At  the  same  time,  there- 
fore, that  the  Protestants  had  repudiated  the  proposed  council, 
they  had  defied  the  power  not  only  of  Rome,  but  of  the 
Emperor;  and  allowing  that  the  whole  business  of  the  council 
should  begin  and  end  in  duplicity,  still  the  crisis  was  an  im- 
portant one  for  the  Reformation.  Under  these  circumstances 
a  meeting  of  the  Schmalkald  allies  was  held  at  Brunswick 
towards  the  end  of  March,  to  deliberate  on  topics  of  common 
interest,  and  to  take  into  consideration  the  demands  of  the 
Emperor  for  assistance  against  the  Turks,  who  were  still 
hovering  on  the  Austrian  frontiers,  and  in  the  preceding  year 
had  inflicted  a  decisive  defeat  on  Ferdinand.  Luther  deputed 
Dr.  Jonas  as  his  representative  to  this  convention ;  but  he 
had  given  his  own  opinion  very  decidedly  to  the  Elector  that 
the  Emperor's  demand  ought  to  be  complied  with.  "  His 
Grace,"  he  said,  "  must  consider  the  poor  multitude  exposed 
to  the  fury  of  the  Turks,  and  it  could  not  be  expected  the 
Papist  arms  alone  would  have  any  good  fortune,  unless  his 
succours  should  go  with  them,  as  Jehoshaphat  went  with  the 


THE    LIKE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  313 

army  of  Ahab :  his  conscience  would  smite  hini  to  leave  his  1538. 
brethren  to  suffer ;  they  ought  rather,  like  good  comrades — 
man  and  wife,  father  and  children — to  bear  the  sweet  and 
the  sour  together,  and  God  would  know  how  to  find  his  own 
even  in  death."  But  such  advice  was  far  from  being  accept- 
able to  the  Schmalkald  allies ;  they  looked  around  and  saw 
danger  on  every  side,  and  determined  to  send  .fresh  embassies 
to  the  kings  of  England  and  France,  to  enlist  their  support 
and  co-operation  in  withstanding  the  designs  of  the  Emperor 
and  Pontiff. 

At  the  same  time  the  Papists  were  not  idle.  They  met 
first  at  Nuremberg,  and  then  at  Spires ;  and  under  the  fos- 
tering wing  of  the  Vice-Chancellor  Held,  framed  a  holy  league 
which  was  signed  at  Nuremberg  the  10th  June.  Henry  Duke 
of  Brunswick  was  appointed  leader  of  this  league  in  Lower, 
and  the  Dukes  of  Bavaria  in  Upper  Germany;  its  objects 
specifically  embraced  mutual  assistance  to  prevent  the  evan- 
gelical doctrines  from  entering  the  dominions  of  any  of  its 
members ;  although  intended  to  be  kept  a  profound  secret,  it 
soon  transpired,  and  added  to  the  alarm  of  the  Protestants. 
Another  and  a  yet  greater  danger  seemed  to  threaten  the  Pro- 
testants from  the  reconciliation  which  took  place  about  the 
same  time  between  the  Emperor  and  the  French  monarch. 
Paul  III.,  besides  his  pretensions  to  reforming  the  Papacy — 
although,  as  Luther  said,  "he  made  war  on  warts  and 
neglected  ulcers," — was  ambitious  of  the  scarce  inferior  merit 
of  being  the  peace-maker  of  Christendom.  He  negotiated 
with  both  Francis  and  Charles  ;  made  arrangements  for  a 
meeting  between  them  in  his  own  presence  at  Nice;  and  early 
in  the  summer,  notwithstanding  his  advanced  age,  repaired 
thither  himself,  and  laboured  to  persuade  the  rival  monarchs 
to  accord  one  another  the  meeting.  His  persuasions  were 
without  effect,  but  he  discussed  the  matters  in  dispute  first 


314  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1538.  with  one  and  then  with  the  other — carried  to  and  fro  propo- 
sitions, objections,  and  solutions,  and  by  dint  of  unwearying 
zeal  succeeded,  before  the  end  of  June,  in  effecting  a  reconci- 
liation. Shortly  afterwards  the  ship  in  which  Charles  was 
sailing  for  Spain  was  driven  on  the  coast  of  France,  and 
Francis,  seizing  the  opportunity  of  displaying  his  fearless 
gallantry,  without  an  instant's  hesitation  paid  a  visit  to  the 
Emperor  on  board  his  ship,  who,  in  return,  was  entertained 
by  Francis,  at  Aigues-mortes ;  and,  by  a  continued  reciprocity 
of  courtesies,  the  pacification  of  Nice  seemed  to  acquire  the 
stability  of  personal  friendship,  Towards  the  end  of  the  year 
Charles  took  advantage  of  the  generous  and  kind  feelings  of 
the  French  king,  and  made  a  direct  journey  through  his  terri- 
tories to  the  Low  Countries,  where  the  city  of  Ghent  was  in 
revolt.  His  entire  route  resembled  a  triumphal  procession ; 
his  entertainment  in  Paris  was  in  the  most  lavish  style  of  the 
magnificence  of  that  age,  and  he  on  his  part  was  profuse  in 
his  professions  of  cordiality,  and  promised  the  king's  second 
son  the  investiture  of  the  duchy  of  Milan.  When,  however, 
Ghent  had  been  humbled,  and  the  Low  Countries  secured, 
Charles  turned  round  on  his  too  credulous  rival,  and  denied 
that  he  had  made  a  promise  which  it  so  ill-suited  his  suc- 
cessful ambition  to  fulfil.  The  old  rancour  of  Francis  was 
now  inflamed  to  a  higher  pitch  than  ever  :  his  wounded  pride 
chafed  at  the  thought  of  his  simplicity  and  generosity  being 
publicly  made  the  dupe  to  craft  and  falsehood. 

1539.  At  the  beginning  of  the  next  year,  a  meeting  of  the  Sehmal- 
kald  allies  was  held  at  Frankfort,  and  the  Elector  Palatine  and 
the  Elector  of  Brandenburg  acted  as  mediators  between  the 
Protestants  and  the  Imperial  ambassador.  The  clouds  that 
had  hovered  round  the  fortunes  of  the  Reformation  were 
again  blown  away  for  a  time  :  Charles  was  no  longer  in  a  con- 
dition to  rouse  the  turbulence  of  his  German  subjects.     After 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  315 

a  discussion  of  two  months  it  was  at  length  arranged  that  the  1539. 
Nuremberg  peace  should  be  extended  for  fifteen  months 
longer,  within  which  period  chosen  theologians  from  either 
side  should  meet  at  Nuremberg  to  adjust  religious  differences; 
and  the  proceedings  before  the  Imperial  Chamber,  which  had 
hitherto  continued  without  intermission,  Avere  to  be  sus- 
pended; and  a  diet  was  to  assemble  at  Worms,  to  consider  the 
best  means  of  opposing  the  Turks,  against  whom  the  Pro- 
testants engaged  to  send  their  contingents.  If  the  Emperor 
failed  to  ratify  these  Articles  within  six  months,  the  Nurem- 
berg peace  was  to  remain  in  force  in  its  literal  sense,  but 
during  the  six  months  no  new  members  were  to  be  enrolled 
in  the  Schmalkald  Confederation.  Paul  III.  was  indignant 
at  these  Frankfort  Articles :  besides  the  reluctance  with  which 
he  witnessed  any  approach  to  a  reconciliation  between  the 
Emperor  and  the  Protestants,  a  conference  of  learned  men  to 
settle  questions  of  religion  was  tacitly  to  ignore  the  Papacy  ; 
and  no  mention  whatever  had  been  made  of  the  Council. 
The  Pope,  therefore,  used  all  his  influence  with  Charles  to 
prevent  the  ratification  of  the  Articles,  and  required  him  to 
proclaim  a  Diet  to  avoid  the  proposed  theological  discussion. 
Charles,  however,  had  his  own  ends  in  view;  and  his  policy 
was  to  temporize,  and  to  keep  both  the  Pope  and  Protestants, 
as  far  as  could  be,  in  good  humour.  From  this  period,  how- 
ever, there  is  a  marked  change  in  the  manner  in  which 
Luther  speaks  of  the  Emperor.  When  war  seemed  probable, 
the  old  question  of  the  lawfulness  of  resisting  the  Emperor 
had  been  revived.  Luther  would  not  exactly  say  in  down- 
right terms  that  resistance  was  lawful,  but  he  distinguished 
between  the  Emperor  acting  as  Emperor,  and  the  Emperor 
acting  as  the  soldier  and  freebooter  of  the  Pope.  "  If,"  he 
said,  "  the  Emperor  mixes  himself  up  with  the  warfare  of 
the  Turks  and  the  Pope,  he  must  himself  look  to  the  conse- 


316  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1539.  quences."  He  continued  :  "  The  Emperor  is  not  absolute ; 
he  governs  Germany  in  conjunction  with  the  Princes,  and  if 
he  attempt  to  depose  the  Electors  and  govern  alone,  such  an 
infringement  of  the  law  is  not  to  be  borne."  Of  Charles 
himself  he  spoke  as  follows :  "  He  is  imbued  with  the  faith 
of  the  Pope,  the  Cardinals,  Italians,  Spaniards,  and  Saracens; 
he  is  a  perfidious  and  treacherous  man,  and  no  German." 
Luther  had  never  said  so  much  before. 

Meantime,  two  days  before  the  arrangement  of  the  Frank- 
fort truce,  George  Duke  of  Saxony  had  expired  in  his  sixty- 
eighth  year,  and  his  death,  particularly  at  such  a  time,  was  felt 
as  a  severe  blow  by  the  Romanist  faction.  His  last  years  had 
been  clouded  by  domestic  sorrow.  In  1534  his  wife  had  died 
and  his  daughter.  His  son  Duke  John  had  disappointed  the 
hopes  which  the  Landgrave,  to  whose  sister  he  was  married, 
had  at  one  time  conceived  of  him,  and  was  not  only  treading 
in  his  father's  steps  as  a  bigoted  Papist,  but  promised  even  to 
surpass  him  in  virulent  hatred  of  the  Gospel.  "  Give  this 
message  to  Luther  from  me,"  he  said  to  Luke  Cranach,  the 
painter,  "  that  if  he  has  found  my  father  iron,  he  shall  find 
me  steel."  On  receiving  this  message  Luther  loudly  laughed, 
and  replied,  "  Tell  Duke  John  to  engross  his  mind  with  one 
thought,  how  his  soul  may  be  saved ;  for  I  am  well  assured 
he  will  never  survive  his  father."  The  current  superstition 
declared,  as  Luther  was  wont  to  say  of  himself,  "My  predic- 
tions do  not  often  turn  out  false,"  and  the  words  of  the 
Reformer  fell  on  the  ears  of  Duke  John  as  his  death  knell. 
Shortly  afterwards  his  health  sank  under  a  long-continued 
habit  of  intoxication,  and  he  died  in  his  thirty-ninth  year. 
Duke  John  was  childless,  but  another  son,  Frederic,  remained 
to  Duke  George ;  whom,  notwithstanding  his  being  of  imbe- 
cile mind,  he  married  to  the  daughter  of  Ernest  Count  of 
Jan.  27.  Mansfeld,  and  in  January,  1539,  solemnised  the  nuptials  at 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  317 

Dresden  with  "  bacchanalian  rejoicings."  But  in  less  than  1539. 
a  month  the  wedding  of  the  young  Duke  was  succeeded  by 
his  death.  Duke  George  fondly  clung  to  the  hope  that  his 
widow  might  prove  pregnant ;  when  that  was  found  to  be 
delusive,  his  health,  which  had  for  some  time  been  declining, 
rapidly  sank  under  the  accumulation  of  trials,  and,  feeling 
his  own  end  to  be  near,  he  turned  to  the  project  of  stipulat- 
ing with  his  brother  to  bequeath  him  his  dominions,  on  the 
condition  that  he  should  return  to  the  Romish  faith.  Coun- 
cillors were  despatched  to  Duke  Henry  with  this  proposal. 
"  Here  is  Satan,"  Duke  Henry  remarked,  "  proffering  me  all 
the  kingdoms  of  the  earth,  if  I  will  fall  down  and  worship 
him."  The  dying  Duke  now  resolved  to  devise  his  dominions 
to  the  Emperor  and  King  Ferdinand.  A  will  to  this  effect 
was  prepared  and  brought  to  him  for  his  signature,  but  the  April  17. 
stroke  of  death  had  come  beforehand,  and  he  could  only 
faintly  articulate  the  word  "chancellor"  as  that  officer  appeared 
with  the  document  in  his  hand.  When  he  was  evidently 
dying,  a  priest  had  exhorted  him  to  call  on  St.  James. 
"  Call  rather,"  said  John  Lindenau  and  Frederic  GElsnitz, 
two  noblemen  who  stood  by  his  bedside,  "  on  Jesus  Christ  the 
only  Saviour."  The  Duke  raised  his  eyes  to  heaven :  "  Help, 
thou  true  Saviour  Jesus  Christ :  pity  me :  save  me  by  thy 
bitter  sufferings  and  thy  death." 

Luther  had  predicted  "Duke  George  does  not  cease  to 
persecute  the  Word  of  God,  he  gets  worse  and  worse ;  but  I 
shall  live  to  see  his  whole  branch  rooted  out,  and  after  that 
shall  preach  the  Gospel  at  Leipsic."  The  evening  of  the 
Duke's  death  Duke  Henry  entered  Dresden.  The  people 
came  out  to  meet  him  bearing  torch  lights,  and  thronged 
round  his  carriage  with  so  much  eagerness  that  the  servants 
could  not  approach  to  help  him  to  alight.  Never  had  there 
been  such  rejoicing  in  Dresden.    Luther  himself  preached  the 


318  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1539.  first  evangelical  sermon  at  Leipsic  on  Whitsunday  eve,  in  the 
May  24.  presence  of  Duke  Henry  and  his  cousin  John  Frederic,  in 
the  very  castle  of  Pleissenberg  in  which  twenty  years  before 
he  had  disputed  on  the  eve  of  the  Reformation  with  Dr. 
Eck.  He  was  in  very  feeble  health,  and  told  his  crowded 
audience  that  he  was  weak  in  his  head,  and  therefore  could 
not  trust  himself  to  say  much,  but  should  keep  to  the  text  of 
the  Gospel,  which  would  be  read  on  the  morrow.  The  fol- 
lowing Whit  Sunday  Luther  was  too  ill  to  preach  in  the 
morning ;  so  Dr.  Jonas  became  his  substitute :  but  he 
preached  in  the  afternoon  in  St.  Thomas'  Church  to  an  im- 
mense audience ;  even  the  window-ledges  being  thronged  with 
listeners.  And  the  next  day  the  Duke  and  the  Elector  from 
Leipsic  proceeded  to  Grim  ma,  taking  Luther  with  them  in 
their  carriage.  The  advice  which  the  Reformer  gave  Duke 
Henry  was  to  interdict  the  private  mass  in  the  monasteries, 
but  to  tolerate  the  existing  monks  until  they  should  either 
voluntarily  leave  their  convents  or  die  out :  he  earnestly  ex- 
horted him  to  institute  a  visitation  throughout  his  territories, 
and  as  Duke  Henry  himself  was  old  and  weak,  he  made  appli- 
cation to  Catherine  his  duchess  to  urge  him  on  in  this  work. 
The  Bishops  of  Merseburg  and  Meissen  claimed  the  right  of 
instituting  a  visitation  as  exclusively  belonging  to  the  Epis- 
copal office ;  but  Luther's  influence  prevailed.  In  July  and 
August  a  visitation  was  made  through  the  Duke's  dominions 
in  Misnia  and  Thuringia;  the  Augsburg  Confession  and 
Apology  were  made  the  standards  of  doctrine,  and  the  evan- 
gelical Church  system  was  everywhere  established.  The  po- 
pulace were  found  to  be  favourable  to  the  Gospel,  but  many 
of  the  nobles  opposed  it,  and  after  all  the  efforts  of  Luther, 
"  five  hundred  poisonous  Papists,"  as  he  complained,  were 
left  in  their  parsonages.  His  time  and  attention  were  en- 
grossed in  finding  fit  persons  for  the  vacant  cures,   and  he 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  319 

pressed  for  a  second  visitation  to  provide  more  effectually  for  1539. 
the  pure  preaching  of  the  Word  of  God. 

These  events  told  with  great  effect  beyond  the  circle  of  the 
Duke  of  Saxony's  dominions.  The  net-work  of  the  holy 
league  was  broken  when  it  was  only  just  woven,  so  that 
Henry  of  Brunswick  exclaimed  —  "1  had  rather  God  in 
heaven  should  have  died  than  Duke  George."  King  Fer- 
dinand demanded  that  Lutheranism  should  not  be  estab- 
lished by  the  new  Duke  against  his  brother's  known  wish : 
the  Emperor  hinted  at  making  good  any  defects  in  the  will 
which  had  been  framed,  though  not  signed,  by  his  own 
arbitrary  power.  At  such  a  season  the  support  of  the 
Schmalkald  league  proved  of  momentous  service;  and  the 
fact  that  Duke  Henry  could  be  furnished  with  an  effective 
army  at  the  smallest  possible  notice,  kept  Ferdinand  in  check, 
and  turned  the  Emperor's  threat  into  idle  jest.  Even  Luther's 
words  were  warlike  :  "  If,"  said  he,  "  they  blow  too  hard  at 
the  fire,  the  sparks  will  fly  in  their  faces."  He  was  not  with- 
out apprehensions  of  an  outburst  of  intestine  war.  "The 
grapes  and  figs,"  he  said,  "  which  grow  on  that  goodly  tree, 
Papal  holiness,  are  lies,  deceit,  and  murder."  And  he  addressed 
a  circular  letter  to  the  clergy,  requesting  them  to  offer  up 
prayers  against  the  Turk,  and  that  the  Almighty  would  ward 
off  from  the  land  the  horrors  of  a  religious  war. 

Another  important  event  rapidly  followed  the  establishment 
of  the  Reformation  in  the  Duchy  of  Saxony.  Joachim  II., 
the  youthful  Elector  of  Brandenburg,  had  been  trained  in  the 
most  rigidly  Roman  creed.  His  first  wife  had  been  the  daugh- 
ter of  Duke  George  of  Saxony,  and  after  her  death  he  had 
espoused  a  princess  of  Poland.  But  on  one  occasion  he  had 
seized  the  opportunity,  when  he  happened  to  be  at  Witten- 
berg, to  hear  Luther  preach.  He  expressed  his  admiration 
with  enthusiasm ;  and  his  mother's  conversion  and  the  harsh 


320  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1539.  treatment  to  which  it  had  exposed  her,  added  their  weight  to 
the  bias  thus  given  him  towards  the  Reformation.  On  his 
father's  decease  he  seemed  to  vacillate  in  his  religious  opinions 
for  some  time,  notwithstanding  the  majority  of  his  subjects 
were  already  Lutherans.  But  on  the  last  day  of  October,  he 
publicly  received  the  Sacrament  in  both  kinds,  with  his  court 
and  many  of  his  nobility,  in  the  Castle  church  at  Berlin ;  and 
the  next  day  the  citizens  of  Berlin,  in  great  crowds,  followed 
his  example,  and  received  the  Sacrament  after  the  Evangelical 
mode,  in  the  church  of  St.  Nicholas.  This  public  avowal  was 
the  signal  for  ecclesiastical  changes  throughout  the  Electorate. 
A  visitation  was  set  on  foot,  and  a  f*  Church  Ordering"  was 
prepared  and  submitted  to  Luther  for  his  judgment,  who, 
however,  was  unable  to  give  it  his  decided  approval.  In  all 
points  of  doctrine  there  was  a  thorough  agreement  with  the 
Evangelical  teaching;  but  in  ceremonies  and  rites,  as  little 
deviation  as  possible  was  made  from  the  Romish  customs. 
Thus  the  Brandenburg  Reformation  showed  a  lingering  ten- 
dency to  Rome,  as  the  Reformation  of  Wurtemberg  and  Hesse 
showed  a  leaning  to  Switzerland ;  and  with  similar  caution 
the  Elector  Joachim  himself  kept  aloof  from  the  Schmalkald 
Alliance,  and  took  up  a  middle  position  between  the  Princes 
of  the  Evangelical  and  the  Romanist  parties. 

About  this  time,  also,  the  irresistible  tide  of  opinion  over- 
came the  bigotry  of  the  Archbishop  of  Mentz,  and  in  requital 
for  some  pecuniary  indulgences,  he  granted  to  the  inha- 
bitants of  his  Magdeburg  and  Halberstadt  dioceses  the 
liberty  of  worshipping  God  according  to  their  conscience.  All 
these  changes  in  Germany,  showed  the  increase  of  Protestant 
influence  just  at  a  crisis  when  a  religious  war  seemed  immi- 
nent. Nor  was  there  on  the  part  of  the  Romanist  princes 
any  of  that  alertness  which  would  have  encouraged  the  Em- 
peror and  Ferdinand  to  engage  in  a  struggle  with  a  closely 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  321 

united  confederacy.  At  the  Diet  of  Worms,  which  was  held  1539. 
in  June,  the  opposition  to  levying  troops  against  the  Turks 
was  even  led  by  the  Romanist  party.  Moreover,  the  council, 
which  had  been  transferred  to  Vicenza,  was  now  indefinitely 
prorogued.  And  although  Henry  of  England,  whom  Luther 
accused  of  wishing  to  c '  make  a  religion  of  his  own,  for  his  own 
ends,  like  Antiochus,"  could  not  be  induced,  by  an  embassage 
despatched  to  him  by  the  German  Protestants,  to  concur  in 
the  Evangelical  doctrines,  so  as  to  become  Protector  of  the 
Alliance, — and  indeed  by  the  disgrace  and  fall  of  Cromwel, 
and  through  the  charms  of  Catherine  Howard,  the  progress  of 
the  Reformation  was  much  impeded  in  England — yet  it  was,  on 
the  whole,  with  greatly  augmented  confidence,  that  the  Evan- 
gelical States  met  at  Arnstadt  towards  the  end  of  November, 
and  determined  on  sending  an  embassy  to  Charles  to  implore 
the  ratification  of  the  Frankfort  truce,  and  the  appointment 
of  the  conference  of  learned  men,  for  the  settlement  of 
religious  differences. 

Luther  enjoyed  this  year,  considering  his  age  and  infirmi- 
ties, more  than  his  customary  health,  and  produced  a  work  on 
"  Councils  and  the  Church,"  which  exhausted  its  subject,  and 
may  be  ranked  amongst  his  most  valuable  writings.  "  The 
sign  of  a  true  Church,"  he  stated,  "  was,  above  all,  the  posses- 
sion of  the  pure  word  of  God,  on  which  the  right  use  of  the 
Sacraments,  the.  power  of  the  keys,  the  ordination  of  mini- 
sters, the  efficacy  of  prayer,  all  depended.  As  Nicolas  Lyra 
had  affirmed,  the  Church  did  not  consist  of  prelates,  but  of 
real  believers.  If  the  decrees  of  councils  were  really  binding, 
then,  he  said,  according  to  the  decree  of  the  first  Apostolic 
Council,  nothing  ought  to  be  eaten  with  the  blood,  nor  which 
had  been  strangled.  But  the  contrary  custom  was  universal 
among  Christians ;  and  the  seven  years  of  penance  enjoined 
by  the  Council  of  Nice,  and  the  prohibition  of  becoming  a 

VOL.  II.  Y 


322  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1539.  soldier  after  baptism,  had  equally  fallen  into  disuse.  And,  in- 
stead of  the  Pope  having  power  to  convoke  a  council,  the  true 
office  of  a  council  would  be  to  put  down  the  tyranny  which 
the  Pope  had  usurped."  In  many  respects  the  year  was  one 
of  great  trial :  in  the  spring  a  scarcity,  which  was  severely 
felt  at  Wittenberg,  prevailed  throughout  Germany ;  a  terri- 
ble frost,  which  continued  as  late  as  the  beginning  of  May, 
bound  up  the  rivers,  and  kept  the  water-mills  at  a  stand-still, 
whilst  the  nobility  and  landowners,  to  aggravate  prices  yet 
further,  held  back  the  corn.  So  deep  and  wide-spread  was  the 
distress,  that  the  famine-prices  drove  the  poorer  students  of 
Wittenberg  from  the  University.  Luther  came  forward  in  this 
exigency,  sharply  reproved  the  avaricious  corn-holders,  and 
made  application  to  John  Frederic  to  throw  open  hi3  stores 
for  the  relief  of  his  famishing  subjects,  and  to  check  the  cu- 
pidity of  his  nobles  by  legislative  enactments.  "  Dear  Doc- 
tor," the  Elector  replied,  "  divide  whatever  is  mine  with 
me."  In  the  autumn  the  plague  followed  in  the  footprints 
of  famine,  which,  although  not  so  general  as  in  some  previous 
years,  proved  most  fatal  wherever  it  fell.  Dr.  Jonas  fled 
before  its  approach.  Luther,  as  ever,  walked  amidst  the 
ravages  of  disease,  invisibly  shielded  against  harm.  But  an 
accident,  which  must  have  been  attended  with  fatal  con- 
sequences, had  nearly  befallen  himself  and  Kate.  He  had 
built  a  new  cellar,  and  having  paid  it  a  visit  of  inspection 
with  Kate,  had  just  come  up  the  steps,  when  the  brickwork 
fell  in  behind  him.  This  new  cellar  seems  to  have  been  part 
of  a  series  of  improvements  carrying  on  in  the  old  convent ; 
and  this  is  one,  amongst  other  signs,  of  Luther's  more  flourish- 
ing pecuniary  circumstances.  About  this  time,  the  estate,  or 
farm,  of  Zuhlsdorf,  near  Borna,  came  into  his  possession,  pro- 
bably by  purchase,  and  was  intended  as  a  retreat  for  Kate  in 
her  approaching  days  of  widowhood ;  and  she  forthwith  en- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  323 

tered  on  her  duties  as  mistress,  and  took  the  greatest  interest  1539. 
in  superintending  her  new  property.  His  own  decease  was 
anticipated  by  Luther  with  increasing  eagerness,  in  propor- 
tion as  the  time  seemed  to  draw  nearer.  It  is  related,  that, 
during  a  visit  which  he  paid  in  June  to  the  aged  Margravine 
of  Brandenburg  at  Lichtenberg,  the  conversation  at  supper 
fell  on  longevity.  "  Dear  Doctor,"  said  the  Margravine,  "  I 
hope  and  trust  that  you  will  live  long ;  you  may  live  forty 
years  yet,  if  it  be  God's  will."  "Alas!"  Luther  replied, 
' '  might  I  have  my  wish,  it  would  be  a  short  happy  hour,  and 
to  be  gone." 

The  Deputation,  sent  by  the  Protestants  to  the  Emperor,  15^q 
had  an  interview  with  Charles  at  Ghent  on  the  24th  February, 
and  although  courteously  received  and  dismissed,  failed  to 
obtain  the  ratification  of  the  Frankfort  truce.  They  brought 
back  the  Imperial  answer  to  the  allies,  who  met  again  at 
Schmalkakl,  together  with  their  theologians.  But  Luther  was 
excused  from  attendance  by  the  Elector,  on  account  of  his  age 
and  infirmities.  And  this  exemption  proved  a  great  boon  to  him 
under  the  dangerous  illness  of  Kate  from  fever  at  this  period. 
When  all  others  despaired  of  her  life,  Luther  persisted  in  de- 
manding her  from  God,  and  by  the  power  of  his  prayers  she  was 
snatched  from  the  jaws  of  death.  Luther  speaks  of  her  recovery 
as  a  resurrection  and  a  miracle.  On  the  5th  March,  he  wrote 
that  she  was  just  able  to  creep  about  at  last  upon  her  hands. 
"My  lord  Kate,"  he  wrote  to  Melancthon,  "salutes  you 
reverently,  and  sends  her  thanks  that  you  left  me  at  home." 
Luther  himself  was  not  free  from  the  old  complaint  of  the 
violent  ringing  in  the  head,  and  suffered  increasingly  from 
weakness.  He  showed  other  signs  of  the  advance  of  age  :  he 
was  fond  of  dilating  on  past  scenes;  and  gave  his  friends  at  his 
table,  Mathesius  says,  a  full  and  most  interesting  account  of 
the  famous  Diet  of  Worms.     He  still  continued  to  lecture,  as 

y  2 


324  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1540.  his  strength  would  allow,  on  the  book  of  Genesis ;  and  this 
year  is  memorable  for  another  revision  of  the  German  Bible, 
which  was  completed  in  the  course  of  two  years  with  con- 
siderable improvements,  and  made  the  third  revised  copy  of 
Luther's  version.*  With  incredible  joy  Luther  heard  in  the 
autumn  of  the  martyrdom  of  his  old  friend  Robert  Barnes, 
or  Anthony  the  Englishman,  as  he  was  called  at  Wittenberg, 
who  had  been  the  chief  agent  of  Thomas  Cromwel  in  his  cor- 
respondence with  the  Germans,  and  after  Cromwel's  execu- 
tion was  burnt  at  Smithfield  for  heresy,  together  with  Jerome 
and  Gerrard,  by  the  arbitrary  "  King  Heinz."  "  Thanks, 
praise,  and  honour  to  God,"  Luther  exclaimed,  "  that  in  our 
time  we  have  seen  and  heard  of  Christians  led  to  martyrdom, 
that  is,  made  saints  in  heaven,  from  among  those  who  have 
eaten  and  drunk  with  us.  To  think  that  Christ  our  Lord 
should  be  so  nigh  to  us,  in  our  house,  and  at  our  board, — 
should  eat,  drink,  speak,  and  live  with  us,  by  his  dear  martyrs 
and  precious  saints !" 

The  exclamation  had  fallen  from  Melancthon's  lips  as  he 
quitted  Wittenberg  for  Schmalkald,  "We  have  lived  amid 
conferences,  and  we  shall  die  amid  them."  His  mind  was 
extremely  depressed  by  an  event,  reluctantly  acquiesced  in  by 
Luther  and  himself,  but  fraught  with  latent  evil  to  the  Refor- 
mation— the  second  marriage  of  Philip  of  Hesse  whilst  his 
first  wife,  who  had  borne  him  several  children,  was  still  living. 
The  conduct  of  Luther  and  his  colleagues  in  this  notorious 
case  of  bigamy  has  ever  been  regarded  as   the  greatest  blot 

*  Three  copies  on  parchment,  on  each  of  which  340  skins  were 
expended,  were  printed  for  the  Princes  of  Anhalt :  a  magnificent 
copy  on  median  paper  was  presented  to  John  Frederic.  Luther  was 
obliged  to  complain  to  the  Elector  of  the  injustice  of  a  publisher  at 
Leipsic,  who,  now  that  the  Reformation  was  established  there,  turned 
from  issuing  Romanist  tracts  to  the  more  lucrative  employment  of 
printing  the  German  Bible. 


THE    LIFE    OF    .MARTIN    LUTHER.  325 

upon  their  characters.  Philip  of  Hesse  had  sent  Bucer  to  1540. 
them,  with  a  written  petition  demanding  permission  to  marry 
a  second  wife  in  the  lifetime  of  the  first,  and  with  directions 
to  make  a  private  viva  voce  statement  of  the  urgent  reasons 
which  impelled  him  to  such  an  irregular  step.  These  reasons 
were  made  known  to  Luther  and  Melancthon  under  the  seal 
of  the  confessional,  and  they  have  not  transpired,  except  that 
the  Landgrave  charged  the  Landgravine,  a  daughter  of  Duke 
George,  with  drunkenness,  from  which,  and  from  other  causes, 
her  person  had  become  so  offensive  to  him  that  he  had  long 
been  leading  an  impure  life,  from  which,  out  of  concern  for 
his  soul's  salvation,  he  was  most  anxious  to  be  delivered. 
The  epistle,  addressed  by  the  theologians  to  the  Landgrave 
in  reply  to  his  petition,  began  with  warning  him  that  the 
Divine  appointment  of  marriage  from  the  beginning  restricted 
the  union  to  one  wife  :  "  they  twain  shall  be  one  flesh ;"  a 
restriction  which  had  been  expressly  reinforced  by  the  Saviour 
himself.  Cogent  arguments  were  added  why  the  Landgrave 
should  assent  to  this  universal  law.  Then  came  the  admis- 
sion, according  to  the  views  consistently  maintained  and  pro- 
fessed by  Luther  and  Melancthon  in  their  other  writings, 
that  peculiar  circumstances  might  warrant  a  special  dispen- 
sation. It  was  matter  of  joy  that  the  Prince  of  Hesse  was 
grieved  at  his  past  life  of  impurity  and  adultery,  which  the 
most  terrible  judgments  of  Heaven  never  failed  to  visit.  And 
after  such  a  preamble,  the  permission  sought  was  granted,  on 
condition  that  the  double  marriage  should  be  kept  a  profound 
secret,  to  prevent  scandal,  as  well  as  to  preclude  such  an 
exceptional  case  being  strained  into  a  precedent.  The  be- 
haviour of  the  theologians  is  the  more  exposed  to  censure, 
because  John  Frederic,  with  unflinching  straightforwardness, 
condemned  the  proceedings  of  Philip  of  Hesse  without  the 
least  reservation. 


326  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1540.  From  the  conference  at  Schinalkald  Melancthon,  with  his 
mind  full  of  fears  and  solicitude,  passed  to  Rotenburg, 
and  there  attended  the  private  nuptials  of  Philip  of  Hesse 
March  3.  with  Margaret  Von  Sala.  Rumours  of  this  transaction  soon 
became  rife,  notwithstanding  Luther's  precautions  and  admo- 
nitions to  all  those  concerned  in  the  matter  to  use  the  strictest 
secresy .  Margaret  had  been  maid  of  honour  to  the  Landgrave's 
sister,  the  widow  of  Duke  John,  at  Rochlitz,  where  Philip 
had  seen  her,  and  had  become  deeply  enamoured  at  the  very  first 
sight.  The  Landgrave's  sister  was  indignant  at  the  marriage. 
His  first  wife,  Christina,  had  given  her  sanction  to  this  second 
union,  but  her  kinsmen  were  exasperated  by  it.  Duke  Henry 
of  Saxony,  her  uncle,  and  the  Elector  of  Brandenburg  her 
brother-in-law,  both  took  up  her  cause  with  ardour.  But  this 
was  far  from  being  the  worst,  for  Henry  of  Brunswick  and  the 
Papists  saw  their  own  advantage  in  this  flagrant  transaction, 
and  were  resolved  to  extract  from  it  some  service  to  Popery. 
And  it  was  impossible  to  predict  what  influence  the  affair  might 
have  in  a  country  like  Germany,  split  up  into  a  number  of 
jealous  principalities.  The  Landgrave  himself  was  not  without 
apprehensions  of  serious  consequences ;  and,  with  a  view  to 
securing  aid  should  any  attack  be  made  upon  his  dominions, 
prevailed  upon  the  Protestants  to  hold  a  deliberation  at 
Eisenach,  in  which  he  was  successful  in  obtaining  a  conditional 
promise  of  assistance  from  his  allies. 

Melancthon  was  on  his  way  to  the  scene  of  these  delibera- 
tions when,  brooding  over  this  unhappy  affair,  his  fears  and 
scruples  brought  on  a  sickness  just  as  he  had  reached  Weimar, 
which  laid  him  nigh  to  death's  door.  Intelligence  of  his  state 
was  conveyed  to  Wittenberg,  and  Luther,  in  the  Elector's 
July  2.  carriage,  hastened  to  Weimar.  He  found  Philip,  on  his 
arrival,  apparently  all  but  dead;  understanding,  speech,  and 
hearing  had  left  him,  his  countenance  was  hollow  and  sunk, 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN     LUTHER.  327 

his  eves  closed,  and  he  seemed  in  a  death-like  sleep.  Luther  1540. 
expressed  his  astonishment  to  the  companions  of  his  journey, 
"  How  shamefully  has  the  devil  handled  this  creature  \"  and 
then,  according  to  his  custom,  turning  to  the  window,  he 
prayed  with  all  his  might.  He  reminded  God  of  his  promises 
from  the  Holy  Scriptures,  and  implored  him  now  to  fulfil  them, 
or  he  could  never  trust  in  them  again.  Rising  from  prayer 
he  took  Melancthon's  hand,  and  called  to  him  in  a  cheerful 
tone,  "  Take  heart,  Philip  :  you  shall  not  die.  God  has  reason 
enough  to  kill  you,  but  f  He  willeth  not  the  death  of  the 
sinner,  but  rather  that  he  should  repent  and  be  saved.5  He 
desires  life,  not  death.  The  greatest  sinners  that  ever  lived  on 
earth — Adam  and  Eve — were  accepted  of  God  in  his  grace; 
far  less  will  he  give  you  up,  Philip,  and  let  you  perish  in  your 
sins  and  faintheartedness.  Give  no  room  to  despondency  :  be 
not  your  own  murderer;  but  throw  yourself  on  your  Lord, 
who  killeth  and  maketh  alive/5  At  these  words  Melancthon 
evinced  a  sudden  restoration,  as  though  from  death  to  life; 
he  drew  his  breath  with  energy;  and  after  a  while  turning 
his  face  to  Luther,  implored  him  "not  to  stay  him;  he  was 
on  a  good  journey;  and  nothing  better  could  befall  him.5' 
Luther  replied,  "Not  so,  Philip,  you  must  serve  our  Lord 
God  yet  longer.55  And  when  Melancthon  had  gradually 
become  more  cheerful,  Luther,  with  his  own  hands,  brought 
him  something  to  eat,  and  overruled  his  repugnance  with  the 
threat,  f'  Hark,  Philip,  you  shall  eat,  or  I  excommunicate 
you.55  The  beginning  of  the  next  year  Luther's  intimate 
friend  Myconius  seemed  rapidly  sinking  in  a  consumption, 
and  wrote  the  Reformer  word  that  he  "was  sick,  not  for 
death,  but  for  life;55  but  Luther  prayed  fervently  that 
"Myconius  might  not  pass  through  the  veil  to  rest,  whilst 
he  was  left  out-of-doors  amid  the  devils,55  and  wrote  to  his 
friend  that  he  felt  certain  his  prayers  would  be  heard,  and 


328  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1540.  by  God's  mercy  his  days  would  be  lengthened,  so  that  he 
would  be  his  survivor.     Myconius  was  raised  up  again  from 
the  brink  of  the  grave,  and  eventually  outlived  Luther  seven 
weeks. 
July  10.      From  Weimar,  Luther  travelled  on  to  Eisenach,  where  his 
presence  was  of  essential  service  in  determining  the  Elector's 
policy  as  to  the  Landgrave's  unhappy  affair.     Luther  lodged 
with  Justus  Menius,  and  had  Amsdorf  as  a  fellow  guest,  a 
meeting  which  raised  his  spirits  to  a  high  pitch,  as  is  evinced  by 
his  letters  to  Kate.    "  We  are  here,"  he  wrote  to  her  on  the 
16th  July,  "  brisk  and  sound.    We  eat  like  the  Bohemians,  yet 
not  over  much ;  we  drink  like  the  Germans,  yet  not  too  hard  : 
we  are,  however,  merry.    Master  Philip  is  well  again,  God  be 
praised  !     Hereby  I  commend  you  to  God.     Amen.     And  let 
the  children  pray.     There  is  such  heat  and  drought  here  day 
and  night  as  is  intolerable.     O  come,  dear  last  day  !  amen." 
Ten  days  later,  he  wrote  to  Kate,  "  See  that  I  find  a  good 
drink  of  beer  on  my  return.     If  God  will,  on  Tuesday  morn- 
ing we  shall  be  at  Wittenberg.     We  have  brought  Master 
Philip  out  of  hell  with  joy,  and,  by  God's  grace,  shall  bring  him 
home.     The  devil  is  full  of  wrath,  and  does  scandalous  deeds. 
More  than  a  thousand  acres  of  wood  in  the  Thuringian  forest, 
belonging  to  my  good  lord,  are  now  burning.     The  forest  by 
Werda  has  also  taken  fire;  and  so  in  many  other  places  :  the 
flames  cannot  be  put  out.     This  will  make  wood  dear.     Pray 
against  the  pestilent  Satan,  who  would  harm  us  not  only  in 
body  and  soul,  but  also  in  goods  and  substance.     Christ  our 
Lord  !  come  from  heaven  and  blow  up  such  a  fire  against  him 
as  shall  never  be  quenched  !"     This  letter  bore  the  address, 
"Eor  the  hands  of  the  rich  dame  of  Zuhlsdorf,  Doctoress 
Catherine   Lutherin,  bodily  dwelling   at  Wittenberg,  spiri- 
tually at  Zuhlsdorf,  my  beloved.  In  her  absence,  to  be  opened 
by   Dr.    Bugenhagen,    parson."     A    letter   from  Luther  to 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  329 

Menius,  on  his  return,  thanked  him  very  warmly  for  his  hospi- 1540. 
table  entertainment,  and  mentioned  particularly  the  amuse- 
ment he  had  found  in  teaching  his   son  Timothy  to   seize 
nuts ;   the  antics  of  the  little  urchin  alone  had  afforded  him 
delight  enough. 

The  answer  of  the  Schmalkald  Allies  to  the  Imperial  reply 
had  failed  to  obtain  from  the  Emperor  a  ratification  of  the 
Frankfort  truce,  but  prevailed  upon  him  to  appoint  a  confer- 
ence of  learned  divines,  to  meet  at  Spires  ;  but  as  the  plague 
was  ravaging  that  city,  Hagenau,  by  the  command  of  Ferdi- 
nand, was  substituted  as  the  place  of  meeting.  This  con- 
ference was  opened  in  the  middle  of  June.  The  subjects  of  dis- 
pute had  been  divided  by  Luther  under  three  heads  :  the  first 
comprising  doctrinal  questions;  the  second,  such  points  of 
discipline  and  ceremonial  as  were  not  indifferent ;  the  third, 
such  points  of  discipline  and  ceremonial  as  were  indifferent. 
But  Luther  had  no  confidence  in  any  attempt  at  reconcilia- 
tion, and  complained,  "  We  have  dallied  long  enough  with 
Satan  and  his  papists."  Melancthon  could  not  be  present ; 
and  neither  the  Elector  of  Saxony  nor  the  Landgrave  deemed 
it  worth  while  to  proceed  to  Hagenau ;  and  as  Ferdinand 
himself  was  anxious  to  make  a  fresh  attempt  on  Hungary 
which  by  the  death  of  John  the  Waywode  had  fallen  to  a 
child,  he  readily  seized  on  the  absence  of  the  Protestant 
princes  as  a  pretext  for  adjourning  proceedings  to  another 
conference,  to  be  held  at  Worms  in  the  autumn.  The  con- 
ference at  Worms  was  opened  in  November ;  and  Granvella, 
who  had  now  displaced  Held,  was  the  Imperial  representative. 
Fears  were  entertained  that  the  Elector  Palatine  and  the 
Elector  of  Brandenburg,  who  were  in  the  Protestant  body 
much  what  Contareni's  party  were  in  the  Romanist,  might 
be  disposed  to  make  undue  concessions;  and  accordingly 
Luther  and  the  Saxon  theologians  being  convened  before  the 


330  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1540.  Elector,  came  to  the  resolution  that  whatever  other  Evangelical 
States  might  admit,  they  would  never  concede  the  primacy  of 
the  Pope.  The  discussions  were  carried  on  first  by  eleven 
theologians  on  either  side,  and  then  by  one  against  one — the 
stalwart  Eck  against  the  fragile  Melancthon,  the  second  contest, 
the  Lutherans  said,  of  Goliath  with  David.  This  conference 
at  Worms  was  preliminary  to  the  proposed  final  settlement 
of  religious   differences  in  the  Diet  which  had  been  sura- 

1541.  moned  to  meet  at  Ratisbon  in  the  following  January ;  and 
when  the  discussions  had  been  protracted  till  the  middle 
of  January,  an  adjournment  was  made  by  Imperial  rescript 
to  the  coming  Diet,  without  a  single  step  in  advance  having 
been  gained. 

The  Elector  of  Saxony  was  earnestly  requested  by  the  Em- 
peror to  be  present  in  person  at  the  Ratisbon  Diet ;  but  he 
was  advised  by  Luther  to  remain  at  home,  as  being  "the 
Prince  whom,  of  all  on  earth,  the  devil  would  be  most  glad 
to  catch  in  his  toils  •"  and  among  those  at  Ratisbon  would  be 
the  Archbishop  of  Mentz  and  Henry  of  Brunswick,  who,  of 
all  the  rulers  of  the  earth,  approached  the  nearest  to  Satan. 
The  Elector  complied  with  this  advice,  and  remained  in 
Saxony.  Luther's  mind  was  full  of  anxiety  for  Melancthon, 
whom  he  warned  to  beware  what  he  ate  and  drank,  for 
rumours  of  the  deadly  effect  of  the  Papist  poison-bowl  were 
in  every  mouth ;  and  such  catastrophes,  as  well  as  the  incen- 
diary fires  which  had  become  common,  were  attributed  to 
emissaries  of  the  Elector  of  Mentz  or  the  Duke  of  Brunswick. 
"  If  Christ  and  Satan  can  really  be  made  to  agree,"  Luther 
complained,  "  it  might  surely  be  done  much  nearer  home,  and 
just  as  well  at  Torgau  as  at  Ratisbon."  On  the  other  hand,  the 
Landgrave  anticipated  much  from  the  Diet ;  and  Bucer,  whom 
the  Prince  of  Hesse  held  in  leading-strings,  spoke  of  "  neutral 
ground."    Luther  was  indignant, — the  more  so  because  he  had 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  331 

now  discovered  that  the  representations  of  the  Landgrave  in  1541. 
his  demand  for  a  double  marriage  had  been,  for  the  most  part, 
false.  "  The  Landgrave,"  said  he,  "  has  deceived  us  foully ; 
but  he  shall  never  deceive  me  again."  But  the  Elector  of 
Brandenburg  went  far  beyond  the  Landgrave,  and  in  his 
journey  to  Batisbon  passed  through  Wittenberg,  and  showed 
Luther  a  book,  which  formed  the  basis  of  the  subsequent 
deliberations,  and  was  probably  the  production  of  Witzel, 
framed  on  the  principle  of  reconciling  doctrines  by  giving  to 
them  one  half  a  papistical  and  the  other  half  a  Lutheran  ex- 
planation. Luther  returned  the  book,  with  the  observation, 
"  It  is  the  Misnian  Reformation  of  Duke  George."  Whilst 
thus  one  wing  of  the  Protestant  army  seemed  to  be  approach- 
ing one  wing  of  the  Papist  army,  John  Frederic  was  dejected 
by  the  prospect  presented  by  the  deliberations,  and  composed 
a  letter  to  Melancthon,  forbidding  him  to  recede  not  only 
from  the  sense,  but  even  from  the  wording  of  the  Augsburg 
Confession :  and  when  in  the  article  of  Justification  some 
slight  deviation  was  made,  he  wrote  in  a  style  of  such 
severity,  that  Luther  implored  him  to  moderate  his  tone,  or 
he  would  "  kill  Philip."  Yet  Luther  himself  had  never  been 
more  decided.  "  The  Elector  of  Brandenburg  and  Bucer," 
he  said,  "invert  the  order  of  the  petitions  in  the  Lord's 
Prayer.  They  pray  for  bread  and  peace  before  they  pray 
that  God's  name  may  be  hallowed,  His  kingdom  come,  and 
His  will  be  done.  The  cause  is  treated  as  though  it  were 
the  cause  of  the  Emperor,  or  of  Ferdinand,  or  the  Turk : 
on  the  contrary,  it  is  God's  cause.  On  the  one  side  stand 
God  and  the  hosts  of  heaven,  on  the  other  Satan  and  all  his 
angels.  And  rather  than  that  worldly  policy  should  be 
suffered  to  interfere,  I  should  prefer  to  be  placed  alone  again, 
as  I  was  at  Worms." 

The  Diet  was  opened  on  the  5th  April,  and  shortly  after- 


332  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1541.  wards  Julius  Pflug,  John  Eck,  and  John  Gropper  on  the 
Romanist  side,  and  Melancthon,  Bucer,  and  John  Pistor  on 
the  Protestant,  were  appointed  to  the  task  of  reconciling 
religious  differences,  and  the  Elector  of  Brandenburg's  book 
was  placed  in  their  hands.  The  path  of  adjustment  was  much 
smoothed  by  the  absence  of  Eck,  soon  after  the  contest  began, 
by  a  severe  attack  of  fever.  Before  June  agreement  had 
been  attained  on  four  Articles,  one  of  which  was  the  doctrine 
of  Justification.  The  Conference  agreed  that  "  man  is  justi- 
fied in  the  sight  of  God  by  a  living  and  efficacious  faith." 
With  this  explanation  the  Elector  of  Saxony  was  dissatisfied ; 
and  Luther  at  once  saw  the  drift  of  the  Papists.  "  The  defi- 
nition/' he  said,  "  is  quite  true ;  but  it  is  inaccurate,  for  it 
confounds  passive  and  active  justification.  It  is  one  question 
how  we  are  justified,  and  another  question  how  we  shall  act 
when  we  are  so  justified :  a  schoolboy  can  understand  the 
difference."  But  Luther  did  not  deem  the  inaccuracy  of 
sufficient  moment  to  warrant  serious  animadversion,  the 
more  so  as  the  Emperor  had  declared  that  the  admission  of 
the  collocutors  should  not  be  binding  on  their  respective 
parties. 

By  a  continuous  correspondence  with  Melancthon,  Luther 
was  kept  well  informed  of  the  progress  of  the  discussion.  He 
was  also  further  himself  drawn  into  the  polemical  arena. 
Henry  of  Brunswick,  "  that  murderous  incendiary,"  had  pub- 
lished a  severe  libel  against  the  Elector  of  Saxony,  and,  amidst 
more  bitter  accusations,  charged  him  with  making  Luther 
his  idol,  or  second  God,  although  the  Reformer  laughed  at 
his  patron  in  his  sleeve,  and  in  allusion  to  his  portly  figure 
was  wont  to  call  him  his  Jack-sausage  [Hans  Wursf) .  Luther, 
in  reply,  addressed  the  real  Hans  Wurst,  the  Duke  of  Bruns- 
wick himself,  in  a  satirical  piece,  in  which,  however,  he  took 
care  to  intersperse  much  profitable  instruction  about  "the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  333 

New  Church  built  to  the  devil,"  or  Popery,  and  the  "  Old  1541. 
Church  to  which  the  Evangelicals  had  returned,"  and  an- 
swered his  personal  calumnies  in  one  brief  sentence — "  Satan, 
thou  liest ! "  "  The  book  of  Heinz  was  a  right  copy  and 
formula,  extracted  from  the  devil's  chancery."  He  defended 
John  Frederic  as  a  pattern  to  the  German  nobility,  and 
spoke  of  his  fine  person,  well  covered  with  flesh,  as  "  God's 
gift :""  the  Duke  of  Brunswick,  on  the  other  hand,  was  a 
murderer,  like  Judas;  a  blasphemer,  who  imagined  God  to 
be  asleep.  This  publication  had  scarcely  appeared,  when 
the  Reformer  was  seized  with  a  most  violent  attack  of 
the  giddiness  and  ringing  in  the  head,  clots  of  matter  and 
blood  exuded  from  his  ears,  and  he  underwent  acute  pain. 
The  Elector  sent  him  his  own  physician;  and  after  some 
weeks  he  again  rallied.  It  is  another  striking  proof  of  the 
regard  entertained  for  Luther  by  his  prince,  that  about  this 
period  a  letter  was  addressed  to  Johnny  Luther  by  the 
Elector's  sons,  John  Frederic  and  John  William;  to  which 
the  Reformer  himself  sent  an  immediate  reply,  and,  to  enhance 
the  compliment,  in  Latin ;  and  Johnny's  answer,  which  re- 
quired more  time,  was  to  follow. 

After  something  like  doctrinal  agreement  on  the  main  points 
had  been  attained  at  Ratisbon,  the  discussion  proceeded  to 
the  Lord's  Supper,  the  marriage  of  the  clergy,  and  the  Pope's 
primacy ;  but  on  these  no  approach  could  be  made  to 
harmony.  But  one  day  towards  the  end  of  May,  the  Elector 
Palatine  entered  the  apartment  of  the  Emperor,  who  was  re- 
posing on  a  couch,  under  an  attack  of  the  gout,  and  informed 
his  Majesty  that  he  was  not  without  hopes  that  unity  might 
yet  be  restored.  Charles,  raising  himself  on  the  couch,  laid  his 
hand  on  the  Elector's  breast  as  he  replied,  "  Indeed  !  then  you 
are  a  bearer  of  good  news."  The  Elector  Palatine  then  ex- 
plained his  scheme,  which  was  to  send  an  express  embassy  to 


334  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1541.  Luther  himself,  to  request  his  co-operation,  and  the  use  of  his 
paramount  influence  with  the  Evangelical  party  for  the  in- 
valuable attainment  of  concord.  Prince  John  of  Anhalt, 
whose  son  had  been  baptized  by  the  Reformer  at  Dessau  just 
before  the  departure  of  the  Prince  for  Ratisbon,  was  ap- 
pointed the  bearer  of  this  urgent  entreaty,  and  two  theolo- 
gians were  assigned  him  as  comrades.  Letters  were  de- 
spatched to  the  Elector  of  Saxony,  which  reached  Wittenberg 
on  the  7th  June,  and  on  the  10th  John  Frederic  removed 
thither,  both  to  entertain  the  ambassadors,  and  to  bear  his 
share  in  the  deliberations.  The  ambassadors  had  a  specious 
ground  to  hope  for  success.  Luther  had  been  the  first  to  re- 
proclaim  the  evangelical  faith :  his  preaching  had  caused 
divisions,  to  his  deep  regret,  which  it  was  now  in  his  power  to 
heal,  without  any  injury,  it  would  seem,  to  doctrinal  verities. 
Romanists  and  Protestants  were  one  on  essential  questions ; 
and  Luther  had  always  maintained  that  if  true  doctrine  were 
inculcated,  ceremonies  and  Church  discipline  would  naturally 
fall  into  the  right  train.  All  Germany  was,  as  it  were, 
standing  at  the  door  of  the  Augustine  Convent,  to  implore 
the  boon  of  religious  union.  But  Luther  was  not  to  be  im- 
posed upon  by  appearances.  His  answer  dwelt  first  on  his 
zeal  for  unity,  which  was  fully  shared  by  the  Protestant 
Princes,  for  they  had  patiently  endured  persecution,  incendiary 
fires,  and  every  kind  of  indignity.  But  unity  was  a  mere  pre- 
tence, unless  the  Romanists  were  ready  to  yield  to  God  and 
to  truth :  as  it  was,  they  were  dealing  fraudulently.  If  in 
reality  they  agreed  with  the  Protestants  in  doctrine,  they 
must  also  agree  with  them  on  the  Lord's  Supper  and  the 
other  Articles,  on  which  disunion  remained  ;  for  such  articles 
were  only  deductions  from  essential  doctrine.  The  conclusion 
of  the  Conference  on  Justification — the  only  article  which  he 
had  seen — he  could  not  entirely  approve  of.     That  truth  of 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  335 

doctrine  must  ever  lead  to  truth  in  usage,  only  applied  to  those  1541. 
who  sincerely  desired  to  obey  God,  but  were  as  yet  weak  in 
faith  ;  it  did  not  apply  to  those  who  had  heard  the  Word  of 
God  for  a  long  series  of  years,  and  had  been  labouring  to 
quench  its  voice  in  rivers  of  blood.  By  the  terms  of  the 
Conference  the  acts  of  the  Collocutors  were  referred  to  the 
States :  this  was  agreeable  to  the  Evangelical  party,  and  he 
could  not  separate  himself  from  their  united  verdict.  The 
book  which  had  been  the  basis  of  proceedings  was  afterwards 
sent  to  him ;  he  found  it  to  be  the  same  as  had  before  been 
shown  to  him  by  the  Elector  of  Brandenburg,  and  replied 
that  "it  was  the  old  device;  as  the  proverb  said,  '  the  snow 
that  fell  last  year/  " 

The  Elector  of  Brandenburg,  however,  still  clung  to  the 
hope  of  reconciliation ;  but  the  two  religious  parties  could 
not  be  drawn  an  inch  nearer  to  one  another.  Melancthon 
was  complained  of  for  the  first  time  as  obstinate.  Eck,  from  his 
sick-bed,  wrote  in  disapprobation  of  the  acts  of  his  colleagues. 
Contareni,  as  the  mouthpiece  of  the  Papal  Consistory,  was 
obliged  to  express  his  dissatisfaction  with  concession.  The 
Recess  of  the  Diet  was  published  on  the  29th  July,  and  stated 
that  the  Reformation  of  the  Church  was  a  matter  of  absolute 
necessity,  but  must  now  be  referred  to  a  general  or  national 
Council,  or  another  meeting  of  the  Diet.  The  adherents  to 
the  Augsburg  Confession  were  to  keep  within  the  limits  of 
the  Articles  agreed  upon :  no  more  monasteries  were  to  be 
destroyed :  the  monastic  revenues  were  to  be  duly  paid : 
the  Protestants  were  to  refrain  from  drawing  others  to  their 
persuasion.  But  as  this  edict  seemed  to  bear  hard  on  the 
Evangelical  princes,  the  Emperor  took  care  to  appease  their 
resentment  by  a  paper,  privately  communicated  the  same  day, 
in  explanation  of  the  various  clauses.  The  Evangelicals  were 
to  keep  within  the  terni3  of  the  Articles  according  to  their 


336 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 


1541.  interpretation  by  the  Augsburg  Confession :  monasteries 
must  not  be  destroyed,  but  might  be  reformed  :  the  revenues 
of  monasteries  in  Protestant  lands,  deriving  endowments  from 
Catholic  provinces,  were  to  be  duly  paid :  the  Protestants 
might  receive  those  who  spontaneously  embraced  the  Evange- 
lical faith ;  and  the  Romanist  prelates  were  reminded  of  their 
gross  dereliction  of  duty,  and  warned  to  amend  their  ways. 
On  the  whole,  the  Ratisbon  Diet  was  a  most  auspicious  event 
for  the  Reformation :  it  was  more  than  a  renewal  of  the 
Nuremberg  peace,  or  a  ratification  of  the  Frankfort  truce,  for 
the  Emperor  rescinded  the  Augsburg  decree,  commanding 
the  Imperial  Chamber  to  take  the  new  edict  for  its  rule ;  and 
he  allowed  Protestants  to  be  eligible  to  seats  in  the  Chamber. 
"  The  Papists,"  Luther  said,  "  have  earned  the  appellation  of 
the  New  Protestants."  The  idea  of  settling  religious  ques- 
tions by  a  conference  of  learned  men,  or  the  decision  of  a 
Diet,  was  itself  almost  tantamount  to  an  abnegation  of  Popery : 
and  the  words  of  Charles  were  everywhere  quoted,  that  "  if 
the  Lutherans  desisted  from  their  efforts  for  an  ecclesiastical 
reform,  he,  at  least,  should  not  desist  from  his."  With  joy 
did  Luther  welcome  home  Melancthon,  "like  Lot  escaped 
from  Sodom."  And  the  book  which  had  been  the  ground- 
work of  the  deliberations,  and  which  served  as  the  text-book 
for  the  famous  Interim  enacted  seven  years  later,  was  pub- 
lished, with  a  preface  from  the  pen  of  Philip,  who,  by  the 
staunchness  of  his  adhesion  to  the  truth  at  Ratisbon,  had 
done  much  to  repair  his  character  for  constancy  in  public 
estimation. 

Luther  removed  his  eyes  from  Ratisbon  to  fix  them  upon 
the  great  events  transacting  elsewhere.  In  Hungary  Ferdi- 
nand had  received  a  bloody  defeat  from  Sultan  Soliman,  who 
now  seized  on  that  kingdom,  keeping  the  Austrian  provinces 
under  a  constant  dread  of  invasion.     "  But  how  can  I  pray," 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHElt.  337 

Luther  exclaimed,  "  for  Ferdinand,  when  his  hands  are  1541. 
stained  with  the  blood  of  the  Saints  of  God?  I  can  only 
implore  the  Lord  to  save  whom  He  should  save."  The 
Emperor,  meanwhile,  having  passed  through  Italy,  and  laboured 
to  impress  on  the  Pontiff,  in  a  conference  at  Lucca,  the 
necessity  of  summoning  a  council,  had  engaged  in  a  luckless 
enterprise  against  Algiers.  Just  as  he  had  disembarked  his 
forces,  a  violent  storm  had  sunk  many  of  his  ships,  and  shat- 
tered the  rest,  which  were  compelled  to  seek  refuge  near 
Cape  Metafuz.  Thither  he  himself  marched  with  his  miser- 
able army,  without  supplies,  in  an  enemy's  country;  his 
soldiers  dropping  down  dead  every  mile  of  the  way  from 
overwhelming  fatigue,  or  the  missiles  of  the  Arabs.  And 
when  he  again  embarked  with  the  remnant  of  his  host,  a 
dreadful  tempest  again  scattered  the  ships,  and  Charles  him- 
self, without  his  fleet,  put  into  a  port  of  Spain.  "  It  is  the 
vengeance  of  Heaven  ["  Luther  said:  "the  guilt  of  innocent 
blood,  the  horrors  perpetrated  at  Ghent,  are  not  forgotten. 
I  have  conceived  a  hatred  against  the  Emperor."  The  Re- 
former was  beginning  to  see  more  and  more  plainly  that  with 
Charles  religion  was  merely  a  question  of  policy.  On  the 
side  of  France,  also,  a  new  cloud  of  war  was  gathering  :  some 
ambassadors  despatched  by  Francis  to  the  Sultan  had  been 
apprehended  in  Italy  and  put  to  death ;  and  the  impetuous 
spirit  of  the  French  monarch,  fretting  at  the  recollection  of 
recent  perfidy,  burnt  with  aggravated  resentment  to  avenge 
this  fresh  insult. 

An  additional  source  of  disquiet  was  opened  at  this  period  in 
Germany.  The  Bishop  of  Naumburg-Zeitz  had  died  early  in 
the  spring ;  and  the  vacant  see  was  filled  up  by  the  canons, 
by  the  election  of  Julius  Pflug,  one  of  their  number,  and 
also  one  of  the  Ratisbon  collocutors.  By  ancient  custom  the 
approval  of  the  Elector  of  Saxony  was  required  to  render 

VOL.  II.  z 


338  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1541.  valid  the  choice  of  the  canons ;  and  John  Frederic  persisted 
in  refusing  his  sanction  :  he  complained  of  Pflug  as  a  time- 
server,  and  said  that  no  one  could  have  been  selected  more 
obnoxious  to  him,  and  he  pointed  out  those  among  the 
canons,  the  election  of  any  one  of  whom  he  was  willing  to 
confirm.  Pflug  was  all  this  while  at  Katisbon ;  and  the  Pope 
postponed  the  period  of  decision  for  six  months.  After  the 
conference  was  ended,  Pflug  declared  his  acceptance  of  the 
bishopric,  and  the  Emperor  took  up  his  cause,  and  wrote  to 
the  Elector  to  request  his  sanction ;  and  Pflug  prepared  to 
press  his  suit  in  person  with  John  Frederic.  The  Elector, 
however,  remained  inflexible,  and  garrisoned  the  fortress  of 
Zeitz.  As  the  canons  were  firmly  resolved  to  keep  to  their 
first  election  in  opposition  to  the  electoral  overtures,  and  the 
time  for  them  to  make  another  choice  had  elapsed,  the 
Elector  came  to  the  determination  to  consult  his  own  taste  in 
the  appointment  of  a  bishop,  and  deliberated  with  his  theolo- 
gians who  was  the  fittest  person  for  the  office.  Luther  pro- 
posed Prince  George  of  Anhalt,  urging  that  bishoprics  ought 
to  be  conferred  on  persons  of  noble  birth,  to  encourage  learn- 
ing amongst  the  nobility.  But  as  it  was  the  Elector's  inten- 
tion to  strip  the  bishopric  of  a  large  portion  of  its  revenues, 
and  appropriate  them  to  the  salaries  of  ministers  and  other 
ecclesiastical  uses,  this  appointment  was  not  made.  Amsdorf 
was  then  thought  of,  as  at  once  of  noble  extraction,  although 
his  family  had  become  reduced  in  circumstances,  andunmarried, 
which  wrould  enable  him  to  support  the  episcopal  dignity  at 

1512.  less  expense.  On  the  18th  January  Luther  accompanied  the 
bishop  delegate  to  Naumburg,  and  preached  the  next  day  in 
the  Cathedral,  and  with  other  presbyters  laid  his  hands  on 
Amsdorf  s  head  and  consecrated  him  bishop,  "  without,"  Lu- 
ther said,  ' '  any  chrism,  and  without  butter,  grease,  fat,  lard, 
and  whatever  may  be  more  holy  with  the  Papists  than  those." 


THE     LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  339 

A  few  days  afterwards  they  proceeded  to  Zeitz,  and  Luther  1542. 
again  preached.     The  proceedings  of  consecration  were  given 
to  the  world,  with  a  defence  of  the  Elector's  conduct  through- 
out the  affair,    in  a  writing  by  Luther  entitled,    "An   Ex- 
ample how  to  consecrate  a  true  Bishop." 

Amsdorf  was  greatly  perplexed  by  some  features  in  his 
new  dignity  :  he  disliked  the  ceremonial  of  respect  paid  to 
him  as  the  Prince-Bishop,  and  had  some  scruples  as  to  its 
consistency  with  Scripture  :  and  the  counsel  of  Luther  was  in 
constant  requisition.  "  It  is  all  a  mask,  and  nothing  serious/' 
Luther  wrote  to  him  ;  "  God  cares  not  for  such  things  :  they 
are  not  the  kingdom  of  God.  The  Church  must  have  a 
visible  form,  a  husk,  or  outward  garb,  as  it  were.  Yet 
none  of  these  is  the  Church,  which  is  neither  Jew  nor  Greek, 
neither  male  nor  female,  but  simply  Christ.  And  he  will  not 
care  whether  the  character  you  have  to  sustain  be  private, 
public,  plebeian,  or  princely,  provided,  whatever  it  be,  you 
serve  him  in  it."  "  How  happy  for  you,"  he  wrote  at  another 
time,  "  that  you  find  pomp  and  splendour  a  prison :  to  the 
Papists  they  are  a  paradise.  Yet  bear  them,  as  Christ  bore 
his  pomp  on  the  day  of  palms,  poor,  mortified,  and  crucified 
in  heart."  In  recommending  a  painter  to  Amsdorf,  who 
deserved  encouragement,  Luther  reminded  him  that  the  style 
and  decorations  of  his  dwelling  ought  to  be  in  keeping  with 
his  station.  "  But  I  have  resolved,"  he  added,  "  never  myself 
to  receive  another  present  from  you.  The  creatures  of  the 
court  would  be  too  glad  to  get  an  excuse  for  traducing  me, 
and  making  it  appear  that  in  concurring  in  your  elevation,  I 
had  an  eye  to  my  own  lucre.  Be  not  offended  at  this  deter- 
mination. It  is  not  from  Amsdorf  that  I  refuse  a  present, 
but  from  the  Bishop  of  Naumburg-Zeitz." 

The  Diet,  which  had  been  appointed  to  meet  at  Spires  in 
January,  was  opened  on   the  9th  February.     The  object  of 


340  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1542.  Ferdinand,  who  presided,  was  to  obtain  large  contingents  in 
men  and  money  for  the  Turkish  war,  and  as  the  need  Avas 
most  pressing,  every  indulgence,  as  at  Ratisbon,  was  conceded 
to  the  Protestants.  The  Ratisbon  truce  was  extended  for  five 
years,  to  date  from  the  period  of  the  succours  being  for- 
warded against  the  Turk :  the  Imperial  Chamber  was  to  be 
reformed,  and  a  deputation  of  Romanists  and  Protestants  in 
equal  proportions  was  appointed  to  carry  the  Reform  into 
execution.  Joachim  of  Brandenburg,  as  a  moderate  man,  was 
chosen  commander-in-chief  against  the  Turks.  And  so  suc- 
cessful were  these  expedients  that  the  Protestants  furnished 
the  required  contingents,  and  entered  into  the  war  with  the 
utmost  alacrity.  As  for  Luther,  almost  as  thoroughly 
national  as  he  was  profoundly  Christian,  he  directed  the  force 
of  his  pen  to  enlighten  the  apprehension  and  rouse  the  ardour 
of  his  countrymen.  He  studied  the  Refutation  of  the  Koran 
written  by  Richard  the  Dominican  in  1300,  and  translated  it 
into  German,  with  a  preface  and  epilogue ;  and  he  also  pub- 
lished a  Battle  Sermon,  which  was  to  serve  as  a  formula  of  in- 
struction for  the  chaplains  attached  to  the  army,  and  contained 
a  form  of  prayer  against  the  Turk.  And  such  was  his  zeal 
that  he  parted  with  some  of  his  private  property,  some  garden 
ground  and  a  court-yard,  in  order  that  he  might  be  able  to 
give  his  contribution,  like  the  widow's  mite,  to  the  cause  of 
God  against  the  false  prophet.  But  the  national  spirit  of  Lu- 
ther was  not  present  in  the  conduct  of  the  war.  The  Emperor 
was  involved  in  a  renewed  contest  with  France.  Ferdinand 
was  remiss ;  he  gathered  money  from  his  kingdom  of  Bohemia, 
but  not  men ;  the  Protestant  contingents  were  somewhat 
unfairly  dealt  with ;  and  it  began  to  be  whispered  that  it 
was  the  Papist  policy  to  let  them  perish  by  the  Ottoman 
scimitar. 

It  was  soon  proved  that  all  the  indulgence  which  had  been 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  341 

shown  the  Protestants  originated  in  selfish  motives.  The  1542. 
contingents  had  been  promised  or  sent  against  the  Turks,  but 
the  Imperial  Chamber  was  not  reformed ;  it  continued  to  issue 
its  judgment  against  the  Evangelicals,  and  Henry  of  Bruns- 
wick still  made  his  raids  upon  the  lands  of  his  Protestant 
neighbours,  and  threatened  and  insulted  the  city  of  Goslar. 
So  persevering  were  these  menaces,  that  the  Elector  of  Saxony 
and  the  Landgrave  assembled  their  forces  to  crush  a  Prince 
whose  malice  was  so  inveterate.  Within  little  more  than  two 
months  they  had  reduced  the  whole  of  the  Duchy  of  Bruns- 
wick to  submission,  and  compelled  the  Duke,  just  as  they  were 
on  the  eve  of  attacking  his  fortress  of  Wolfenbuttel,  to  fly  to 
Ferdinand,  to  whom  in  his  distress  he  made  his  appeal,  as  well 
as  to  the  Diet  which  had  met  at  Nuremberg.  Ferdinand  forth- 
with sent  a  deputation  to  the  Elector  and  Landgrave,  requiring 
them  to  desist  from  war,  and  the  States  also  sent  ambassadors 
to  demand  forbearance ;  but  they  replied  that  they  had  fur- 
nished the  stipulated  auxiliaries  against  the  Turks  with  good 
faith  ;  that  in  attacking  Henry  of  Brunswick  they  had  only 
discharged  the  duty  they  owed  their  allies  ;  and  when  peace 
had  been  obtaiued  they  would  march  with  as  large  a  part  of 
their  forces  as  possible  into  Hungary.  From  the  first  the 
enterprise  against  the  Duke  of  Brunswick  received  the 
approval  of  Luther.  "  I  commend  to  you  and  to  the 
Church,"  he  wrote  to  Amsdorf  the  13th  July,  "the  war 
against  the  incendiary  Henry ;  it  is  simply  necessary  for  the 
defence  of  the  oppressed."  He  hailed  with  gratitude  the 
triumph  of  the  Protestant  arms.  "The  victory  is  plainly 
divine;  Wolfenbuttel,  which  was  thought  impregnable,  has 
been  taken  within  three  days.  God  has  been  the  whole  doer 
in  the  matter  :  the  events  of  these  times  are  not  human,  and 
I  feel  assured  they  are  couriers  of  the  blessed  day  of  our 
redemption.     Amen." 


312  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1542.  Just  when  affairs  were  in  this  state  of  turmoil,  war  with 
the  Turks  and  war  in  Hungary,  the  Emperor  at  war  with 
France,  and  intestine  strife  continually  arising  between  the 
German  Princes,  Paul  III.  descried  his  opportunity,  and  by 
a  bull,  signed  the  22nd  May,  and  published  the  29th  June, 
convened  a  general  council  to  meet  the  ensuing  1st  November 
at  Trent.  And  towards  the  end  of  November  three  cardinals 
actually  appeared  at  Trent  as  the  Pope's  commissioners  for 
opening  the  council ;  a  few  Italian  bishops  likewise  made 
their  appearance,  but  when  these  dignitaries  had  waited  there 
a  few  weeks,  and  no  fresh  arrivals  of  ecclesiastics  took  place — 
for  travelling,  it  was  alleged,  in  such  troublous  times,  was 
unsafe — the  council  was  prorogued,  to  the  infinite  amusement 
of  the  Protestants.  On  the  other  hand,  the  conviction,  which 
was  now  general,  that  Rome  would  never  put  her  hand  to  the 
work  of  reform  in  earnest,  the  proceedings  of  recent  Diets,  the 
warlike  occupations  of  the  Emperor,  the  successful  enterprise 
against  Henry  of  Brunswick,  had  considerably  added  to  the 
strength  of  the  Protestant  side.  At  Halle  the  Reformation 
had  been  previously  commenced  under  the  superintendence 
of  Justus  Jonas :  and  this  year  the  Reformation  was  estab- 
lished in  Ratisbon,  in  Hildesheim,  in  the  dominions  of  Otto 
Henry  Count  Palatine,  known  as  the  "  younger  Palatinate  in 
Bavaria,"  and  the  next  year,  under  the  direction  of  Bucer 
and  Melancthon,  in  the  Electorate  of  the  Archbishop  of 
Cologne.  And  there  were  indications  that  it  would  not  be 
long  ere  the  Elector  Palatine  would  follow  the  example  of  his 
kinsman  in  Bavaria. 

A  year  so  replete  with  matter  of  public  interest  was  not 
uneventful  in  the  Reformer's  private  history.  At  its  com- 
mencement he  made  the  will  bequeathing  all  he  had  to  Kate, 
which  after  his  death  was  confirmed  by  the  Elector,  and  car- 
ried into  effect.     His  health  continued  better  than  was  usual 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEH.  343 

with  him,  and  his  pen,  therefore,  was  vigorously  employed.  1512. 
Towards  the  end  of  August,  Johnny,  who  had  hitherto  been 
instructed  by  a  tutor  at  home,  was  sent  for  the  first  time  to  a 
school  at  Torgau,  conducted  by  Mark  Crodel,  to  whom  Luther 
wrote  on  the  occasion  as  follows  :  "  Grace  and  peace. — As  was 
agreed  between  us,  I  send  you  my  son  John,  that  you  may 
instruct  him  in  grammar  and  music,  and  at  the  same  time 
watch  over  and  correct  his  morals ;  for  I  have  the  utmost 
confidence  in  you  in  the  Lord,  I  will  liberally  repay  your 
care,  and  must  ask  you  to  inform  me  what  progress  he  makes 
from  time  to  time,  and  how  far  his  capacity  may  allow  of  his 
education  being  carried.  I  have  sent  Florian  with  him, 
chiefly  because  I  see  that  boys  of  his  nature  require  the  society 
of  many  others,  which  is  a  better  training  school  than  home 
discipline.  You  must  treat  Florian  with  more  severity ;  and 
if  you  can  put  him  to  board  with  some  citizen,  do  so ;  if  not, 
send  him  back  to  me.  May  God  prosper  the  undertaking. 
If  you  succeed  with  my  son,  and  I  live,  you  shall  have  my 
other  two  sons  also.  For  I  am  convinced  that  we  shall  not 
have  hereafter  many  preceptors  of  such  diligence  as  yourself, 
especially  in  grammar  and  in  severity  of  moral  vigilance. 
I  must  seize  the  opportunity,  for  time  speeds,  and  diligent 
schoolmasters  speed  yet  faster.  My  son  will  return  hither 
for  the  higher  studies.  Farewell  in  the  Lord ;  and  tell  John 
Walter  that  I  pray  for  his  salvation,  and  commend  my 
son  to  his  instructions  in  music.  I  desire  first  of  all  that 
my  sons  should  prove  theologians,  but  I  would  have  them 
also  to  be  grammarians  and  musicians.  Again  farewell,  and 
salute  Gabriel  and  his  family.  For  the  third  time  farewell, 
and  for  ever."  A  little  later,  on  the  6th  September,  the 
following  private  letter  was  addressed  to  the  schoolmaster  : 
"  Grace  and  peace. — My  dear  Crodel, — Conceal  from  my  son 
what  I  now  write  to  you.     My  daughter  Magdalene  is  dan- 


344  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1542.  gerously  ill,  and  ready  to  depart  to  the  true  Father  in  heaven, 
unless  God  will  otherwise.  She  longs  so  earnestly  to  see  her 
brother,  that  I  have  felt  compelled  to  send  a  carriage  to  fetch 
him.  Their  love  for  one  another  has  been  most  tender. 
Perhaps  his  presence  may  revive  her ;  at  least,  my  conscience 
will  not  charge  me  with  neglect.  Bid  him,  therefore,  with- 
out communicating  the  cause,  to  speed  hither  in  the  carriage. 
He  shall  promptly  return  when  she  shall  either  sleep  in  the 
Lord,  or  be  recovered."  Fourteen  days  later,  little  Magda- 
lene fell  asleep  in  Christ  in  her  father's  arms.  Luther,  a 
little  before  her  death,  said  to  her,  "  Little  Magdalene,  my 
little  daughter,  you  are  quite  willing  to  remain  here  with 
your  father,  or  to  go  to  yonder  Father?"  pointing  upwards ; 
to  which  she  answered,  "Yes,  dear  father,  as  God  will." 
When  she  was  dying,  he  read  to  her  that  passage  of  Isaiah, 
"  Thy  dead  men  shall  live,  together  with  my  dead  body  shall 
they  arise.  Awake  and  sing,  ye  that  dwell  in  dust :  for  thy 
dew  is  as  the  dew  of  herbs,  and  the  earth  shall  cast  out  the 
dead.  Come,  my  people,  enter  thou  into  thy  chambers,  and 
shut  thy  doors  about  thee :  hide  thyself  as  it  were  for  a 
little  moment,  until  the  indignation  be  overpast."*  "Yes, 
my  daughter,"  he  added,  "  enter  thou  into  thy  chamber  in 
peace ;  I  shall  soon  come  to  thee  :  for  God  will  never  suffer 
me  to  see  the  miseries  that  are  coming  upon  Germany." 
Luther  wept  bitterly  at  his  daughter's  death,  but  suppressed 
his  grief  in  public,  so  that  no  trace  of  tears  was  to  be  seen 
upon  his  face  at  the  funeral,  when  he  was  engrossed  with 
meditating  on  the  text,  "  None  of  us  liveth  to  himself,  and 
none  of  us  dieth  to  himself."  With  many  sobs  Kate  dis- 
missed Johnny  to  return  to  school,  but  he  did  not  resume 
his  studies   contentedly.      His   mother  promised  that  if  he 

*  Isaiah  xxvi.  19,  20. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  345 

were  ill,  he  should  be  sent  for  home ;  and  as  he  entreated  to  1542. 
be  allowed  to  return,  Luther  was  obliged  to  interfere.  "  I 
can  easily  believe,  my  dear  Crodel,"  he  wrote  to  the  school- 
master the  day  after  Christmas,  "  that  my  son  was  melted  at 
his  mother's  words  in  his  grief  for  his  sister's  death,  but  do 
you  be  earnest  in  your  exhortations.  When  here  he  boasted 
of  you  and  your  wife,  that  he  was  as  well  or  better  treated  by 
you  than  at  home.  Bid  him  overcome  all  womanly  weakness, 
and  accustom  himself  to  bear  ills,  and  not  indulge  a  childish 
softness.  He  was  sent  from  home  for  the  very  purpose  of 
learning  and  hardening  against  trials.  He  must  not  return 
unless  he  is  really  ill,  in  which  case  do  you  let  me  know." 
"  I  have  never  been  more  enraged  with  Death,"  he  wrote  to 
his  friends,  in  touching  on  his  recent  affliction,  "  but  I  have 
satiated  my  wrath  by  threatening  him  from  Scripture.  Mag- 
deleue's  end  was  most  peaceful,  and  we  have  reason  to  do 
nothing  else  than  give  God  thanks  that  she  is  now  beyond 
the  power  of  the  flesh,  the  world,  the  Turk,  and  Satan. 
Would  that  we  too  might  have  such  a  death  and  such  a  life  ! 
Amen." 

Early  in  the  new  year  Luther  published  a  treatise  "  Of  1543. 
the  Jews  and  their  Lies,"  in  which  he  touched  on  the  deep 
depravity  of  the  nation  or  sect ;  and  observed  that  better 
moral  lessons  were  to  be  met  with  in  iEsop,  Cato,  or  Terence, 
than  in  all  the  writings  of  the  Talmudists.  He  used  to  say 
that  ' '  he  felt  pity  for  the  whole  lost  house  of  Israel  for  the 
love  he  bore  to  one  Jew,  his  Saviour  •"  but  now  he  stated 
that  he  quite  despaired  of  their  conversion,  "  the  Jewish 
heart  was  a  stock-stone-iron-devil  heart,"  and  therefore  not 
for  the  sake  of  the  Jews,  but  of  Christians,  he  took  pains  to 
demonstrate  that  the  period  fixed  by  the  Jewish  prophets  for 
the  Messiah's  advent  had  long  been  expired,  and  that  an  ac- 
cumulation of  evidence  pointed  to  Jesus  as  that  Divine  Being. 


346  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1543.  He  followed  up  the  treatise  by  another,  "  On  the  Schem 
Hamphoras  of  the  Jews,"  in  which  he  corrected  Jewish  errors, 
reconciled  the  genealogies  of  Jesus  given  by  Matthew  and 
Luke,  and  again  reflected  on  the  trickery  and  falsehood  of  the 
Jews,  charging  them  with  attempting,  by  their  false  grammar 
and  arbitrary  punctuation,  to  obscure  the  prophecies  relative 
to  the  Messiah.  This  second  treatise  gave  occasion  to  a 
"Commentary  on  the  last  Words  of  David,"  in  which  he  again 
vindicated  the  principles  on  which  he  had  proceeded  in  his 
translation  of  the  Old  Testament,  and  descended  to  some 
philological  details.  With  these  writings  his  literary  efforts 
for  1543  were  exhausted,  excepting  epistolary  correspondence 
and  prefaces'*  to  the  compositions  of  others.  His  Commentary 
on  the  book  of  Genesis,  the  labour  of  years,  taken  down  from 
his  lips  as  he  delivered  it,  was  editing  by  Viet  Dietrich, 
Cruciger,  and  Rorarius.  A  new  edition  of  his  Church  Postils 
was  superintended  by  Cruciger.  And  a  Latin  edition  of  his 
works  was  publishing,  in  which  the  Elector  took  great  in- 
terest, and  as  the  printers  proceeded  but  slowly,  warned  them 
to  make  more  speed,  or  they  should  be  deprived  of  their  pri- 
vileges. He  was  eager  to  have  the  edition  completed  in  the 
Reformer's  lifetime. 

Throughout  the  year  Luther  was  a  prey  to  the  old  malady 
in  the  head,  which  he  now  regarded  as  a  chronic  ailment. 
"  I  have  overworked/'  he  said,  "  and  overlived,  and  am  good 

*  One  of  these  was  to  the  speeches  of  the  young  Princes,  John 
Frederic  and  John  William,  delivered  before  the  University  on  the 
29th  April,  in  the  presence  of  their  father  and  his  Court.  From 
commending  the  two  Princes,  so  ripe  in  learning  for  their  early  age,  one 
fourteen  and  the  other  thirteen  years  of  age,  Luther  passed  on  to  the 
dangers  which  beset  their  path  through  life,  from  "  Satan's  tools,  fal- 
lacious courtiers,  perfidious  friends,  treacherous  ministers,  and  rapa- 
cious nobles."     "  Princes,"  he  said,  "  are  Satan's  sweetest  dainties." 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  347 

for  nothing ;  God  send  me  a  happy  hour."  He  had  promised  1543. 
the  Bishop  of  Naumburg-Zeitz  to  pay  him  a  visit;  but  he 
wrote  to  him  in  the  summer,  that  for  six  months  he  had  daily 
been  expecting  his  release ;  and  his  state  of  health  continued 
feeble  throughout  the  autumn.  The  physicians  tried  every 
means  in  their  power  to  relieve  the  oppression  in  the  head — 
first  a  cautery  in  the  leg,  and  then  a  vein  was  opened  in  the 
left  leg.  Luther  resigned  himself  to  their  skill,  but  smiled  at 
its  failure.  "  It  is  old  age,"  he  exclaimed,  "  and  all  the  phy- 
sicians in  the  world  could  do  me  no  good;  but,  that  I  may 
not  seem  my  own  enemy,  treat  me  as  you  please."  Bodily 
disease  and  feebleness  were  aggravated  by  a  melancholy  fore- 
boding of  the  ills  hanging  over  "  his  dear  Germany,  that 
wallowing  sow."  The  churches  had  good  pastors,  but  there  was 
no  love  of  God  amongst  the  people,  and  but  a  stint  measure  of 
morality  at  the  courts  even  of  the  Protestant  princes.  Every- 
where avarice,  corruption,  and  iniquity  abounded.  He  regretted 
that,  excellent  as  the  Elector  of  Saxony  was  himself,  he  per- 
mitted his  courtiers  to  influence  his  acts,  and  was  not  half  alive 
to  the  deceitfulness  of  Satan.  Immorality,  in  a  most  formida- 
ble aspect,  threatened  to  invade  the  University  of  Wittenberg ; 
but  within  those  precincts  Luther  could  put  his  own  authority 
into  exercise,  and  he  published  a  manifesto  to  the  students, 
exhorting  them  to  self-restraint,  and  to  endure  hardness;  but 
intimated  that  if  remonstrance  failed,  recourse  should  be  had 
to  the  power  of  the  law.  The  Turk,  the  Jew,  the  Pope, 
and  the  Sacramentarian  filled  up  the  back-ground  in  the 
dismal  picture  of  human  depravity.  "  I  pray,"  he  said, 
"  continually  against  the  Turk ;  but  I  know  not  against  what 
Turk  God  may  be  pleased  to  turn  my  prayers.  The  Turlc 
within  the  walls  is  infinitely  worse  than  the  Turk  without." 
But  his  faith  was  sufficiently  strong  to  convert  even  his 
sorrows  into  a  ground  of  hope.     "  All  the  glory  of  the  Turk 


348  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1543.  and  Papist  I  account  but  devils'  dung ;  Christ  will  soon  ap- 
pear with  redemption.     Amen." 

The  Diet,  which  had  again  been  summoned  to  meet  at 
Nuremberg  before  the  close  of  1542,  did  not  commence  its 
sittings  until  the  first  week  of  February,  1543,  when  Luther 
addressed  a  letter  to  the  evangelical  clergy  to  request  their 
prayers  against  the  Turks.  But  the  notion  that  either  Ferdi- 
nand or  the  Emperor  was  sincere  in  his  professions  of  zeal, 
had  now  become  extremely  doubtful ;  and  the  vehemence  of 
intestine  strife  swallowed  up  the  apprehension  of  more  remote 
danger.  The  Romanists  were  greatly  incensed  by  the  seizure 
of  the  Brunswick  Duchy ;  the  Protestants  were  indignant 
that  the  promises  repeatedly  pledged  to  them  in  reference  to 
the  Imperial  Chamber  had  been  as  repeatedly  broken,  and 
that  the  Emperor  was  intent  on  his  schemes  of  personal  ambi- 
tion, prosecuting  the  conquest  of  Gueldres  from  the  Duke 
of  Juliers.  The  deliberations  accordingly  had  no  satis- 
factory issue.  The  Recess  of  Ferdinand  and  the  Romanist 
party  spoke  of  garrisoning  the  fortresses  on  the  Turkish  fron- 
tiers, and  of  contributions  to  be  levied  for  that  purpose,  of  the 
Reform  of  the  Imperial  Chamber,  to  date  from  the  3rd  July; 
and  such  as  refused  to  send  the  required  auxiliaries  were  sub- 
jected to  fiscal  jurisdiction.  The  Protestants,  on  their  side,  held 
their  separate  consultations,  and  published  a  counter  Recess, 
in  which  they  repudiated  the  decree  of  the  adverse  members 
of  the  Diet ;  engaged  to  hold  by  one  another  in  opposing  the 
processes  and  proscriptions  of  the  Imperial  Chamber  ;  refused 
to  send  forces  to  Hungary,  or  to  resign  the  Duchy  of  Bruns- 
wick, seeing  that  the  Duke  was  convicted  of  a  host  of  crimes ; 
and  resolved  on  sending  a  deputation  to  the  Emperor  to  state 
their  grievances  and  enforce  their  demands.  And  two  months 
after  the  Diet  had  broken  up,  the  allies  met  at  Schmalkald, 
when  provision  was   made  for  the  reception  of  the  King  of 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  349 

Sweden,  and  the  Bishop  of  Munster,  Osnaburg,  and  Mindcn,  1513. 
into  the  Alliance ;  and  immediately  on  the  close  of  the  meet- 
ing, a  month  later,  an  embassy  was  despatched  to  the  Emperor, 
who  was  moving  from  Italy  at  the  head  of  his  army  through 
Suabia  towards  the  Low  Countries,  to  dispute  the  possession 
of  Gueldres  with  the  Duke  of  Juliers.  The  ambassadors  were 
favoured  with  an  audience  late  in  the  evening  of  the  3rd 
August,  by  the  Emperor,  who  received  them  standing,  and 
extended  his  hand  to  each  of  them,  but  sat  whilst  they  de- 
tailed their  complaints.  Two  days  later  Charles  returned  his 
answer,  requiring  the  Protestants  to  furnish  auxiliaries  against 
the  Turks,  deferring  the  reform  of  the  Imperial  Chamber 
until  full  inquiry  had  proved  the  validity  of  the  charges,  and 
postponing  the  consideration  of  all  the  other  questions  until 
the  approaching  Diet  to  be  held  at  Spires,  in  which  he  him- 
self intended  to  be  present.  The  Protestants  were  somewhat 
softened  by  this  reply,  so  that,  influenced  by  the  desire  to 
avoid  offending  Charles,  they  did  not  keep  back  their  contri- 
butions in  money  to  the  Turkish  war,  but  were  still  resolved 
to  withhold  their  forces.  The  visitation  of  the  Imperial 
Chamber,  to  which  they  were  invited  by  the  Emperor,  com- 
menced in  October,  and  the  Protestants  sent  their  delegates 
as  though  they  believed  the  Imperial  professions  to  be  sincere ; 
but  they  found  their  allegations  met  by  quibbles  and  cavils, 
and  after  some  time  they  desisted  in  extreme  disgust  from  pro- 
secuting the  attempt.  The  Emperor  had  his  own  reasons  for 
retaining  the  Chamber  as  it  was,  and  the  extreme  Romanist 
section  had  found  it  too  useful  a  tool  for  their  own  purposes 
to  be  willing  parties  to  a  change  in  its  constitution.  In  fact, 
the  conduct  of  the  Emperor  had  been  dexterous  in  the  highest 
degree.  His  astute  policy  had  wavered  between  the  Romanists 
and  the  Protestants ;  but  by  this  vacillation  he  had  succeeded 
in  establishing  a  middle  party,  which  still  held,  in  some  im- 


350  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1543.  portant  respects,  the  ancient  faith,  but  adopted  the  popular 
aspirations  for  an  ecclesiastical  reformation  :  he  had  placed 
himself  at  the  head  of  this  party,  and  he  owed  to  it  the  great 
authority  which  now  invested  him.  The  rising  men  among 
the  princes  were  almost  all  of  this  imperial,  conservative, 
reforming  section  ;  in  particular,  the  young  Elector  of  Bran- 
denburg and  Duke  Maurice  of  Saxony  were  among  its  most 
eminent  members.  The  aged  Duke  Henry  of  Saxony  had 
died  some  time  previously ;  and  one  of  the  first  acts  of  Duke 
Maurice,  on  succeeding  to  the  Saxon  Duchy,  notwithstand- 
ing that  he  was  married  to  the  Landgrave's  daughter,  was 
to  withdraw  from  the  Schmalkald  confederacy,  at  the  same 
time  that  he  still  professed  the  evangelical  faith.  A  little 
while  afterwards  he  openly  quarrelled  with  the  Elector 
of  Saxony  for  the  right  which  he  claimed  of  free  passage 
through  the  town  of  Wurzen.  Both  the  Elector  and  Duke 
mustered  their  forces  for  battle,  but  a  reconciliation  between 
the  cousins  was  affected  at  Grimma.  "You  resemble," 
Luther  told  the  irritated  kinsmen,  "  two  drunken  country 
boors  fighting  in  a  pothouse  over  a  piece  of  broken  glass,  or 
two  fools  cuffing  one  another  for  a  morsel  of  bread.  Let  each 
of  you  retire  to  his  own  chamber,  and  pray  in  earnest  an 
'Our  Father/  that,  if  God  will,  the  Holy  Ghost  may  change 
his  heart."  Shortly  afterwards  Duke  Maurice  started  for 
the  Turkish  Avar,  in  which  his  life  was  narrowly  saved  by  the 
devoted  self-sacrifice  of  an  attendant.  And  the  ascendancy 
which  the  Emperor  had  gained,  became  the  more  obvious 
when  the  Duke  of  Juliers  was  beheld  to  kneel  at  his  feet 
and  crave  pardon  for  his  offence,  and  resign  the  contested 
prize  in  the  Low  Countries  to  be  annexed  to  the  Imperial 
dominions.  The  Emperor's  gold  had  been  more  effective  in 
turning  the  tide  of  war  in  his  favour,  than  his  soldiers'  steel. 
Under  such  an  aspect  of  public  affairs   it  may  be   readily 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  351 

imagined  with  what  pathos  of  indignation  John  Frederic  1543. 
mourned  over  the  downfall  of  constitutional  Germany ;  and 
in  what  notes  of  still  deeper  despondency,  taking  his  survey 
from  higher  grounds,  Luther  echoed  his  Prince's  lamentations. 
"Everything  is  venal;  I  hear  of  nothing  but  rapine  and 
violence  and  the  oppression  of  the  people  by  the  nobles.  The 
earth  is  filled  with  iniquity;  Ferdinand  becomes  more  Satanic 
and  furious  every  day,  and  is  worse  than  Charles.  When  at 
last  it  shall  come  to  a  war  between  the  Emperor  and  the 
Protestants,  without  a  doubt  our  centaurs,  like  those  of 
Juliers,  will  sell  their  Prince  also.  How  heartily  do  I  thank 
God  that  my  clearest  daughter  Magdalene  is  delivered  from 
Ur  of  the  Chaldees.     Come,  Lord  Jesus,  come."* 

Early  in  the  next  year  Charles  made  his  entrance  into  1544. 
Spires,  to  preside  in  person  in  the  Diet,  and  had  never  been 
more  assiduous  in  paying  court  to  the  Protestant  Princes  than 
at  this  time,  when  their  downfall  had  been  determined  in  his 
mind ;  but  he  saw  the  necessity  of  peace  with  the  Turks  and 
with  the  French,  before  any  steps  could  be  taken  in  further- 
ance of  his  domestic  plans ;  and  he  knew  that  the  road  to 
peace  only  lay  through  victory.  On  the  18th  February  the 
Elector  of  Saxony  arrived  at  Spires,  and  was  received  by 
imperial  command,  and  escorted  into  the  city  with  all  due 
ceremony,  and  found  the  Emperor  in  every  respect  ready  to 
accede  to  his  wishes.  His  marriage  articles  were  ratified,  and 
Ferdinand's  daughter  Eleanor  was  promised  in  marriage  to 
his  eldest  son,  if  in  the  interval  religious  differences  could  be 

*  John  Eck  died  on  the  10th  February,  1543.  Viet  Dietrich,  in  a 
letter  to  Luther,  states  that  Eck,  being  seized  with  fever,  attempted  to 
cure  it,  after  his  old  fashion,  with  copious  cups.  Drunkenness  termi- 
nated in  epilepsy,  and  epilepsy  in  apoplexy.  The  Eucharist  was  cele- 
brated by  the  bedside  amidst  Eek's  incoherent  exclamations,  "  Oh ! 
had  we  but  the  4000  guilders,  we  could  right  well  settle  the  business." 


352  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1544.  arranged.  The  Landgrave  was  beguiled  by  the  bait  of  the 
commandership-in-chief  of  the  Imperial  forces;  and  it  was 
contrived  that  the  cause  of  the  Duke  of  Brunswick  should  be 
heard  without  judgment  being  pronounced;  and  the  Elector 
and  Landgrave  were  persuaded  to  commit  the  Duchy  to  their 
good  friend  the  Emperor  as  sequestrator,  until  sentence  in  the 
case  could  be  finally  given.  On  the  12th  June  the  Recess  of 
the  Diet  was  published.  Large  aids  were  granted  to  the 
Emperor  in  men  and  money  against  the  French,  and  a  poll- 
tax  was  to  be  levied  against  the  Turks;  the  Imperial  Chamber 
was  to  remain  as  it  was  for  three  years  longer,  when  the 
judges  were  to  be  appointed  from  both  religious  denomina- 
tions ;  and  meanwhile  the  Augsburg  edict  and  the  proscription 
of  Goslar  and  Minden  were  suspended ;  and  a  new  Diet  was 
appointed  for  December,  at  which  the  Emperor  and  Princes 
should  present  formularies  for  the  adjustment  of  religious 
differences,  until  such  time  as  a  general  council  should  meet 
in  Germany,  or  in  default  of  that,  a  decision  should  be 
arrived  at  by  the  German  nation  in  Diet.  The  Recess  was 
so  worded  as  to  be  susceptible  of  various  interpretations,  so 
as  to  satisfy  both  parties;  and  Charles  comforted  the  Evan- 
gelicals, as  at  Ratisbon,  with  private  assurances  of  his  favour 
and  goodwill.  The  Papists  were  as  much  deceived  by  all  these 
manoeuvres  as  the  Protestants  themselves,  and  were  highly 
incensed  by  the  result  of  the  deliberations.  The  foundations 
of  his  schemes  thus  stealthily  but  securely  laid  in  Germany, 
Charles  hastened  to  take  the  command  of  his  army  against 
the  French,  and  his  presence  revived  the  courage  of  his  troops, 
who  had  been  disheartened  by  the  intelligence  of  the  battle 
of  Cerisoles.  Having  first  subjugated  Luxemburg,  he  ad- 
vanced from  the  Low  Countries  through  Champagne  towards 
the  heart  of  France,  and  laid  siege  to  St.  Disier.  And  at  the 
Sept.  19.  same  time  Henry  of  England  laid  siege  to  and  took  Boulogne. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  353 

St.  Disier  at  length  capitulated,  but  the  time  spent  in  the  1544. 
siege  proved  the  salvation  of  France ;  and  the  Emperor  find- 
ing himself  in  a  district  of  vineyards,  without  the  means  of 
getting  sustenance  for  his  army,  was  glad  enough  to  come 
to  terms  with  Francis,  ■  and  peace  was  signed  at  Crespy  in 
Valois,  on  conditions  not  unfavourable  to  the  French.  The 
Pontiff,  who  had  been  so  indignant  at  the  Recess  of  the  Diet 
of  Spires,  that  he  sent  a  letter  to  the  Emperor,  not  only  to 
complain  of  indulgence  shown  to  heretics,  but  in  yet  more 
resentful  language  of  the  invasion  of  his  own  supreme  ecclesi- 
astical prerogatives,  was  elated  by  the  restoration  of  amity 
between  their  most  Catholic  and  most  Christian  Majesties ; 
and,  as  he  could  not  fail  to  recognize  the  necessity  of  reclaim- 
ing for  himself  the  functions  which  a  lay  tribunal  had  arro- 
gated, he  published  a  Bull  (Lsetare  Jerusalem),  convoking  in 
terms  of  rhapsody  an  oecumencial  council  to  meet  at  Trent  in 
the  beginning  of  March  in  the  ensuing  year. 

Throughout  this  year  Luther's  health  showed  a  consider- 
able improvement.  On  the  26th  January  he  wrote  to  Ams- 
dorf,  "  I  am  restored  in  my  whole  body  excepting  my  head, 
which  continues  weak ;  but  I  preach,  read,  stand,  and  walk, 
and  as  soon  as  the  winter  is  past  I  shall  visit  you."  At  this 
time  the  subject  of  "secret  betrothals"  engaged  the  Re- 
former's attention  :  a  case  was  tried  in  which  the  decision  of 
law  was  incompatible  with  justice,  for  such  clandestine 
agreements  were  pronounced  valid  if  entered  into  condition- 
ally, subject  to  the  consent  of  parents.  Luther  took  up  the 
matter  with  his  usual  ardour.  The  insertion  of  an  addition — 
the  consent  of  parents — did  not  in  any  way  remove,  he  stated, 
the  inherent  vice  of  all  such  compacts  as  clandestine :  and  he 
apprehended  that  parents  would  withdraw  their  sons  from  the 
University,    under   the    dread   of    their    forming   ill-advised 

VOL.  II.  A   A 


354  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1544.  unions.  He  went  so  far  as  to  inveigh  against  the  practice 
from  the  pulpit,  as  a  remnant  of  Popery,  an  invention  of  Satan 
set  np  by  the  instrumentality  of  the  Pope,  the  great  soul- 
murderer,  and  solemnly  committed  the  clandestine  betrothals, 
like  the  monkish  vow,  to  hell.  The  lawyers  resented  this 
conduct ;  but,  nothing  daunted,  Luther  defended  the  part  he 
had  acted,  and  implored  the  Elector  to  do  away  with  the 
legal  validity  of  all  secret  matrimonial  compacts. 

After  a  winter  so  long  and  severe  that  Luther  interpreted  it 
into  a  happy  omen  that  the  day  of  Christ  was  near,  he  re- 
newed his  promise  to  the  Bishop  of  Naumburg  in  the  spring, 
of  paying  him  a  visit.  His  style  of  addressing  his  friend,  for 
some  time  after  his  promotion  to  the  See,  had  still  been,  "  My 
dear  Amsdorf;"  but  now  it  was  changed  to  "Reverend 
Bishop  in  the  Lord,"  or  "  Reverend  Father  in  Christ,"  to  ex- 
emplify in  his  own  deportment  the  respect  due  to  the  epis- 
copal character.  The  visit,  however,  continued  to  be  de- 
ferred ;  first  there  were  reported  to  be  roving  bandits  in  the 
neighbourhood ;  then  "  the  ploughs,"  or  kinsmen  of  Julius 
Pflug,  through  whose  territory  part  of  the  journey  lay,  fell 
under  suspicion  of  entertaining  no  goodwill  to  his  person ;  and 
finally,  a  letter  of  the  Elector  to  Luther,  from  the  Diet,  re- 
quested him  so  to  time  his  visit  that  he  might  be  able  on  his 
return  to  meet  him  at  Zeitz.  During  the  Elector's  absence  a 
letter  also  was  received  by  Luther  from  the  Electress  Sibylla, 
in  inquiry  for  his  health,  and  for  tidings  of  his  wife  and 
children.  He  replied  as  follows  :  "  Grace  and  peace  in  the 
Lord,  illustrious,  high-born  princess,  gracious  lady.  I  have 
received  your  letter,  and  thank  you  submissively  for  so  dili- 
gently inquiring  after  my  health,  and  how  it  goes  with  my 
wife  and  children,  and  wishing  me  all  good.  God  be  praised, 
it  goes  right  well  with  us — far  better  than  we  deserve.     1 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  355 

have  for  a  long  while  been  out  of  sorts  in  my  head,  but  that  1544. 
is  no  wonder ;  the  fault  is  old  age,  of  itself  cold  and  comfort- 
less, sick  and  weak.  The  pitcher  is  often  carried  to  the  well, 
but  it  breaks  at  last.  I  have  lived  long  enough :  God  give  me 
a  happy  hour,  that  my  foul,  useless  bag  of  worms  may  drop 
beneath  the  ground  to  its  own  people.  I  am  certain  that  I 
have  seen  the  best  that  I  shall  see  on  earth.  The  world 
grows  worse  and  worse  :  God  help  his  own  !  Amen.  I  can 
well  believe  your  Grace  has  found  it  a  tedious  time  since  your 
gracious  lord  has  been  absent ;  but  since  it  must  needs  be,  and 
is  for  the  good  and  profit  of  Christendom  and  of  German)', 
we  must  bear  his  absence  with  patience,  according  to  the  will 
of  God.  What  a  comfort  is  the  Word  of  God  to  support  us 
in  life,  and  assure  us  of  happiness  beyond  !  What  a  joy,  too, 
is  prayer,  which,  as  your  Grace  writes,  we  know  is  heard  of 
God  in  his  own  good  time.  Two  such  jewels  of  ineffable 
price,  devil,  Turk,  Pope,  and  Papist  do  not  possess;  nay,  in 
such  respects  they  are  poorer  than  any  beggar  upon  earth. 
We  must  thank  God,  the  Father  of  all  mercies,  in  Christ 
Jesus  his  dear  Son,  our  Lord,  that  he  has  given  us  such 
saving  treasures,  such  precious  jewels,  of  which  so  'many  of 
the  highest  heads  on  earth  know  nothing.  Well  may  we 
compassionate  them.  God  enlighten  them,  to  see,  know,  and 
believe  as  we  do  !  Amen.  My  Kate  offers  her  poor  '  Our 
Father'  for  your  Highness,  with  all  submission,  and  heartily 
thanks  your  Grace  that  you  so  graciously  think  of  her. 
Herewith  I  commend  you  to  the  dear  God.     Amen." 

At  last,  on  the  13th  August,  Luther  set  out  on  his  long 
intended  journey  to  Zeitz.  Amsdorf  had  provided  an  escort 
which  conducted  Luther  by  Eilenburg,  Borna,  and  Zuhlsdorf, 
until  he  safely  reached  the  Bishop's  palace.  After  he  had 
been  at  Zeitz  a  little  while,  Luther  repaired  to  Altenburg  on 

a  a  2 


356  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1544.  a  short  visit  to  Spalatin,*  who  stood  in  much  need  of  his 
friendly  consolation,  and  then  returned  back  again  to  Zeitz. 
Amsdorf  again  sent  an  escort,  with  directions  to  accompany 
Luther  the  whole  way  on  his  return  to  Wittenberg ;  every 
expense  on  the  road  was  defrayed,  and  a  silver  cup  and  spoon 
were  found  deposited  amongst  the  Reformer's  baggage. 
Aug.  27.  "  You  have  treated  me/'  Luther  wrote  to  the  Bishop,  ff  like 
St.  James's  host  of  whom  we  read,  and  have  made  me,  against 
my  will — a  thief  of  your  property.  Perhaps  you  thought  of 
Joseph  and  Benjamin.  But  how  unseemly  it  is  that  I,  a  poor 
theologian,  born  in  very  humble  station,  should  drink  out  of 
gold  and  silver  !  It  will  be  a  scandal  to  the  enemies  of  the 
Word,  and  there  are  enough  of  them  ;  but  the  whole  fault  is 
yours."  Rather  more  than  a  month  afterwards,  Luther  paid 
a  visit  to  the  Elector  at  Torgau,  who  required  his  presence  to 
consecrate  a  recently  erected  church.  All  the  formalities  of 
consecration  invented  by  the  Papists  were  rejected,  and 
Luther  simply  offered  up  prayer,  and  delivered  a  discourse 
adapted  to  the  occasion,  which  he  and  the  Elector  determined 
to  be  the  true  Christian  mode  of  dedicating  an  edifice  to 
God's  worship.  The  autumn  was  again  a  sickly  season  at 
Wittenberg,  and  Luther's  children  all  suffered  from  illness; 
and  when  the  rest  had  recovered,  little  Margaret  still  main- 
tained a  doubtful  struggle  between  life  and  death.  "  I  should 
not  murmur,"  Luther  said,  "  if  it  pleased  God  to  remove  her 
from  this  satanical  age  and  world.  I  desire  the  same  for 
myself  and  all  mine :  there  is  no  longer  any  heroic  virtue  in 
princes;  everywhere  are  hatred,  strife,  avarice,  and  iniquity. 

*  During  this  visit  Luther  pledged  Spalatin  in  a  glass  of  wine  with 
the  extempore  Latin  distich  : — 

"  Isthoc  ex  vitro  vitreus  bibit  ipse  Lutherus, 
Hospes  supremum  turn,  Spalatine  tuus." 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  357 

My  only  joy  is  to  look  forward  to  the  day  of  the  Redeemer."  1544. 
Margaret,    however,    recovered;     and    Luther,    writing    of 
himself  a  little  later,  spoke  of  his  own  amended  health  as  a 
resurrection  from  the  dead  :  he  had  (t  preached  twice  without 
any  difficulty,  which  seemed  a  miracle." 

The  principal  production  of  Luther's  pen  this  year  was  a 
"  Brief  Confession  of  the  Holy  Sacrament,"  occasioned  by  a 
rumour  consequent  on  discontinuing  the  elevation  of  the  host 
in  the  Wittenberg  churches,  that  he  was  inclining  to  Zwin- 
glianism,  which  he  denied  with  extreme  energy.  So  rooted 
was  this  conviction,  that  in  the  Cologne  Reformation  Arti- 
cles, prepared  by  Bucer  and  Melancthon,  and  delivered  to 
Luther  for  examination,  he  regretted  the  absence  of  sufficient 
distinctness  on  this  subject,  and  designated  the  whole  as 
"  wishy-washy  stuff,"  by  which  he  gave  such  keen  offence  to 
Melancthon,  that  Philip  was  in  doubt  whether  he  should  not 
leave  Wittenberg.  Luther  was  setting  his  house  in  order  in 
regard  to  the  literary  monuments  of  his  Christian  faith. 
Having  in  the  previous  year  vindicated  his  version  of  the 
Scriptures,  and  now  declared  his  testimony  on  the  Eucharist, 
he  next  gave  his  final  judgment  on  Popery,  in  a  treatise  en- 
titled "  The  Papacy  founded  by  Satan,"  which  appeared  early 
in  the  following  spring ;  and  he  also  preached  sermons  and  1545. 
held  disputations  on  the  Trinity,  and  the  Godhead  of  Jesus 
Christ,  to  check  the  growth  of  infidelity.  The  beginning  of 
the  new  year,  Luther  having  been  much  exposed  to  the 
weather  on  a  very  cold  day,  was  seized  with  a  violent  pain  in 
the  breast,  attended  with  great  oppression  at  the  heart,  and 
at  two  o'clock  in  the  morning  was  obliged  to  send  for  medical 
aid.  "I  am  in  dreadful  pain,"  Luther  said,  as  the  phy- 
sician entered  the  room.  "  Is  it  the  stone  ?"  "  No ;  it  is 
something  much  worse  than  the  stone."  The  physician's 
verdict  was  that  the  malady  was  "  the  cardiac,"  and  he  gave 


358  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1545.  orders  that  Luther's  breast  and  back  should  be  rubbed  with 
hot  cloths,  after  which  he  was  to  have  a  hot  mess,  and  forbade 
him  to  take  his  usual  beverage  of  must,  and  sent  him  some 
Rhenish  wine  from  his  own  cellar.  From  this  attack  Luther 
recovered  after  some  little  time ;  but  it  proved  the  forerunner 
of  a  similar  illness,  which  rather  more  than  a  year  later 
carried  him  to  the  grave. 

His  indignation  was  extreme  at  the  alliance  of  the  French 
monarch,  and,  as  rumour  did  not  blush  to  declare,  of  his 
Holiness  the  Pope  also,  with  the  Sultan ;  an  alliance  which 
covered  Francis  with  disgrace  in  the  eyes  of  Christendom,  and 
enabled  Charles  the  better  to  pursue  his  deep-laid  and  long- 
meditated  schemes.  "What!"  said  Luther,  "the  Vicar  of 
Christ  in  alliance  with  Mahomet !  and  the  French  King  has 
granted  Barbarossa  a  harbour  for  his  fleet,  with  permission  to 
build  a  mosque  :  and  Francis  and  Paul  together  have  agreed 
to  allow  him  300,000  crowns  a  month  in  requital  of  his 
services.  See  to  what  an  object  the  indulgences,  profits, 
annates,  and  rapine  of  all  kinds — the  Pope's  plunder  of 
Christendom  for  ages,  forsooth  against  the  Turk — are  now 
devoted  !  O  !  most  holy  Father !  O  !  most  Christian 
King  !"  The  letter  of  Paul  III.  to  Charles  was  admirably 
calculated  to  foster  the  delusion  which  pervaded  all  minds ; 
and  it  was  busily  noised  about  that  Charles  had  resolved  to 
come  forward  himself  in  the  character  of  a  Reformer,  and  to 
remodel  ecclesiastical  institutions  by  the  standard  of  the 
Nicene  age.  But  soon  the  dream  was  sadly  marred.  The 
peace  of  Crespy  proved  the  turning-point  in  Charles's  career  of 
duplicity.  Having  gratified  the  Protestants  as  far  as  he  safely 
could  up  to  that  period,  he  felt  himself,  by  the  restoration  of 
amity  with  France,  in  a  condition  gradually,  but  still  with 
his  usual  art,  to  withdraw  the  mask.  The  faggots  began  to 
blaze  in  the  Low  Countries,  although,  with  a  dissimulation  too 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  359 

weak  to  impose  on  any  one,  Charles  declared  that  the  ground  1545. 
of  punishment  was  not  religion,  but  the  infringement  of  an 
edict  published  many  years  before  against  the  Lutherans.  At 
the  same  moment  Francis  commenced  a  fearful  butchery  of 
the  poor  Waldenses ;  and  Ferdinand,  who  had  at  least  been 
consistent,  turned  with  revived  zest  to  his  persecuting  efforts 
in  Austria  and  Bohemia.  All  this,  in  conjunction  with  the 
Trent  Council,  showed  a  conspiracy  of  the  crowned  heads  of 
Europe  for  the  overthrow  of  the  Reformation. 

Notwithstanding  all  his  bodily  suffering  and  the  frowning 
of  the  political  storm,  Luther  maintained  an  animated  and 
cheerful  spirit.  The  darkest  night,  he  thought,  would  usher 
in  the  glorious  morning  of  Christ's  appearance.  "  Walk  to 
your  garden,"  he  replied  to  a  pastor  who  had  written  to  him 
in  a  tone  full  of  despondency,  "  and  look  at  the  violets  which 
are  just  beginning  to  peep  out.  The  flower  is  purple,  the 
colour  of  affliction ;  but  the  purple  environs  a  bright  golden 
eye,  which  means  never-failing  faith,"  Just  at  this  time  his 
"  Papacy  founded  by  Satan"  was  published,  whilst  the  Diet 
was  sitting  at  Worms.  The  pictorial  talent  of  Luke  Cranach 
had  been  called  into  play,  and  the  frontispiece  exhibited  the 
High  Priest  of  Christendom  seated  on  the  sacred  chair,  in  the 
pontifical  garb,  his  hands  raised  and  joined,  and  asses'  ears 
perking  above  his  head  :  devils  flew  round  him  on  all  sides  : 
some  were  putting  on  his  head  the  triple  crown,  surmounted 
with  dung ;  others  were  gently  lowering  him  by  ropes  into  the 
bottomless  pit,  the  flames  of  which  were  tossing  below ;  and 
others,  with  officious  zeal,  were  raising  his  feet  to  lighten  his 
descent.  Luther  further  stated  in  some  theses,  which  appeared 
about  this  time,  that  Popery  was  an  offence  against  the  three 
hierarchies  ordained  of  God — the  ecclesiastical,  the  political, 
and  the  domestic — for  it  crushed  the  Gospel,  tyrannised  over 
the  civil  power,  and  forbade  matrimony.     It  was  that  German 


360  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1545.  beast,  half  bear,  half  wolf  (barwolf),  which  it  was  the  duty 
of  all,  gathering  in  a  company,  to  chase  to  death :  if  it  got 
into  a  cave  or  an  inclosure,  and  the  prefect  of  the  place 
should  attempt  to  rescue  or  defend  it,  the  pursuit  must  not 
stop,  and  those  who  should  hinder  the  pursuers  were  beyond 
the  safeguard  of  the  laws.  And  another  caricature  repre- 
sented the  Pope  sitting  astride  a  sow,  with  a  big  paunch  and 
teats  sweeping  the  ground.  The  Pope  was  digging  into  the 
sides  of  the  sow  with  spurs  :  with  the  two  fore  fingers  of  his 
right  hand  raised  in  pontifical  fashion,  his  Holiness  blessed 
the  wayfarers :  his  left  hand  held  a  piece  of  dung  fresh  and 
smoking,  at  which  the  sow  was  sniffing,  and  exerting  her  body 
to  gain  possession  of  the  prize.  The  sow  was  Germany  ;  and 
the  piece  of  dung  which  the  Pontiff  was  willing  to  bestow  on 
his  greedy  beast,  provided  he  were  allowed  to  retain  his  seat, 
was  the  Council.  But  his  caustic  force  did  not  content 
Luther,  and  he  wrote  to  his  friends  that  his  ire  had  been 
too  feeble,  and  it  was  his  earnest  wish  once  again  to  assail 
Popery,  and,  like  Samson,  to  make  the  Philistines  feel  his 
dying  strength.  And  this  hope  was  in  some  measure  realized 
by  the  publication  of  his  seventy-six  theses,  in  reply  to 
thirty-two  propositions  against  his  doctrines,  which  had  ema- 
nated from  the  sophists  (magistrolli)  of  Louvain.  Such  were 
his  expiring  efforts  against  the  Popedom.  The  Sacramen- 
tarians  had  replied  to  his  "  Short  Confession,"  but  he  re- 
turned no  answer  to  their  treatise  :  he  did  not  even  read  it ; 
it  was  enough  that  he  was  informed  of  the  irrelevant  abuse 
heaped  upon  him.  With  such  evidence  that  he  was  no  Sacra- 
mentarian,  he  said  that  he  could  leave  the  world  with 
happiness. 

The  Diet  of  Worms  afforded  fresh  intimations  of  the  subtle 
path  of  ill-dissembled  enmity  to  the  Protestants,  which  the 
Emperor  was  treading.     Charles  was  laid  up  at  Brussels  with 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  361 

the  gout  when  the  Diet  was  opened,  and  was  not  able  to  make  1545. 
his  entry  into  Worms  until  the  15th  of  May.  The  Papal 
nuncio,  Cardinal  Farnese,  passed  from  Trent,  where  he  found 
only  a  few  bishops  assembled,  into  Germany,  and  had  an  in- 
terview with  the  Emperor ;  but  after  a  few  days  he  quitted 
Worms  very  unexpectedly,  having  accomplished  his  errand  by 
convincing  himself  of  Charles's  real  aversion  to  the  Protes- 
tants, and  probably  made  arrangements  with  him  as  to  the 
money  and  forces  which  the  religious  war  would  require.  He 
found  that  Charles  did  not  wish  the  Council  to  begin 
its  deliberations  at  present;  matters  were  not  sufficiently 
advanced,  and  some  terms  must  still  be  kept  with  the 
Protestants  a  little  longer.  And  accordingly  Paul  III.  post- 
poned the  opening  of  the  Council  until  October,  and  it 
was  not  actually  opened  until  the  13th  December.  The 
deliberations  of  the  Diet,  as  between  Charles  and  "  the 
Orders  of  the  Augsburg  Confession,''  began  and  ended  in 
reciprocal  demands  which  neither  party  was  willing  to  ad- 
mit. The  Protestants  claimed  that  intestine  peace  should 
be  secured  without  the  condition  of  their  accepting  the 
Council :  the  Emperor  required  them  to  acknowledge  it,  which 
they  persisted  in  refusing  to  do,  because  the  place  of  meeting 
was  not  in  Germany,  in  contravention  of  former  edicts,  and 
the  Pope  claimed  to  be  President.  Frederic,  who  had  suc- 
ceeded to  the  Palatine  Electorate  by  the  death  of  his  brother 
Louis  in  the  previous  year,  and  was  at  this  period  esta- 
blishing the  Reformation  in  his  dominions,  acted  as  me- 
diator between  the  parties,  but  with  no  effect :  he  had 
little  weight  with  the  Protestants,  and  his  change  of  religion 
rendered  him  unacceptable  to  Charles.  But  in  fact,  the 
Emperor's  line  of  policy  had  been  already  deliberately  chosen, 
and  he  never  swerved  from  a  decision  formed  on  mature 
thought.     In  the  matter  of  the  religious  discussions  between 


362  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1545.  the  Archbishop  of  Cologne  and  his  subjects  on  the  one  side, 
and  the  Cathedral  Chapter  on  the  other,  the  Emperor  took 
the  cause  of  the  Canons  under  his  protection,  and  summoned 
the  Archbishop  to  appear  and  answer  for  his  conduct  before 
him ;  whilst,  by  a  mutual  understanding,  the  Pope  pronounced 
his  excommunication.  But,  with  his  habitual  insincerity, 
Charles  still  assumed  the  semblance  of  wavering  before  he 
definitely  committed  matters  to  the  arbitrement  of  the  sword  : 
and  with  specious  moderation  he  postponed  the  further  con- 
sideration of  religious  questions  to  another  Diet,  to  assemble 
at  Ratisbon.  preparatory  to  which  the  reconciliation  of  dif- 
ferences was  again  to  be  attempted  by  chosen  theologians  from 
the  two  parties. 

Meantime,  Luther  was  entirely  disabled,  by  the  return  in 
full  force  of  his  old  complaints ;  first,  pains  in  the  head,  so 
excruciating  that  one  of  his  eyes  became  affected  and  nearly 
lost  the  power  of  sight ;  then,  towards  the  end  of  June,  an 
attack  of  the  stone — so  long  continued  with  greater  or  less 
intensity — that  he  was  subjected  to  exquisite  tortures,  and  the 
report  current  in  Italy  and  elsewhere  that  he  was  dead  gained 
credence  with  many.  Strange  events  were  stated  to  have  fol- 
lowed his  decease.  It  was  asserted  in  print,  that  at  the  point 
of  death  he  had  received  the  Sacrament,  and  with  his  dying 
breath  had  required  that  his  dead  body  should  be  placed  on  the 
altar  to  be  worshipped  as  God.  The  request  had  not  been 
complied  with ;  but  after  his  remains  had  been  laid  in  the 
tomb,  a  violent  tempest  had  obscured  the  sky  and  seemed  to 
threaten  universal  destruction  :  the  wafer  which  Luther  had 
received  with  his  dying  lips  was  seen  suspended  in  the  air, 
and  with  the  greatest  reverence  was  received  and  deposited  in 
a  sacred  place,  when  an  immediate  calm  was  restored.  The 
ensuing  night  strange  commotions  were  heard  in  his  tomb, 
which  was  opened  the  next  morning ;  but  the  flesh,  bones, 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  363 

body,  and  shroud  were  gone  ;  only  a  sulphureous  stench  1545. 
exuded  from  the  spot,  which  struck  many  with  sickness,  and 
proved  the  means  of  converting  great  numbers  from  heresy.* 
Luther  caused  this  statement  to  be  printed  again,  with  a 
postscript  to  the  effect  that  "he  had  read,  on  the  21st  of 
March,  the  rabid  fiction  with  extreme  joy.  It  was  sweet  to 
his  inmost  soul  to  be  such  an  object  of  abhorrence  to  the 
devil,  and  his  spawn,  the  Pope  and  the  Papists.  He  prayed 
for  the  conversion  of  the  Papists.  But  if  prayers  for  them 
should  be  unavailing,  would  to  God  that  they  might  fill  up 
the  measure  of  their  iniquities." 

Dr.  Ratzenberg,  the  Elector's  physician,  was  sent  to  attend 
Luther,  and  was  able  to  relieve  the  head  in  a  considerable 
degree  by  means  of  a  cautery  in  the  leg  :  and  after  some 
days,  Luther  was  again  able  to  walk  to  church  and  even  to 
preach.  But  he  continued  very  weak ;  and  ill  health  and 
old  age  made  him  more  susceptible  of  trials.  He  had  medi- 
tated quitting  Wittenberg  for  the  quite  retreat  of  Zuhlsdorf 
some  time  before ;  but  had  beeu  prevailed  upon,  by  the 
fervent  entreaties  of  Bugenhagen  and  others,  to  relinquish 
such  an  intention.  But  about  the  middle  of  July,  in  1545, 
he  left  Wittenberg  very  suddenly,  and  first  paid  a  visit,  with 
Johnny,  to  Ernest  Schonfeld,  at  Lobnitz;  then  to  Scherl,  at 
Leipsic,  whence  he  passed  to  Merseburg,  to  Prince  George  of 

*  After  Luther's  actual  death,  a  Protestant  story,  in  imitation  of  this 
Tvomanist  one,  stated  that  his  coffin  laid  on  the  bier  was  at  first  so 
heavy  that  the  bearers  could  scarcely  move  it,  and  then  suddenly 
became  so  light,  that  they  set  down  the  bier  and  opened  the  coffin  to 
see  what  had  happened.  The  body  was  gone ;  and  three  great  rats 
jumped  out  of  the  coffin.  One  of  them  ran  to  the  monasteries,  and 
guawed  away  the  bolts  and  locks ;  the  second  ran  to  Rome,  to  the 
Pope's  Chancery,  and  nibbled  off  the  seals  of  the  Indulgence  letters  ; 
the  third  ran  to  Hell,  and  put  out  the  fire  of  Purgatory  (pissete  das 
Fegefeuer  aus)." — Keil.  IV.  p.  279. 


364  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1545.  Anhalt,  and  finally  took  up  his  quarters  with  Amsdorf,  at 
Zeitz.  The  neglect  of  God's  Word,  and  the  many  signs  of 
worldly-mindedness  amongst  the  people  of  Wittenberg,  par- 
ticularly the  style  of  female  dress,  had  so  provoked  him, 
that  he  had  formed  the  resolution  never  to  return  to  Witten- 
berg, but  to  settle  down  for  his  few  remaining  days  at  Zuhls- 
dorf :  and  he  wrote  to  Kate  from  Leipsic  the  end  of  July, 
as  follows :  "  Beloved  Kate,  John  will  tell  you  how  our 
journey  has  gone,  and  if  he  should  not  remain  with  me,  Dr. 
Caspar  Cruciger  and  Ferdinand  will  tell  you.  Ernest 
Schonfeld  entertained  us  hospitably  at  Lobnitz,  but  Henry 
Scherl  far  more  hospitably  at  Leipsic.  I  should  rejoice  never 
to  have  to  return  to  Wittenberg.  My  heart  is  chilled,  so 
that  I  cannot  be  there  with  pleasure.  I  should  wish  you  to 
sell  the  garden  and  the  close,  the  house  and  court,  and  I  will 
give  back  the  great  house  to  my  good  lord  :  it  were  best  for 
you  to  settle  at  Zuhlsdorf,  whilst  I  am  still  alive  and  could 
help  you  to  better  the  little  property  with  my  stipend,  which 
I  hope  my  good  lord  will  suffer  to  follow  me,  at  least  for  one 
year  of  my  last  days.  After  my  death,  the  four  elements  will 
not  easily  endure  you  at  Wittenberg  :  it  were  therefore  much 
better  to  see  in  my  lifetime  what  must  be  done  when  I 
am  gone.  To  judge  by  appearances,  Wittenberg,  with  its 
government,  is  about  to  dance,  not  St.  Vitus's  dance,  nor 
St.  John's  dance,  but  the  Beggars'  dance,  or  Beelzebub's 
dance ;  so  they  have  begun,  women  and  maidens,  to  uncover 
themselves  behind  and  before ;  and  there  is  no  one  to  punish 
or  restrain,  and  God's  Word  is  mocked.  Come  away  out  of 
this  Sodom.  I  have  heard  in  the  country  more  than  I  learn 
at  Wittenberg,  and  am  weary  of  the  town  and  will  not  return, 
so  help  me  God.  After  to-morrow  I  shall  go  to  Merseburg, 
for  Prince  George  has  sore  entreated  me  to  visit  him.  I 
shall  ramble  about,  and  had  rather  eat  the  bread  of  a  beggar 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHEIt.  365 

than  torture  and  disquiet  my  poor  old  last  days  with  their  1545. 
disorderly  ways  at  Wittenberg.  Let  Dr.  Bugenhagen  and 
Master  Philip  learn  as  much :  and  let  Dr.  Bugenhagen  pro- 
nounce my  blessing  upon  Wittenberg.  I  can  no  longer  re- 
strain my  wrath  and  disgust.  Herewith  I  commend  you  to 
God.  Amen/'  The  people  of  Wittenberg  were  deeply 
agitated  at  the  determination  of  the  Reformer  to  quit  their 
town.  Melancthon  declared  that  he  must  leave  Wittenberg 
also,  unless  Luther  returned.  In  this  state  of  things  the 
University  represented  the  strong  current  of  general  feeling 
on  the  subject  to  the  Elector,  who  sent  a  very  gracious  letter, 
regretting  that  Luther  had  not  informed  him  of  his  plans,  in 
which  case  he  would  have  sent  an  escort  to  attend  him ;  for, 
although  God's  angel  was  always  with  him,  the  dangers  of 
travelling  ought  to  be  guarded  against;  and  further,  he 
requested  that  he  would  pay  him  a  visit  at  Torgau,  to  make 
arrangements  in  reference  to  the  approaching  Conference  at 
Ratisbon.  Luther  went  to  Torgau,  and  was  prevailed  upon 
by  John  Frederic,  although  sorely  against  his  inclination,  to 
return  to  Wittenberg,  which  he  did  the  third  week  in  August. 
Peace  was  now  made  between  the  Emperor  and  the  Sultan. 
"  The  Pope,  the  Emperor,  the  Gaul,  and  Ferdinand,"  Luther 
relates,  "  have  sent  a  most  splendid  embassy,  laden  with  pre- 
cious silks  to  the  Turk,  to  sue  for  peace.  But  the  best  part 
of  the  story  is,  that,  not  to  offend  Turkish  eyes,  they  have 
changed  the  attire  of  their  country  for  the  long  Turkish 
tunic.  The  embassy,  it  is  said,  sailed  from  Venice  the  21st 
June.  Are  these  Christians?  No — they  are  infernal  masks 
of  the  devil.  O,  joyful  signs  of  the  close  of  all  things  I" 
This  peace  with  the  Turks  was  the  removal  of  the  last  poli- 
tical impediment  to  the  accomplishment  of  Charles's  ulterior 
designs  :  and  little  now  remained  to  be  done  save  to  muster 
his  troops  and  provide  for  their  maintenance. 


366  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1545.  But  the  war  between  France  and  England  still  continued, 
and  the  French  monarch  had  commissioned  the  exiled  Duke 
of  Brunswick  to  levy  forces  for  him  against  Henry  VIII., 
and  had  supplied  him  with  money  for  the  purpose.  The 
Duke  of  Brunswick,  without  much  difficulty,  raised  the  re- 
quired troops ;  but  his  thoughts  were  upon  his  own  fortunes ; 
and,  with  the  army  destined  for  a  very  different  use,  and  paid 
by  France,  he  made  an  invasion  of  his  own  duchy,  took  the 
fortress  of  Steinbruck,  pillaged  the  country  far  and  wide, 
burning  the  villages,  and  laid  siege  to  Wolfenbuttel.  How- 
ever, the  forces  of  the  Schmalkald  league,  headed  by  the 
Landgrave,  soon  took  the  field  against  him ;  Duke  Maurice 
gave  his  assistance  to  the  Elector  and  Prince  of  Hesse ;  and, 
after  some  negotiations,  which  proved  entirely  fruitless  from 
the  reckless  disregard  to  truth  which  characterised  the  Duke 

Oct.  21.  of  Brunswick,  the  dispositions  of  his  forces  by  the  Landgrave 
for  battle  promised  an  easy  victory,  when  the  Duke  and  his 
son  surrendered  themselves  to  his  mercy.  This  event  filled 
Luther  with  gratitude ;  and  he  wrote  to  the  Elector  and  the 
Prince  of  Hesse,  that  the  hand  of  Providence  was  to  be 
marked  in  their  bloodless  triumph ;  and  now  they  had  Me- 
zentius  in  their  hands,  they  were  by  no  means  to  let  him  go 
unless  he  repented  of  his  blasphemies.* 

1546.  Early  in  the  ensuing   year   the   appointed  conference  of 

theologians  was  opened  at  Batisbon.  George  Major  repre- 
sented the  Wittenberg  school;  for  Luther  had  begged  that 
Melancthon  might  be  spared  the  vexatiousness  of  another 
conference,  on  the  ground  that  his  health  was  feeble,  that 
the  whole  affair  was  an  imperial  stratagem,  and  even  if  it 
should  prove  more  than  a  farce,  the  Papists  could  not  pro- 


*  Albert,  the  Cardinal  Archbishop  of  Mentz,  died  on  the  24th  Sep- 
fcember,  1545. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  367 

duce  a  man  of  any  account,  at  least  none  for  whom  Major  1546. 
was  not  more  than  a  match.  The  proceedings  had  not 
been  long  continued  when  a  mandate  from  the  Emperor 
abruptly  broke  up  the  discussions.  The  Emperor  insisted  that 
the  minutes  of  what  passed  at  the  conference  should  not  be 
communicated  to  any  one  save  himself,  with  which  the  Pro- 
testants refused  to  comply  ;  and  he  also  constituted  Julius 
Pflug  one  of  the  presidents  of  the  conference,  whom  he 
styled  Bishop  of  Naumburg,  and  thus  took  his  cause  under 
his  patronage  against  the  Elector  of  Saxony,  as  he  had  be- 
fore done  that  of  the  Cologne  canons,  against  their  Arch- 
bishop. 

As  regards  the  Council,  its  first  session  had  taken  place  on 
the  13th  December,  the  third  Sunday  in  Advent,  and  the 
second  session  was  postponed  until  the  7th  January.  The 
intervening  time  was  engrossed  with  arranging  matters  of 
ceremony,  the  mode  of  voting,  which  it  was  determined 
should  be,  not  by  nations,  but  individually,  and  other  pre- 
liminaries. Cotemporaneously  the  Schmalkald  Allies  were 
holding  a  meeting  at  Frankfort,  and  deliberating  on  the  Trent 
Council,  the  protection  to  be  afforded  the  Archbishop  of 
Cologne,  and  on  making  suit  to  the  Emperor  at  the  approach- 
ing Diet  at  Ratisbon,  that  he  would  grant  religious  peace 
and  the  reformation  of  the  Imperial  Chamber.  Their  eyes 
were  just  beginning  to  be  half  opened  to  the  long  tissue  of 
dissimulation  and  artifice,  of  which  they  had  proved  the  too 
ready  dupes. 

Before  the  close  of  the  preceding  year,  Luther  had  pro- 
mised the  Counts  of  Mansfeld  to  go  to  Eisleben,  and  en- 
deavour to  arrange  some  differences  which  had  broken  out 
between  them  in  regard  to  their  respective  jurisdictions. 
This  promise  was  the  more  considerate,  because  the  season  of 
the  year  was  little  opportune  for  travelling  in  the  case  of  an 


368  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1546.  infirm  and  sickly  person,  and  Luther  already  in  the  autumn 
had  paid  a  visit  to  Eisleben  on  invitation,  without  the  desired 
effect  of  restoring  harmony.  The  family  of  the  Counts  of 
Mansfeld  consisted  of  two  branches,  derived  from  two  brothers. 
Ernest  and  Hoyer  were  the  sons  of  Albert ;  Ernest  was  dead, 
but  had  left  two  sons,  the  Counts  Philip  and  John  George ; 
the  sons  of  Ernest,  Albert's  brother,  were  Counts  Albert  and 
Gebhard.  The  Albertine  branch  remained  steadfast  to  Ro- 
manism ;  the  Ernestine  had  embraced  the  evangelical  faith, 
and  were  personally  as  well  as  religiously  much  attached  to 
Luther.  But  it  had  been  already  proved  to  both  families, 
that  private  motives  had  no  influence  upon  the  Reformer's 
judgment.  The  revenues  of  the  family  were  principally  drawn 
from  extensive  mines  of  silver  and  copper,  worked  by  their 
subjects,  with  the  appropriation  of  one-tenth  of  the  produce 
to  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld  as  lords  of  the  soil.  The  mines 
proved  sources  of  enormous  wealth,  and  the  Counts  became 
of  opinion,  especially  Albert,  that  the  proportion  allotted  to 
themselves  was  too  small,  in  the  great  prosperity  of  the  dis- 
trict, and  put  in  force  a  claim  for  a  larger  dividend.  Luther 
undertook  the  cause  of  the  miners,  and  had  himself  remon- 
strated earnestly  with  Count  Albert  on  his  harshness  and  ex- 
orbitancy. Other  quarrels,  such  as  are  sure  to  spring  from 
the  full-blown  bag  of  avarice,  quickly  followed,  and  set  the 
heads  of  the  house  of  Mansfeld  at  variance  with  one  another 
on  various  questions  of  very  difficult  adjustment.  Hence  an 
entreaty,  in  which  all  members  of  the  family  united,  was  for- 
warded to  Luther  that  he  would  act  as  mediator,  and  was 
answered  by  him  in  a  letter  to  Count  Albert,  dated  the  8th 
December :  "  He  would  be  at  Mansfeld  soon  after  the  end  of 
the  Leipsic  market,  and  leave  it  to  both  parties  to  name  a 
day  :  he  would  devote  eight  days  to  the  business,  although  he 
had  much  to  do ;  but  he  should  lay  him  down  with  peace  in 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  369 

his  coffin  if  he  had  first  seen  his  dear  landlords  friendly  and  1546. 
of  one  mind." 

In  a  letter  of  the  17th  January,  to  his  friend  James  Probst 
of  Bremen,  Luther  describes  himself  as  "  old,  decrepit,  inert, 
wearied,  cold,  and  deprived  of  sight  in  one  eye."  Six  days 
afterwards,  on  the  23rd,  he  left  Wittenberg,  on  his  journey 
to  Eisleben,  accompanied  by  his  three  sons,  and  his  servant 
Ambrose,  and  arrived  at  Halle  at  eight  o'clock  the  same 
evening.  The  25th,  Monday,  he  wrote  to  Kate  from  Halle — 
"  We  have  not  been  able  to  pursue  our  road  to  Eisleben,  for 
there  met  us  a  great  Anabaptist,  with  billows  of  water,  and 
huge  blocks  of  ice  who  deluged  the  land,  and  threatened  us 
with  anabaptism.  We  could  not  return  on  account  of  the 
Mulda;  so  we  resolved  to  lie  quiet  at  Halle  between  the 
waters.  We  were  not  athirst  however  for  the  water,  but 
drank  good  Torgau  beer,  and  good  Rhenish  wine,  wherewith 
we  refreshed  ourselves,  and  solaced  our  delay  if  the  Saala 
shoidd  again  overflow  with  rage.  It  would  have  been  tempt- 
ing God  to  have  trusted  ourselves  to  the  water,  for  the  devil 
is  wrath  with  us,  and  dwells  in  the  water  :  it  is  better  to 
prevent  than  complain,  and  there  is  no  need  we  should  be 
fools'  sport  to  the  Pope  and  his  spawn.  I  could  never  have 
thought  the  Saala  could  have  turned  such  a  sot  and  broken 
over  carriage  road  and  everything.  I  have  no  more  to  say, 
than  that  you  must  pray  for  us  and  be  cheerful.  If  you  had 
been  here,  you  would  have  advised  what  we  have  done,  and 
for  once  we  should  have  taken  your  advice.  Herewith  I  com- 
mend you  to  God.  Amen."  The  next  day  Luther  preached 
on  the  conversion  of  St.  Paul,  and  for  three  days  Luther  was 
detained  at  Halle  in  Dr.  Jonas's  house,  and  was  at  last 
obliged  to  effect  his  passage  in  a  boat,  not  without  some  dan- 
ger. On  the  28th,  in  company  with  Justus  Jonas,  Coelius, 
pastor  of  Eisleben,  and  John  Goldsmith,  and  his  three  sons, 

VOL.   II.  B  B 


370  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1546.  lie  entered  Eisleben.  "  He  was  received  by  the  Counts  of 
Mansfeld,  and  an  escort  of  more  than  a  hundred  horsemen, 
and  entered  the  town/'  writes  Maimburg,  "more  like  a 
prince  than  a  prophet,  amidst  the  salute  of  cannon,  and  the 
ringing  of  the  bells  in  all  the  churches." 

On  the  road  to  Eisleben  Luther  suffered  from  a  return  of 
those  violent  pains  in  the  chest,  with  oppression  of  the  breath, 
which  had  first  attacked  him  more  than  a  year  before ;  and 
when,  dizzy  with  pain  and  extreme  weakness,  he  reached  the 
lodging  prepared  for  him  in  Dr.  Drachstadt's  house,  fears 
were  entertained  for  his  life,  and  he  himself  charged  Satan 
with  endeavouring  as  usual  to  thwart  his  plans,  when  they 
seemed  the  nearest  their  accomplishment.  But  warmth  was 
restored  by  continued  friction  with  hot  cloths.  "  On  the 
journey  I  walked  beyond  my  strength,"  he  wrote  to  Me- 
lancthon  the  1st  February,  "and  when  I  got  into  the  carriage 
again  the  perspiration  chilled  on  me,  and  cold  seized  the 
sinews  of  the  left  arm."  The  same  day  he  wrote  to  his 
"heart-loved  house-wife,  Catherine  Lutherin  Doctoress  Zuls- 
dorferess  Sow-marketress,  and  whatever  more  she  may  be. 
Grace  and  peace  in  Christ,  and  my  old  poor  love,  in  the  first 
place.  Dear  Kate — I  was  very  weak  on  the  road  hard  before 
Eisleben.  That  was  my  own  fault.  If  you  had  been  here, 
you  would  have  said  it  was  the  fault  of  the  Jews  or  their 
God.  Before  we  reached  Eisleben  we  passed  through  a 
village  full  of  Jews :  and  perhaps  they  blew  an  evil  blast 
upon  me.  And  in  Eisleben,  at  this  moment,  there  are  more 
than  fifty  Jews.  However,  it  is  true  that,  when  I  was  close 
to  their  village,  there  came  such  a  cold  wind  behind  in  the 
carriage  upon  my  head  through  the  baret,  as  if  it  would  turn 
my  head  to  ice.  This  may  have  had  something  to  do  with 
my  giddiness ;  but  I  am  now  in  good  case,  excepting  that  the 
pretty  women  set  so  hard  at  me  that  I  have  no  care  to  requite 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  371 

all  their  attentions.    I  drink  Neunburg  beer,  which  you  have  1546. 
praised  to  me  from  Mansfeld,  and  like  it  well.     Your  little 
sons  left  Mansfeld  the  day  before  yesterday;  John  of  Jena  so 
humbly  prayed  them  to  visit  him." 

The  weather  had  become  much  milder,  and  Luther's 
health  seemed  improved  by  the  change  in  the  atmosphere ; 
but  the  business  which  had  been  the  object  of  his  journey 
progressed  at  a  very  leisurely  pace.  "  I  entreat  you,"  he 
wrote  to  Melancthon,  "  to  prevail  with  the  Elector,  through 
Dr.  Bruck,  to  recall  me :  perhaps,  in  this  way  I  may  hasten 
the  work  of  concord.  In  every  syllable  they  fancy  poison  to 
be  hidden.  This  is,  indeed,  logomachy  or  logomany ;  but 
we  owe  it  to  the  lawyers,  who  have  taught  the  world  cavillings 
and  quibblings,  until  their  tongue  is  more  confused  than  any 
Babylon.  There  no  one  could  understand  the  other ;  here 
none  wishes  to  understand  the  other.  You  sycophants  ! 
you  sophists!  pests  of  mankind!"  A  letter  to  Kate,  the 
same  day,  directed  her  to  tell  Master  Philip  to  correct  his 
"  Postil,"  as  he  had  failed  to  comprehend  why  in  the  Gospel 
the  Lord  called  riches  thorns.  "  Here  is  the  school,"  he 
continued,  "  where  the  reason  may  be  readily  learnt.  But  it 
pains  me  that  always  in  Holy  Scripture  the  thorns  are  threat- 
ened with  the  fire ;  wherefore,  I  show  the  more  patience,  if  by 
God's  help  I  might  effect  some  good.  Your  little  sons  are  still 
at  Mansfeld."  The  next  day,  after  this  letter  had  been  sent, 
an  epistle  was  received  from  Kate,  full  of  anxiety  about  her 
husband's  health,  the  perils  of  travelling,  and  the  various 
casualties  which  she  feared  might  befall  him.  Luther  replied 
immediately:  "Do  read,  thou  dear  Kate — St.  John  and  the 
Short  Catechism — of  which  you  once  said,  '  All  in  the  book  is 
spoken  about  me.'  You  must,  forsooth,  take  care  for  your 
God,  as  though  God  were  not  Almighty,  and  could  not  make 

b  b  2 


372  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1546.  ten  Dr.  Martins  if  the  one  old  one  should  be  drowned  in  the 
Saal.  Leave  me  in  peace.  I  have  a  better  one  to  care  for 
me  than  you  or  all  the  angels,  even  Him  who  laid  in  the 
manger  and  hung  on  the  virgin's  breast,  but  is  seated  like- 
wise at  the  right  hand  of  God.  Therefore  be  in  peace.  Amen." 
Kate's  solicitude  continued  unabated,  and  Luther  again 
laboured  to  inspire  confidence ;  "  Most  saintly  Lady  Doc- 
toress,  we  thank  you  very  kindly  for  your  great  care,  which 
you  say  will  not  suffer  you  to  sleep ;  for  ever  since  you  have 
cared  so  anxiously  about  us,  we  have  narrowly  escaped  de- 
struction ;  a  fire  broke  out  in  our  lodging,  close  to  my  study 
door ;  and  yesterday,  without  doubt,  by  virtue  of  your  care, 
a  stone  had  all  but  fallen  on  my  head,  and  crushed  me  like  a 
mouse.  If  you  do  not  cease  to  care,  at  least  the  earth  will 
swallow  me  up,  and  all  the  elements  turn  my  persecutors. 
Do  you  study  your  Catechism  and  Belief.  Do  you  pray  and 
leave  God  to  care  ;  cast  all  your  care  upon  him,  for  he  careth 
for  you.  God  be  praised,  I  am  brisk  and  well,  save  that 
this  business  is  very  troublesome."  Besides  attention  to  the 
arrangement  of  differences,  to  which  an  hour  or  so  of  each 
alternate  day  was  devoted,  Luther  examined  and  gave  his 
approval  to  a  scheme  of  Church  Ueform,  once  received  abso- 
lution publicly,  and  the  Lord's  Supper  twice,  and  ordained 
two  priests,  and  preached  four  times,  not  forgetting  the  Jews, 
the  Pope,  and  the  Council,  amidst  large  assemblies  of  the 
miners  and  country  people.  His  last  sermon  was  preached 
on  the  15th  February,  (St.  Matthew's  day),  and  his  text  was 
Matthew  xi.  25 — 30.  The  subject  was  the  contrast  between 
the  wisdom  of  the  children  of  this  world,  and  of  the  children 
of  the  next.  And  he  concluded  with  the  words  :  "  I  am  too 
weak  to  say  more.  The  dear  God  give  grace,  that  we  may 
receive  his  precious  word  with  thanksgiving,  grow  and  in- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  373 

crease  in  the  knowledge  and  faith  of  his  son,  our  Lord  Jesus  154,0. 
Christ,   and  in  the  confession  of  his  holy  word,  steadfastly 
abide  unto  the  end.     Amen." 

On  the  14th  February  he  received  the  letter  which  he  had 
desired  from  the  Elector,  remanding  him  home,  and  he  wrote 
the  same  day  to  Melancthon  to  apprise  him  of  his  intended 
speedy  return,  and  requested  that  a  messenger  might  be  sent 
to  meet  him  on  the  way,  with  some  of  the  corrosive  ointment 
for  his  leg,  which  he  had  unfortunately  forgotten  to  take  with 
him,  and  now  felt  the  need  of,  for  the  wound  in  his  leg  had 
healed,  which  was  dangerous.  The  mandate  from  the 
Elector  had.  the  effect,  which  Luther  had  anticipated,  of 
expediting  the  settlement  of  differences,  and  an  arrangement 
was  effected  between  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld  in  regard  to 
clerical  patronage,  and  the  maintenance  of  schools,  which  was 
an  important  point  gained.  Luther  was  in  high  spirits  with 
this  measure  of  success,  and  wrote  to  Kate,  the  same  day, 
the  last  letter  which  appears  in  his  correspondence :  "  Grace 
and  peace  in  the  Lord,  dear  Kate.  We  hope  to  return  home 
this  week,  if  God  will.  God  has  shown  us  great  goodness ; 
for  the  lords,  by  their  councillors,  have  made  it  up,  as  far  as 
two  or  three  articles,  amongst  which  is,  that  the  two  brothers, 
Count  Gebhard  and  Albert  shall  be  brothers  again,  which  I 
shall  take  in  hand  to-day,  and  shall  invite  them  to  dine  with 
me,  that  they  may  speak  with  one  another;  for  hitherto  they 
have  not  been  on  speaking  terms,  and  have  embittered  the 
quarrel  by  writings.  The  young  lords  are  very  merry,  and 
go  out  sledging  together,  and  the  little  ladies  too,  and  bring 
one  another  presents  and  good  things,  and  also  Count 
Albert's  son.  We  may  perceive  that  God  hears  prayer.  I 
send  you  some  trout,  which  the  Countess  Albert  has  presented 
to  me;  she  is  from  her  heart  rejoiced  to  have  concord.  Your 
little  sons  are  still  at  Mansfeld.     James  Luther  will  take 


374  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1546.  good  care  of  them.  We  eat  and  drink  like  the  lords,  and 
are  so  well  attended  to,  that  we  might  well  forget  you  at 
Wittenberg.     I  am  not  troubled  with  the  stone." 

On  the  morning  of  Wednesday  the  17th,  Luther  com- 
plained of  not  feeling  well,  and  was  advised  by  Wolfgang, 
Prince  of  Anhalt,  and  the  Count  of  Schwartzburg,  the 
councillors  of  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld,  not  to  attempt  any 
business  during  the  day,  but  to  remain  quiet  in  his  parlour. 
He  walked  up  and  down  the  room  half  dressed,  and  sometimes 
looked  out  of  the  window,  and  prayed  with  a  fervour  which 
excited  the  attention  of  those  in  the  room  with  him.  His 
habitual  cheerfulness  was  in  full  vigour,  but  occasionally  he 
said  to  Justus  Jonas  and  Michael  Coelius,  the  pastor  of 
Eisleben,  who  had  been  in  constant  attendance  upon  him — 
"  I  was  born  and  baptized  at  Eisleben,  and  I  shall  die  here." 
Before  dinner  he  was  seized  with  oppression  of  the  chest,  and 
the  remedy  which  was  now  customary  with  him,  and  had  been 
resorted  to  almost  every  day  during  his  stay  at  Eisleben 
(friction  with  hot  cloths),  was  tried  and  afforded  some  relief. 
When  dinner  time  came  he  exclaimed,  "  There  is  no  joy  in 
being  alone,"  and  removed  from  his  parlour  into  the  large 
dining  apartment,  and  sat  down  with  the  rest  of  the  com- 
pany and  ate  with  a  good  appetite,  conversing  freely  and 
jesting  in  his  usual  vein  of  humour.  The  conversation  fell 
on  the  shortness  of  life,  and  he  observed — "  When  an  infant 
of  one  year  old  dies,  probably  one  or  two  thousand  through- 
out the  world  die  at  the  same  time  and  age ;  but  were  I,  an 
old  man  of  sixty-three  years,  to  die,  not  more  than  sixty  or  a 
hundred  of  the  same  age  would  quit  this  life  with  me.  Men 
do  not  now  live  to  such  great  old  age  as  formerly;  God 
builds  a  new  world  every  twenty  years,  and  fills  his  kingdom 
with  children."  As  the  conversation  proceeded,  the  inquiry 
was  put,  whether  relatives  would  recognise  one  another  in  the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  375 

future  world.  "To  be  sure/'  Luther  answered;  "  when  1546. 
Adam  awoke  from  his  sleep,  he  did  not  question  Eve,  whom 
he  had  never  seen,  whence  or  who  art  thou?  but  at  once  de- 
clared, '  This  is  bone  of  my  bone  and  flesh  of  my  flesh.'  How 
did  he  know  that  she  had  not  sprung  to  life  from  a  stone  ? 
Because  he  was  full  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  had  the  true 
knowledge  of  God.  When  we  are  restored  to  this  knowledge 
and  the  Divine  image  in  the  next  life,  we  shall  recognise  our 
parents  and  one  another  by  face."  After  dinner  he  again 
complained  of  pain  in  the  chest,  and  had  hot  cloths  ap- 
plied to  the  chest  and  back,  but  would  not  permit  medical 
aid  to  be  summoned ;  and  when  Count  Albert  expressed  his 
concern,  he  assured  him  that  he  already  felt  better.  He  laid 
down  on  a  couch  and  slept  very  composedly  in  the  parlour 
for  two  hours  and  a  half,  and  desired  those  present  to  go  to 
bed,  and  awoke  about  ten  o'clock,  and  requested  that  his 
bed  in  his  sleeping  apartment  might  be  warmed.  Before  he 
was  conducted  to  his  sleeping  room,  he  gave  his  hand  to  each 
of  those  present,  and  wished  them  good-night  in  the  form  of 
words  which  he  had  used  on  retiring  to  rest  for  three  weeks 
previously — "  Pray  to  God  to  bless  the  cause  of  his  Church, 
for  the  Council  of  Trent  is  the  Pope  in  very  deed;"  and  on 
crossing  the  doorway  he  repeated  the  text,  "  Into  thy  hands, 
O  Lord,  I  commend  my  spirit."  He  laid  down  on  his  bed  to 
sleep,  and  his  two  younger  sons,  Martin  and  Paul,  (John  was 
absent  at  the  time,)  his  servant  Ambrose,  Jonas  and  Coelius 
remained  in  the  apartment,  watching  him.  About  one  o'clock 
he  called  Ambrose,  and  ordered  him  to  warm  the  parlour. 
When  Dr.  Jonas  asked  him  how  he  felt,  he  exclaimed,  "  O 
Lord  God,  how  ill  I  am !  Yes,  dear  Dr.  Jonas,  I  was  born 
and  baptized  at  Eisleben,  and  shall  remain  here."  "  Reverend 
father,"  Jonas  replied,  "  our  heavenly  Father  will  succour  you 
for  Christ's  sake,  whom  you  have  preached."    Luther  walked 


376  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

1546.  up  and  down  the  room  two  or  three  times,  but  the  pain  con- 
tinued, and  he  called  for  hot  cloths.  A  summons  was  now 
sent  for  medical  help ;  his  host  and  hostess  were  called  up, 
and  Count  Albert  and  the  Countess  were  apprised  of  Luther's 
state.  All  came  with  great  speed,  the  Countess  bringing  an 
ample  supply  of  aquavitse  and  every  kind  of  costly  medicine 
that  she  could  think  of.  Luther  was  lying  upon  the  couch  in 
great  pain  when  they  entered  the  apartment.  The  Countess 
administered  to  him  aquavitre  and  chafed  his  forehead  and 
hands  with  aromatic  water.  Luther  continued  in  extreme 
pain,  and  cried  aloud,  "  O  Lord  God,  what  pain  I  suffer ! 
I  shall  remain  at  Eisleben."  "  Call  on  Jesus  Christ,  reverend 
father/'  said  Jonas  and  Ccelius,  "  our  Lord  and  Priest  and 
only  Mediator,  whom  you  have  preached.  You  are  in  a  pro- 
fuse perspiration.  God  grant  that  you  may  get  better." 
"It  is  the  cold  sweat  of  death,"  Luther  replied.  "I  shall 
yield  up  my  spirit,  for  my  illness  grows  worse."  He  then 
prayed  aloud  in  these  words  —  "  O  heavenly  Father,  God 
and  Father  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  thou  God  of  all  com- 
fort, I  thank  thee  that  thou  hast  revealed  to  me  thy  dear  Son 
Jesus  Christ,  whom  I  have  preached,  confessed,  loved,  and 
adored  :  my  Saviour  and  dearest  Redeemer,  whom  the  im- 
pious Pope  and  the  ungodly  persecute,  revile  and  blaspheme 
— I  pray  thee,  my  Lord  Jesus,  receive  my  spirit."  Presently 
he  added,  "  O  heavenly  Father,  although  I  must  quit  this 
body,  and  be  torn  from  this  life,  yet  I  certainly  know  that  I 
shall  remain  with  thee  throughout  eternity,  and  no  one  shall 
pluck  me  out  of  thy  hand."  These  words  were  followed  by 
his  reciting  texts  of  Scripture,  which  he  repeated,  according  to 
his  custom,  in  Latin — "God  so  loved  the  world  that  he  gave 
his  only  begotten  Son,  that  whosoever  believeth  in  him  should 
not  perish,  but  have  everlasting  life."  "  He  that  is  our  God 
is  the  God  of  salvation ;  and  unto  God  the  Lord  belong  the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  377 

issues  from  death."  Here  one  of  the  physicians  gave  him  a  1546. 
costly  medicine,  which  had  been  reserved  as  a  last  expedient. 
He  received  it,  and  immediately  afterwards  said,  "  I  am  dying, 
and  shall  soon  render  up  my  spirit ;"  and  then  thrice  repeated 
— "  Into  thine  hands  I  commend  my  spirit,  for  thou  hast  re- 
deemed me,  O  Lord,  thou  God  of  truth."  A  sudden  change 
appeared  to  pass  over  him — he  became  silent  and  closed  his 
eyes.  The  Countess  continued  to  bathe  his  temples,  and  the 
physicians  were  assiduous  in  their  efforts  to  restore  animation 
by  hot  cloths  and  rubbing.  But  his  end  was  evidently  fast 
approaching,  and  Justus  Jonas  in  a  clear  voice  inquired, 
"  Reverend  father,  do  you  die  in  the  constant  confession  of 
Christ,  and  the  doctrine  which  you  have  preached  ?"  Audibly 
and  distinctly  he  answered,  "Yes/'  He  afterwards  turned 
on  his  right  side  and  slept  for  about  a  quarter  of  an  hour, 
which  gave  his  friends  a  feeble  hope  that  he  might  yet  revive. 
The  physicians  moved  the  candles  towards  him  and  examined 
his  countenance  minutely ;  they  observed  that  his  face  was 
becoming  more  and  more  pallid,  and  they  felt  his  feet,  and 
they  were  already  quite  cold.  Shortly  afterwards,  a  little 
before  three  o'clock,  he  drew  a  deep  but  gentle  sigh,  and, 
without  moving  a  foot,  or  any  apparent  symptom  of  pain, 
peaceably  resigned  his  spirit  to  God. 


378 


CHAPTEE  IX. 

In  comparing  man  with  man,  and  estimating  the  relative 
greatness  of  those  who  are  handed  down  from  age  to  age  as 
great  men,  it  is  necessary  to  keep  in  view  that  the  true  mea- 
sure of  individual  force  and  greatness  of  character,  is  only  to 
be  accurately  ascertained  by  considering  the  nature  of  the 
work  appointed  the  individual  in  the  economy  of  divine  Pro- 
vidence, and  his  peculiar  adaptation  for  the  part  assigned. 
Estimated  by  this  universal  rule,  it  must  be  confessed  that 
Luther  holds  a  position  second  to  none  of  all  those  who  have 
filled  the  largest  space  in  the  eye  of  the  world,  and  only  yields 
to  the  inspired  teachers  and  first  apostles  of  the  Christian 
revelation. 

Ere  this  "  poor  Reformer,  with  the  Gospel  in  his  hand,  and 
in  the  inspired  spirit  of  poverty,  restored  the  Christian  reli- 
gion," that  semblance  of  Christianity  to  which  the  primitive 
faith  had  at  length  been  melted  down  and  transmuted  by 
human  ingenuity  in  a  long  course  of  ages,  was  a  mere  priest- 
craft. Forms  and  shadows  had  been  prized  and  multiplied, 
until  the  life  and  substance,  of  which  they  were  at  first 
regarded  as  the  safe-guards,  were  completely  lost  sight  of 
by  the  large  mass  of  professing  Christians.  The  officials  of 
religion  had  persuaded  the  multitude  that  religion  was  their 
peculiar  and  exclusive  domain ;  and  had  thus  led  the  people  to 
look  up  to  them  implicitly  for  guidance,  and  rely  on  their 
faith  and  piety  as  substitutes  for  their  own  :  and  the  effect 
gradually  wrought   on  those  who    thus  denominated  them- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER,  379 

selves  the  clergy,  God's  special  inheritance,  was  the  converting 
holy  things  into  a  lucrative  privilege,  and  trading  on  the  con- 
sciences and  fears  of  the  laity.  Under  such  a  system  the 
distinctive  doctrines  of  Christianity  faded  away  one  by  one 
from  the  popular  apprehension :  not  that  they  were  authori- 
tatively cancelled  by  that  religious  council  board  which 
styled  itself  the  Church,  but  that  they  were  practically  obli- 
terated by  ceremonies  and  trifles,  to  which  superstition  at- 
tached a  value,  and  from  which  the  Church  derived  a  revenue. 
Nearly  the  same  stages  had  been  passed  through  in  the 
Christian,  at  this  period,  as  in  the  Jewish  Church  at  the  era  of 
the  Saviour ;  and  the  result  was  similar — the  commandments 
of  God  were  set  at  nought  by  human  traditions.  Payment  of 
money  to  those  who  offered  up  Christ  for  the  quick  and  dead 
every  day,  could  purchase  the  atonement  of  any  sin ;  or  some 
bodily  exercises,  muttering  prayers,  fastings,  pilgrimages,  or 
self-torture,  or  the  absolution  of  the  priest,  or  the  Pope's 
indulgence  letter,  could  expiate  the  heinousness  of  the  worst 
crime.  Repentance  simply  meant  penance  :  it  was  no  longer 
an  inward  change,  but  an  outward  discipline,  and  was  under 
the  regulation  of  the  clergy ;  to  offend  against  an  ecclesias- 
tical ordinance  or  precept  was  a  more  flagrant  transgression 
than  the  breach  of  a  law  of  God's  moral  code.  Thus  the 
true  nature  of  sin  was  forgotten,  as  well  as  the  only  real 
atonement  for  sin  obscured.  To  become  a  priest  was  to 
choose  God,  to  enter  on  a  life  of  holiness  :  to  take  the  vow  of 
celibacy,  and  fly  from  the  world,  and  bury  the  head  in  the  re- 
treat of  a  convent,  was  to  espouse  Christ,  to  be  admitted  to 
"  the  state  of  perfection,"  and  walk  in  a  meritorious  pathway 
which  assuredly  led  to  heaven.  The  people  approached  God 
by  his  priests,  as  their  intercessors ;  or  besought  other  inter- 
cessors, Mary  and  the  saints,  to  plead  for  tbem  in  heaven. 
Books  had  been  written,  and  documents  forged,  Avhich  in  the 


380  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

lapse  of  time  had  grown  of  venerable  authority,  to  rivet  these 
chains  of  the  clergy  more  firmly  on  the  minds  of  the  laity  : 
but  as,  with  all  its  aberrations  from  truth,  the  Church  still 
revered  the  writings  of  the  early  Fathers,  and  dared  not  deny 
the  Scriptures  to  be  the  Word  of  God,  it  really  carried  in  its 
own  bosom  the  seeds  of  the  destruction  of  this  idolatrous 
system  of  priestcraft  and  ritual,  and  the  germ  of  a  revived 
order  of  things.  And  hence  the  clasp  and  lock  were  put  upon 
the  Bible,  and  sentinels  of  the  Church  guarded  the  entrance, 
that  none  should  approach  the  fearful  deposit  without  due 
warrant  from  the  hierarchy. 

Luther  proceeded  from  the  very  strictest  of  the  order  of 
friars,  who  almost  entirely  monopolized  the  ecclesiastical 
virtue  of  the  times,  administered  parochial  duties  as  vicars, 
and  episcopal  as  suffragans,  and  without  whom,  Machiavel 
observes,  that  in  the  widespread  degeneracy  of  Christendom, 
Christianity  must  have  become  totally  extinct.  Concern  for 
his  soul,  and  terror  of  God,  drove  Luther  to  become  a  member 
of  the  Augustinian  fraternity  :  and  monkery  was  really  used 
by  him  for  the  purpose  for  which  such  a  life  had  first  been 
selected — as  a  means  of  earning  heaven  by  a  meritorious  life  of 
self-denial.  But  he  felt  with  agonising  and  increasing  power 
the  difficulties,  and  at  length  started  back  from  the  impos- 
sibility of  the  task  which  he  had  imposed  upon  himself; 
he  had  set  out  on  the  journey  to  heaven  by  the  strict 
and  secluded  pathway  of  conventualism  with  all  the  energy 
of  his  soul ;  but  he  stumbled  at  the  first  outset ;  though  he 
celebrated  mass  every  clay,  prayed,  fasted,  and  did  penance, 
and  wore  out  his  body  with  self- discipline,  he  had  no 
peace.  His  conscience  upbraided  him  with  the  constant 
breach  of  those  ordinances,  to  transgress  which  was  called  sin 
by  the  monks ;  and  although  he  afterwards  learnt  that  these 
were  only  sins  of  man's  creating — peccata  ficta  et  picla — as 


THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER.  381 

he  termed  them,  yet  like  the  Jew,  ' '  shut  up  by  the  Law  unto 
the  Gospel,"  he  found  his  feet  so  entangled,  and  his  progress 
so  fettered,  by  this  network  of  human  inventions,  that  it  was 
with  joy,  greatly  enhanced  by  his  conviction  of  failure  even  in 
the  attempt  to  observe  imaginary  duties,  that  he  at  last  burst 
from  such  bondage  into  the  liberty  of  him  whom  the  Son  of 
God  makes  free.  The  shades  of  the  monastery  were  fa- 
vourable for  converse  with  his  own  heart :  and  he  found  that 
seclusion  from  the  outer  world  and  its  forms  of  external  evil, 
seemed  only  to  deepen  the  power  and  vitality  of  evil  in  his 
own  heart,  and  he  became  painfully  and  overpoweringly 
conscious  of  an  inherent  ineradicable  depravity.  All  this 
spiritual  discipline,  accompanied  by  the  deeper  and  deeper 
study  of  God's  Word,  the  most  important  truths  of  which 
were  pointed  out  to  him  by  the  Vicar-General  of  his  order, 
a  mystic,  like  many  others  of  that  age,  impressed  on  his  soul, 
in  characters  not  to  be  effaced,  the  "  exceeding  sinfulness  of 
sin,"  and  the  existence  of  such  sin  in  a  most  intense  degree, 
without  any  regard  to  its  manifestation  in  outward  act,  in  the 
recesses  of  his  own  heart.  This  was  exactly  the  spiritual 
experience  and  heaven-born  conviction  fundamentally  neces- 
sary in  the  man  who  was  to  overthrow  a  Pelagian  system, 
such  as  Romanism,  and  republish  the  humbling  truths  of  the 
doctrine  of  Christ.  And  thus  in  all  his  writings,  conviction 
of  sin  is  one  of  the  most  obvious  and  striking  features :  the 
conviction  became  more  and  more  profound,  as  his  Christian 
experience  advanced,  till  at  last  he  subscribed  himself,  instead 
of  "  Luther,"  "  Christi  lutum ;"  but  it  is  remarkably  exhibited 
in  his  earliest  writings.  He  thus  wrote  in  his  first  Commen- 
tary on  the  Epistle  to  the  Galatians — "  Be  it  that  I  have  not 
committed,  in  act,  homicide,  adultery,  theft,  and  other  sins  of 
such  a  kind,  against  the  second  table  of  God's  commands  :  yet 
I  have  committed  them  in  heart.     Wherefore  I  am  a  trans- 


382  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

gressor  of  all  the  commandments  of  God,  and  so  great  is  the 
multitude  of  my  sins,  that  an  ox-hide  could  not  encompass 
them.  Nay,  they  are  not  to  be  numbered ;  I  have  sinned 
more  times  than  the  sea  has  sands."  "  All  our  own  works," 
he  said  at  a  later  period,  "  be  they  ever  so  precious,  are  no- 
thing better  than  death  and  poison." 

But  this  conviction  of  sinfulness,  as  appertaining  not  only 
to  the  life,  but  defiling  the  seat  of  the  thoughts  and  motives, 
the  heart,  did  not  come  alone :  had  it  doue  so,  it  would  have 
only  produced  despair.  The  "sentence  of  death  in  himself" 
was  rapidly  succeeded  by  the  assurance  of  life  in  Christ :  and 
though  despair  often  tried  to  gain  the  mastery,  faith  in  the 
one  sacrifice  for  sin,  through  the  strength  of  the  Holy  Ghost, 
proved  "  more  than  conqueror  over  subdued  and  unsubdued 
iniquity."  He  wrote  on  this  subject  in  the  Commentary  just 
quoted  as  follows  : — "  Hypocrites,  ignorant  of  Christ,  al- 
though they  feel  remorse  for  sin,  yet  think  that  they  shall 
easily  atone  for  it  by  their  own  works  and  merits.  And  they 
would  have  those  words — (  Who  gave  himself  for  our  sins/  to 
be  words  spoken  in  humility,  so  as  to  mean  for  sins  not  serious 
and  true,  but  nominal  and  fictitious  sins.  Human  reason 
would  like  to  bring  to  God  a  feigned,  a  pretended  sinner,  one 
who  had  no  terror  on  account  of  sin,  and  no  sense  of  sin :  it 
would  fain  bring  the  whole,  who  has  no  need  of  the  physician, 
and  then,  without  any  sense  of  guilt,  believe  that  '  Christ  was 
delivered  for  our  sins/  The  entire  world  is  of  this  mind; 
especially  those  in  the  world  who  wish  to  be  more  religious 
and  holy  than  others,  as  they  dream,  that  is,  the  monks  and 
all  work-mongers.  These  with  the  lip  confess  that  they  are 
sinners;  they  confess  that  they  commit  sins  every  day,  but 
not  so  vast  and  multitudinous,  but  by  their  own  works  they 
can  do  them  away.  Nay,  more  than  this,  they  want  to  bring 
their  holiness   and   merits  to   the    tribunal    of  Christ,    and 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  383 

demand  for  them  from  their  Judge  the  payment  of  eternal 
life.  Meanwhile,  as  a  humfole  fraternity,  not  to  be  quite 
sinless,  they  imagine  a  few  sins,  that  they  may  beg  pardon 
for  these,  and  with  great  devotion,  pray  with  the  publican, 
'  God  be  merciful  to  me  a  sinner.'  .  .  .  This,  therefore, 
is  the  special  science  and  wisdom  of  the  Christian,  to  take 
these  words  as  serious  and  most  true,  that  Christ  was  de- 
livered to  death,  not  for  our  holiness  and  sanctity,  but  for  our 
sins,  which  are  real,  vast,  many,  nay,  infinite,  and  unsub- 
dued. Do  not  imagine  them  small,  such  as  your  works  can 
do  away.  Do  not  despair  at  their  number,  when  you  truly 
feel  them  in  life,  or  in  the  hour  of  death ;  but  believe  that 
Christ  for  no  feigned  and  pretended,  but  for  real  sins ;  for 
sins  not  small,  but  the  very  greatest ;  not  for  one  or  two  sins, 
but  for  all  sins ;  not  for  subdued  sins  (for  no  man,  no  angel, 
can  subdue  the  very  least  sin),  but  for  sins  unsubdued,  was 
delivered  to  death."  When  Luther,  from  this  awful  consci- 
ousness of  his  own  ineradicable  iniquity,  had  emerged  to  the 
daylight  of  eternal  life  by  the  knowledge  of  Christ,  the  whole 
Scripture  became  intelligible  to  him.  Repentance,  he  now 
saw,  meant  the  thorough  change  worked  by  the  Holy  Ghost 
in  the  heart,  which,  instead  of  looking  to  self,  turns  to  Christ 
for  every  thing.  Through  types  and  emblems,  rites  and  ordi- 
nances, he  beheld  Christ,  "  of  whom  the  Bible  spoke,  and 
of  whom  it  spoke  alone :"  and  year  after  year,  as  it  ripened 
his  spiritual  experience,  confirmed  his  trust  in  the  Sun  of 
righteousness,  the  centre  of  the  entire  Christian  system. 
"  In  my  heart/'  he  said,  many  years  afterwards,  "  reigns,  and 
alone  shall  reign,  this  one  article,  viz.,  faith  in  my  dear  Lord 
Christ,  who  of  all  my  spiritual  thoughts  day  and  night  is  the 
beginning,  the  middle,  and  the  end."  "  I  sometimes,  in 
order  to  apprehend  the  great  truth  of  justification  by  faith 


384  THE    LlFJi    OE    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

alone  the  better,"  he  wrote  to  Brentz  in  a  postscript  to  a  letter 
of  Melancthon  to  him  on  that  subject,  "  put  the  case  to  myself 
thus,  that  there  is  in  my  heart  no  quality  or  virtue  that  can  be 
called  faith  or  love  (as  the  sophists  speak  thereof  and  dream) ; 
but  I  put  all  simply  on  Christ,  and  say,  He  is  my  formal 
righteousness,  my  certain,  stable,  complete  righteousness, 
wherein  is  no  want  or  fail ;  all  I  should  be  before  God,  that 
Christ  my  Lord  is  to  me." 

This  was  indeed  restoring  the  Sun  to  the  theological  firma- 
ment, from  which  by  a  long  eclipse  it  seemed  to  be  blotted 
out.  Works  of  charity  and  piety,  which  the  Papists  had  mag- 
nified and  extolled  until  their  vicious  theology  had  marked 
its  traces  in  the  most  awful  irreligion  and  wide-spread  im- 
morality, were  once  more  placed  in  their  proper  relation  to 
their  only  true  source  and  principle,  faith  in  the  Divine 
word  that  Christ  is  the  only  Saviour.  "  Faith,"  Luther  said, 
"  is  the  sun  of  all  those  rays  of  good  works."  He  exceed- 
ingly disliked  such  expressions  as  "  The  Christian  is  bound  to 
do  good  works;"  such  a  phrase,  he  objected,  savours  of 
legality,  and  is  as  absurd  as  to  say,  "  The  sun  ought  to  shine ;" 
"  A  good  tree  ought  to  yield  fruit."  "  Believers,"  he  insisted, 
"  are  a  new  creation,  a  new  tree ;  the  workman  must  precede 
his  work  :  faith  is  always  operative  inevitably."  And  he  saw 
with  equal  clearness  that  justification  by  faith,  the  work  of 
promise,  or  the  gift  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  being  in  every  case 
perfect,  cannot  admit  of  degrees.  "  We  are  all  equally 
righteous  or  just  in  our  one  Christ ;  we  are  all  equally  be- 
loved and  acceptable  in  point  of  character ;  yet  star  differs 
from  star  in  brightness,  although  God  loves  the  star  of  Saturn 
as  much  as  the  sun  or  the  moon."  He  traced  with  scriptural 
clearness  the  genealogical  tree,  as  it  may  be  called,  of  the 
Christian  life :  simple  Faith  in  Christ  the  trunk  or  stem,  the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  385 

parent  of  Love;  and  again,  Love  the  parent  of  Obedience. 
"  There  are  many  false  Christians/'  he  wrote,*  "  who  boast 
of  Christ,  like  the  faithless  Cain,  and  yet  remain  without  any 
fruit  of  faith.  Therefore  the  Apostle  speaks  here  not  of  the 
means  of  deliverance  from  sins  and  death  into  life,  but  of  the 
test  whereby  a  man  may  be  assured  of  this ;  not  of  the  cause, 
but  of  the  effect  .  .  .  For  faith  is  not  such  a  thing  as  can 
lie  alcne  and  dead :  but  where  it  lives  in  the  heart,  it  shows 
its  power.  The  heart,  in  which  is  shed  abroad  trust  and 
sure  confidence  in  God's  grace  and  love,  is  moved  to  be  good, 
friendly,  gentle,  patient  towards  every  neighbour,  is  void  of 
all  hate,  and  willingly  serves  every  one,  should  need  be, 
with  body  and  life.  Such  fruit  proves  and  testifies  that 
verily  such  a  man  is  passed  from  death  unto  life.  The  faith 
that  acknowledges  God's  grace  and  goodness  in  deliverance 
out  of  death  into  life,  enkindles  the  heart  to  love  in  return 
and  do  all  good,  even  to  enemies,  as  God  has  done  to  him." 
"When  I  have  the  righteousness  of  Christ  within  me," 
Luther  says  again  in  a  noble  passage  in  his  Commentary 
on  the  Epistle  to  the  Galatians,  "  I  descend  from  heaven,  like 
a  shower  fertilizing  the  earth  :  that  is,  I  go  forth  into  another 
region,  and  do  good  works,  whatsoever  I  can.  If  I  am  a  minis- 
ter of  the  word,  I  preach,  comfort  the  weak,  administer  the 
sacraments :  if  a  father  of  a  family,  I  rule  my  house  and 
family,  and  rear  up  my  children  in  piety  and  honesty  :  if  a 
magistrate,  I  execute  my  divine  commission  :  if  a  servant,  I 
faithfully  care  for  my  master's  property :  in  fine,  whoever 
certainly  knows  Christ  to  be  his  Righteousness,  he  not  only 
from  the  heart  and  with  joy  does  good  works  in  his  vocation, 
but  out  of  love  subjects  himself  likewise  to  the  magistrate, 
even  to  impious  laws,  and  to  all  the  burdens  and  dangers  of 

*  Postil  to  Epistle,  Second  Sunday  after  Trinity. —  1  John  iii.  13 — 
IS  ;  Walch.  XII.  p.  885. 

VOL.  II.  C    C 


386  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

the  present  life,  if  need  bej  because  lie  knows  that  such  is 
God's  will,  and  that  this  obedience  is  well  pleasing  to  God." 
Luther  called  this  "the  doctrine  of  faith  and  love ;"  "Faith 
makes  us  lords,  but  Love  makes  us  servants."  And  he 
always  taught  that  the  bondslave's  obedience,  on  the  prin- 
ciple of  service  exacted,  is  not  to  be  compared  with  the 
obedience  of  freedom,  the  cheerful  devotion  of  the  son  in  his 
father's  house.  "  It  is  entitled  great  nobility,  honour,  and 
glory  on  earth,  to  be  the  child  of  a  mighty  renowned  king  or 
emperor;  yet  how  much  higher  could  any  one  truly  boast 
himself  a  son  of  the  highest  angel?  But  what  is  it  all  com- 
pared with  being  called,  nay,  being  named  and  chosen  by  God 
himself  his  child,  and  heir  of  the  high  divine  Majesty  !" 
"  Without  love/'  he  would  say,  "  we  are  nothing,  although 
we  could  work  miracles." 

This  "  golden  science,  to  know  Christ,"  Luther  had  learnt 
in  the  monastery ;  but  his  deep  acquaintance  with  divine 
things  might  have  left  behind  it  no  other  record  than  some  lines 
graven  on  the  walls  of  his  cell,  as  in  the  case  of  many  others, 
or  some  tradition  at  Erfurth,  or  among  his  order,  unless  God 
in  his  wonderful  Providence,  having  fashioned  him  as  his 
chosen  instrument  in  the  shade  of  the  cloister,  when  the  pre- 
paration was  complete,  had  set  his  work  in  the  world  before 
him.  Against  "  human  works,  the  merits  of  saints  and  their 
intercession,  and  the  sacrifice  of  the  mass,"  the  foul  dregs  to 
which  the  Christianity  of  Romanism  had  sunk,  he  preached 
"  Christ  crucified,"  long  before  he  had  begun  to  question  the 
pretensions  of  Rome,  or  had  ceased  to  venerate  the  Pontiff 
even  with  fanaticism .  When  at  last  the  awakening  to  the  real 
character  of  the  Papacy  came,  and  by  firmly  grasping  one 
central  truth,  first  one  corruption,  then  another,  at  length 
the  entire  fabric  of  Romanism  lay  in  ruins  at  his  feet,  show- 
ing with  what  earthly  materials  it  had  been  built  up,  he  rose  to 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  387 

his  second  grand  discovery.  The  Church,  he  found,  did  not 
consist  of  prelates,  or  of  the  clergy  only  :  nay,  the  Pope  him- 
self, and  most  of  the  highest  ecclesiastical  dignitaries,  were 
"  no  part  of  Christ  at  all ;  "  but,  as  Huss  had  said,  the  Church 
was  "  the  universe  of  predestined  souls ; "  it  was  the 
society  of  true  believers,  "  not  only  under  the  Pope,  but 
in  all  the  world."  With  tremendous  power  Luther  shi- 
vered to  pieces,  in  his  "  Babylonish  Captivity/'  that  sacerdo- 
talism, with  which,  as  with  a  mill-stone  tied  round  it,  the 
Papacy  had  been  sinking  the  so-called  Church  to  the  depths 
of  hell.  All  the  things  of  Christ,  he  said,  appertained  to 
every  believer  in  common  :  the  priesthood  was  a  common 
right  and  privilege  of  all  those  anointed  kings  and  priests  by 
the  Holy  Ghost :  to  administer  the  Sacraments  and  to  preach 
the  Word  were  not  restricted  to  any  class  in  the  Church  :  the 
character  indelibilis  was  a  merely  human  pretence,  without  the 
least  scriptural  foundation  :  and  the  minister  or  pastor  simply 
differed  from  the  ordinary  Christian  in  enjoying  the  ministe- 
rial gift  from  God,  i.  e.  the  talent  of  preaching,  recognised  by 
the  laying  on  of  hands.  The  practical  influence  of  this  teach- 
ing was  important  in  the  highest  degree.  Papal  sacerdotal- 
ism, had  made  all  worldly  callings  profane,  and  distinguished 
religion  from  irreligion  by  reference  to  outward  acts  and 
names,  instead  of  the  inward  motive  and  principle.  Luther 
proclaimed  that  Christianity  must  pervade  every  state  of  life, 
and  enter  into  every  employment  and  act :  "  The  Word  of 
God  must  not  only  reign  in  the  Church,  but  in  the  ministra- 
tion of  civil  government,  and  in  the  domestic  household." 
To  dedicate  an  image  of  gold  to  God,  to  collect  saintly  relics, 
or  to  be  buried  in  the  garb  of  a  Franciscan  or  Dominican,  by 
way  of  passport  to  heaven,  such  things  were  Romanist  follies  : 
but  to  bring  up  children  in  God's  fear,  to  live  to  God's  glory 
in  whatever  worldly  calling,  to  do  the  most  humble  act  of 

c  c  .2 


388  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

kindness  from  a  spirit  of  love,  these  common-place  duties  were 
truly  Christian.  Yet  the  secular  and  the  spiritual  were  still 
to  be  kept  distinct,  for  "the  two  ministries  had  been  sun- 
dered by  Christ  himself."  Luther  spoke  of  the  delight 
with  which  the  Elector  Frederic  had  welcomed  such  a  prac- 
tical exposition  of  scriptural  piety,  how  he  had  "his  book 
copied  out,  bound  separately,  and  sore  loved  it,"  rejoicing 
that,  although  a  layman,  he  might  yet  be  a  Christian  prince. 
"The  monks  inquire,"  Luther  wrote  in  his  Postil  to  the 
Gospel  for  the  First  Sunday  after  the  Epiphany,  "  what  sort 
of  life  did  St.  Francis  lead?  What  garments  did  he  wear? 
We  will  do  and  wear  the  same.  But  no  one,  they  say,  knows 
what  Christ  did.  Yes,  I  reply,  we  are  told  what  Christ  did; 
for  it  is  written,  c  He  went  down  with  his  parents  to  Nazareth, 
and  was  subject  unto  them.'  In  such  words  the  Evangelist  com- 
prises the  whole  youth  of  our  dear  Lord  Christ.  That  he  was 
subject  to  his  parents  means  nothing  else  than  that  he  walked 
in  the  paths  of  the  fourth  commandment.  When  his  mother 
said,  '  Son,  run  here  or  there ;  bring  me  a  can  of  water,  fetch 
me  beer,  wood,  straw,  &c./  he  ran  and  fetched  them. 
He  did  not  run  into  a  cloister  and  become  a  monk ;  he  went 
down  with  them  to  Nazareth  ;  he  remained  among  the  people, 
and  was  patiently  obedient  to  father  and  mother.  .  . 
Every  one  thinks  he  can  do  better  and  more  costly  works 
than  the  holy  little  child,  Jesus.  But  this  is  to  forget  that 
household  duties  and  obedience  to  father  and  mother  have  been 
hallowed  by  the  Holy  One,  the  Son  of  God,  who  himself  fetched 
wood  and  cut  it,  drew  water,  and  did  other  such  like  household 
duties.  Such  works  are  a  thousand-fold  better  and  holier  works 
than  the  works  of  all  the  monks  in  their  cloisters  for  all  time." 
Thus  to  bring  the  Scriptures  to  bear  on  every  relative  station 
of  life,  and  its  every  most  menial  duty,  was  Luther's  unceas- 
ing care  and  labour.     For  this  he  founded  seminaries,  insti- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  389 

tuted  visitations,  compiled  catechisms,  catechised  the  poor,  old 
and  young,  composed  prayers  for  their  use  for  morning  and 
night,  a  Grace  for  meal -times,  a  form  of  instruction  for  the 
array  chaplains,  and  wrote  his  noble  hymns ;  for  this  he 
spoke  of  God's  Word  in  the  Church,  in  the  Lecture  Hall,  at 
the  Elector's  table,  at  dinner  with  the  tradesman,  over  his 
tankard  of  ale  with  Amsdorf,  and  to  Kate,  Johnny,  and  little 
Lena  by  his  own  fireside.  That  Christianity  might  be  co- 
extensive with  the  whole  of  secular  life,  the  Word  of  God  was 
everywhere  to  be  paramount.  The  Church  was  "all  true 
believers,"  and  was  immovable,  the  pillar  and  ground  of  the 
truth,  as  based  on  Christ,  and  holding  out  his  word :  it  could 
not  err,  because  God's  word  could  not  err.  The  bride  of 
Christ,  the  Church  "  heard  the  Bridegroom's  word  at  bed 
and  at  board,  and  listened  to  no  other's  word :"  to  hearken 
to  the  word  of  any  other  was  to  be  "  a  harlot,  an  adulteress, 
the  apostate  of  Satan." 

He  had  at  first  appealed  from  the  Pope  to  an  Oecumenical 
Council,  and  he  continued  to  declare  that  a  Council  would 
rightly  be  convened  for  deposing  the  Pope  ;  but  he  soon  dis- 
covered that  Councils  were  no  less  fallible  than  Pontiffs,  and 
that  the  standard  of  truth  is  the  Bible,  and  the  Bible  alone. 
Faith  in  the  Divine  Word  "  made  the  Christian,"  and  parted 
off  the  Church  from  the  world.  On  God's  Word  of  promise, 
the  Sacraments,  the  ordinances  of  prayer  and  preaching, 
and  all  our  well-being  and  safety,  temporal  and  eternal, 
depended.  The  Word  was  the  believer's  shield  and  weapon. 
The  devil  did  not  fear  the  sword,  but  trembled  at  the 
Word.  The  only  true  means  of  regenerating  man,  and  re- 
forming society,  lay  hid  in  the  Word,  the  vehicle  through 
which  the  Spirit  of  God  acted  on  the  heart.  "  The  Scrip- 
tures," he  would  say,  "  are  a  great  and  wide  forest, 
wherein  stand  many  trees  of  every  sort,  whereof  one  may 


390  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

pluck  various  kinds  of  fruit.  The  Bible  contains  true  conso- 
lation, knowledge,  counsel,  exhortation,  warning,  promises, 
and  threatenings.  Nor  is  there  a  single  tree  in  that  forest 
from  which  I  have  not  knocked  off  something,  and  broken  off 
or  shaken  down  a  couple  of  apples  or  plums."  He  ever  boasted 
that  it  was  by  the  wisdom  derived  from  the  Bible  that  he  had 
confuted  and  overthrown  all  his  adversaries,  and  conquered 
Satan's  temptations,  Of  book-learning  in  general,  he  spoke 
very  slightingly,  in  comparison  with  the  one  precious  volume, 
"  God's  greatest  treasure  on  earth."  Other  books  were  only 
valuable  in  proportion  to  their  tendency  to  elucidate  the  book 
of  God,  or  to  lead  to  the  study  of  it.  To  the  Bible,  and  to 
experience,  as  the  two  chief  sources  of  instruction,  he  imputed 
the  development  of  his  mental  faculties,  and  the  eminence 
among  his  fellow  men  to  which  he  attained.  And  he  implored 
Kate  to  search  the  Scriptures  diligently  and  regularly,  to 
read  them  over  and  over  again,  especially  the  Psalms.  When 
she  replied,  that  she  thought  she  had  heard  the  Bible  enough, 
and  read  a  great  deal  of  it  every  day,  "  Ah  !"  Luther  an- 
swered, "  it  is  this  weariness  of  God's  Word,  and  fancying  we 
understand  it,  when  we  know  no  more  about  it  than  a  goose, 
which  is  the  great  evil  of  the  times,  and  produces  a  large 
number  of  new  and  idle  publications,  so  that  the  book  of  God 
is  like  again  to  be  thrown  into  a  corner."  For  himself,  he 
averred,  that  although  a  Doctor  of  the  Holy  Scriptures,  he 
was  not  yet  out  of  his  rudiments,  and  did  not  understand  per- 
fectly aright  his  Creed,  the  Ten  Commandments,  and  his 
"  Our  Father."  The  stream  of  Scripture,  he  was  fond  of  re- 
peating, was  so  deep,  and  yet  so  shallow,  that  a  lamb  might 
often  wade  through  it  safely,  when  an  elephant  would  be 
carried  away  by  the  tide.  The  child-like  heart  learnt  the 
most  from  God's  Word  :  and  therefore  he  delighted  to  instruct 
Johnny  and  Magdalene  in  the  Catechism,  and  professed  that 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  391 

teaching  them  never  failed  to  extend  and  deepen  his  own 
acquaintance  with  the  Scriptures.  The  simplest  text  com- 
prised so  much,  that  he  found  more  in  it  than  he  had  seen 
before,  on  every  fresh  perusal.  To  handle  the  Word  was  the 
pastor's  noblest  function,  his  "  Sabbath  of  Sabbaths."  And 
the  humblest  preacher  of  the  Word  was  generally  the  most 
successful  :  for  "  the  devil  overlooked  low  things,  his  eyes 
ran  after  high  things ;  so  God  put  a  poor  preacher  of  the 
Word  beneath  his  feet,  and  Satan  was  tripped  up." 

For  this  glorious  task,  to  which  he  felt  and  knew  that  God 
had  called  him,  of  drawing  forth  the  light  of  Scripture  from 
its  concealment,  and  replacing  it  in  the  temple,  the  palace, 
the  college,  the  school,  and  the  dwelling-house,  he  possessed 
extraordinary  endowments  of  body  and  mind.  In  stature, 
he  was  not  much  above  the  ordinary  height,  but  his  limbs 
were  firmly  set :  he  had  "  an  open,  right  valiant  counte- 
nance :"  a  broad,  German  nose,  slightly  aquiline :  a  forehead 
rather  wide  than  lofty,  with  beetling  brows  :  large  lips  and 
mouth :  eyes  full  of  lustre,  which  were  compared  to  the 
eagle's  or  the  lion's  :  short  curling  dark  hair,  and  a  distin- 
guishing wart  on  the  right  cheek.  In  the  early  part  of  his 
career  his  figure  was  emaciated  to  the  last  degree,  subse- 
quently it  filled  out,  and  in  his  latter  years  inclined  to  corpu- 
lence. His  constitution  was  naturally  of  the  strongest  cast ; 
one  of  the  common  mould  must  soon  have  sunk  under  his 
unparalleled  energy ;  and  he  was  never  better  than  with 
plenty  of  toil  and  study,  and  a  moderate  diet,  such  as  his 
accustomed  food  of  a  herring  and  pease.  "  In  Luther,"  says 
Varillas,  "an  Italian  head  was  joined  to  a  German  body." 
In  bodily  temperament,  and  in  mental  qualities,  it  was  the 
union  of  gifts  rarely  found  together,  that  gave  him  the  grasp 
and  compass  of  power  suited  to  his  work.  His  temperament 
was  at  once  sanguine  and  melancholic.     He  was  full  of  life 


392  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

and  fire,  and  yet  patient  and  imperturbable.  So  too  in 
mental  faculties  :  he  was  endowed  with  original  genius  of 
the  highest  order :  the  profoundest  mind  united  to  the 
strongest  common  sense,  and  a  vivid  imagination  joined  to 
clear  judgment.  The  deepest  of  thinkers,  he  was  the  simplest 
of  writers.  A  man  of  study,  he  was  also  a  man  of  the  world. 
Well  read  in  books,  he  was  even  yet  better  read  in  the  human 
heart — profound  yet  child-like,  sublime  yet  simple,  earnest 
and  enthusiastic,  and  yet  full  of  comic  humour.  The  chief 
agent  in  a  most  thorough  revolution,  he  yet  clung  with  almost 
a  blind  devotion  to  the  past,  retained  to  the  last  his  Latin 
Bible,  and  the  Romish  division  of  the  commandments,  and 
would  let  nothing  go  from  his  hand  till,  by  the  plainest 
evidence,  it  was  wrested  from  him.  A  miner's  son,  yet  aris- 
tocratic in  every  sentiment;  from  staying  with  the  Prince 
of  Anhalt,  or  the  Elector  of  Saxony,  he  would  pass  to  an 
honest  tradesman,  or  a  good-natured  publican,  and  be  greeted 
with  the  warm  familiarity  of  old  friendship.  From  writing 
to  one  of  the  crowned  heads  of  Europe,  he  would  resume 
the  pen  to  answer  some  obscure  correspondent,  a  nun  or 
shopkeeper,  a  forester  or  fencing-master.  The  oracle  of 
Wittenberg  and  of  Germany,  he  was  never  more  in  his 
element  than  amongst  children.  He  was  equally  adapted  to 
detect  the  literary  forgeries  of  the  Romish  Church,  to  over- 
come Dr.  Eck  in  theological  disputation,  to  out-satirize 
Erasmus,  or  to  preach  a  sermon  to  an  assembly  of  illi- 
terate boors.  But  with  such  great  variety  of  faculties  and 
character,  the  chain  of  consistency  was  never  broken  ;  he  was 
always  Luther,  without  a  tinge  of  affectation  or  pretension ; 
the  man  who  could  not  semble  or  dissemble  :  the  life  of  an 
entertainment ;  and  then,  plunged  in  melancholy  by  the 
weight  of  inward  trials,  or  retiring  to  his  study  to  work  day 
and   night  at  some  treatise,  which  the  public  interests  de- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  393 

manded,  without  tasting  food  or  drink,  until  the  completed 
manuscript  should  be  sent  to  the  printers. 

It  is  little  to  be  wondered  at  that  his  writings  cannot  be 
regarded  as  finished  compositions;  they  exhibit,  with  scarce 
an  exception,  clear  signs  of  the  haste  with  which  they  were 
thrown  off,  but  evince  all  the  fulness  of  Luther's  mind — his 
extraordinary  faculty  of  exhausting  a  subject,  his  humour  and 
wit,  his  fondness  for  homely  proverbs,  with  his  strong  sense 
and  clear  depth  of  understanding.  The  grandeur  is  more 
frequently  in  the  thought  itself  than  in  the  words,  but  often  the 
majesty  of  the  conception  seems  to  force  into  its  own  service 
all  the  magnificence  of  diction.  His  writings  have  been 
called  "half  battles,"  and  in  vigour  and  energy  they  have 
never  been  surpassed.  The  muscles  of  the  wrestler  seem  to 
stand  out  with  each  effort  of  strength ;  and  when  jest  succeeds 
to  fervour,  the  mask  of  language  Avould  seem  to  be  withdrawn, 
and  the  laugh  on  Luther's  own  countenance  to  be  reflected  on 
the  page,  Melancthon  said  of  Luther's  writings,  that  "  they 
left  their  sting  behind  them  :"  Erasmus  said,  that  "  barbarous 
as  they  were,  they  had  thunders  and  lightnings  which  shook 
the  heart :"  Luther  himself  was  dissatisfied  with  all  of  them, 
except  his  Catechism,  and  the  treatise  on  the  Bondage  of  the 
Will.  Never  have  any  other  writings  produced  effects  so 
powerful  and  universal,  notwithstanding  the  rapidity  with 
which  tract  followed  tract,  and  commentary  commentary. 
Ranke  states,  that  the  issue  from  the  press  of  Luther's  pub- 
lications amounted  in  1518  to  20,  1519  to  50,  1520  to  183, 
1521  to  40,  1522  to  130,  1523  to  183— some  of  these,  of 
course,  reprints,  but  some  of  them  at  the  same  time  works  of 
large  bulk.  The  feeblest  of  them  no  author  save  Luther  could 
have  struck  off;  for  although  a  writing  of  Melancthon  might 
be  mistaken  by  a  casual  reader  for  the  work  of  Brentz,  or  a 
treatise  of  Calvin  might  perhaps  be  imputed  to  Beza,  the  most 


394  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

casual  of  readers  would  not  fail  to  be  struck  by  the  originality 
which  characterises  the  least  important  offspring  of  Luther's 
intellect.  As  a  preacher,  Luther  is  pronounced  even  by 
Romanist  writers  to  have  been  "  incomparable."  He  re- 
garded the  perfection  of  a  sermon  as  consisting  in  its  unity  ; 
it  is,  he  said,  out  of  one  flower  how  to  make  a  meadow.  And 
whoever  reads  his  Postils,  must  be  surprised  at  his  singular 
faculty  of  expanding  one  idea  —  presenting  it  under  every 
variety  of  form  and  illustration,  and  looking  at  his  subject 
from  every  possible  point  of  view.  To  be  effective,  he  insisted 
that  a  sermon  ought  always  to  be  brief;  and  in  preparing  his 
discourses  he  studied  the  subject  generally :  he  did  not  make 
notes  or  pursue  the  topic  into  details,  but,  having  grasped  the 
leading  principle,  poured  out  of  his  own  fulness  to  his  audi- 
ence, filling  up  the  interstices  with  such  matter  as  the  occa- 
sion or  the  character  of  his  hearers  suggested  at  the  time.  "  If 
you  preach  to  the  common  man,"  he  would  say,  "  on  the  doc- 
trinal articles  of  religion,  he  falls  asleep ;  you  must  preach 
the  law — place  the  fire  of  hell  before  his  eyes,  and  tell  him 
stories."  Luther  was  ever  on  the  watch  to  keep  the  interest 
of  his  auditory  from  flagging.  Sometimes  he  would  narrate 
to  them  passages  from  his  own  Christian  experience,  or  he 
produced  a  memorable  example  from  public  or  private  life  to 
enforce  a  precept ;  or  gave  to  some  fable  of  the  Romish  Church 
a  scriptual  application  ;  or  he  spoke  of  death-bed  scenes  ;  or 
with  ardour,  which  at  once  won  over  the  popular  ear  and 
heart,  recited  one  of  those  matchless  hymns,  perhaps  just  com- 
posed by  him,  which,  passing  from  mouth  to  mouth,  and  land 
to  land,  were  the  war-songs  of  the  Reformation,  and  moved  the 
heart  of  Germany  as  the  heart  of  one  man.  Some  of  the 
allusions  in  Luther's  sermons  can  only  be  justified  by  the  fact 
that  in  that  age  the  pulpit,  besides  its  proper  functions,  also 
discharged  those  now  appropriated  by  the  press.     But  scrip- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  395 

tural  exposition  was,  after  all,  the  ground  on  which  his  natural 
and  spiritual  gifts  showed  to  the  most  advantage.  Here  he 
was  at  home ;  the  subject  had  engrossed  his  ardent  mind  for 
years.  "  The  parson,"  he  would  repeat,  ' '  who  cannot  make 
a  sermon  on  a  single  word  of  Scripture,  is  no  preacher  at  all. 
I  read  the  first  commandment — '  I  am  the  Lord  thy  God' — 
and  am  arrested  by  the  first  word — '  I.'  Its  meaning  over- 
powers me."  But  the  first  of  preachers  and  Biblical  exposi- 
tors was  the  gentlest  critic  of  the  discourses  of  others. 
Mathesius  relates  that  Luther,  being  in  a  country  village, 
attended  divine  service  in  the  church  according  to  his  custom, 
and  heard  a  very  uninteresting  sermon.  The  congregation, 
as  they  were  returning  home,  remarked  aloud  on  the  defects 
of  the  discourse  they  had  just  listened  to.  Luther  turned  and 
addressed  them — "There  are,"  he  said,  "greater  and  lesser 
lights  in  the  firmament ;  in  God's  house  are  vessels  of  iron 
and  wood,  as  well  as  of  silver  and  gold,  but  all  serve  our  Lord 
Christ."  But  he  was  more  censorious  on  deficiency  of  another 
kind.  Whilst  he  left  the  adjustment  of  ceremonies,  in  a  great 
measure,  to  individual  churches,  declaring  "  We  are  not  the 
slaves  of  ceremonies,  but  their  lords,"  he  always  required  a 
congruity  of  adaptation  in  the  parts  of  the  service ;  and  when 
he  once  heard  an  old  Latin  hymn  sung  to  a  new  German 
tune,  the  jar  upon  his  associations  and  taste  was  so  harsh, 
that  he  pronounced  severe  animadversion. 

That  may  with  truth  be  said  of  Luther,  which  can  be  as- 
serted of  very  few  religious  teachers,  that  his  moral  and 
religious  character  were  his  doctrines  exemplified.  His  dis- 
tinctive characteristic  was  faith.  His  Lord  God,  who  had 
"  conferred  on  him  such  gifts  as  he  had  not  granted  to  many 
thousands,"  could  "make  ten  Dr.  Martins  out  of  one  stone 
with  a  word."  The  cause  was  not  his,  but  God's,  and  it  must 
prosper,  because  it  was  God's  cause.     His  preaching  was  little 


396  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

heeded,  but  he  was  the  ambassador  of  God,  and  dared  not  re- 
frain. The  Reformation  had  given  great  occasion  to  avarice 
and  selfishness;  rapine  preyed  on  the  property  of  the  Church, 
and  he  "  daily  saw  poor  pastors,  with  their  wives  and  children, 
whose  hunger  looked  out  of  their  eyes — who  had  scarce  bread 
and  water,  naked  of  clothing,  with  nothing  of  their  own ; 
farmer  and  burgher  would  not  give  to  them,  and  the  nobles 
took  away  from  them  ;"  yet  for  all  that,  God's  Word  must 
be  proclaimed,  and  could  not  be  void.  No  one  ever  pos- 
sessed such  a  vivid  appreciation  of  unseen  realities.  Satan, 
who  "  blows  the  pestilence,"  who  devastates  the  world 
with  misery,  who,  "  when  God  builds  a  church,  never  fails 
to  build  his  chapel  hard  by,"  was  continually  tracking  his 
steps,  thwarting  his  efforts  for  good,  tempting  and  harassing 
him,  and  had  made  him  in  body  a  very  Lazarus.  His  torment 
in  his  head,  which  "  debarred  him  from  reading  three  verses 
of  the  Psalms  together  without  pausing,"  was  entirely  super- 
natural. It  was  Satan  who  plagued  men  in  their  sleep  with 
dreams  and  visions ;  threw  into  the  heart  fiery  darts  of  wicked 
thoughts;  interrupted  mirth;  changed  children;  raised  hob- 
goblins. In  a  case  of  suicide,  the  murderer  was  really 
Satan.  Satan  had  caused  the  sudden  deaths  of  Emser  and 
of  fficolampadius.  And  just  before  Carlstadt's  death,  a 
tall  black  man  had  sat  in  his  place  in  the  Cathedral  of 
Basle,  invisible  to  those  near,  but  plain  to  those  at  a  dis- 
tance. "  That  was  real  death."  Thus  God  on  one  side, 
Satan  on  the  other,  were  the  real  actors  in  the  great 
drama  ever  progressing  on  the  stage  of  the  world ;  all 
others  were  but  masks.  The  Papists,  "  Heinz  and  Meinz," 
and  their  abettors,  were  but  masks  or  idols;  Satan  in 
reality  moved  the  puppets,  and  made  them  his  mouth- 
pieces. So  on  the  other  side,  the  man,  the  horse,  the  battle- 
axe,  were  but  outward  semblances  concealing  the  hand  of  the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  397 

Most  High.  The  wicked  man  was  but  the  unruly  horse 
that  would  fain  run  his  own  career ;  God  was  the  rider,  who, 
through  the  very  fury  of  man,  accomplished  his  own  pur- 
poses, making  the  wrath  of  the  wicked  to  praise  him.  He 
committed  himself  and  all  his  to  God's  guidance  with  the 
most  perfect  confidence.  "  God,"  he  said,  ' '  rather  than  his 
people  should  want,  would  cause  the  heavens  to  pour  down 
bread  and  the  rock  to  gush  with  water,  and  the  leaves  of  the 
trees  to  become  coats  and  mantles.  I  verily  believe  that  more 
persons  live  than  there  ever  grows  food  for,  and  that  to  the 
godly  the  Lord  multiplies  the  corn  in  the  sack,  and  the  meal 
in  the  bin,  and  the  loaf  on  the  board,  and  the  morsel  in  the 
mouth."  He  was  delighted  to  repeat  "  the  blessing  of  the 
Lord,  it  maketh  rich,"  and  to  insist  that  mercy  and  charity 
are  the  true  road  to  wealth.  He  would  often  recount  how 
Thuringia  was  once  a  corn-rich  country,  but  had  been  struck 
with  the  curse  of  barrenness  on  account  of  the  covetousness 
of  the  farmers  ;  how  the  Netherlands  would  sink  under  the 
indignation  of  God,  because  the  rate  of  interest  there  was 
usurious.  He  had  tales  in  abundance  of  supernatural  inter- 
positions, which,  in  the  mouths  of  most  men,  would  have  been 
simply  superstitious,  in  Luther's  mouth  were  the  overflowings 
of  his  pervading  faith. 

This  deep  principle  of  faith  was  the  secret  of  his  contempt 
of  disease,  of  his  serenity  under  the  most  t  ying  circum- 
stances, and  of  the  care  with  which  he  shunned  wealth,  as 
though  the  bag  of  money  were  a  bag  of  most  deadly  poison. 
His  liberality  was  measured  by  his  faith  in  the  divine  goodness. 
He  went  so  far  as  to  spurn  the  idea  of  making  provision  for  his 
wife  and  children — "  His  dear  God  would  be  sure  to  provide 
for  them  much  better  than  he  could."  Once,  it  is  related,  an 
impoverished  Wittenberg  student  stood  at  the  door  of  Luther's 
parlour,  and  implored  assistance  towards  a  journey  which  he 


398  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

was  compelled  to  undertake.  Kate  replied  that  they  were 
very  poor  themselves,  and  had  nothing  whatever  to  give ; 
Luther,  however,  happened  to  be  near,  and,  walking  to  the 
table,  took  a  silver  goblet  that  was  standing  on  it,  and  gave 
it  to  the  student,  saying,  "  Sell  this  to  a  goldsmith,  and  use 
whatever  it  may  fetch  for  your  journey."  It  was  a  proverbial 
phrase  with  him — "  We  must  never  refuse  a  call  to  charity, 
as  long  as  there  is  a  goblet  in  the  house."  On  another 
occasion,  when  a  hundred  florins  were  given  him,  he  divided 
the  sum  between  Philip  and  Bugenhagen,  compelling  them 
to  accept  his  present,  for  their  need  was  greater  than  his. 
At  another  time  two  hundred  gold  pieces  were  sent  him  from 
the  mines,  and  he  distributed  the  whole  among  the  poor 
students.  "  The  wicked,"  he  would  say,  "  eye  their  money- 
chest  with  self-gratulation  and  pride,  as  though  they  had 
God  Almighty  shut  up  in  their  coffers.  Ah  !  the  Lord  flees 
from  a  full  purse,  and  his  blessing  rests  on  the  faithful  heart." 
To  complete  Luther's  character — truthfulness  and  the  sim- 
plicity of  a  child  were  with  him  wisdom ;  he  loathed  and 
abhorred  duplicity  and  craft  from  the  bottom  of  his  soul,  and 
his  honest  deportment  was  marked  by  that  genial  fun  and 
humour  which  has  been  called  not  so  much  "  an  accompani- 
ment, as  a  peculiar  manifestation  of  the  spirit  of  truth."  It 
has  been  allowed  by  all  his  opponents  who  have  known  any- 
thing of  his  history,  from  Erasmus  down  to  the  present  times, 
that  his  conduct  personally  was  unimpeachable — he  was  pure 
beyond  the  taint  of  suspicion ;  ever  the  unfaltering  "  man  of 
God,"  bold  and  courageous  to  a  fault ;  patient  and  uncom- 
plaining; and  although  he  fought  conflicts  enough  with  all 
the  fire  and  vehemence  of  his  nature,  he  warred  only  with 
the  pen;  in  act  he  was  ever  a  peacemaker;  his  first  threat  to 
an  adversary  was,  "  I  shall  write  against  you ;"  his  second, 
"  I  shall  cease  to  pray  for  you ;"  his  third  and  final  denunci- 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  399 

ation,  "  I  shall  pray  against  you  :"  he  was  passionate,  but  a 
word  of  rebuke  would  bring  him  round  :  Melancthon  testifies 
that  he  was  not  dogmatical  in  familiar  conversation,  but  ever 
ready  to  give  and  take  :  he  was  the  most  self-sacrificing  of 
philanthropists,  at  the  same  time  that  he  held  the  Word  of 
God  to  be  the  only  remedy  for  the  depravity  and  misery 
of  human  nature.  His  infirmities,  many  and  great  as  they 
were,  were  virtues  grown  into  exesses. 

He  lived  in  the  Augustine  convent,  as  one  of  the  old  patri- 
archs might  have  sat  at  his  tent  door  receiving  all  who  claimed 
admission.  The  convent  was  an  open  house — the  asylum  of 
the  distressed,  and  the  hospital  for  the  sick.  Distinguished 
men  from  all  parts  of  Europe  came  to  visit  the  great  monk. 
The  social  meal  was  the  supper.  Luther  would  come  to 
table  weary  with  the  exhausting  labours  of  many  hours,  ge- 
nerally with  a  book  in  his  hand,  which,  for  some  while, 
perhaps,  he  continued  to  peruse.  The  Professors  of  the 
University,  old  friends  from  remote  parts — Wenceslaus  Link 
from  Nuremberg,  or  James  Probst  from  Bremen — strangers 
on  a  visit  of  curiosity,  or  on  an  embassy  from  some  court, 
would  gather  round  the  hospitable  board.  At  length  Luther 
would  lift  his  eyes  from  off  his  book,  and  inquire  the  news ; 
that  was  the  signal  that  he  was  disposed  for  conversation,  and 
until  that  moment  a  deferential  silence  had  been  observed. 
The  conversation  soon  became  general,  the  respect  entertained 
for  the  host  being  evidenced  by  the  appellation  by  which  he 
was  addressed,  even  by  Melancthon  and  Jonas,  of  "  Reverend 
Father."  As  the  conversation  advanced,  Luther's  countenance 
would  become  more  and  more  animated  :  his  eyes  would  wear 
those  inner  rays  of  lustre,  which,  to  Link  and  others  of  his 
fanatical  admirers,  seemed  the  divine  light  of  prophecy ;  the 
energetic  expression  of  his  face  would  soften  into  one  of  broad 
humour  and  mirth,  and  the  pith  and  originality  of  his  remarks 
would  rivet  the  attention  of  his  guests.     Or  the  scene,  perhaps, 


400  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

would  be  different;  eminent  scholars,  from  distant  lands, 
might  be  present ;  and  Luther  would  be  inquiring,  with  the 
most  intent  interest  and  solemn  gravity,  their  judgment  on 
the  true  translation  of  a  word  or  phrase  in  the  Hebrew  Bible, 
probably  the  very  book  he  had  brought  to  table  with  him,  and 
offering  his  own  comments  in  exchange.  The  converse  ended, 
Aurifaber,  or  some  other  of  the  company,  who  had  listened 
with  open  ears,  would  hasten  to  commit  to  paper  what  Luther 
had  said,  and  thus  add  a  new  page  to  the  accumulating  matter 
of  what  will  ever  be  ranked  as  one  of  the  most  interesting 
books  in  the  German  tongue — "  Luther's  Table  Talk."  The 
evening  would  wind  up  with  a  Latin  chant,  or  a  German 
hymn,  a  chorus  of  voices,  Luther's  fine  tenor  distinguishable 
amongst  them,  making  the  rafters  of  the  old  refectory  echo 
with  the  rapture  of  harmony  and  the  fervour  of  devotion. 
After  this,  if  no  pressing  work  was  in  hand,  Luther  would  at 
once  retire  to  rest,  not  forgetting  (Antinomian  as  he  has  been 
called !)  among  his  devotions,  the  Creed,  the  Lord's  Prayer, 
and  the  Ten  Commandments,  imploring  God  to  give  him 
grace  to  keep  his  law,  not  only  in  the  letter  but  in  the 
spirit.  He  then  laid  him  down  in  his  bed,  and  employed 
his  last  waking  thoughts  in  meditating  on  some  passage  of 
Scripture. 

His  domestic  life,  like  his  character,  was  the  growth  of  his 
religious  doctrines.  He  was  tenderly  attached  to  Kate,  and 
always  spoke  of  her  as  the  very  partner  suited  to  him.  "If 
he  should  lose  her,  and  a  queen  should  be  offered  to  him,  he 
would  refuse  her."  And  although  he  called  her  "  his  Lord 
Kate,"  or  "Emperor  Kate" — jesting  at  the  love  of  rule  com- 
mon to  the  sex — he  praised  her  submissiveness  and  obedience. 
Household  matters  he  left  entirely  to  her  management,  for  he 
regarded  these  as  the  wife's  special  province.  "Man,"  he 
said,  "  is  created  with  broad  shoulders  and  narrow  hips,  for 
activity   in   the   world ;    woman  with   narrow  shoulders  and 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  401 

broad  hips,  for  staying  at  home  in  her  proper  domestic 
sphere^  guiding  the  house,  arid  bringing  up  children  ''  And 
the  internal  arrangement  of  the  Augustine  convent  gave  Kate 
quite  enough  to  do.  To  a  friend  who  had  inquired  of 
Luther  what  present  would  be  most  acceptable  to  him,  he 
replied,  "that  he  was  in  want  of  a  candelabrum;"  but 
he  added,  "You  know  what  sort  of  a  house  mine  is;  let  it 
be  a  candelabrum  that  will  stand  being  knocked  up  and  down 
stairs;  and  it  will  answer  .the  purpose  better,  if  it  can 
clean  itself."  The  garden  was  under  Luther's  own  super- 
vision :  he  delighted  in  flowers,  which  he  liked  to  see  as  he 
was  studying,  on  the  table  near  him  ;  and  he  especially  ad- 
mired the  rose.  "  The  man  who  could  make  one  such  flower 
would  deserve  an  empire :"  and  the  burst  and  bloom  of 
vegetation  always  reminded  him  of  redemption  and  the  resur- 
rection. He  was  an  indulgent,  but  a  strict  and  vigilant 
father  :  for  the  parent,  he  declared,  that  neglected  to  train  his 
children  in  God's  ways,  and  to  restrain  them  from  evil,  was 
"  worse  than  Turk  or  Tartar/'  He  spoke  of  the  book  of 
Proverbs  as  the  best  book  on  (Economics  in  the  world ;  and 
"its  whole  substance  is  summed  up  in  this:  ' Fear  God.'" 
He  greatly  valued  the  classical  languages,  uniformly  regret- 
ting his  own  deficient  education,  which  had  debarred  him 
from  the  study  of  the  Greek  poets  and  historians ;  and  of  all 
studies,  poetry,  he  said,  was  his  favourite.  Mirth,  jests, 
good  cheer,  pastimes,  and  music,  he  regarded  as  capital  ex- 
pedients for  driving  away  the  "proud  melancholy  Satan." 
Hence  the  frequent  references  in  his  correspondence  to  what 
he  ate  and  drank :  in  such  allusions  he  was  scoffing  at 
Satan.  Mathesius  relates,  that  before  going  to  bed  he 
would  sometimes  call  for  a  glass  of  must,  with  an  apology 
to  the  bystanders,  "  Old  men,  like  the  Elector  and  myself, 
have  to  find  pillow  and  bolster  in  the  can."     But  Mathesius 

VOL.   II.  D  D 


402  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

agrees  with  Melancthon  in  representing  him  as  singularly 
abstemious  and  temperate.  And  although  Luther  could 
not  see  the  sin  of  dances  or  acting  plays,  insisting  that 
to  be  unworldly  is  to  get  the  world  Out  of  one's  self,  yet  in 
everything  the  prevailing  passion  rose  to  the  surface.  As 
when  out  for  the  chase,  he  pursued  theology :  so  his  musical 
compositions,  his  famous  Hymn,  and  the  Old  Hundredth,  are 
lasting  echoes  of  his  solemn  and  elevated  strain  of  piety. 

Like  the  defects  of  his  character,  the  defects  of  his  doctrinal 
system  were  chiefly  produced  by  the  excess  of  his  zeal  in 
combating  error.  On  the  Sacraments  his  opinions  decidedly 
retrograded.  In  regard  to  the  sacrament  of  Baptism,  in  the 
beginning  of  his  career  as  a  Reformer,  Luther  was  debating 
whether  the  faith  of  the  parents  was  not  accepted  by  God, 
in  substitution  for  that  of  the  children  taken  to  the  baptismal 
font;  or  whether  the  faith  of  the  Church,  which  offered 
them,  as  it  were,  with  her  own  hands  to  Christ,  was  not 
set  to  the  infants'  account.  And  in  regard  to  the  Lord's 
Supper  he  has  himself  declared,  that  at  that  period  he 
should  have  welcomed  the  interpretation  of  Carlstadt  and 
Zwingle  with  joy.  But  the  outburst  of  fanaticism  at  Wit- 
tenberg, when  Luther  was  in  the  Wartburg,  not  only  checked 
these  tendencies  to  more  enlightened  sacramental  views, 
but  forced  him,  with  great  impetus,  in  the  opposite  direc- 
tion. As  the  wild  reveries  of  the  enthusiasts  laboured  to 
overthrow  the  objective  character  of  Christianity,  and  to 
substitute  an  inward  varying  standard  for  an  unflinching 
external  rule  of  faith  and  life,  he  was  resolved,  in  order  to 
raise  a  barrier  against  a  subjectiveness  which  could  not  rest 
until  it  had  reached  the  dead  level  of  infidelity,  to  place  the 
Sacraments  on  a  basis  as  firm  and  unyielding  as  that  of  the 
Word  of  God  itself.  Thus,  in  regard  to  the  Lord's  Supper,  at 
the  same  time  that  he  rejected  transubstantiation  as  not  only 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  403 

of  recent  introduction,  but  as  utterly  unscriptural  and  idola- 
trous, lie  affirmed  that  both  to  the  godly  and  to  the  ungodly 
the  bread  and  wine  are  the  natural  body  and  blood  of 
Christ,  received  both  with  heart  and  mouth,  but  with  directly 
opposite  effects — by  the  godly  to  salvation,  by  the  ungodly  to 
condemnation.  In  reference  to  Baptism,  he  determined  that 
if  that  sacrament  were  administered  in  joke,  yet,  supposing 
that  to  the  sprinkling  of  water  the  words  of  Scripture  were 
added — "  I  baptize  thee  in  the  name  of  the  Father,'*  &c,  it 
was  valid  baptism.  And  not  only  so,  but  even  in  the  case  of  an 
adult  who  had  not  faith,  he  maintained  that  the  divine  sacra- 
ment could  not  be  void.  Baptism  was  an  objective  reality, 
like  father  and  mother,  or  the  civil  ruler.*  In  the  case  of 
infants,  he  expressly  condemned  the  theory  that  faith  in  the 
parents  is  required  to  render  the  sacrament  effectual  to  the 
children,  and  likewise  the  teaching  of  the  Waldenses,  that  the 
infant  is  baptized  by  reason  of  a  prospective  faith  to  be  attained 
on  arriving  at  years  of  discretion ;  and  he  pronounced  that  to 
every  infant  baptism  is  unconditionally  the  new  birth  or  re- 
generation. To  the  anabaptist  objection,  that  "  faith  cometh 
by  hearing,  and  hearing  by  the  Word  of  God,"  and,  there- 
fore, children  not  having  reason  to  understand  the  Word, 
could  not  have  faith,  he  replied  with  his  deep  scriptural 
wisdom,  "What  has  reason  to  do  with  faith?  It  is  the 
greatest  stumbling-block  in  the  world  to  faith.  The  big 
head  cannot  get  through  the  strait  gate.  A  Christian  at 
all  times  has  the  Spirit  of  God  in  his  heart;  yet,  when  he 
sleeps,  reason  is  dormant,  but  faith  is  never  dormant.  And 
why  limit  God's  operations,  as  though  the  only  hearing  of  his 
Word  were  by  the  outward  ear  ?  If  the  infant  is  not  regene- 
rated in  baptism,, let  us  leave  off  to  baptize  infants  altogether, 

*  See  his  Catechism.— Walch  X.  p.  162. 

D    D    2 


404  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

the  sooner  the  better,  for  it  is  a  mimicry  and  mockery  of 
a  holy  sacrament."*  It  is  true  that  in  his  "  Babylonian 
Captivity/'  and  other  earlier  writings,  he  used  such  terms 
as  : — "  Take  thy  stand  on  thy  Baptism  :  not  on  thine  own 
works,  thine  own  sorrow,  thine  own  repentance,  but  on  God's 
promise :"  but,  in  that  treatise  he  denned  a  sacrament  to  be 
a  covenant,  whereto  there  is  God's  word  of  promise  on  the 
one  part,  and  faith  relying  on  that  word  on  the  other  part, 
and  he  was  constantly  dwelling  on  the  text,  "  He  that 
believeth,  and  is  baptized,  shall  be  saved."  His  later  theory 
of  Baptism,  however,  did  not  militate  against  the  doctrine  of 
conversion.  If  the  baptismal  vow  were  broken  by  a  life  of 
relapse  into  wilful  sin,  he  insisted  on  the  necessity  of  true 
and  thorough  conversion  of  heart ;  but  he  said,  with  great 
truth,  that  in  such  a  case  the  re-administration  of  Baptism 
was  unneeded  and  unscriptural,  because  the  sacrament  made 
void  by  sin  on  man's  part,  yet  remained  unalterably  firm  on 
God's  part.  The  true  Christian  was  baptized  every  day, 
hour,  and  moment  by  the  Holy  Ghost ;  such  was  the  virtue 
of  the  "  one  baptism."  The  sacraments  represented  in  picture, 
or  in  act,  what  the  Scripture  declared  in  word,  and  were  not 
only  signs,  but  were  assurances  and  pledges  of  God's  will, 
on  which  the  soul  could  build  with  confidence.  Yet,  however 
much  the  peculiarities  of  Luther's  later  views  on  this  subject 
may  be  regarded  as  unsound  and  erroneous,  he  effectually 
relieved  the  holy  of  holies  of  the  sacraments  from  the  profa- 
nation of  the  papistical  opus  operatum,  by  rejecting  every 
notion  of  any  efficacy  in  the  administrator,  or  in  any  incan- 
tation of  consecration,  and  unreservedly  accepting  the  expla- 
nation of  Augustin — "  The  word  added  to  the  outward  sign 

*  Church-Postil  to  the  Gospel  for  the  Third  Sunday  after  Epiphany, 
one  of  his  earlier  writings,  in  which  he  still  speaks  of  the  faith  of  the 
sponsors,  and  of  the  Church. — Walch  XI.  pp.  666—681. 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  405 

makes  the  sacrament  (accedit  verbum  ad  elernentum  et  fit 
sacramentum)."  But  he  had  lost  sight  of  that  other  land- 
mark of  Augustin,  which  his  earlier  writings  had  kept  steadily 
in  view :  "  The  sacrament  is  where  there  is  faith  (ubi  fides, 
ibi  sacramentum.)" 

Thus  it  must  be  confessed  that  Luther's  later  view  of  the 
sacrament  of  Baptism  subjected  his  system  of  divinity  to  the 
charge  of  obvious  inconsistency.  Not  only  did  he  teach  the 
doctrines  of  the  total  Bondage  of  the  Will,  of  Predestination 
to  Life,  and  of  the  Final  Perseverance  of  every  true  Christian, 
in  conjunction  with  the  strongest  asseverations  of  the  Uni- 
versality of  Redemption,  and  of  the  necessity  of  individual 
watchfulness,  of  victory  over  sin,  and  gradual  growth  in 
grace,  which  are  but  the  two  sides  of  one  grand  truth,  which 
cannot  be  conceived  of  by  our  present  weak  understandings 
in  its  simple  unity.  But  he  also  taught  the  doctrine  of 
Final  Perseverance,  in  conjunction  with  the  doctrines  that 
every  baptized  infant  is  regenerated,  and  yet  that  many 
baptized  souls  perish  eternally ;  a  complexity  which  must 
seem  irreconcilable,  not  only  in  terms  but  in  substance, 
unless  it  be  supposed  that  he  made  some  such  distinction 
between  baptismal  regeneration  and  confirmed  regeneration, 
as  was  made  somewhat  later  between  grace  and  effectual 
grace.  Whilst  asserting  that  the  sacrament  of  Baptism 
constitutes  a  man  a  Christian,  he  was  continually  seeking 
some  more  exact  test  of  union  with  Christ  than  any  sacrament 
affords;  he  was  not  only  regretting  that  excommunication 
could  not  be  revived,  but  he  was  anxious  to  mark  off  true 
Christians  from  merely  nominal  and  professing  Christians,  by 
having  different  orders  of  assemblies  in  the  church,  so  as  to 
get  at  the  inner  and  true  church,  disintegrated  from  the 
visible  mixed  church;  and  in  his  later,  as  in  his  earlier 
writings,  the  church  was  still,  not  baptized  Christians,  but  "  the 


406  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

universe  of  predestined  souls."     "  This  is  a  wonderful  great 
acknowledgment/'  he  wrote  in  his  Postil  to  the  Epistle  for  the 
Twenty-fourth  Sunday  after  Trinity,  "  for  a  human  heart  born 
in  sin  to  be  convinced  and  certain  that  God,  in  the  depth  of 
his  majesty  and  divine  heart,  has  finally  and  irrevocably  deter- 
mined, and  will  have  every  one  receive  and  believe  the  same, 
that  He  will  not  reckon  to  us  our  sins,  but  pardon  them,  and 
be  gracious  to  us,  and  give  us  eternal  life  for  His  dear  Son's 
sake."    And  in  the  same  Postil  he  says,  "  Persecution,  sword, 
fire,  water,  wild  beasts,  &c.,  are  the  true  school  in  which  we 
must  learn  to  acknowledge  God's  will,  so  as  to  be  able  to  say 
with   confidence,    fNo,    my  dear  foe,  World,   Devil,   Flesh, 
thou  mayest  do  me  woe,  insult,  plague,  torture  me,  take  from 
me  body  and  life  j  but  my  Lord  Christ,  that  is,  God's  grace 
and  mercy,  that  shalt  thou  never  take  from  me.'     Thus  faith 
is  taught  and  strengthened,  that  this  is  God's  unchangeable 
will,  which  He  has  determined  and  can  never  revoke,  although 
He  should  seem  to  deal  quite  otherwise,  as  He  did  towards 
Christ  himself:    and  through  such  exercise  and  experience 
faith  becomes  so  strengthened,  that  to  go  to  death  is  joy  and 
delight.     Whence  comes  such  courage  and  confidence,  even 
to  little  maidens  of  thirteen  and  fourteen  years  old,  such  as 
Agnes  and  Agatha,  &c,  that  they  stand  so  bold  before  the 
Romish  judge,   and  sport  when  they  are  led  to  death,  as 
though  they  were  going  to  a  dance,  but  that  the  glorious 
rooted  faith  and  sure  confidence  has  filled  their  heart,  that 
God  is  not  wroth  with  them,  but  His  gracious  and  merciful 
will  is  purely  for  their  highest  and  eternal  health  and  salva- 
tion !"     "  God,"  he  wrote  in  another  place,  "  only  endures 
with  the  filth  and  wickedness  of  this  life  for  his  elects'  sake, 
until  their  number  is  complete.     Christ's  day  yet  tarries,  be- 
cause they  are  not  all  yet  born  that  belong  to  heaven.     But 
when  the  time  is  accomplished,  and  the  number  is  complete, 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  407 

then  shall  all  this  suddenly  be  removed,  World,  Government, 
Jurist,  Magistrate,  States,  yea,  the  whole  of  it ;  nothing  more 
shall  be  permitted  to  remain  of  this  world's  righteousness; 
but  all  of  it,  together  with  the  belly,  and  the  belly  with  it, 
shall  be  brought  to  nought.  For  it  is  all  damned,  and  or- 
dained to  perdition :  but  for  the  sake  of  the  Christians,  to 
whom  eternal  life  is  promised,  it  must  have  its  course,  until 
the  period  comes,  and  the  last  saint  is  born  into  the  world. 
But  till  they  all  are  born,  even  to  the  very  last  soul,  the 
world  shall  still  stand  and  be  upheld  for  their  sakes ;  for  God 
heeds  not  and  cares  not  for  the  whole  world,  save  for  the 
sake  of  his  own  true  Christians."  * 

But  however  incongruous  the  threads  of  his  system  may  be, 
Luther,  at  least,  cannot  with  any  justice  be  arraigned  as  a 
reviler  of  the  sacraments,  when  he  upheld  them  even  to  in- 
consistency, any  more  than  as  an  Antinomian,  when  he  was  the 
staunchest  opponent  that  the  Antinomians  encountered,  as  he 
has  been  not  only  arraigned  but  condemned  by  calumniators 
whose  malice,  however,  is  neutralised  by  their  ignorance.  It 
were  to  be  wished  that  the  personal  charges"  of  violence  and 
bitterness  of  language  could  be  as  satisfactorily  answered;  or 
the  imputation  that  his  love  of  humour  did  not  always  restrict 
itself  within  the  limits  of  secular  subjects.  It  must  be  re- 
membered, however,  that  Luther's  faith  was  a  principle  so 
rooted,  and  so  abounding,  that  he  was  led  practically  into  a 
partial  mistake  as  to  its  proper  object,  so  that  he  completely 
identified  his  own  views  and  convictions  with  the  authorita- 
tive declarations  of  Scripture.  With  the  weakness  of  the  best 
and  strongest  natures,  to  which,  moreover,  the  encomiums 
and  exaggerated  estimation  formed  of  him  by  some  of  his 
friends  strongly  tempted  him,  he  fancied  himself  not  indeed 

*  Postil  to  the  Epistle  for  the  Twenty-third  Sunday  after  Trinity. 
WaJch,  XII.  p.  1259. 


408  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

absolutely  infallible,  but  au  infallible  interpreter  of  Scripture 
on  all  points  of  doctrine.  It  is  the  delusion  by  which  close 
students  of  the  Bible  have  been  beguiled  in  all  ages,  and  has 
been  shared  by  divines,  who  certainly  would  not  be  worthy  to 
unloose  the  latchet  of  Luther's  shoe.  Hence  he  justified  his 
use  of  the  most  vehement  and  vituperative  language  by  the 
example  of  the  Prophets,  and  even  of  Jesus  Christ  himself. 
Hence  he  pronounced  his  anathema  on  every  one  who  dif- 
fered from  him  on  the  smallest  point  of  Christian  doctrine. 
Hence,  in  denouncing  his  religious  opponents,  he  parodied 
the  language  of  the  Psalmist — "  Blessed  is  the  man  that  hath 
not  walked  in  the  counsel  of  the  Zwinglians,"  &c.  Hence  he 
forbade  all  futui*e  Councils,  in  a  parody  of  the  Papal  Bull 
convoking  a  Council,  which  professed  to  emanate  from  the 
Court  of  Heaven,  and  was  "  signed  Archangel  Raphael, 
Secretary."  Hence,  in  his  famous  letter  from  the  Wartburg 
to  Melancthon,  he  exaggerated  the  most  glorious  doctrine  of 
the  Christian  faith,  with  a  drollery  which  found  large  amuse- 
ment from  the  contrast  between  such  exaggeration  and 
Philip's  well-known  character.  But  such  an  admission  of 
grievous  failure  must  be  much  qualified  by  the  consideration 
of  Luther's  peculiar  work  and  peculiar  character  adapting 
him  to  his  work.  Mathesius  remarks,  that  "  the  hurricane 
was  required  to  sweep  away  the  snow  of  many  ages."  Unless 
tragedy  and  comedy  had  been  combined  in  Luther  as  in 
Shakspeare,  that  compass  of  power  would  have  been  wanting 
which  made  him  an  over-match  for  Erasmus,  as  well  as  for 
Eck  or  Carlstadt.  And  it  must  after  all  be  matter  less  for 
surprise  than  regret,  that  like  most  wits,  Luther  was  not 
always  proof  against  the  temptation  of  his  own  faculties; 
or,  with  the  common  infirmity  of  theologians,  his  zeal  for 
truth  made  him  blind  to  the  objectionable  weapon  which  he 
employed  in  its  defence.     To  this  it  must  be  added,  that  the 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  409 

scholastic  disputations  then  in  use,  in  which  Luther  had  been 
trained,  and  which  he  employed  as  means  of  disseminating  his 
scriptural  principles,  whatever  tendency  they  may  have  had 
to  sharpen  the  observation,  had  no  tendency  to  produce  a 
correct  and  discriminating  taste,  nicely  distinguishing  the 
sacred  and  the  profane,  the  serious  and  the  humourous.  His 
characteristic  coarseness,  which,  however,  added  force  to  his 
jests  and  sarcasms,  is  also  much  palliated  by  reflections  of 
a  similar  kind.  In  his  age  the  mask  of  outside  refinement 
was  not  often  assumed,  ev.ui  at  courts  ;  and  he  himself  owed 
very  little  to  culture.  He  was  born  a  peasant,  and  was  edu- 
cated chiefly  in  a  monastery.  And  to  a  considerable  extent 
his  very  coarseness  was  the  result  of  his  truthfulness.  He 
spoke  of  men  and  women  just  as  he  found  them :  exposed 
the  sore  as  the  only  way  to  heal  it ;  and  did  not  blush  to  use 
plainness  of  speech,  because  he  was  not  conscious  of  any 
cause  for  shame  or  false  delicacy,*  Critics  writing  calmly 
in  the  nineteenth  century,  are  apt  very  unfairly  to  forget  in 
what  age  Luther  lived,  and  the  imperative  demands  and 
harassing  trials  of  his  peculiar  situation,  which  drew  out  all 
the  force  of  his  powerful  and  various  faculties,  and  left  him 
no  time  to  weigh  his  words  in  a  "jeweller's  scales." 

A  comparison  with  any  of  the  leading  men  of  the  age,  tells 
greatly  to  Luther's  advantage.  "  We  must  not,  for  the  sake 
of  truth,  break  the  public  peace ;" — "  There  are  those,  I  trust, 
who  will  defend  my  posthumous  reputation;" — said  the  Prince 
of  letters.  "  To  desire  this  world's  praise,"  said  the  Doctor 
of  Wittenberg,  "  is  to  crack  a  rotten  nut,  and  get  a  mouthful 

*  Milton  has  defended  Luther  from  the  charge  of  coarseness.  He 
observes,  "  The  Targuinists  were  of  cleaner  language  than  he  that 
made  the  tongue :"  and  he  says,  "  There  may  be  a  sanctified  bitter- 
ness against  the  enemies  of  truth." — See  Milton's  Apology  for  Smec- 
tymnuus. 


410  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

of  dust."  "  The  doctrine,  which  pleases  men  cannot  be  true  : 
the  world  is  an  inn  ;  Satan  the  landlord ;  drop  in  when  you 
will,  the  landlord  is  at  home."  Erasmus,  shaking  with 
every  breath  of  wind,  writing  begging  letters  to  his  numerous 
patrons,  asserting  that  God  had  not  given  to  every  one  the 
courage  to  be  a  martyr,  and  he  had  himself  no  inclination  to 
die  for  truth,  is  indeed  a  portrait  of  timorous  feebleness,  by 
the  side  of  the  Christian  hero  of  Worms  and  of  Augsburg, 
whose  frequent  complaint  was  that  his  grievous  sins  had  de- 
prived him  of  the  joy  of  martyrdom.  Nor  would  Erasmus 
enjoy  such  fame  as  he  does  in  connection  with  the  Reforma- 
tion, unless,  according  to  the  remark  of  Melancthon,  Luther 
had  come  immediately  after  him,  and  obviated  the  revolu- 
tionary tendency  of  his  writings,  by  placing  the  altar  and  the 
throne  on  their  true  foundations.  Melancthon  himself, 
though  a  far  more  exact  scholar  than  Luther,  or  than  Eras- 
mus, was  the  retired  student,  not  the  man  of  action  and 
resolve  for  stirring  times.  To  Luther,  every  parlour  in  Wit- 
tenberg was  familiar ;  the  regret  is  entered  in  his  corres- 
pondence, from  the  period  of  his  arriving  there  fresh  from 
Erfurth,  how  much  of  his  time  is  lost  by  his  multitudinous 
invitations.  Melancthon,  on  the  contrary,  thought  the  con- 
versation of  the  town  society  "  very  common-place ;"  and 
when  Luther,  Cruciger,  and  Jonas,  were  absent,  he  sat,  as 
he  says  of  himself,  "  like  a  lame  cobbler  at  home,"  and 
wrote  some  Greek  verses,  or  communicated  to  Camerarius  or 
Eoban  Hess,  a  conjectural  emendation  of  a  passage  in  Theo- 
critus or  Hesiod.  Melancthon  believed  in  astrology;  there 
is  a  letter  of  his  in  which  he  requests  that  the  horoscope  of 
King  Ferdinand  may  be  sent  to  him;  and  he  held  the 
punishment  of  heretics  to  be  a  religious  duty.  Luther,  on 
the  contrary,  took  every  opportunity  to  overcome  the  popular 
superstitions,  and  upheld  the  Christian  principle  of  religious 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  411 

toleration  in  an  age  of  barbarity.  And  perhaps  nothing  places 
Luther's  character  in  a  more  amiable  light  than  his  deep 
affection  for  Philip,  resembling  that  of  a  father  for  a  son, 
which  continued  unabated  even  when  Melancthon  advocated 
Episcopacy,  spoke  ambiguously  on  the  subject  of  Justifica- 
tion, and  even  finally  inclined  towards  the  Swiss  view  of  the 
sacrament  of  the  Lord's  Supper.  Again,  as  compared  with 
Zwingle,  Luther  is  the  religious  and  political  conservative,  in 
opposition  to  the  destructive  and  republican.  Zwingle  wished 
to  clear  the  entire  area  of  the  Church,  not  to  leave  a  stone 
standing,  to  make  way  for  a  completely  new  edifice,  modelled 
on  his  own  views  of  Scripture.  With  Luther,  on  the  other 
hand,  hatred  of  Rome  was  only  the  result  of  a  love  of  Chris- 
tianity :  whatever  could  be  left  standing,  he  would  have  un- 
touched. "  Where  is  this  or  that  practice  enjoined  in  Scrip- 
ture ? "  the  Swiss  inquired  :  "  Where  is  it  forbidden  in 
Scripture  ?  "  Luther  retorted.  "  The  Gospel  must  be  aided 
by  the  sword,"  said  Zwingle.  "  God  saith,  '  Be  still,  and 
know  that  I  am  God,'"  Luther  answered.  And  it  is  an  in- 
structive chapter  in  the  book  of  Providence,  that  the  cham- 
pion of  the  sword  fell  on  the  field  of  battle ;  the  champion 
of  the  Word,  after  a  few  hours'  illness,  attended  with  com- 
paratively little  suffering,  was  translated  in  perfect  peace. 

There  are,  however,  some  persons  who  imagine  that  one 
blemish  on  a  fame,  otherwise  the  purest  and  most  unsullied, 
has  a  damning  virtue  that  turns  everything  to  its  own  black- 
ness. And  such  a  blemish  on  the  reputation  of  Luther, 
they  conceive  that  they  have  detected  in  the  sanction  given 
by  him  to  the  double  marriage  of  the  Landgrave  of  Hesse. 
Many,  with  the  Jesuitical  Bossuet,  affirm  that  Luther 
conceded  this  liberty  to  the  Landgrave  against  his  own 
convictions,  in  order  to  prevent  the  defection  of  Philip  of 
Hesse  from  the  evaugelical  ranks  :  others,  with  the  very  ill- 


412  THE    LIFE    OP    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

informed  Sir  William  Hamilton,  have  broached  the  calumny 
that  the  Reformers  were,  on  principle,  abettors  of  the  prac- 
tice of  polygamy.     These  accusations  cannot,  at  least,  be  true 
together ;    and    a    minute  investigation    of  the  subject   has 
proved   that  they  are  both   false.     It  would,  indeed,  be  a 
poisoned  arrow  in  the  Papist  quiver,  if  it  could  be  shown 
that  the  adulation  and  truckling  subserviency  to   those  in 
power,  whiclrform  part  in  the  llomish  artillery  of  pious  frauds, 
are  vices  shared  by  popes,  monks,  and  prelates,  in  common  with 
such  a  man  as  Luther;  and  that  the  Reformer,  whose  whole 
bearing  towards  the  Electors  of  Saxony  is  an  admirable  exem- 
plification of  the  precept,  to  render  to  Csesar  what  is  Caesar's 
and  to  God  what  is  God's,  and  who  in  every  other  instance 
opposed  the  Landgrave's  exceptionable  designs,  and  had  cer- 
tainly no  partiality  for  the  "  Macedonian,"  had  nevertheless, 
on  one  occasion,  so  far  forgotten  himself  and  the  truth,  as  to 
fear  offending  Philip  of  Hesse  more  than  the  reproach  of  his 
own  conscience.     In  common  sense,   such   an   extraordinary 
solution  ought  not  to  be  resorted  to,  unless  it  is  inevitable ; 
and  it  falls  entirely  to  the  ground,  when  the  letter  of  dis- 
pensation  to  Philip  is   compared  with  Luther's  writings  of 
various  dates,  some  of  them  composed  many  years  previously, 
which  demonstrate  that  he  did  not  forge  any  new  doctrine  to 
suit  the  Landgrave's   case,  but  acted  in  the  most  conscien- 
tious manner,  by  applying  to  circumstances,  which  he  believed 
to  be  exceptional,  an    indulgence  which    he    had   uniformly 
held  to  be  permissible  exceptionally.      The  practice  of  the 
Patriarchs,  and  of  the  Jewish  Kings,  seemed  to  him  proofs 
of  this.     As  to  abetting   polygamy,   it  was  for  the  express 
object  of  preventing  a  precedent  being  drawn,  as  he  foresaw 
it  readily   would  be,  from  an  exceptional  dispensation,  that 
Luther  conceded  only  "a   secret  right,"  insisting  that  the 
whole  transaction  must  remain  covered  with  the  mantle  of 


TITE    LTFR    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  413 

oblivion,  arid  admonished  the  Landgrave,  "If  the  princes  call 
upon  you  to  put  away  Margaret  Sala,  tell  them  you  will  do 
so,  when  they  put  away  their  concubine3."  And  when 
Bucer,  in  his  servility  to  the  Landgrave,  published  a  de- 
fence of  polygamy  under  the  fictitious  name  of  "  Neobulus 
Tulichius,"  Luther's  indignation  was  kindled  to  a  tempest ; 
and  he  set  himself  to  write  an  answer,  which  was  suppressed 
by  the  Landgrave's  solicitations  to  the  Elector,  but  the  un- 
finished work  is  extant  among  Luther's  writings,  and  contains 
the  following  passage  : — "  Whoso  desires  my  judgment  upon 
this  book  let  him  hear  it.  Thus  says  Dr.  Martin  about  the 
book  of  Neobulus,  '  Whoso  follows  this  knave  and  book,  and 
takes  more  than  one  wife,  and  will  have  that  it  is  a  right,  the 
devil  bless  his  bath  in  the  depths  of  hell.  Amen.'  This 
know  I  well,  God  be  praised  !  to  maintain,  even  though  it 
should  snow  pure  Neobuluses,  Nebulos,  Tulrichs,  along  with 
pure  devils  for  a  whole  year  long.  No  one  shall  make  me 
a  right  thereout,  that  will  I  well  forefend.  Much  less  shall 
any  one  make  this  into  a  right,  that  a  man  may  separate 
himself  from  his  own  wife  rightfully,  (if  she  has  not  first 
separated  herself  from  him  by  adultery,)  which  this  book 
would  also  fain  teach."  He  goes  on  to  say,  "  There  is  a 
great  difference  between  right  and  dispensation,  tolerance  and 
permission  :  right  is  no  dispensation  ;  dispensation  is  no  right ; 
and  he  who  gets  anything  by  dispensation,  does  not  get  it  by 
right."  Nor  was  there  ever  the  least  scruple  in  Luther's 
mind  as  to  the  path  he  had  followed  in  this  affair: — "I  can 
answer,"  he  said,  "  for  what  I  have  done  to  God,  but  I  cannot 
answer  for  it  to  the  world."  A  grievous  error  of  judgment 
still  remains  to  Luther's  account  in  this  deplorable  transaction:* 

*  See,  for  a  minute  investigation  of  Luther's  whole  conduct  in  the 
affair,  the  inimitable  "  Vindication  of  Luther  against  his  recent  English 
Assailants,"  by  the  late  Archdeacon  Hare,  pp.  225 — 274. 


414  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

but  like  his  view  of  the  sacraments,  his  regarding  the  Lord's 
day  as  little  more  than  an  ecclesiastical  institution,  and  his 
other  various  defective  appreciations  of  truth,  it  is  an  error 
into  which  he  was  led  by  the  corrupt  teaching  and  the  per- 
verted practice  of  the  Romish  Church.  He  said  of  himself 
that  he  could  not  quite  forget  all  that  he  had  been  taught  as 
a  monk. 

But  after  all  that  may  be  said  against  Luther  on  such 
a  score,  must  not  the  moral  and  religious  character  of  that 
man  stand  high  indeed,  who,  although  involved  in  a  whirlpool 
of  business  and  troubles  his  whole  life  long,  is  not  open  to 
any  weightier  imputation  ?  And  must  not  the  grace  of 
God's  Spirit  have  indeed  been  mighty  in  him,  who,  born  in 
the  depth  of  Papist  darkness,  reared  all  his  early  life  in  its 
thick  and  yet  thicker  shadow  of  death,  groped  his  way  gradu- 
ally out  of  it,  and  attained  to  such  a  measure  as  he  did  of  the 
pure  light  of  truth  ? 

Immediately  upon  Luther's  death,  an  express  was  sent  to 
the  Elector  of  Saxony  with  intelligence  of  the  mournful 
event,  and  a  request  from  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld  that  his 
remains  might  be  permitted  to  rest  at  Eisleben,  the  place  of  his 
birth  and  decease.  The  evening  of  the  same  day,  the  Elector's 
reply  was  received,  expressing  his  deep  grief,  and  requiring 
that  the  body  be  conveyed  to  Wittenberg  to  be  deposited  in 
the  Church  of  All  Saints.  "  Would,"  he  could  not  refrain  from 
adding,  "  that  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld  had  not  entangled  in 
their  private  affairs  a  man  worn  out  with  age  and  toil \"  The 
news  of  Luther's  death  soon  spread :  Melancthon  received 
the  intelligence  with  the  words,  "  The  chariot  of  Israel,  and 
the  horsemen  thereof!"  and  the  same  exclamation  was  heard 
from  all  sides.  By  the  Elector's  order  the  body  was  placed 
in  a  leaden  coffin,  and  on  the  evening  of  the  1 8th  the  lying- 
in-state  took  place,  when  many  hundreds  of  men  and  women, 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  415 

and  many  of  the  nobility,  were  admitted  into  Dr.  Drachstedt's 
house  to  take  a  last  gaze  on  the  clay  of  the  German  prophet : 
and  two  painters  copied  with  their  best  art  the  features  of  the 
deceased;  one  an  inhabitant  of  Eisleben,  very  shortly  after 
death,  another  from  Halle,  when  the  remains  had  been  in  the 
coffin  a  night.  The  next  day  the  corpse  was  carried  to  St. 
Andrew's  Church,  Eisleben,  amidst  a  large  attendance  of  no- 
blemen and  citizens,  besides  a  vast  assemblage  of  the  poorer 
orders,  who  hurried  to  the  spot  from  all  parts ;  and  a  funeral 
sermon  was  delivered  by  Dr.  Jonas  from  1  Thess.  iv.  13 — 18. 
When  the  sermon  was  over,  and  the  crowd  had  dispersed, 
ten  citizens  remained  behind  in  the  church  to  keep  watch  over 
the  corpse  during  the  night.  The  next  morning,  Saturday,  a  Feb.  20. 
sermon  was  preached  by  the  pastor  of  Eisleben,  Michael 
Coelius,  from  Isaiah  lvii.  1,  2.  Ccelius  related  how  gently 
and  happily  Luther  had  fallen  asleep  in  Christ.  In  the  after- 
noon the  Prince  of  Anhalt,  the  Reformer's  old  friend  and 
pupil,  all  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld,  with  their  wives,  sons  and 
daughters,  the  Count  of  Schwartzburg,  and  many  citizens, 
with  honourable  matrons,  formed  in  procession,  and  with 
great  pomp  and  lamentation  the  corpse  was  conveyed  from 
the  church  to  the  city  gate ;  and  thence  under  a  chosen 
escort,  the  bells  tolling  in  all  the  villages  through  which  it 
passed,  the  same  evening  to  Halle.  Here  an  immense  throng 
of  country  people  from  the  neighbourhood,  with  the  preachers, 
the  town  council,  and  the  schools  of  Halle  had  assembled  at 
the  gate ;  and  about  five  o'clock  the  procession  was  seen  ap- 
proaching. It  moved  forward  to  funeral  hymns  and  the 
tolling  of  bells,  towards  the  Church  of  the  Virgin,  but 
encountered  such  obstacles  from  the  vast  concourse  of  spec- 
tators that  it  was  often  stationary,  and  occupied  more  than 
two  hours  in  its  progress  to  the  church.  It  was  too  late  for 
a  sermon,  and  after  the  choir   had   sung   one  of  Luther's 


41 G  THE    LIVE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

hymns  (Aus  tiefer  Noth  schrei  ich  zu  dir),  Avith  voices  which, 
contemporaries  say,  seemed  to  wail  rather  than  sing,  the 
multitude  separated,  and  a  guard  of  citizens  was  left  in  charge 
of  the  corpse.  The  next  morning,  Sunday,  at  six  o'clock,  the 
funeral  procession  with  the  same  solemnity  moved  through 
the  city  to  the  gate  towards  Bitterfeld,  which  it  reached 
about  noon,  having  been  met  on  the  confines  by  the  prefect  of 
Wittenberg  and  other  deputies  of  the  Elector  of  Saxony  ; 
and  that  evening  remained  at  Kemberg.  The  next  day 
John  and  John  Hoyer,  Counts  of  Mansfeld,  with  their 
forty-five  armed  horsemen,  to  whom  the  duty  of  conducting 
the  Reformer's  remains  to  their  last  resting-place  had  been 
assigned,  entered  Wittenberg  by  the  Elster-gate.  Twenty-five 
years  before,  Luther  had  burnt  the  Pope's  Bull  near  that  very 
gate.  And  now  the  rector,  and  professors,  and  students  of 
the  University,  the  Town  Council,  citizens,  and  a  vast  crowd 
of  people  were  waiting  there  to  receive  his  mortal  remains 
with  all  the  honour  that  they  could  pay  to  the  memory  of  a 
universal  benefactor.  As  the  procession  drew  near  it  was 
joined  by  Kate  Luther,  with  her  daughter  and  three  sons. 
The  procession  to  All  faints'  Church  was  as  follows  : — The 
Prefect  of  Wittenberg,  and  the  deputation  from  the  Elector, 
with  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld  and  the  horsemen  preceded  the 
carriage  on  which  the  coffin  was  borne,  covered  with  a  pall 
of  black  velvet.  Kate  Luther  immediately  followed  the 
corpse  in  a  very  humble  carriage,  with  her  daughter  and 
several  matrons ;  then  John,  Martin,  and  Paul,  with  their  uncle 
James  Luther,  and  George  and  Syriac  Kauffmann,  the  Re- 
former's nephews.  Next  came  the  rector,  and  University, 
including  princes,  counts,  bai'ons,  the  Chancellor  Bruck, 
Melancthon,  Jonas,  Bugenhagen,  and  Cruciger ;  then  the  city 
functionaries ;  and  after  these  the  whole  body  of  students : 
and  finally,  a  mixed  group  of  men,  women,  and  children,  who, 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  417 

by  their  demeanour,  showed  that  they  wished  to  be  ranked 
among  the  mourners.  Such  a  vast  multitude  had  never  before 
met  in  Wittenberg.  The  spot  in  All  Saints'  Church  which 
the  Elector  had  chosen  for  Luther's  grave  was  on  the  right 
side  of  the  pulpit ;  and  when  the  coffin  had  been  carried  into 
the  church,  and  placed  before  the  pulpit,  the  service  was 
begun  with  funeral  chants :  after  which  Bugenhagen  ad- 
dressed the  thousands  who  were  assembled,  taking  as  his 
text,  1  Thess.  iv.  13,  14;  but  so  much  was  he  affected  and 
interrupted  by  his  tears,  that  although  Luther  used  to  say 
his  discourses  were  very  good,  but  far  too  long,  his  sermon 
was  unusually  short,  and  he  almost  forgot  his  text  entirely. 
After  the  sermon  Melancthon  delivered  the  funeral  oration, 
speaking  of  Luther  as  one  of  that  glorious  company  of  Patri- 
archs, Prophets  and  Apostles,  who  had  been  God's  special 
witnesses  on  earth,  and  comparing  himself  and  his  hearers 
to  children  witnessing  the  obsequies  of  a  most  excellent 
and  faithful  parent.  "But  let  us  all,  he  continued,  join  in 
this  prayer  :  '  We  thank  thee,  Almighty  God,  together  with 
thy  co-eternal  Son  and  Holy  Spirit,  that  thou  hast  gathered 
for  thyself  an  inheritance  from  mankind,  and  hast  been 
pleased  to  revive  thy  Church  by  the  instrumentality  of  Martin 
Luther.  Great  dangers  threaten  it ;  foreign  enemies,  do- 
mestic wars,  and  bitter  controversies,  which,  now  that  Luther 
is  gone,  will  increase  to  greater  boldness.  O  God  !  avert  these 
perils ;  preserve  and  rule  thy  Church ;  and  grant  us  never  to 
forget  that  as  long  as  we  retain,  hear,  learn,  and  love  the  pure 
doctrine  of  thy  Gospel,  we  shall  ever  be  thy  Church."  At 
the  close  of  the  oration,  the  coffin  was  lowered  into  the  grave 
by  Masters  of  the  University.  And  fourteen  years  later  the 
remains  of  Melancthon  were  laid  side  by  side  with  those  of 
his  old  colleague  in  the  cause  of  Christ. 

A  stone  was  placed  over  Luther's  grave,  simply  recording 

VOL.  II.  E    E 


418  THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER. 

his  name,  the  place  of  his  decease,  and  the  age  at  which  he 
died.  It  was  intended  by  the  Elector,  that  the  inscription 
on  this  slab  should  be  in  brass,  and  a  very  costly  work  was 
prepared,  which,  however,  in  the  troubles  that  followed,  was 
never  put  over  the  grave  :  but  in  the  last  century  it  might  be 
seen  at  Jena.  A  copper  tablet  was  also  let  into  the  south 
wall  of  All  Saints'  Church,  bearing  Luther's  chosen  cogni- 
zance, the  Rose  and  Cross,  with  a  long  Latin  inscription,  enu- 
merating his  services  in  the  cause  of  religion.  And  a  picture 
was  placed  in  All  Saints'  Church  representing  Luther  preach- 
ing, Melancthon  baptizing,  and  Bugenhagen  pronouncing 
absolution  on  the  penitent,  and  rejecting  the  impenitent. 
Luther's  resting-place  was  respected,  when  John  Frederic 
became  a  captive  to  the  Emperor  at  Mulhausen,  and  Witten- 
berg was  occupied  by  the  soldiers  of  Duke  Maurice :  only 
his  portrait  bore  the  marks  of  the  malice  of  an  individual 
soldier,  probably  a  Spaniard,  who  pierced  the  neck  and  breast 
with  his  stiletto. 

A  few  words  in  conclusion  about  Kate  Luther  and  her 
children.  To  make  provision  for  the  Reformer's  widow,  the 
Elector  contributed  2000  florins,  and  the  Counts  of  Mansfeld 
the  same  sum  :  and,  after  a  time,  the  property  at  Wittenberg, 
which  had  been  bequeathed  to  her  entirely,  was  sold  :  and  she 
removed  to  Torgau,  where  she  resided  in  comfortable  inde- 
pendence until  her  death,  December  20,  1552.  John  Luther 
was  not  found  to  possess  much  capacity  for  learning  :  he  did 
not,  therefore,  prosecute  his  studies,  but  was  appointed  to  a 
sinecure  post  in  the  court  of  John  Frederic,  and  when  that 
prince  was  deprived  of  his  electorate,  he  obtained  a  similar 
appointment  in  the  court  of  his  father's  old  friend,  the  Duke 
of  Prussia.  John  married  the  only  daughter  of  Caspar 
Cruciger,  and  had  by  her  a  daughter,  who  died  childless. 
Martin  became  a  theologian,  but  from   weak  health,  led  a 


THE    LIFE    OF    MARTIN    LUTHER.  419 

private  life  at  Wittenberg,  and  although  he  married,  died 
childless.  Paul,  the  youngest  son,  was  distinguished  as  a 
professor  of  medicine  at  Jena,  and  was  physician  to  several 
princely  and  electoral  houses  :  he  was  eminent  for  his  piety, 
and  the  staunchness  with  which  he  maintained  his  father's 
sentiments  on  justification  by  Christ  alone,  and  the  grace  of 
the  Sacraments.  He  married  Anna  Warbeck,  the  daughter 
of  the  Saxon  Chancellor,  and  had  issue  by  her,  four  sons, 
of  whom  only  one,  John  Ernest,  Canon  of  Zeitz,  the  father  of 
John  Martin  Luther,  Seckendorf's  friend,  lived  to  grow  up, 
and  two  daughters.  Margaret  married  George  von  Cunheim, 
a  personage  of  note  and  high  authority  in  Prussia;  and 
from  her  and  her  brother  Paul  there  are  numerous  descend- 
ants at  the  present  day,  of  the  greatest  of  the  Reformers. 


THE    END. 


EEEATUM. 
Vol.  I.  page  316,  Note. 

For  "  The  account  of  the  colloquy  with  Satan  did  not  appear  in  any  earlier 
edition  of  the  work  than  that  of  1533,"  &c. 

Read  "  The  account  of  the  colloquy  with  Satan  appears  in  Luther's  treatise  on 
the  Private  Mass  and  Ordination  of  Priests,  published  in  1533,"  &c. 


DATE  DUE 

GAYLORO 

PRINTEO  IN  U.S.A. 

Ub  suu i ncnn i 


AA    000  945  266    5 


■•lw,    i  ''-  M  if 

i^irfi'.iuil|}t| 

■^H^BI 

iifllft 

■  iir-ii  Whi  &™ 

lnUl)lrM**inffilWf